This is a modern-English version of A story teller's story : The tale of an American writer's journey through his own imaginative world and through the world of facts, with many of his experiences and impressions among other writers, originally written by Anderson, Sherwood.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

A Story Teller’s Story
A Storyteller's Story
OTHER BOOKS BY
SHERWOOD ANDERSON
OTHER BOOKS BY
SHERWOOD ANDERSON
- WINDY MCPHERSON'S KID, A novel
- Marching soldiers, A novel
- Midwestern Chants, Chants
- Winesburg, Ohio, A book of tales
- WHITE TRASH, A novel
- The Egg's Triumph, A book of tales
- MANY RELATIONSHIPS, A novel
- Horses and Men, A book of tales

A Story Teller’s Story
The tale of an American writer’s journey through his own imaginative world and through the world of facts, with many of his experiences and impressions among other writers—told in many notes—in four books—and an Epilogue.
The story of an American writer’s journey through his own imaginative world and through the real world, featuring many of his experiences and thoughts alongside other writers—shared in various notes—in four books—and an Epilogue.
Sherwood Anderson
Sherwood Anderson

New York B. W. Huebsch, Inc. Mcmxxiv
New York B. W. Huebsch, Inc. 1934
COPYRIGHT, 1924, BY
B. W. HUEBSCH, INC.
PRINTED IN U. S. A.
COPYRIGHT, 1924, BY
B. W. HUEBSCH, INC.
PRINTED IN U.S.A.
TO ALFRED STIEGLITZ,
who has been more than father to so many
puzzled, wistful children of the arts in this
big, noisy, growing and groping America, this
book is gratefully dedicated.
TO ALFRED STIEGLITZ,
who has been more than a father to so many
confused, longing children of the arts in this
big, loud, expanding, and searching America, this
book is gratefully dedicated.
Portions of this book have been published in the American Mercury, Century and Phantasmus and to these magazines the author makes due acknowledgment.
Portions of this book have been published in the American Mercury, Century, and Phantasmus, and the author acknowledges these magazines accordingly.
CONTENTS.
BOOK ONE | 3 |
BOOK TWO | 131 |
BOOK THREE | 287 |
BOOK FOUR | 345 |
EPILOGUE | 411 |
A Story Teller’s Story
A Storyteller’s Tale
[Pg 3]
[Pg 3]
A STORY-TELLER’S STORY
IN all the towns and over the wide countrysides of my own mid-American boyhood there was no such thing as poverty, as I myself saw it and knew it later in our great American industrial towns and cities.
IN all the towns and across the vast countrysides of my mid-American childhood, there was no such thing as poverty, at least not as I saw it and understood it later in our big American industrial towns and cities.
My own family was poor, but of what did our poverty consist? My father, a ruined dandy from the South, had been reduced to keeping a small harness-repair shop and, when that failed, he became ostensibly a house-and-barn painter. However, he did not call himself a house-painter. The idea was not flashy enough for him. He called himself a “sign-writer.” The day of universal advertising had not yet come and there was but little sign-writing to do in our town, but still he stuck out bravely for the higher life. At any time he would let go by the board the privilege of painting Alf Mann the butcher’s house (it would have kept him busily at work for a month) in order to have a go at lettering signs on fences along country roads for Alf Granger the baker.
My family was poor, but what did our poverty really mean? My father, a once-stylish man from the South, had ended up running a small harness-repair shop, and when that didn’t work out, he started working as a house-and-barn painter. But he didn’t refer to himself as a house painter. That title felt too basic for him. He called himself a “sign-writer.” The era of widespread advertising hadn’t arrived yet, and there wasn’t much sign-writing to do in our town, but he still proudly aimed for something greater. He would easily pass up the chance to paint Alf Mann the butcher’s house (which would have kept him busy for a month) just to take on lettering signs on fences along country roads for Alf Granger the baker.
There was your true pilgrimage abroad, out into the land. Father engaged a horse and a spring wagon and took the three older of his sons with him. My older brother and the one next younger than myself were, from the first, adept at sign-writing, while both father and myself were helpless with a brush in our hands. And so I drove the horse and [Pg 4] father supervised the whole affair. He had a natural boyish love for the supervision of affairs and the picking out of a particular fence on a particular road became to him as important a matter as the selection of a site for a city, or the fortification that was to defend it.
There was your real adventure abroad, out in the countryside. Dad rented a horse and a spring wagon and took his three oldest sons with him. My older brother and the one just younger than me were both really good at sign-writing from the start, while Dad and I were completely lost with a brush in our hands. So, I drove the horse while Dad oversaw the whole thing. He had a natural enthusiasm for managing tasks, and choosing a specific fence on a specific road became just as important to him as picking a location for a city or the fortifications that would protect it. [Pg 4]
And then the farmer who owned the fence had to be consulted and if he refused his consent the joy of the situation became intensified. We drove off up the road and turned into a wood and the farmer went back to his work of cultivating corn. We watched and waited, our boyish hearts beating madly. It was a summer day and in the small wood in which we were concealed we all sat on a fallen log in silence. Birds flew overhead and a squirrel chattered. What a delicate tinge of romance spread over our commonplace enough business!
And then the farmer who owned the fence had to be approached, and if he refused to agree, the excitement of the situation grew even more intense. We drove up the road and turned into a wooded area while the farmer returned to his work of growing corn. We watched and waited, our young hearts racing. It was a summer day, and in the small woods where we were hidden, we all sat silently on a fallen log. Birds flew overhead, and a squirrel chattered. What a subtle touch of romance hung over our otherwise ordinary task!
Father was made for romance. For him there was no such thing as a fact. It had fallen out that he, never having had the glorious opportunity to fret his little hour upon a greater stage, was intent on fretting his hour as best he could in a money-saving prosperous corn-shipping, cabbage-raising Ohio village.
Father was all about romance. To him, facts didn’t really exist. It turned out that he had never had the amazing chance to worry over something big, so he was determined to make the most of his time fretting in a budget-friendly, successful corn-shipping and cabbage-growing village in Ohio.
He magnified the danger of our situation. “He might have a shotgun,” he said, pointing to where in the distance the farmer was again at work. As we waited in the wood he sometimes told us a story of the Civil War and how he with a companion had crept for days and nights through an enemy country at the risk of their lives. “We were carrying messages,” he said, raising his eyebrows and throwing out his hands. By the gesture there was something implied. “Well, it was an affair of life or death. Why speak of the matter? My country needed me and I, and my [Pg 5] intrepid companion, had been selected because we were the bravest men in the army,” the raised eyebrows were saying.
He exaggerated the danger of our situation. “He might have a shotgun,” he said, pointing to where the farmer was working in the distance again. As we waited in the woods, he would sometimes tell us stories about the Civil War, explaining how he and a friend had sneaked through enemy territory for days and nights, risking their lives. “We were delivering messages,” he said, raising his eyebrows and spreading his hands. His gesture suggested something more. “Well, it was a matter of life or death. Why discuss it? My country needed me, and my fearless companion and I were chosen because we were the bravest men in the army,” his raised eyebrows implied.
And so with their paint pots and brushes in their hands my two brothers presently crept out of the wood and ran crouching through cornfields and got into the dusty road. Quickly and with mad haste they dabbed the name of Alf Granger on the fence with the declaration that he baked the best bread in the State of Ohio, and when they returned to us we all got back into the spring wagon and drove back along the road past the sign. Father commanded me to stop the horse. “Look,” he said, frowning savagely at my two brothers, “your N is wrong. You are being careless again with your Bs. Good gracious, will I never teach you two how to handle a brush?”
And so, with their paint pots and brushes in hand, my two brothers quietly crept out of the woods, ran crouched through the cornfields, and made it to the dusty road. In a rush, they quickly painted the name Alf Granger on the fence, claiming he baked the best bread in the State of Ohio. When they returned to us, we all got back in the spring wagon and drove back along the road past the sign. Father told me to stop the horse. “Look,” he said, glaring furiously at my two brothers, “your N is wrong. You’re being careless again with your Bs. Good grief, will I ever teach you two how to use a brush properly?”
If our family was poor, of what did our poverty consist? If our clothes were torn the torn places only let in the sun and wind. In the winter we had no overcoats, but that only meant we ran rather than loitered. Those who are to follow the arts should have a training in what is called poverty. Given a comfortable middle-class start in life, the artist is almost sure to end up by becoming a bellyacher, constantly complaining because the public does not rush forward at once to proclaim him.
If our family was poor, what exactly was our poverty? If our clothes were torn, the rips just let in the sun and wind. In the winter, we didn’t have overcoats, but that just meant we ran instead of hanging around. Those who want to pursue the arts should experience what’s known as poverty. If they start life comfortably in the middle class, they’re likely to end up as whiners, always complaining that the public doesn’t immediately recognize them.
The boy who has no warm overcoat throws back his head and runs through the streets, past houses where smoke goes up into a clear cold sky, across vacant lots, through fields. The sky clouds and snows come and the bare hands are cold and chapped. They are raw and red but at night, before the boy sleeps, his mother will come with melted fat and rub it [Pg 6] over the raw places.
The boy without a warm coat tilts his head back and dashes through the streets, passing homes where smoke rises into a clear, cold sky, across empty lots and through fields. The sky turns cloudy, and snow falls, making his bare hands cold and chapped. They are raw and red, but at night, before he goes to sleep, his mom will come with melted fat and rub it over the sore spots. [Pg 6]
The warm fat is soothing. The touch of a mother’s fingers is soothing. Well, you see, with us, we were all of us—mother father and the children—in some way outlaws in our native place and that thought was soothing to a boy. It is a soothing thought in all my memories of my boyhood. Only recently one connected with my family said to me: “You must remember, now that you are an author, you have a respectable place in the world to maintain”; and for a moment my heart swelled with pride in the thought.
The warm fat feels comforting. A mother’s touch is comforting. Well, you see, we were all outlaws in our hometown—mom, dad, and the kids—and that idea was comforting to a boy. It’s a comforting thought in all my memories of childhood. Just recently, someone related to my family told me, “Remember that now you’re an author, and you have a respectable place in the world to uphold”; and for a moment, I felt a swell of pride at the thought.
And then I went out of the presence of the cautious one to associate with many other respectables and into my mind flashed thoughts of the sweetness I have seen shining in the eyes of others—of waiters, horsemen, thieves, gamblers, women, driven by poverty to the outer rim of society. Where were the respectables among those who had been kindest and sweetest to me?
And then I left the company of the cautious one to hang out with a lot of other respectable people, and I suddenly remembered the warmth I had seen in the eyes of others—waiters, riders, thieves, gamblers, women pushed to the edge of society by poverty. Where were the respectable folks among those who had been the kindest and sweetest to me?
Whatever may be said in this matter, and I admit my feet have slipped many times toward solid respectability we of our family were not too respectable then.
Whatever might be said about this, and I acknowledge that I've stumbled many times toward a solid reputation, we in our family weren't very respectable back then.
For one thing father never paid his rent and so we were always living in haunted houses. Never was such a family to take the haunts out of a house. Old women riding white horses, dead men screaming, groans, cries—all were quieted when we came to live in a haunted house. And how often because of this talent—inherent in my family—we lived for months scot-free in a fairly comfortable house, while at the same time conferring a benefit on the property owner. It is a system—I [Pg 7] recommend it to poets with large families.
For one thing, my dad never paid the rent, so we were always living in haunted houses. There has never been a family quite like ours when it came to making the ghosts disappear. Old women riding white horses, dead men screaming, groans, cries—all of it calmed down when we moved in. And because of this talent—something we just had in our family—we lived rent-free for months in a pretty comfortable place, while also doing a favor for the property owner. It's a system—I [Pg 7] recommend it to poets with big families.
There were not enough bedclothes so three boys slept in one bed and there was a window that, in summer, looked out upon fields, but in winter had been painted by the hand of the frost king so that moonlight came softly and dimly into the room. It was no doubt the fact that there were three of us in one bed that drove away all fear of the “haunts.”
There weren't enough blankets, so three boys slept in one bed, and there was a window that, in summer, overlooked fields, but in winter had been painted by the frost king's hand so that moonlight came in softly and dimly into the room. It was probably the fact that there were three of us in one bed that chased away all fear of the “haunts.”
Mother was tall and slender and had once been beautiful. She had been a bound girl in a farmer’s family when she married father, the improvident young dandy. There was Italian blood in her veins and her origin was something of a mystery. Perhaps we never cared to solve it—wanted it to remain a mystery. It is so wonderfully comforting to think of one’s mother as a dark, beautiful and somewhat mysterious woman. I later saw her mother—my own grandmother—but that is another story.
Mother was tall and slender and had once been beautiful. She had been a servant girl in a farmer’s family when she married Dad, the reckless young dandy. There was Italian blood in her veins, and her origins were somewhat of a mystery. Maybe we never wanted to figure it out—preferred it to stay a mystery. It’s incredibly comforting to think of your mom as a dark, beautiful, and somewhat mysterious woman. I later met her mother—my grandma—but that’s another story.
She the dark evil old woman with the broad hips and the great breasts of a peasant and with the glowing hate shining out of her one eye would be worth a book in herself. It was said she had shuffled off four husbands and when I knew her, although she was old, she looked not unwilling to tackle another. Some day perhaps I shall tell the tale of the old woman and the tramp who tried to rob the farm house when she was staying alone; and of how she, after beating him into submission with her old fists, got drunk with him over a barrel of hard cider in a shed and of how the two went singing off together down the road—but not now.
She was the dark, evil old woman with broad hips and the big breasts of a peasant, and the fierce hatred shining from her one eye could fill a book by itself. People said she'd gotten rid of four husbands, and when I met her, she was old but seemed ready to take on another. Maybe one day I’ll share the story of the old woman and the drifter who tried to rob the farmhouse while she was there alone; how she, after beating him into submission with her old fists, got drunk with him over a barrel of hard cider in a shed, and how they both went singing down the road together—but not now.
Our own mother had eyes that were like pools lying in deep shadows at [Pg 8] the edge of a wood but when she grew angry and fell into one of her deep silences lights danced in the pools. When she spoke her words were filled with strange wisdom (how sharply yet I remember certain comments of hers—on life—on your neighbors!), but often she commanded all of us by the strength of her silences.
Our mom had eyes that looked like deep pools in the shadows at the edge of a forest, but when she got angry and went into one of her deep silences, the lights would flicker in those pools. When she spoke, her words were packed with unique wisdom (I still remember some of her comments—about life—about our neighbors!), but most of the time, she had authority over all of us just through the power of her silences. [Pg 8]
She came into the bedroom where three boys lay on one bed, carrying in one hand a small kerosene lamp and in the other a dish in which was warm melted fat.
She walked into the bedroom where three boys were lying on one bed, holding a small kerosene lamp in one hand and a dish of warm melted fat in the other.
There were three boys in one bed, two of them almost of the same size. The third was then a small silent fellow. Later his life was to be very strange. He was one who could not fit himself into the social scheme and, until he was a grown man, he stayed about, living sometimes with one, sometimes with another of his brothers—always reading books, dreaming, quarreling with no one.
There were three boys in one bed, two of them almost the same size. The third was a small, quiet kid. Later, his life would be quite unusual. He was someone who couldn’t find his place in the social scene, and until he grew up, he drifted around, living sometimes with one brother, sometimes with another—always reading books, dreaming, and never getting into fights.
He, the youngest of the three, looked out at life always as from a great distance. He was of the stuff of which poets are made. What instinctive wisdom in him. All loved him but no one could help him in the difficult business of living his life and when on summer evenings, as the three lay in the bed the two older boys fought or made great plans for their lives, he lay beside them in silence—but sometimes he spoke and his words came always as from a far place. We were perhaps discussing the wonders of life. “Well,” he said, “it is so and so. There will be no more babies, but the new babies do not come as you say. I know how they come. They come the same way you grow corn. Father plants seed in the earth and mother is the earth in which the seed grows.”
He, the youngest of the three, always viewed life from a distance. He had the spirit of a poet. He possessed such intuitive wisdom. Everyone loved him, but no one could assist him with the tough challenge of living his life. On summer evenings, while the two older boys were fighting or making big plans for their futures in bed, he lay there quietly beside them. But sometimes he spoke, and his words seemed to come from far away. We might have been discussing the wonders of life. “Well,” he said, “here's how it is. There won’t be any more babies, but new babies don’t come the way you think. I know how they come. They come the same way you grow corn. Dad plants the seed in the ground, and Mom is the earth where the seed grows.”
[Pg 9]
[Pg 9]
I am thinking of my younger brother after he had grown a little older—I am thinking of him grown into a man and become habitually silent like mother—I am thinking of him as he was just before he mysteriously disappeared out of our lives and never came back.
I’m reflecting on my younger brother after he got a bit older—I’m imagining him grown into a man who has become quiet like our mother—I’m thinking of him as he was right before he mysteriously vanished from our lives and never returned.
Now, however, he is in bed with the other brother and myself. An older brother, he who crept through the cornfields to paint the name of Alf Granger on the fence, had already gone from our lives. He had a talent for drawing, and a drunken half-insane cutter of stones for graveyards has taken him away from our town to another town where he is already sitting at a desk drawing designs for gravestones. A dove descends out of the sky and holds a leaf in its bill. There is an angel clinging to a rock in the midst of a storm at sea.
Now, though, he’s in bed with me and the other brother. The older brother, the one who sneaked through the cornfields to scrawl Alf Granger’s name on the fence, is already gone from our lives. He had a talent for drawing, and a drunken, half-crazy stonecutter for graveyards took him away from our town to another town where he’s now sitting at a desk sketching designs for gravestones. A dove comes down from the sky, holding a leaf in its beak. There's an angel clinging to a rock in the middle of a storm at sea.
The three boys are in the bed in the room and there are not enough bedclothes. Father’s overcoat, now too old to be worn, is thrown over the foot of the bed and the three boys have been permitted to undress downstairs, in the kitchen of the house, by the kitchen stove.
The three boys are in the bed in the room, and there aren't enough blankets. Father's old overcoat, no longer fit to wear, is tossed over the foot of the bed, and the three boys were allowed to get undressed downstairs in the kitchen, by the stove.
The oldest of the boys remaining at home (that is myself) must undress first and must arrange his clothes neatly on a kitchen chair. Mother does not scold about such a trifling matter. She stands silently looking and the boy does as he has been told. There is something of my grandmother in a certain look that can come into her eyes. “Well, you’d better,” it says. How unsuccessfully I have tried all my life to [Pg 10] cultivate just that look, for myself!
The oldest of the boys still at home (that’s me) has to undress first and neatly hang his clothes on a kitchen chair. Mom doesn’t get upset over something so minor. She just watches quietly while the boy does what he's told. There's a bit of my grandmother in a certain look that can appear in her eyes. “You’d better,” it tells him. How hard I’ve tried all my life to develop just that look for myself! [Pg 10]
And now the boy has undressed and must run in his white flannel nightgown barefooted through the cold house, past frosted windows, up a flight of stairs and, with a flying leap into the bed. The flannel nightgown has been worn almost threadbare by the older brother—now gone out into the world—before it has come down to him who wears it now.
And now the boy has taken off his clothes and has to run in his white flannel nightgown, barefoot, through the chilly house, past frosted windows, up a flight of stairs, and make a flying leap into bed. The flannel nightgown has been worn nearly to threads by his older brother—now out in the world—before it came down to him to wear it now.
He is the oldest of the brothers at home and must take the first plunge into the icy bed, but soon the others come running. They are lying like little puppies in the bed but as they grow warmer the two older boys begin to fight. There is a contest. The point is not to be compelled to lie on the outside where the covers may come off in the night. Blows are struck and tense young bodies are intertwined. “It’s your turn to-night! No it’s yours! You’re a liar! Take that! Well then, take that! I’ll show you!”
He’s the oldest of the brothers at home and has to be the first to jump into the cold bed, but soon the others come running. They’re all curled up like little puppies in the bed, but as they start to warm up, the two older boys begin to wrestle. It turns into a competition. The goal is to avoid being stuck on the outside where the blankets might come off during the night. Punches are thrown and tense young bodies are tangled together. “It’s your turn tonight! No, it’s yours! You’re a liar! Take that! Well then, take that! I’ll show you!”
The youngest brother of the three brothers has already taken one of the two outside positions. It is his fate. He is not strong enough to fight with either of the other two and perhaps he does not care for fighting. He lies silently in the cold in the darkness while the fight between the other two goes on and on. They are of almost equal strength and the fight might possibly last for an hour.
The youngest of the three brothers has already taken one of the two outside positions. That's just how it is for him. He isn’t strong enough to fight either of the other two, and maybe he doesn't even want to fight. He lies quietly in the cold darkness while the battle between the other two continues. They are nearly equal in strength, and the fight could go on for an hour.
But there is now the sound of the mother’s footsteps on the stairs and that is the end of the struggle. Now—at this moment—the boy who has the coveted position may keep it. That is an understood thing.
But now there’s the sound of the mother’s footsteps on the stairs, and that ends the struggle. Right now—at this moment—the boy who has the desired position can hold onto it. That’s understood.
The mother puts the kerosene lamp on a little table by the bed and [Pg 11] beside it the dish of warm, comforting melted fat. One by one six hands are thrust out to her.
The mother places the kerosene lamp on a small table next to the bed and [Pg 11] next to it is the dish of warm, comforting melted fat. One by one, six hands reach out to her.
There is a caress in her long toil-hardened fingers.
There is a gentle touch in her long, work-worn fingers.
In the night and in the dim light of the lamp her dark eyes are like luminous pools.
In the night, under the soft glow of the lamp, her dark eyes resemble shimmering pools.
The fat in the little cracked china dish is warm and soothing to burning itching hands. For an hour she has had the dish sitting at the back of the kitchen stove in the little frame house far out at the edge of the town.
The grease in the small cracked china dish is warm and comforting to her burning, itchy hands. For an hour, she’s had the dish resting on the back of the kitchen stove in the tiny frame house way out on the edge of town.
The strange, silent mother! She is making love to her sons, but there are no words for her love. There are no kisses, no caresses.
The odd, quiet mother! She loves her sons, but there are no words for her affection. There are no kisses, no hugs.
The rubbing of the warm fat into the cracked hands of her sons is a caress. The light that now shines in her eyes is a caress.
The rubbing of the warm fat into the cracked hands of her sons is a gentle touch. The light that now shines in her eyes is a gentle touch.
The silent woman has left deep traces of herself in one of her sons. He is the one now lying stilly in the bed with his two noisy brothers. What has happened in the life of the mother? In herself, in her own physical life, even the two quarreling, fighting sons feel that nothing can matter too much. If her husband, the father of the boys, is a no-account and cannot bring money home—the money that would feed and clothe her children in comfort—one feels it does not matter too much. If she herself, the proud quiet one, must humiliate herself, washing—for the sake of the few dimes it may bring in—the soiled clothes of her neighbors, one knows it does not matter too much.
The silent woman has left a strong impression on one of her sons. He is now lying quietly in bed with his two noisy brothers. What has happened in the mother's life? In her own existence, even the two fighting sons sense that not much really matters. If her husband, the boys' father, is a deadbeat and can't bring home money—the money that would provide comfort for her children—one feels it doesn't matter too much. If she, the proud quiet one, has to humiliate herself by washing—just to earn a few dimes—her neighbors' dirty clothes, one knows it doesn't matter too much.
And yet there is no Christian forbearance in her. She speaks sometimes [Pg 12] as she sits on the edge of the bed in the lamplight rubbing the warm fat into the cracked frost-bitten hands of her children and there is often a kind of smoldering fire in her words.
And yet there’s no sense of Christian patience in her. Sometimes she talks while sitting on the edge of the bed in the warm light, rubbing lotion into the cracked, frostbitten hands of her kids, and there's often a kind of burning intensity in her words. [Pg 12]
One of the boys in the bed has had a fight with the son of a neighbor. He, the third son of the family, has taken a hatchet out of the neighbor boy’s hands. We had been cramming ourselves with the contents of a book, “The Last of the Mohicans,” and the neighbor boy, whose father is the town shoemaker, had the hatchet given him as a Christmas present. He would not lend it, would not let it go out of his hands and so my brother, the determined one, has snatched it away.
One of the boys in the bed got into a fight with the neighbor's son. He, the third son in the family, took a hatchet from the neighbor boy’s hands. We had been stuffing ourselves with the contents of a book, “The Last of the Mohicans,” and the neighbor boy, whose dad is the town shoemaker, received the hatchet as a Christmas gift. He wouldn’t lend it out, wouldn’t let it go, so my brother, the determined one, snatched it away.
The struggle took place in a little grove of trees half a mile from the house. “Le Renard Subtil,” cries my brother jerking the hatchet out of the neighbor boy’s hand. The neighbor boy did not want to be the villain—“Le Renard Subtil.”
The fight happened in a small grove of trees half a mile from the house. “The Subtle Fox,” my brother shouted as he yanked the hatchet out of the neighbor boy’s hand. The neighbor boy didn’t want to be the villain—“The Subtle Fox.”
And so he went crying off toward his home, on the farther side of the field. He lived in a yellow house just beyond our own and near the end of the street at the edge of the town.
And so he walked home in tears, across the field. He lived in a yellow house just past ours and near the end of the street at the edge of town.
My brother now had possession of the hatchet and paid no more attention to him but I went to stand by a fence to watch him go.
My brother now had the hatchet and paid no more attention to him, but I went to stand by a fence to watch him leave.
It is because I am a white man and understand the whites better than he. I am Hawkeye the scout, “La Longue Carabine,” and as I stand by the fence la longue carabine is lying across the crook of my arm. It is represented by a stick. “I could pick him off from here, shall I do [Pg 13] it?” I ask, speaking to my brother with whom I fight viciously every night after we have got into bed but who, during the day, is my sworn comrade in arms.
It’s because I’m a white man and understand white people better than he does. I’m Hawkeye the scout, “La Longue Carabine,” and as I stand by the fence, la longue carabine rests across my arm. It’s just a stick. “I could take him out from here, should I?” I ask, speaking to my brother. We go at it fiercely every night after we get into bed, but during the day, he’s my loyal partner in arms. [Pg 13]
Uncas—“Le Cerf Agile”—pays no attention to my words and I rest the stick over the fence, half determined to pick off the neighbor boy but at the last withholding my fire. “He is a little pig, never to let a fellow take his hatchet. Uncas was right to snatch it out of his hand.”
Uncas—“The Swift Deer”—doesn’t pay any attention to what I'm saying, and I lean the stick against the fence, half decided to take a shot at the neighbor kid but ultimately holding back. “He’s such a little jerk, always refusing to let anyone use his hatchet. Uncas was right to grab it out of his hand.”
As I withhold my fire and the boy goes unscathed and crying across the snow-covered field I feel very magnanimous—since at any moment I could have dropped him like a deer in flight. And then I see him go crying into his mother’s house. Uncas has, in fact, cuffed him a couple of times in the face. But was it not justified? “Dare a dirty Huron—a squaw man—dare such a one question the authority of a Delaware? Ugh!”
As I hold back my anger and watch the boy run across the snow-covered field, unharmed and crying, I feel pretty generous—since I could have easily taken him down like a fleeing deer. Then I see him crying as he enters his mother's house. Uncas had, in fact, slapped him a couple of times in the face. But was it really unjustified? “How dare a filthy Huron—a coward—question the authority of a Delaware? Ugh!”
And now “Le Renard Subtil” has gone into his mother’s house and has blabbed on us, and I tell Uncas the news but, with the impenetrable stoicism of a true savage, he pays no attention. He is as one sitting by the council fire. Are words to be wasted on a dog of a Huron?
And now “Le Renard Subtil” has gone to his mother's place and spilled the beans on us, and I tell Uncas the news, but with the unbreakable calm of a real warrior, he doesn’t react. He’s like someone sitting by the council fire. Why waste words on a Huron dog?
And now “Le Cerf Agile” has an idea. Drawing a line in the snow, he stands some fifty feet from the largest of the trees in the grove and hurls the hatchet through the air.
And now “Le Cerf Agile” has an idea. He draws a line in the snow, stands about fifty feet from the biggest tree in the grove, and throws the hatchet into the air.
What a determined fellow! I am of the paleface race myself and shall always depend for my execution upon la longue carabine but Uncas is of another breed. Is there not painted on his breast a crawling tortoise? In ink I have traced it there myself from a drawing he has [Pg 14] made.
What a determined guy! I'm part of the white race myself and will always rely on the long rifle for my actions, but Uncas is from a different lineage. Isn't there a crawling tortoise painted on his chest? I’ve traced it in ink from a drawing he created. [Pg 14]
During the short winter afternoon the hatchet will be thrown not once but a hundred, perhaps two hundred, times. It whirls through the air. The thing is to throw the hatchet so that, at the end of its flight, the blade goes, just so, firmly into the soft bark of the tree. And it must enter the bark of the tree at just a particular spot.
During the brief winter afternoon, the hatchet will be thrown not just once but maybe a hundred or even two hundred times. It spins through the air. The goal is to throw the hatchet so that, at the end of its flight, the blade lands precisely and firmly into the soft bark of the tree. And it has to hit the tree's bark at just the right spot.
The matter is of infinite importance. Has not Uncas, “The Last of the Mohicans,” broad shoulders? He will later be a strong man. Now is the time to acquire infinite skill.
The issue is extremely important. Doesn't Uncas, “The Last of the Mohicans,” have broad shoulders? He will grow into a strong man. Now is the time to gain immense skill.
He has measured carefully the spot on the body of the tree where the blade of the hatchet must enter with a soft chug, deep into the yielding bark. There is a tall warrior, a hated Huron, standing by the tree and young Uncas has measured carefully so that he knows just where the top of the warrior’s head should come. An idea has come to him. He will just scalp the unsuspecting warrior with the blade of the tomahawk; and has not he, Uncas, crept for many weary miles through the forest, going without food, eating snow for his drink? A skulking Huron has dared creep into the hunting grounds of the Delawares and has learned the winter abiding place of our tribe. Dare we let him go back to his squaw-loving people, bearing such knowledge? Uncas will show him!
He has carefully measured the spot on the tree trunk where the hatchet needs to strike with a soft thud, deep into the soft bark. A tall warrior, a despised Huron, is standing by the tree, and young Uncas has measured precisely so he knows exactly where the top of the warrior’s head should be. An idea has come to him. He will just scalp the unsuspecting warrior with the edge of the tomahawk; and hasn’t he, Uncas, traveled many exhausting miles through the forest, going without food, drinking only snow? A sneaky Huron has dared to sneak into the hunting grounds of the Delawares and has learned where our tribe spends the winter. Should we really let him return to his squaw-loving people with that knowledge? Uncas will deal with him!
He, Uncas, is absorbed in the problem before him and has not deigned to look off across the fields to where the neighbor boy has gone crying to his mother. “Le Renard Subtil” will be heard from again but for [Pg 15] the present is forgotten. The foot must be advanced just so. The arm must be drawn back just so. When one hurls the hatchet the body must be swung forward just so. An absolute silence must be maintained. The skulking Huron who has dared come into our hunting grounds is unaware of the presence of the young Uncas. Is he, Uncas, not one whose feet leave no traces in the morning dew?
He, Uncas, is focused on the challenge in front of him and hasn’t bothered to look over at the neighbor boy who has run off crying to his mom. “Le Renard Subtil” will make a comeback, but for now, it’s forgotten. The foot has to be positioned just right. The arm has to be pulled back just so. When you throw the hatchet, the body has to lean forward exactly. Complete silence is essential. The sneaky Huron who has dared to enter our hunting grounds doesn’t notice the presence of young Uncas. Isn’t he, Uncas, someone whose footsteps leave no trace in the morning dew? [Pg 15]
Deep within the breasts of my brother and myself there is a resentment that we were born out of our time. By what a narrow margin in the scroll of time have we missed the great adventure! Two, three, at the most a dozen generations earlier and we might so well have been born in the virgin forest itself. On the very ground where we now stand Indians have indeed stalked one another in the forest, and how often Uncas and myself have discussed the matter. As for our father, we dismiss him half contemptuously. He is born to be a dandy of the cities and has turned out to be a village house-painter, in the dwelling places of the paleface. The devil!—with luck he might have turned out to be an actor, or a writer or some such scum of earth but never could he have been a warrior. Why had not our mother, who might have been such a splendid Indian princess, the daughter of a great chief, why had she also not been born a few generations earlier? She had just the silent stoicism needed for the wife of a great warrior. A deep injustice had been done us, and something of the feeling of that injustice was in the stern face of Uncas as he crept each time to the line he had marked out in the snow and sent the hatchet hurtling through the air.
Deep down, my brother and I have a resentment that we were born in the wrong time. By a narrow margin in the timeline, we've missed out on the great adventure! Just two, three, or at most a dozen generations earlier, we could have been born right in the untouched wilderness. On the very ground where we now stand, Native Americans have actually tracked one another through the woods, and how many times Uncas and I have talked about this. As for our father, we regard him with a hint of contempt. He was meant to be a city dandy but ended up just a village house painter, in the homes of white people. Damn it!—with a bit of luck, he might have become an actor or a writer or some similar lowlife, but he could never have been a warrior. Why couldn’t our mother, who could have been a magnificent Indian princess, the daughter of a great chief, have been born a few generations earlier? She had the quiet strength needed to be the wife of a great warrior. We've been wronged deeply, and something of that injustice was reflected in Uncas's stern face as he crept each time to the line he had marked out in the snow and threw the hatchet through the air.
The two boys, filled with scorn of their parentage, on the father’s [Pg 16] side, are in a little grove of trees at the edge of an Ohio town. In later days the father—also born out of his place and time—will come to mean more to them but now he has little except their contempt. Now Uncas is determined—absorbed—and I, who have so little of his persistence, am impressed by his silent determination. It makes me a little uncomfortable for, since he has snatched the hatchet out of the neighbor boy’s hand, saying, “Go on home, cry-baby,” no word has passed his lips. There is but a small grunting sound when the hatchet is hurled and a scowl on his face when it misses the mark.
The two boys, filled with disdain for their father's side of the family, are in a small grove of trees at the edge of an Ohio town. In the future, their father—who also feels out of place and time—will come to mean more to them, but for now, he has little more than their contempt. Uncas is determined and focused, and I, who lack his persistence, am struck by his silent resolve. It makes me a bit uncomfortable because, ever since he grabbed the hatchet from the neighbor boy’s hand and said, “Go home, cry-baby,” he hasn't spoken a word. All I hear is a small grunt when he throws the hatchet, and I can see the scowl on his face when he misses.
And “Le Renard Subtil” has gone home and blabbed to his mother, who in turn has thrown a shawl over her head and has gone to our house, no doubt to blab, in her turn, to our mother. “La Longue Carabine,” being a paleface, is a little intent on disturbing the aim of “Le Cerf Agile.” “We’ll catch hell,” he says, looking at the hatchet thrower who has not so far unbent from the natural dignity of the Indian as to reply. He grunts and taking his place solemnly at the line poises his body. There is the quick abrupt swing forward of the body. What a shame Uncas did not later become a professional baseball player. He might have made his mark in the world. The hatchet sings through the air. Well, it has struck sideways. The Huron is injured but not fatally, and Uncas goes and sets him upright again. He has marked the place where the Huron warrior’s head should be by pressing a ball of snow into the wrinkled bark of the tree and has indicated the dog’s body by a dead branch.
And “Le Renard Subtil” has gone home and spilled the beans to his mom, who then threw a shawl over her head and headed to our house, probably to gossip with our mom. “La Longue Carabine,” being a white guy, is a bit focused on messing up “Le Cerf Agile’s” aim. “We’re in for it,” he says, glancing at the hatchet thrower, who hasn’t relaxed from his natural dignity as an Indian enough to respond. He grunts and takes his place at the line, positioning himself carefully. There’s a quick, sudden swing of his body. What a shame Uncas didn’t later become a professional baseball player; he could have made a name for himself. The hatchet whizzes through the air. Well, it hits at an angle. The Huron is hurt but not fatally, and Uncas goes to stand him back up. He has marked the spot where the Huron warrior’s head should be by pressing a ball of snow into the wrinkled bark of the tree and has indicated the dog’s body with a dead branch.
And so Hawkeye the scout—“La Longue Carabine”—has gone creeping off [Pg 17] among the trees to see if there are any more Hurons lurking about and has come upon a great buck, pawing the snow and feeding on dry grass at the edge of a small creek. Up goes la longue carabine and the buck pitches forward, dead, on the ice. Hawkeye runs forward and swiftly passes his hunting knife across the neck of the buck. It will not do to build a fire now that there are Hurons lurking in the hunting ground of the Delawares so Uncas and he must feed upon raw meat. Well, the hunter’s life for the hunter! What must be must be! Hawkeye cuts several great steaks from the carcass of the buck and makes his way slowly and cautiously back to Uncas. As he approaches he three times imitates the call of a catbird and an answering call comes from the lips of “Le Cerf Agile.”
And so Hawkeye the scout—“The Long Rifle”—has quietly slipped away [Pg 17] into the trees to see if there are any more Hurons hiding around and has come across a big buck, pawing the snow and eating dry grass at the edge of a small creek. Up goes the long rifle and the buck falls forward, dead, on the ice. Hawkeye runs up and quickly uses his hunting knife to cut the buck's throat. It's not safe to start a fire now that there are Hurons nearby in the Delaware hunting grounds, so Uncas and he have to eat raw meat. Well, the hunter's life for the hunter! What has to happen, happens! Hawkeye cuts several large steaks from the buck and makes his way slowly and carefully back to Uncas. As he gets closer, he imitates the call of a catbird three times and an answering call comes from the lips of “The Agile Buck.”
“Aha! the night is coming on,” Uncas now says, having at last laid the Huron low. “Now that the dirty lover of squaws is dead we may build a fire and feast. Cook the venison ere the night falls. When darkness has come we must show no fire. Do not make much smoke—big fires for the paleface, but little fires for us Indians.”
“Aha! Night is coming,” Uncas says, finally taking down the Huron. “Now that the filthy lover of women is dead, we can build a fire and have a feast. Cook the venison before night falls. Once it’s dark, we can’t show any fire. Don’t make too much smoke—big fires for the white man, but small fires for us Native Americans.”
Uncas stands for a moment, gnawing the bone of the buck, and then of a sudden becomes still and alert. “Aha! I thought so,” he says, and goes back again to where he has drawn the mark in the snow. “Go,” he says; “see how many come.”
Uncas stands still for a moment, chewing on the deer bone, and then suddenly becomes quiet and focused. “Aha! I knew it,” he says and returns to the spot where he made a mark in the snow. “Go,” he says; “see how many show up.”
And now Hawkeye must creep through the thick forests, climb mountains, leap canyons. Word has come that “Le Renard Subtil” but feigned when he went off crying, across the field—fools that we were! While we have been in the forest he has crept into the very teepee of our people [Pg 18] and has stolen the princess, the mother of Uncas. And now “Le Renard Subtil,” with subtle daring, drags the stoical princess right across the path of her warrior son. In one moment from a great height Hawkeye draws the faithful Deer Killer to his shoulder and fires, and at the same moment the tomahawk of Uncas sinks itself in the skull of the Huron dog.
And now Hawkeye has to sneak through the dense forests, climb mountains, and leap over canyons. News has come that “Le Renard Subtil” pretended to cry and left across the field—how naive we were! While we’ve been in the forest, he snuck into the very teepee of our people and kidnapped the princess, the mother of Uncas. Now “Le Renard Subtil,” with cunning boldness, drags the stoic princess right in front of her warrior son. In one instant, from a high vantage point, Hawkeye raises the loyal Deer Killer to his shoulder and fires, and at the same moment, Uncas's tomahawk buries itself in the skull of the Huron dog. [Pg 18]
“‘Le Renard Subtil’ had drunk firewater and was reckless,” says Uncas, as the two boys go homeward in the dusk.
“‘Le Renard Subtil’ had drunk too much liquor and was acting wild,” says Uncas, as the two boys walk home in the evening.
The older of the two boys now homeward bound is somewhat afraid but Uncas is filled with pride. As they go homeward in the gathering darkness and come to the house, where lives “Le Renard Subtil,” to which he has gone crying but a few hours before, an idea comes to him. Uncas creeps in the darkness, halfway between the house and the picket fence in front and, balancing the hatchet in his hand, hurls it proudly. Well for the neighbor’s family that no one came to the door at that moment for Uncas’ long afternoon of practicing has got results. The hatchet flies through the air and sinks itself fairly and deeply into the door panel as Uncas and Hawkeye run away home.
The older of the two boys heading home feels a bit scared, but Uncas is full of pride. As they make their way through the dimming light and reach the house where “Le Renard Subtil” lives, the same place he had run to in tears just a few hours ago, an idea strikes him. Uncas sneaks through the darkness, stopping halfway between the house and the picket fence in front. Balancing the hatchet in his hand, he proudly throws it. It's a good thing for the neighbor’s family that no one answered the door at that moment because Uncas’s long afternoon of practice has paid off. The hatchet soars through the air and embeds itself firmly and deeply into the door panel just as Uncas and Hawkeye run away home.
And now they are in the bed and the mother is rubbing the warm grease into their chapped hands. Her own hands are rough, but how gentle they are! She is thinking of her sons, of the one already gone out into the [Pg 19] world and most of all at the moment of Uncas.
And now they’re in bed, and their mom is rubbing warm grease into their chapped hands. Her own hands are rough, but they’re so gentle! She’s thinking about her sons, the one who has already gone out into the [Pg 19] world, and mostly about Uncas at this moment.
There is something direct brutal and fine in the nature of Uncas. It is not quite an accident that in our games he is always the Indian while I am the despised white, the paleface. It is permitted me to heal my misfortune a little by being, not a storekeeper or a fur trader but that man nearest the Indian’s nature of all the palefaces who ever lived on our continent, “La Longue Carabine”; but I cannot be an Indian and least of all an Indian of the tribe of the Delawares. I am not persistent patient and determined enough. As for Uncas, one may coax and wheedle him along any road and I am always clinging to that slight sense of leadership that my additional fifteen months of living gives me, by coaxing and wheedling, but one may not drive Uncas. To attempt driving him is but to arouse a stubbornness and obstinacy that is limitless. Having told a lie to mother or father, he will stick to the lie to the death while I—well, perhaps there is in me something of the doglike, the squaw man, the paleface, the very spirit of “Le Renard Subtil”—if the bitter truth must be told. In all my after years I shall have to struggle against a tendency toward slickness and plausibility in myself. I am the tale-teller, the man who sits by the fire waiting for listeners, the man whose life must be led into the world of his fancies, I am the one destined to follow the little, crooked words of men’s speech through the uncharted paths of the forests of fancy. What my father should have been I am to become. Through long years of the baffling uncertainty, that only such men as myself can ever know, I am to creep with trembling steps forward in [Pg 20] a strange land, following the little words, striving to learn all the ways of the ever-changing words, the smooth-lying little words, the hard, jagged, cutting words, the round, melodious, healing words. All the words I am in the end to come to know a little and to attempt to use for my purpose have, at the same time, the power in them both to heal and to destroy. How often am I to be made sick by words, how often am I to be healed by words, before I can come at all near to man’s estate!
There’s something directly brutal yet refined about Uncas. It’s not just coincidental that in our games he’s always the Indian while I’m the despised white guy, the paleface. I get to heal my misfortune a bit by being, not a storekeeper or a fur trader, but the man closest to the Indian nature among all the palefaces who ever lived on this continent, “La Longue Carabine”; but I can’t be an Indian, especially not one of the Delaware tribe. I’m not persistent, patient, or determined enough. As for Uncas, you can coax and persuade him in any direction, and I always cling to that slight sense of leadership from the extra fifteen months of my life by doing just that, but you can’t force him. Trying to push him will only spark an unyielding stubbornness and determination that knows no bounds. Once he tells a lie to his mother or father, he’ll hold onto that lie until the end, while I—well, there’s probably something in me that’s dog-like, a squaw man, a paleface, the very essence of “Le Renard Subtil”—if we’re being honest. Throughout my life, I’ll have to fight against a tendency toward slickness and craftiness in myself. I’m the storyteller, the one who sits by the fire waiting for listeners, the person whose life is meant to be guided by his fantasies, the one destined to navigate the twisted paths of people’s speech through the undefined forests of imagination. What my father should have become, I will become. Through many years of confusing uncertainty that only someone like me can truly understand, I will move forward cautiously in a strange land, following the little words, trying to learn all the different ways of the ever-shifting words, the smooth, deceptive little words, the harsh, jagged, cutting words, the soft, melodious, healing words. All the words I will eventually come to know a bit and attempt to use for my own purposes carry within them the capacity to heal and to destroy. How often will I be made sick by words, and how often will I be healed by words, before I can come close to being truly human!
And so as I lie in the bed putting out my chapped hands to the healing touch of mother’s hands I do not look at her. Already I am often too conscious of my own inner thoughts to look directly at people and now, although I am not the one who has cuffed the neighbor boy and jerked the hatchet out of his hands, I am nevertheless busily at work borrowing the troubles of Uncas. I cannot let what is to be be, but must push forward striving to change all by the power of words. I dare not thrust my words forward in the presence of mother, but they are busily getting themselves said inside myself.
And so as I lie in bed, extending my chapped hands to the soothing touch of my mother’s hands, I don’t look at her. I’m often too aware of my own thoughts to make eye contact with people, and now, even though I’m not the one who hit the neighbor boy and yanked the hatchet from his hands, I’m still focused on borrowing Uncas's troubles. I can’t just accept what is going to happen; I have to push forward, trying to change everything through the power of words. I can't voice my thoughts in front of my mother, but they are actively forming inside me.
There is a consciousness of Uncas also within me. Another curse that is to lie heavily on me all through my life has its grip on me. I am not one to be satisfied to act for myself, think for myself, feel for myself but I must also attempt to think and feel for Uncas.
There’s a part of me that shares Uncas’s awareness. Another burden that will weigh on me for my entire life has taken hold of me. I’m not someone who can just act for myself, think for myself, or feel for myself; I also have to try to think and feel for Uncas.
At the moment slick plausible excuses for what has happened during the afternoon are rising to my lips, struggling for expression. I am not satisfied with being myself and letting things take their course, but [Pg 21] must be inside the very body of Uncas, striving to fill his stout young body with the questioning soul of myself.
Right now, smooth and convincing excuses for what happened this afternoon are coming to mind, trying to find a way out. I'm not okay with just being myself and letting things unfold; instead, I feel like I need to be inside Uncas, trying to infuse his strong young body with the questioning essence of who I am. [Pg 21]
As I write this I am remembering that my father, like myself, could never be singly himself but must always be a playing some rôle, everlastingly strutting on the stage of life in some part not his own. Was there a rôle of his own to be played? That I do not know and I fancy he never knew, but I remember that he once took it into his head to enact the rôle of the stern and unyielding parent to Uncas and what came of it.
As I write this, I’m remembering that my father, like me, could never just be himself; he always had to play some role, constantly strutting on the stage of life in a part that wasn't his own. Was there a role of his own to play? I don’t know, and I doubt he ever did, but I remember that he once decided to take on the role of the stern and unyielding parent to Uncas, and what came of it.
The tragic little comedy took place in the woodshed back of one of the innumerable houses to which we were always moving when some absurd landlord took it into his head that he should have some rent for the house we occupied, and Uncas had just beaten with his fists a neighbor boy who had tried to run away with a baseball bat belonging to us. Uncas had retrieved the bat and had brought it proudly home, and father, who happened along the street at that moment, had got the notion fixed in his mind that the bat belonged, not to us, but to the neighbor boy. Uncas tried to explain, but father, having taken up the rôle of the just man, must needs play it out to the bitter end. He demanded that Uncas return the bat into the hands of the boy from whom he had just ravaged it and Uncas, growing white and silent, ran home and hid himself in the woodshed where father quickly found him out.
The sad little comedy happened in the woodshed behind one of the countless houses we were always moving into whenever some ridiculous landlord decided it was time to collect rent for the place we were living in. Uncas had just fought off a neighbor boy who tried to steal our baseball bat. Uncas had gotten the bat back and brought it home proudly, and my dad, who happened to pass by that moment, mistakenly thought the bat belonged to the neighbor boy. Uncas tried to explain, but my dad, believing he was being fair, was determined to see it through to the end. He insisted that Uncas return the bat to the boy he had just taken it from, and Uncas, growing pale and silent, ran home and hid in the woodshed, where my dad quickly found him.
“I won’t,” declared Uncas; “the bat’s ours”; and then father—fool that he was for ever allowing himself to get into such an undignified position—began to beat him with a switch he had cut from a tree at [Pg 22] the front of the house. As the beating did no good and Uncas only took it unmoved, father, as always happened with him, lost his head.
“I won’t,” Uncas said. “The bat belongs to us.” Then my dad—foolish as he was for constantly putting himself in such an embarrassing situation—started to hit him with a stick he had cut from a tree in front of the house. Since the hitting wasn’t effective and Uncas just stood there unfazed, my dad, as usually happened with him, lost his temper. [Pg 22]
And so there was the boy, white with the sense of the injustice being done, and no doubt father also began to feel that he had put his foot into a trap. He grew furious and, picking up a large stick of wood from a woodpile in the shed, threatened to hit Uncas with it.
And so there was the boy, pale with the feeling of the injustice happening, and no doubt the father also started to realize that he had stepped into a trap. He got angry and, grabbing a big stick from a woodpile in the shed, threatened to hit Uncas with it.
What a moment! I had run to the back of the shed and had thrown myself on the ground where I could look through a crack and as long as I live I shall never forget the next few moments—with the man and the boy, both white, looking at each other; and, that night, in the bed later, when mother was rubbing my chapped hands and when I knew there was something to be settled between her and Uncas, that picture danced like a crazy ghost in my fancy.
What a moment! I had run to the back of the shed and thrown myself on the ground so I could look through a crack, and as long as I live, I will never forget the next few moments—seeing the man and the boy, both white, looking at each other; and later that night, when I was in bed and my mother was rubbing my chapped hands, I realized there was something to be resolved between her and Uncas. That image danced like a wild ghost in my mind.
I trembled at the thought of what might happen, at the thought of what had happened that day in the shed.
I shook at the idea of what could happen, at the thought of what went down that day in the shed.
Father had stood—I shall never know how long—with the heavy stick upraised, looking into the eyes of his son, and the son had stared, with a fixed determined stare, back into the eyes of his father.
Father had stood—I’ll never know for how long—with the heavy stick raised, looking into his son’s eyes, and the son had stared, with a determined gaze, back into his father’s eyes.
At the moment I had thought that—boy as I was—I understood how such a strange unaccountable thing as a murder could happen. Thoughts did not form themselves definitely in my mind but after that moment I knew that it is always the weak, frightened by their own weakness, who kill the strong, and perhaps I also knew myself for one of the weak ones of the [Pg 23] world. At the moment, as father stood with the stick upraised, glaring at Uncas, my own sympathies (if my own fancy has not tricked me again) were with father. My heart ached for him.
At that moment, I thought—being just a boy—I understood how something as strange and inexplicable as murder could occur. My thoughts didn’t fully form in my mind, but after that moment, I realized that it’s always the weak, scared of their own weakness, who end up killing the strong, and maybe I also recognized myself as one of the weak ones in this world. As my father stood there with the stick raised, glaring at Uncas, I felt sympathy for him (if my imagination wasn’t deceiving me again). My heart ached for him. [Pg 23]
He was saved by mother. She came to the door of the shed and stood looking at him and his eyes wavered, and then he threw the stick back upon the pile from which he had taken it and went silently away. I remembered that he tramped off to Main Street and that, later in the evening when he came back to the house, he was drunk and went drunken to bed. The trick of drunkenness had saved him from the ordeal of looking into the eyes of Uncas or of mother, as so often words have later saved me from meeting fairly some absurd position into which I have got myself.
He was rescued by his mom. She came to the door of the shed and stood there, looking at him, and his eyes flickered. Then he tossed the stick back onto the pile he had taken it from and quietly walked away. I remember he trudged off to Main Street, and later that evening when he returned home, he was drunk and stumbled to bed. The haze of alcohol saved him from having to face Uncas or his mom, just like words have often saved me from confronting some ridiculous situation I've found myself in.
And so there was I now, in the bed and up to one of father’s tricks: upstart that I was, dog of a Huron myself, I was trembling for mother and for Uncas—two people very well able to take care of themselves.
And here I was now, in bed and caught in one of my father's tricks: being the arrogant person I was, a Huron dog myself, I was worried for my mother and for Uncas—two people who could definitely handle themselves.
Mother dropped my hand and took the outstretched hand of my brother.
Mother dropped my hand and took my brother’s outstretched hand.
“What happened?” she asked.
“What happened?” she inquired.
And Uncas told her, fairly and squarely. “He was a cry-baby and a big calf and I walloped him one. I wanted the hatchet and so I took it—that’s what I did. I banged him one on the nose and jerked it out of his hand.”
And Uncas told her directly, “He was a crybaby and a wimp, and I punched him. I wanted the hatchet, so I took it—that’s what happened. I hit him on the nose and snatched it out of his hand.”
Mother laughed—a queer unmirthful little laugh. It was the kind of laugh that hurts. There was irony in it and that got to Uncas at once. [Pg 24] “It doesn’t take much of a fellow to snatch a hatchet out of the hands of a cry-baby,” she said.
Mother laughed—a strange, humorless little laugh. It was the kind of laugh that stings. There was irony in it, and it hit Uncas immediately. [Pg 24] “It doesn’t take much of a guy to grab a hatchet from a whiner,” she said.
That was all. She kept on rubbing his hands and now it was my eyes, and not the eyes of Uncas, that could look directly into our mother’s eyes.
That was it. She kept rubbing his hands and now it was my eyes, not Uncas's, that could meet our mother’s gaze directly.
Perhaps it was in that moment, and not in the moment when I lay on the ground peeking through the crack into the shed, that the first dim traces of understanding of all such fellows as father and myself came to me. I looked at mother with adoration in my own eyes, and when she had taken the kerosene lamp and had gone away, and when we boys were all again curled quietly like sleeping puppies in the bed, I cried a little, as I am sure father must have cried sometimes when there was no one about. Perhaps his getting drunk, as he did on all possible occasions, was a way of crying too.
Perhaps it was in that moment, not when I was lying on the ground peeking through the crack into the shed, that I first began to understand people like my father and me. I looked at my mother with admiration in my eyes, and when she took the kerosene lamp and left, and when we boys were all curled up quietly in bed like sleeping puppies, I cried a little, just as I’m sure my father must have cried sometimes when no one was around. Maybe his drinking, which he did on every possible occasion, was also a way of crying.
And I cried also, I suppose, because in Uncas and mother there was a kind of directness and simplicity that father and all fellows, who like myself are of the same breed with him, can never quite achieve.
And I cried too, I guess, because in Uncas and my mother there was a kind of honesty and straightforwardness that my father and all the guys like me can never fully attain.
[Pg 25]
[Pg 25]
NOTE II
A FAMILY of five boys and two girls—a mother who is to die, outworn and done for at thirty—
A family of five boys and two girls—a mother who is about to die, worn out and finished at thirty—
A father, whose blood and whose temperament I am to carry to the end of my days. How futile he was—in his physical life as a man in America in his time—what dreams he must have had!
A father, whose blood and personality I'll carry with me for the rest of my life. How pointless he was—in his physical existence as a man in America during his era—what dreams he must have had!
There was a dream he had of something magnificent—a lone rider on a horse, dressed in shining armor and riding in a city before a vast multitude of people—the beating of drums.... “The man—he comes! Hurra!” People who live their lives by facts can never understand such a fellow. “He comes! All hail!” What has he done? Well, never mind—something grand, you may be sure of that. The dream that never can become a fact in life can become a fact in fancy. “There he goes.... ‘Teddy the magnificent’!” One both laughs and cries over the memory of him.
There was a dream he had of something amazing—a lone rider on a horse, dressed in shining armor, riding through a city in front of a huge crowd—the sound of drums... “The man—he's here! Hooray!” People who focus only on facts will never get this guy. “He's here! All hail!” What has he done? Well, it doesn't matter—something impressive, you can be sure of that. The dream that can never become real in life can become real in imagination. “There he goes.... ‘Teddy the magnificent’!” You laugh and cry at the memory of him.
The showman was there, in him—it flowered within him—and it is in me too. When Carl Sandburg, the poet, long after said to me—speaking of his lecturing and reading his poetry aloud, to make a living—“I give ’em a good show,” I understood what he meant and I understood the pride in his voice when he said it. And then, later still, when I was writing my own novel, “Poor White”; and when my boyhood friend, John Emerson, gave me a job—doing publicity for movie people, in order that I might [Pg 26] have some income to write at my leisure—and for a time I saw a good deal of that strange perverted band, I could understand them also. They were people like my own father, robbed of their inheritance. In an odd way they were my own people too.
The showman was within him—it blossomed inside him—and it’s in me too. When Carl Sandburg, the poet, later said to me—talking about his lecturing and reading poetry aloud to earn a living—“I give ‘em a good show,” I got what he was saying and felt the pride in his voice when he said it. Then, later on, while I was writing my own novel, "Poor White"; and when my childhood friend, John Emerson, got me a job doing publicity for movie people so I could earn some money to write at my own pace—and for a while, I spent a lot of time with that strange, twisted group, I could understand them too. They were like my own father, stripped of their inheritance. In a strange way, they were my own people as well.
John Emerson, a boyhood friend from my own village, had given me the movie job, knowing I would be no good at it. He was a successful man, a moneymaker, and was always planning out schemes for giving me money and leisure. I went often to the movie studios and watched the men and the women at work. Children, playing with dreams—dreams of an heroic kind of desperado cowboy, doing good deeds at the business end of a gun—dreams of an ever-virtuous womanhood walking amid vice—American dreams—Anglo-Saxon dreams. How they wanted to be the things they were always playing, and how impossible it all was!
John Emerson, a childhood friend from my village, had given me the movie job, knowing I wouldn’t be good at it. He was successful, made a lot of money, and was always coming up with plans to give me money and time off. I often went to the movie studios and watched the men and women at work. Children, playing with dreams—dreams of a heroic, tough cowboy doing good deeds with a gun—dreams of an ever-virtuous woman navigating through vice—American dreams—Anglo-Saxon dreams. They wanted to become the things they were always acting out, and how impossible it all was!
My father lived in a land and in a time when what one later begins to understand a little as the artist in man could not by any possibility be understood by his fellows. Dreams then were to be expressed in building railroads and factories, in boring gas wells, stringing telegraph poles. There was room for no other dream and since father could not do any of these things he was an outlaw in his community. The community tolerated him. His own sons tolerated him.
My father lived in a place and a time when the creative side of a person was not understood by others at all. Back then, dreams were all about building railroads and factories, drilling for gas, and putting up telegraph poles. There was no space for any other kind of dream, and since my father couldn’t do any of those things, he was seen as an outsider in his community. The community put up with him. His own sons put up with him.
As for the movie people I saw, they worked in a strange land of fragments of dreams. The parts they were to play were given them in fragments. Everything was fragmentary and unfinished. A kind of [Pg 27] insanity reigned. A “set” having been made, at a certain cost in dollars and cents, half a dozen little bits of the dream they were to enact were gone through—sometimes a dozen times—and the very piece the actors were supposed to play they often did not know. A strange greenish light fell down over them, and when they were not playing, they sat stupidly hour after hour arrayed in their motley, often pawing one another over listlessly with their hands and seeking outside the studios—in drink, in dope, in futile love-making, in trying to carry on an absurd pretense to being ladies and gentlemen of parts—seeking in all these things to compensate themselves for being robbed of their inheritance as artists—the right to pour their emotional energies into their work.
The movie people I saw worked in a strange world of broken dreams. The roles they were meant to play were given to them in bits and pieces. Everything felt incomplete and scattered. A kind of madness took over. Once a “set” was built, costing a certain amount of money, they would run through small parts of the dream they were to act out—sometimes a dozen times—and often they didn’t even know the very piece they were supposed to perform. An odd greenish light shone down on them, and when they weren’t acting, they sat around for hours in their costumes, often listlessly touching each other and looking for something outside the studios—in alcohol, in drugs, in pointless love affairs, pretending to be sophisticated individuals—trying in all these ways to make up for being denied their true calling as artists—the chance to unleash their emotional energy into their work. [Pg 27]
The result of all this perversion of workmanship and of emotional energy in the movie world seemed to me to reduce human beings to a state that most of all suggested to my mind angleworms squirming in a boy’s bait-can; and why any human being, under the conditions in which they must work and with the materials with which they must work, should want to be a movie actor or a writer for the movies is beyond my comprehension.
The outcome of all this twisted craftsmanship and emotional strain in the film industry made me feel like it turned people into something resembling angleworms wriggling in a kid's bait can. I can’t understand why anyone would want to be a movie actor or a screenwriter given the conditions they have to endure and the materials they have to work with.
But to return to my father. At least, there was little of the dull listlessness of the angleworm in him. He created his own, “dope,” inside himself, most of the time.
But to get back to my father. At least, he didn’t have the dull, lifeless vibe of an angleworm. Most of the time, he produced his own “high” from within himself.
Once he actually set up as a showman. With a man of our town, named Aldrich, who owned a broken-down horse and a spring wagon he went forth to strut his own little hour upon the boards.
Once he actually started working as a performer. With a local guy named Aldrich, who owned a worn-out horse and a spring wagon, he went out to showcase his own little moment on stage.
It was winter and there was no work for father to be had in our [Pg 28] town and I presume Aldrich also had no work. I remember him as a quiet-looking middle-aged man with a red face. He also was a house-painter, during the summer months, and he and father had by some chance got hold of a secondhand magic-lantern outfit.
It was winter, and there was no work for Dad in our [Pg 28] town, and I assume Aldrich didn’t have any work either. I remember him as a quiet, middle-aged guy with a red face. He was also a house painter during the summer, and somehow, he and Dad managed to get their hands on a secondhand magic lantern setup.
They were to show at country schoolhouses in the farming districts of northern Ohio. There was to be a sheet hung across the end of the room, near the place where the teacher’s desk would sit, and on this would be thrown certain pictures Aldrich had got hold of.
They were going to perform at rural schoolhouses in the farming areas of northern Ohio. A sheet was to be hung at the end of the room, near where the teacher's desk would be, and on this, certain pictures that Aldrich had acquired would be projected.
Those of you who have lived in the farming sections of mid-America, in the days before the movies, will understand that show. There would be a picture of Niagara Falls—taken in the winter—Niagara Falls frozen into a series of ice bridges and with small black figures of men running over the bridges.
Those of you who have lived in the farming areas of the Midwest before movies existed will get that show. There would be a picture of Niagara Falls—captured in winter—Niagara Falls frozen into a series of ice bridges, with tiny black figures of men moving across the bridges.
These, you are to understand, however, would not be moving men. They would be frozen still and still—petrified men with legs upraised to take a step, and holding them there—to the end of time—forever.
These, you should understand, would not be moving people. They would be frozen still—petrified people with legs raised to take a step, and holding them there—to the end of time—forever.
Then there would be a picture of President McKinley and one of Abe Lincoln and Grover Cleveland—one of an emigrant wagon going across the Western plains to California, with Indians on ponies circling in the middle distance—a picture of the driving of the last railroad spike, when the railroad builders coming from the West had met the railroad builders coming from the East—somewhere out on the plains. The spike would be a golden one, as everyone in the audience would know, but in the picture it would be black. Several men with silk hats on their [Pg 29] heads stood about while a workman drove the spike. The hammer was upraised. It stayed there. In the background was an engine, and several Indians wrapped in blankets and looking sad, as though to say: “This cooks our bacon.”
Then there would be a picture of President McKinley, along with one of Abe Lincoln and Grover Cleveland—another showing an immigrant wagon traveling across the Western plains to California, with Indians on horses circling in the distance—a picture of the driving of the last railroad spike, when the railroad builders from the West met those coming from the East—somewhere out on the plains. The spike would be golden, as everyone in the audience would know, but in the picture, it would be black. Several men in top hats stood around while a worker drove the spike. The hammer was raised. It stayed there. In the background was a locomotive, and several Indians wrapped in blankets, looking forlorn, as if to say: “This ruins our way of life.”
Most of the pictures would be in dead blacks and whites, but there would be, at the very end, in colors, the old flag floating—that last of all. It was as good for a hand then as it was later when George Cohan got rich and became famous with it, and father and Aldrich evidently knew it would “go.”
Most of the pictures would be in dull black and white, but at the very end, there would be the old flag waving in color—that last image of all. It was just as appealing back then as it was later when George Cohan became wealthy and famous with it, and Dad and Aldrich clearly knew it would be popular.
The admission charge would be ten cents.
The entry fee would be ten cents.
As I have said, Aldrich was a red-faced mild middle-aged appearing man. What things will not such quiet-looking fellows sometimes do? No one in the world would ever be understood at all if your mild quiet-looking man did not have, buried away in him somewhere, the possibility of being almost any known sort of a fool.
As I mentioned, Aldrich was a mild-looking man in middle age with a red face. What surprising things can these seemingly gentle guys sometimes do? Nobody would ever make sense if each mild, quiet-looking man didn't have, hidden inside him somewhere, the potential to be almost any kind of fool.
In the arrangement that had been made father was to be the actor—a comedian. He was to sing certain songs.
In the setup that had been agreed upon, Dad was going to be the performer—a comedian. He was going to sing a few songs.
First, a few pictures from the magic lantern; then a song by father, with a little dance. Then more pictures and another song; and at last the colored pictures, ending with the flag flying. The inference might be that the flag, at any rate, had survived the ordeal.
First, a few pictures from the magic lantern; then a song by dad, with a little dance. Then more pictures and another song; and finally the colored pictures, ending with the flag waving. The implication might be that the flag, at least, had made it through the ordeal.
And a dream of a harvest of dimes too. As for expense—well, let us say, a dollar for the use of the country schoolhouse and enough firewood to heat it for the evening. A boy would build the fire for the chance to be admitted free; and the horse and the two men would be [Pg 30] fed at the bounty of some farmer. Father would have promised that—he would have been very sure of being able to accomplish that—would have depended upon his personal charm. I can fancy him explaining to Aldrich, or rather not explaining. He would smile and throw out his hands in a peculiar way. “You leave that to me, just you leave that to me.”
And there’s a dream of making a bunch of dimes too. As for costs—let's just say it would be a dollar to rent the local schoolhouse and enough firewood to keep it warm for the night. A boy would start the fire just to get in for free; and the horse and the two guys would get fed from the generosity of some farmer. Dad would have promised that—he would have been really confident he could pull it off—thanks to his personal charm. I can picture him talking to Aldrich, or more like not talking at all. He would smile and throw his hands out in a unique way. “You leave that to me, just leave that to me.” [Pg 30]
And his hopes would not be unjustified either. What a boon for a quiet, dull, farming family in the winter, to have such a one light down upon it! He and his companion would have to stay in the one school district for two or three days. Arrangements would have to be made about getting the schoolhouse, and he and Aldrich would have to drive around the neighborhood and distribute the play bills:
And his hopes wouldn't be unfounded either. What a blessing for a quiet, boring farming family in winter to have someone like that show up! He and his companion would need to stay in the same school district for a couple of days. They'd need to make plans to use the schoolhouse, and he and Aldrich would have to drive around the area to hand out the play bills:
AT THE SCHOOLHOUSE
FRIDAY EVENING
MAJOR IRWIN ANDERSON
THE ACTOR
IN SONG AND DANCE
MARVELOUS MAGIC-LANTERN SHOW
A VISIT TO ALL THE WONDERS
OF THE WORLD
10 CENTS
AT THE SCHOOLHOUSE
FRIDAY EVENING
MAJOR IRWIN ANDERSON
THE ACTOR
IN SONG AND DANCE
AMAZING MAGIC-LANTERN SHOW
A JOURNEY THROUGH ALL THE WONDERS
OF THE WORLD
10 CENTS
And then the evenings in the farmhouses! Aldrich would sit like an Indian in his corner by the farmhouse stove; and he must have been saying to himself constantly: “Now, how did I get into this? How did I get into this?”
And then the evenings at the farmhouses! Aldrich would sit like an Indian in his corner by the farmhouse stove, and he must have been thinking to himself all the time: “How did I end up here? How did I end up here?”
The farmer’s wife, the hired man and perhaps a grown daughter would be [Pg 31] there and there would be a maiden of uncertain age—the farm woman’s sister, who had never married and so just stayed about and worked for her board—and, in a corner, two or three towheaded boys who would presently have to go off to bed.
The farmer’s wife, the hired hand, and maybe a grown daughter would be there, along with a woman of indeterminate age—the farm woman’s sister, who had never married and just stuck around to help out for her room and board—and, in a corner, two or three blonde boys who would soon need to head off to bed. [Pg 31]
All the others silent, but father talking and talking. An actor in the house! It was wonderful, like having Charlie Chaplin to dinner with you nowadays!
All the others were quiet, but dad just kept talking. An actor in the house! It was amazing, like having Charlie Chaplin over for dinner today!
Father was in his element now. This was pie for him. No hungry sons about, no sick wife, no grocery bills or rent to be paid. This the golden age—timeless; there was no past, no future—the quiet, unsophisticated people in the room were putty to his hands.
Father was in his zone now. This was a breeze for him. No hungry sons around, no sick wife, no grocery bills or rent to worry about. This was the golden age—timeless; there was no past, no future—the quiet, simple people in the room were putty in his hands.
Surely there was something magnificent in my father’s utter disregard for the facts of life. In the picture I have of him—that is to say in my fancy—in the picture I have of him during his pilgrimages of that winter I always see his partner in the affair, Aldrich, fast asleep in a chair.
Surely there was something amazing about my dad's complete indifference to reality. In the image I have of him—that is to say, in my imagination—during his journeys that winter, I always see his companion in the situation, Aldrich, sound asleep in a chair.
But the farmer and his wife, and the wife’s sister—they are not asleep. The unmarried woman in the house is, let us say, thirty-eight. She is tall and gaunt and has several teeth missing and her name is Tilly. It would be bound to be Tilly.
But the farmer, his wife, and the wife's sister—they're not asleep. The single woman in the house is, let's say, thirty-eight. She’s tall and skinny, has several missing teeth, and her name is Tilly. It could only be Tilly.
And when father has been in the house two hours he is calling her “Tilly,” and the farmer he is addressing familiarly as “Ed.”
And when Dad has been in the house for two hours, he’s calling her “Tilly,” and he’s addressing the farmer casually as “Ed.”
After the evening meal the farmer has had to go to his stable to look at his stock, to bed the stock down for the night, and father has gone with him. Father runs about the stable holding the lantern. He boasts about the horses and cattle in his father’s stables when he was a boy. [Pg 32] Whether that early home of his ever existed anywhere but in his fancy is doubtful.
After dinner, the farmer had to head to the barn to check on his animals and settle them in for the night, and Dad went with him. Dad runs around the barn holding the lantern. He talks about the horses and cattle in his dad’s barn when he was a kid. [Pg 32] Whether that childhood home of his ever actually existed or was just in his imagination is questionable.
What a fellow, wanting to be loved, was my father!
What a guy, wanting to be loved, was my dad!
And now he is in the farmhouse sitting room and it is late evening and the towheaded children have gone regretfully to bed. There is something in the air of the room, a kind of suspense, a feeling that something is about to happen. Father has so carefully worked that up. He would do it by silences, by sudden breakings out into suppressed laughter, and then by quickly looking sad. I have seen him do the thing, oh, many times. “My dear people—you wait! There is something inside me that is wonderful, and if you will only be patient you will presently see or hear it come forth,” he seemed to be saying.
And now he is in the farmhouse living room, and it's late in the evening. The blonde children have regretfully gone to bed. There's a kind of tension in the air, a feeling that something is about to happen. Father has carefully built this up. He does it with silences, sudden outbursts of muffled laughter, and then quickly shifting to a sad expression. I've seen him do this many times. “My dear people—you wait! There’s something amazing inside me, and if you just be patient, you’ll soon see or hear it come to life,” he seems to be saying.
He is by the fire with his legs spread out and his hands are in his trousers pockets. He stares at the floor. He is smoking a cigar. In some ways he always managed to keep himself supplied with the little comforts of life.
He’s sitting by the fire with his legs stretched out and his hands in his pockets. He’s staring at the floor, smoking a cigar. In many ways, he always found a way to keep himself supplied with the little comforts in life.
And he has so placed his chair that he can look at Tilly, who has retired into her corner, without anyone else in the room seeing the look. Now she is sitting in deep shadows, far away from the kerosene lamp with which the room is lighted and as she sits there, half lost in the darkness, there is suddenly something—a haunting kind of beauty hangs over her.
And he has positioned his chair so he can see Tilly, who's tucked away in her corner, without anyone else in the room noticing his gaze. She's sitting in deep shadows, far from the kerosene lamp that's lighting the room, and as she sits there, half obscured by darkness, a haunting kind of beauty suddenly surrounds her.
She is a little excited by something father has managed in some indescribable way to do to the very air of the room. Tilly also was once young and must at some time have had her grand moment in life. Her moment was not very prolonged. Once, when she was a young woman, [Pg 33] she went to a country dance and a man, who dealt in horses, took a fancy to her and carried her home after the dance in his buggy. He was a tall man with a heavy mustache and she—it was a moonlight night in October—she grew sad and wistful. The horse dealer half intended—well, he had been buying horses for a trucking company at Toledo, Ohio, had secured all he wanted and was leaving the neighborhood on the next day—the thing he felt during that evening later quite went out of his mind.
She is a bit excited by something her father has somehow done to change the atmosphere in the room. Tilly was once young herself and must have had her own big moment in life at some point. Her moment didn't last very long. Once, when she was a young woman, [Pg 33] she attended a country dance where a man who sold horses took a liking to her and gave her a ride home in his carriage. He was a tall guy with a thick mustache and she—it was a moonlit night in October—felt sad and nostalgic. The horse dealer was partially thinking—well, he had been buying horses for a trucking company in Toledo, Ohio, got all he needed, and was planning to leave the area the next day—the feelings he had that evening eventually slipped his mind.
As for father he is, at the moment perhaps thinking of mother, when she was young and lovely and was a bound girl in just such another farmhouse, and surely he wanted something lovely for mother then as he does for Tilly now. I have no doubt at all that father always wanted lovely things for people—to happen to people—and that he had also an absurd and never-dying faith in himself—that he was, in some inscrutable way, appointed to be the bearer of lovely things to obscure people.
As for dad, right now he’s probably thinking about mom when she was young and beautiful, back when she was a bound girl in a farmhouse just like this one. I'm sure he wanted something beautiful for mom back then, just like he does for Tilly now. I have no doubt that dad always wanted wonderful things for others—to happen to them—and he also had this ridiculous, never-ending faith in himself that he was somehow meant to bring beautiful things to ordinary people.
However, there is something else in his mind also. Is he not the fellow who, by his personal charm, is to earn for himself, Aldrich and the horse, board, a bed, a welcome—without pay—until the show is pulled off at the schoolhouse? That is his business now and this is his hour.
However, there’s something else on his mind too. Isn’t he the guy who, with his charm, is supposed to earn for himself, Aldrich, and the horse food, a place to sleep, and a warm welcome—without any payment—until the show goes on at the schoolhouse? That’s his responsibility now, and this is his moment.
In fancy I can hear the tale he would now begin telling. There was that one about his escape from the guards when he was a Union soldier in the Civil War and was being marched off to a Southern prison camp. He would no doubt use that. It was a bull’s-eye story and always hit the mark! Oh, how often and under what varying circumstances has not my father [Pg 34] escaped from prisons! Benvenuto Cellini or the Count of Monte Cristo had nothing on him.
In my imagination, I can hear the story he would start telling now. There was that one about his escape from the guards when he was a Union soldier in the Civil War and was being taken to a Southern prison camp. He would definitely use that. It was a perfect story and always hit the mark! Oh, how many times and under what different circumstances has my father escaped from prisons! Benvenuto Cellini or the Count of Monte Cristo had nothing on him. [Pg 34]
Yes, the story he would now tell would be that once when it rained and the Union prisoners, father among them—some forty men in all—were being marched off along a road in the deep mud—
Yes, the story he would now tell would be that once when it rained and the Union prisoners, his father among them—about forty men in total—were being marched along a road in the deep mud—
That was indeed a night of adventure! It was a tale he loved telling, and what realistic touches he could put into it: the rain that wet the prisoners to the skin—the cold—the chattering teeth—the groans of weary men—the closeness of the dark forest on either hand—the steady weary chug-chug of the feet of the prisoners in the mud—the line of guards at either side of the road, with the guns over their shoulders—the curses of the Rebel guards when they stumbled in the darkness.
That was definitely a night full of adventure! It was a story he enjoyed telling, and the realistic details he added to it: the rain that drenched the prisoners—the cold—their chattering teeth—the groans of exhausted men—the oppressive darkness of the forest on both sides—the tired, steady sound of the prisoners' feet squelching in the mud—the line of guards on either side of the road, guns slung over their shoulders—the curses from the Rebel guards whenever they tripped in the dark.
What a night of weary anguish on the part of the prisoners! When they stopped to rest the guards went into a house and left the prisoners to stand outside in the rain, or lie on the bare ground, guarded by part of the company. If any died of exposure—well, there would be that many less men to feed when they were got into the Southern prison camp.
What a night of tired suffering for the prisoners! When they took a break, the guards went into a house and left the prisoners standing outside in the rain or lying on the bare ground, watched over by some of the soldiers. If anyone died from exposure—well, that would just mean fewer men to feed when they got to the Southern prison camp.
And now, after many days and nights, marching thus, the souls of the prisoners were sick with weariness. A dreary desolated look would come upon father’s face as he spoke of it.
And now, after many days and nights of marching like this, the souls of the prisoners were exhausted and worn out. A gloomy, hollow expression would cross father's face as he talked about it.
They marched steadily along in the deep mud and the rain. How cold the rain was! Now and then, in the darkness, a dog barked, far away somewhere. There was a break in the solid line of timber along the road and the men marched across the crest of a low hill. There are lights [Pg 35] to be seen now, in distant farmhouses, far away across a valley—a few lights like stars shining.
They marched steadily through the deep mud and rain. How cold the rain was! Occasionally, in the darkness, a dog barked somewhere far away. There was a gap in the solid line of trees by the road, and the men walked over the top of a low hill. Now, you could see lights in distant farmhouses, far across the valley—just a few lights shining like stars. [Pg 35]
The story-teller has got his audience leaning forward in their chairs. Outside the farmhouse in which they sit a wind begins to blow and a broken branch from a near-by tree is blown against the side of the house. The farmer, a heavy, stolid-looking man, starts a little and his wife shivers as with cold and Tilly is absorbed—she does not want to miss a word of the tale.
The storyteller has his audience leaning forward in their chairs. Outside the farmhouse where they sit, the wind starts to blow, and a broken branch from a nearby tree slams against the side of the house. The farmer, a big, solid-looking man, jumps a bit, and his wife shivers as if she's cold, while Tilly is completely absorbed—she doesn't want to miss a single word of the story.
And now father is describing the darkness of the valley below the hill and the lights seen, far off. Will any of the little company of prisoners ever see their own homes again, their wives, their children, their sweethearts? The lights of the farmhouses in the valley are like stars in the sky of a world turned upside down.
And now Dad is talking about the dark valley below the hill and the distant lights. Will any of the small group of prisoners ever get to see their own homes again, along with their wives, kids, and sweethearts? The lights from the farmhouses in the valley look like stars in a world that’s been turned upside down.
The Rebel commander of the guard has issued a warning and a command: “It’s pretty dark here, and if any of the Yanks make a stir to move out of the centre of the road fire straight into the mass of them. Kill them like dogs.”
The Rebel commander of the guard has issued a warning and a command: “It’s pretty dark here, and if any of the Yanks make a move to get off the center of the road, shoot directly into the crowd. Take them out like dogs.”
A feeling creeps over father. He is, you see, a southern man himself, a man of the Georgia hills and plains. There is no law that shall prevent his having been born in Georgia, although to-morrow night it may be North Carolina or Kentucky. But to-night his birthplace shall be Georgia. He is a man who lives by his fancy and to-night it shall suit his fancy and the drift of his tale to be a Georgian.
A feeling washes over the father. He’s, you know, a southern man himself, a guy from the Georgia hills and plains. There’s no law stopping him from being born in Georgia, even if tomorrow night he might claim North Carolina or Kentucky. But tonight, his birthplace is Georgia. He’s a man who lives in his imagination, and tonight it fits his imagination and the flow of his story to be a Georgian.
And so he, a prisoner of the Rebels, is being marched over the low hill, with the lights from distant farmhouses shining like stars in [Pg 36] the darkness below, and suddenly a feeling comes to him, a feeling such as one sometimes has when one is alone in one’s own house at night. You have had the feeling. You are alone in the house and there are no lights and it is cold and dark. Everything you touch—feel with your hands in the darkness—is strange and at the same time familiar. You know how it is.
And so he, a prisoner of the Rebels, is being marched over the low hill, with the lights from distant farmhouses shining like stars in the darkness below, and suddenly he feels something, a feeling like when you're home alone at night. You know that feeling. You're alone in the house, there are no lights, and it’s cold and dark. Everything you touch—feel with your hands in the dark—seems both strange and familiar. You get what I mean. [Pg 36]
The farmer is nodding his head and his wife has her hands gripped, lying in her lap. Even Aldrich is awake now. The devil! Father has given this particular tale a new turn since he told it last. “This is something like.” Aldrich leans forward to listen.
The farmer is nodding his head, and his wife has her hands clasped in her lap. Even Aldrich is awake now. Wow! Dad has put a new spin on this story since the last time he told it. “This is something else.” Aldrich leans in to listen.
And there is the woman Tilly, in the half darkness. See, she is quite lovely now, quite as she was on that evening when she rode with the horse dealer in the buggy! Something has happened to soften the long, harsh lines of her face and she might be a princess sitting there now in the half-light.
And there’s Tilly, in the dim light. Look, she’s really beautiful now, just like she was that evening when she rode with the horse dealer in the buggy! Something has softened the long, harsh lines of her face, and she could easily be a princess sitting there in the shadows.
Father would have thought of that. It would be something worth while now to be a tale-teller to a princess. He stops talking to consider for a moment the possibilities of the notion, and then with a sigh gives it up.
Father would have thought of that. It would be worthwhile now to be a storyteller for a princess. He stops talking to think for a moment about the possibilities of the idea, and then with a sigh, he gives it up.
It is a sweet notion but it won’t do. Tale-teller to a princess, eh! Evenings in a castle and the prince has come in from hunting in a forest. The tale-teller is dressed in flashy clothes and with a crowd of courtiers, ladies in waiting—whatever hangers-on a princess has—is sitting by an open fire. There are great, magnificent dogs lying about too.
It’s a nice idea, but it’s not going to cut it. A storyteller for a princess, huh! Evenings in a castle, and the prince returns from hunting in the forest. The storyteller is wearing flashy clothes and sitting by an open fire with a group of courtiers, ladies-in-waiting—whatever entourage a princess has. There are also big, impressive dogs lounging around.
Father is considering whether or not it is worth trying sometime—the telling of a tale of himself in just that rôle. An idea crosses his [Pg 37] mind. The princess has a lover who creeps one night into the castle and the prince has become aware of his presence, is told of his presence by a trusty varlet. Taking his sword in hand the prince creeps through the dark hallways to kill his rival, but father has warned the lovers and they have fled. It afterward comes to the ears of the prince that father has protected the lovers and he—that is to say, father—is compelled to flee for his life. He comes to America and lives the life of an exile, far from the splendor to which he has been accustomed.
Father is thinking about whether it's worth telling a story about himself in that role. An idea pops into his head. The princess has a lover who sneaks into the castle one night, and the prince knows he's there, informed by a loyal servant. Armed with his sword, the prince quietly makes his way through the dark hallways to eliminate his rival, but father has already warned the lovers, and they have escaped. Later, the prince finds out that father protected the lovers, and he—meaning father—has to run for his life. He ends up in America, living as an exile, far from the luxury he’s used to.
Father is thinking whether it would be worth trying—the telling of such a fable of his former existence, some evening at some farmhouse where he and Aldrich are staying; and for a moment a sort of George Barr McCutcheon light comes into his eyes, but with a sigh he gives it up.
Father is contemplating whether it would be worthwhile to share a story about his past life one evening at a farmhouse where he and Aldrich are staying. For a moment, a glimmer of inspiration flashes in his eyes, but with a sigh, he lets the idea go.
It wouldn’t go over—not in a farmhouse in northern Ohio, he concludes.
It just wouldn’t work—not in a farmhouse in northern Ohio, he concludes.
He returns to the tale, that so evidently is going over; but, before he resumes, casts another glance at Tilly. “Oh, Tilly, thou dear lovely one,” he sighs inwardly.
He goes back to the story that's clearly unfolding, but before he continues, he takes another look at Tilly. “Oh, Tilly, you dear lovely one,” he sighs to himself.
The farmhouse is in the North and he has set himself forth as a southerner enlisted in the northern army. An explanation is in order, and he makes it, with a flourish.
The farmhouse is in the North, and he has presented himself as a southerner signed up for the northern army. An explanation is needed, and he provides it with flair.
Born a southerner, the son of a proud southern family, he was sent to school, to a college in the North. In college he had a roommate, a dear fellow from the state of Illinois. The “roommate’s father was owner and editor of the Chicago Tribune” he explains.
Born a southerner, the son of a proud southern family, he was sent to school, to a college in the North. In college, he had a roommate, a great guy from Illinois. He explains that the roommate's father was the owner and editor of the Chicago Tribune.
[Pg 38]
[Pg 38]
And during one summer, a few years before the breaking out of the war, he went on a visit to the home of his Illinois friend, and while he was there he, with his friend, went to hear the famous Lincoln-Douglas debates. It was odd, but the facts were that the young fellow from Illinois became enamored of the brilliant Douglas while he—well, to tell the truth, his own heart was wrung by the simplicity and nobility of the rail-splitter, Lincoln. “Never shall I forget the nobility of that countenance,” he says in speaking of it. He appears about to cry and does in fact take a handkerchief from his pocket and wipe his eyes. “Oh, the noble, the indescribable effect upon my boyhood heart of the stirring words of that man. There he stood like a mighty oak of the forest breasting the storms. ‘A nation cannot exist half slave and half free. A house divided against itself cannot stand,’ he said, and his words thrilled me to the very marrow of my being.”
And one summer, a few years before the war broke out, he visited his friend in Illinois, and while he was there, he and his friend went to hear the famous Lincoln-Douglas debates. It was strange, but the truth is that the young guy from Illinois was captivated by the brilliant Douglas, while he—well, to be honest, he was deeply moved by the simplicity and nobility of the rail-splitter, Lincoln. “I will never forget the nobility of that face,” he says when he talks about it. He looks like he’s about to cry and actually takes a handkerchief from his pocket to wipe his eyes. “Oh, the noble, indescribable impact on my young heart from that man’s stirring words. There he stood like a mighty oak in the forest facing the storms. ‘A nation cannot exist half slave and half free. A house divided against itself cannot stand,’ he said, and his words sent shivers through me to my very core.”
And then father would have described his homecoming after that terrific experience. War was coming on and all the South was aflame.
And then Dad would have talked about his return home after that intense experience. War was approaching, and the entire South was in turmoil.
One day at table in his southern home, with his brothers, his father and mother and his beautiful and innocent young sister sitting with him, he dared to say something in defense of Lincoln.
One day at the table in his southern home, with his brothers, father, mother, and his beautiful and innocent young sister sitting with him, he bravely spoke up in defense of Lincoln.
What a storm was then raised! The father getting up from his place at table pointed a trembling finger at his son. All eyes, except only those of his younger sister, were turned on him in wrath and disapproval. “Mention that hated name again in this house and I will shoot you like a dog, though you are my son,” his father said, and the son got up from the table and went away, filled with the sense of [Pg 39] filial duty that would not let a born southerner answer his own father, but nevertheless determined to stick to the faith aroused in him by the words of the noble Lincoln.
What a storm erupted! The father got up from the table and pointed a shaking finger at his son. Everyone, except his younger sister, looked at him with anger and disapproval. “If you mention that hated name again in this house, I’ll shoot you like a dog, even though you’re my son,” his father said. The son got up from the table and left, filled with a sense of obligation that wouldn’t allow a born southerner to talk back to his father, but he was still determined to hold on to the beliefs inspired by the words of the noble Lincoln.
And so he had ridden away from his southern home in the night and had finally joined the Union forces.
And so he had left his southern home at night and had finally joined the Union forces.
What a night—riding away from his father’s house in the darkness, leaving his mother behind, leaving all tradition behind, condemning himself to be an outlaw in the hearts of those he had always loved—for the sake of duty!
What a night—riding away from his dad's house in the dark, leaving his mom behind, leaving all tradition behind, condemning himself to be an outlaw in the hearts of those he had always loved—for the sake of duty!
One can imagine Aldrich blinking a little and rubbing his hands together. “Teddy is laying it on rather thick,” he no doubt says to himself; but he must nevertheless have been filled with admiration.
One can picture Aldrich blinking a bit and rubbing his hands together. “Teddy is really laying it on thick,” he probably thinks to himself; but he must have still felt a sense of admiration.
However, let us, who are together revisiting the scene of my father’s triumph on that evening in the farmhouse long ago, be not too much in fear for the heart of the woman Tilly. At any rate her physical self, if not her heart, was safe.
However, let's not worry too much about the heart of the woman Tilly as we revisit the scene of my father's triumph that evening in the farmhouse long ago. At least her physical self, if not her heart, was safe.
Although there can be little doubt that the presence of the virgin Tilly, sitting in the half darkness, and the kindliness of the shadows that had temporarily enhanced her failing beauty, may have had a good deal to do with father’s talent on that evening, I am sure nothing else ever came of it. Father, in his own way, was devoted to mother.
Although there’s no doubt that the presence of the virgin Tilly, sitting in the dim light, and the soft shadows that briefly highlighted her fading beauty, likely influenced Dad’s talent that evening, I'm certain nothing else ever came of it. Dad, in his own way, was dedicated to Mom.
And he had his own way of treasuring her. Did he not treasure always the lovelier moments of her?
And he had his own way of cherishing her. Didn’t he always cherish the beautiful moments they shared?
He had found her in a farmhouse when he was by way of being something of a young swell himself and she was a bound girl; and she was then beautiful—beautiful without the aid of shadows cast by a kerosene [Pg 40] lamp.
He had discovered her in a farmhouse when he was on his way to becoming a bit of a young dandy himself, and she was an indentured girl; she was stunning—stunning without the need for shadows created by a kerosene [Pg 40] lamp.
In reality she was the aristocrat of the two, as the beautiful one is always the aristocrat; and oh, how little beauty in woman is understood! The popular magazine covers and the moving-picture actresses have raised the very devil with our American conception of womanly beauty.
In reality, she was the one with the high status between the two, since the beautiful one is always considered the best; and oh, how misunderstood female beauty is! The popular magazine covers and movie actresses have completely messed up our American idea of what feminine beauty really is.
But father had delicacy, of a sort, of that you may be quite sure; and do you not suppose that Tilly, in the Ohio farmhouse, sensed something of his attitude toward what fragment of beauty was left in her, and that she loved him for that attitude—as I am sure my own mother also did?
But dad had a certain sensitivity, that much is clear; and don’t you think that Tilly, in the Ohio farmhouse, felt something of his perspective toward the remaining bits of beauty within her, and that she loved him for that perspective—as I’m sure my own mom did too?
My fruit shall not be my fruit until it drops from my arms, into the arms of the others, over the top of the wall.
My fruit won't be my fruit until it falls from my arms into the arms of others, over the wall.
And now the weary prisoners with their escort have come down off the hillside to a valley and are approaching a large old southern mansion, standing back from the road they have been traveling, and the officers in charge of the prisoners—there were two of them—command the guards to turn in at a gate that leads to the house.
And now the exhausted prisoners with their escort have come down from the hillside into a valley and are nearing a large, old southern mansion, set back from the road they’ve been traveling on. The officers in charge of the prisoners—there were two of them—order the guards to turn into a gate that leads to the house.
There is an open space before the house where the prisoners are gathered and the ground—covered with firm turf during most of the year—has, under the continuous rains, become soft and yielding. Where each prisoner stands a puddle gathers about his feet.
There’s an open space in front of the house where the prisoners are gathered, and the ground—which is usually covered with solid grass for most of the year—has become soft and squishy due to the constant rain. A puddle forms around each prisoner’s feet.
The house is dark, but for a single light at the back, and one of the officers begins shouting. A large pack of hunting dogs have come from a shed, hidden away in the darkness somewhere, and are gathered growling [Pg 41] and barking in a half circle about the prisoners.
The house is dark, except for one light at the back, and one of the officers starts yelling. A big pack of hunting dogs has emerged from a shed, tucked away in the shadows somewhere, and they are gathered, growling and barking in a semi-circle around the prisoners. [Pg 41]
One of the dogs rushes through the mass of prisoners and with a glad cry leaps upon father, and all the others follow so that guards are compelled to drive the dogs off, kicking them and using the butts of their guns. Lights are lit inside the house. The people are astir.
One of the dogs rushes through the crowd of prisoners and, with a happy bark, jumps onto Dad, and all the others follow, forcing the guards to chase the dogs off by kicking them and using the ends of their guns. Lights are turned on inside the house. The people are moving around.
You will understand what a moment this was for father. By one of those strange streaks of fate—which he is very careful to explain to his audience happen much more frequently in life than one imagines—he had been led, as a prisoner on his way to a southern prison pen, right to the door of his own father’s house.
You’ll see how significant this moment was for Dad. By one of those odd twists of fate—which he always makes sure to point out happen way more often in life than you think—he had ended up, as a prisoner on his way to a southern prison, right at the doorstep of his own father’s house.
What a moment indeed! Being a prisoner he has of course no idea how long he will be kept there. Thank God, he has grown a thick, bushy beard since he left home.
What a moment, for sure! As a prisoner, he obviously has no clue how long he will be stuck there. Thank God, he has grown a thick, bushy beard since he left home.
As to his fate—if the prisoners are kept in the yard until daylight comes—well, he knows his own mother.
As for his fate—if the prisoners are held in the yard until morning comes—well, he knows his own mother.
His own father, old man though he is, has gone off to the war and all his brothers have gone; and his mother has come from a proud old southern family, one of the oldest and proudest. Had she known he was there among the prisoners she would have seen him hanged without a protest and would herself have lent a hand at pulling the rope.
His own father, even though he's old, has gone off to war, and all his brothers have left too; his mother comes from a proud old southern family, one of the oldest and most prestigious. If she had known he was among the prisoners, she would have watched him be hanged without any protest and would have even helped pull the rope herself.
Ah, what had not my father given for his country! Where will his equal be found, even among the whole world’s heroes? In the eyes of his [Pg 42] own mother and father, in his brother’s eyes, in the eyes of all the branches and ramifications of his southern family, in the eyes of all—except only one unsophisticated and innocent girl—he had brought everlasting disgrace on one of the proudest names of the South.
Ah, what had my father not sacrificed for his country! Where will you find someone like him, even among all the world's heroes? In the eyes of his own mother and father, in his brother’s gaze, in the eyes of all his southern relatives, in the eyes of everyone—except for one naive and innocent girl—he had brought lasting shame to one of the most respected names of the South. [Pg 42]
Indeed it was just because he, the son, had gone off to fight with the northern army that his father, a proud old man of sixty, had insisted on being taken into the southern army. “I have a strong old frame and I insist,” he had said. “I must make good the loss to my Southland for my own son, who has proven himself a dog and a renegade.”
Indeed, it was precisely because he, the son, had gone off to fight with the northern army that his father, a proud old man of sixty, insisted on joining the southern army. “I’m strong for my age and I insist,” he had said. “I need to make up for the loss to my Southland for my own son, who has shown himself to be a traitor and a disgrace.”
And so the old man had marched off with a gun on his shoulder, insisting on being taken as a common soldier and put where he could face constant and terrible danger, and the seeds of an undying hatred against the son had been planted deep in the hearts of the whole family.
And so the old man left with a gun on his shoulder, insisting on being treated like an ordinary soldier and placed in a situation where he could face ongoing and serious danger, and the seeds of a lasting hatred against the son were planted deep in the hearts of the entire family.
The dullest mind surely will comprehend now what a position father was in when, in answer to the shouts of the officer, lights began to appear all through the house. Was it not a situation to wring tears from the heart of a man of stone! As for a woman’s heart—one can scarcely speak of the matter.
The dullest mind can surely understand now what a position father was in when, in response to the officer's shouts, lights started to flicker on all around the house. Wasn't it a situation that could bring tears to the eyes of a man of stone? As for a woman's heart—it's hard to even describe.
And in the house, before father’s eyes, there was one—a pure and innocent southern girl of rare beauty—a pearl of womanhood in fact—rarest example of the famed spotless womanhood of the Southland—his younger sister—the only woman child of the family.
And in the house, right in front of dad, there was one—a pure and innocent Southern girl of incredible beauty—a true gem of a woman—one of the rarest examples of the celebrated pure womanhood of the South—his younger sister—the only girl in the family.
You see, as father would so carefully have explained that evening in the farmhouse, he did not care so much for his own life. That had [Pg 43] already been given to his country, he would have said proudly.
You see, as Dad would have explained so carefully that evening in the farmhouse, he didn't care so much about his own life. That had already been dedicated to his country, he would have proudly said. [Pg 43]
But, as you will understand quickly enough, had his presence among the prisoners been discovered, his proud mother—eager to wipe out the only stain on the family escutcheon—would at once have insisted that he be hanged to the doorpost of the very house in which he was born, her own hand pulling at the rope that was to jerk him up, into the arms of death—to make white again the family escutcheon, you understand.
But, as you will quickly realize, if his presence among the prisoners had been found out, his proud mother—desperate to erase the only blemish on the family reputation—would have immediately insisted that he be hanged from the doorway of the house where he was born, her own hands pulling at the rope that would lift him up into the arms of death—to restore the family's honor, you see.
Could a proud southern woman do less?
Could a proud Southern woman do any less?
And in the event of such an outcome to the adventures of the night, see how that younger sister—the love of his life at that time—see how she would have suffered.
And if the night’s adventures ended up like that, just think about how that younger sister—the love of his life at that moment—would have suffered.
There she was, the pure and innocent girl, the one who understood nothing, to be sure, of the import of his decision to stick to the old flag and fight for the land of Washington and Lincoln, and who, in her innocent way, just loved him. On that day at his father’s table, when he—so deeply affected by the Lincoln-Douglas debates—had dared say a word for the cause of the North, it had been her eyes and her eyes alone that had looked at him with love, when all the other eyes of his family had looked at him with hatred and loathing.
There she was, the pure and innocent girl, the one who really didn’t understand the significance of his choice to stick to the old flag and fight for the land of Washington and Lincoln, and who, in her sweet way, just loved him. On that day at his father's table, when he—deeply impacted by the Lincoln-Douglas debates—had dared to speak up for the cause of the North, it had been her eyes, and her eyes alone, that had looked at him with love, while all the other eyes of his family had looked at him with hatred and disgust.
And she would just be bursting into womanhood now. The aroma of awakening womanhood would be lying over her as perfume over the opening rosebud.
And she would just be stepping into womanhood now. The scent of emerging womanhood would surround her like perfume over a blooming rosebud.
Think of it! There she, the pure and innocent one, would have to stand and see him hanged. A blight would be brought down upon her young life [Pg 44] and her head would, ever after that night, be bowed in lonely and silent sorrow. That brave pure and just girl made old before her time. Ah; well might it be that in one night the mass of golden locks, that now covered her head like a cloud just kissed by the evening sun—that very golden hair might be turned as white as snow!
Imagine that! There she would have to stand and watch him get hanged, the pure and innocent one. A shadow would fall over her young life, and from that night on, her head would be bowed in lonely, silent sorrow. That brave, pure, and just girl made old before her time. It's possible that in one night, the mass of golden hair that now covered her head like a cloud just touched by the evening sun could turn as white as snow! [Pg 44]
I can, in fancy, hear my father saying the words I have set down here and coming very near to crying himself as he said them. At the moment he would have believed without question the story he himself was telling.
I can, in my imagination, hear my father saying the words I’ve written down here and getting really close to crying as he said them. In that moment, he would have believed without a doubt the story he was telling himself.
And now the front door to the old southern mansion is thrown open and there, in the doorway facing the prisoners in the rain, stands a gigantic young negro—my father’s own body servant before he left home. (Father stops the flow of his talk long enough to explain how he and the negro boy, as lads together, had fought, wrestled, hunted, fished and lived together like two brothers. I will not go into that, however. Any professional southerner will tell you all about it, if you care to hear. It would have been the most trite part of father’s evening’s effort.)
And now the front door of the old southern mansion swings open, and there, in the doorway facing the prisoners in the rain, stands a huge young Black man—my father’s personal servant before he left home. (Father pauses his storytelling long enough to explain how he and the young man, as boys, had fought, wrestled, hunted, fished, and lived together like brothers. I won’t get into that, though. Any professional southerner will happily tell you all about it if you want to listen. It would have been the most clichéd part of Father’s evening.)
Anyway, there the gigantic young negro stands in the doorway and he is holding in his hand a candle. Back of him stands my grandmother and back of her the young and innocent sister.
Anyway, there the huge young Black man stands in the doorway, holding a candle in his hand. Behind him, my grandmother stands, and behind her is my young and innocent sister.
The figure of father’s mother is erect. She is old but she is yet tall and strong. One of the officers explains to her that he and his men have been on an all-night march, taking the crowd of Yankee prisoners to a prison camp, and asks for the hospitality of the house. Being a [Pg 45] southerner himself he knows that southern hospitality can never fail, even at midnight. “A bite to eat and a cup of hot coffee in the name of our Southland,” he asks.
The figure of my grandmother stands tall. She’s old, but still strong and imposing. One of the officers explains to her that he and his men have been marching all night, bringing a group of Yankee prisoners to a prison camp, and he asks if they can stay at her house. Being a southerner himself, he knows that southern hospitality never disappoints, even at midnight. “Just a bite to eat and a cup of hot coffee for the sake of our Southland,” he requests. [Pg 45]
It is granted, of course. The proud woman beckons him and his brother officer into the house and herself steps out into the cold, drizzling rain.
It’s a given, of course. The confident woman waves him and his fellow officer into the house and steps out into the chilly, drizzling rain herself.
She has ordered the young negro to stand on the porch, holding the candle aloof, and now, marching across the wet lawn, approaches the prisoners. The southern guards have stepped aside, bowing low before southern womanhood, and she goes near the prisoners and looks at them, as well as one may in the uncertain light. “I have a curiosity to see some of the unmannerly dogs of Yanks,” she says, leaning forward and staring at them. She is very near her own son now but he has turned his face away and is looking at the ground. Something however causes him to raise his head just as she, to express more fully her contempt, spits at the men.
She has told the young Black man to stand on the porch, holding the candle up high, and now, walking across the wet lawn, approaches the prisoners. The southern guards step aside, bowing low before southern womanhood, and she gets close to the prisoners and looks at them, as best as one can in the dim light. “I’m curious to see some of these rude Yanks,” she says, leaning forward and staring at them. She’s very close to her own son now, but he has turned his face away and is looking at the ground. However, something causes him to lift his head just as she, to express her contempt more fully, spits at the men.
A little speck of her white spittle lands upon father’s thick, tawny beard.
A tiny droplet of her white saliva lands on Dad's thick, brown beard.
And now his mother has gone back into the house and it is again dark on the lawn in front. The Rebel guards are relieved—two at a time—to go to the kitchen door, where they are given hot coffee and sandwiches. And once his young sister, she of the tender heart, tries to creep to where the prisoners stand in the darkness. She is accompanied by an old negro woman and has planned to give food aid and comfort to the weary men but is prevented. Her mother has missed her inside the house and coming to the door calls to her. “I know your tender heart,” she says, [Pg 46] “but it shall not be. The teeth of no Yankee dog shall ever bite into food raised on the land of your father. It shall not happen, at least while your mother is alive to prevent.”
And now his mother has gone back into the house, and it's dark again on the lawn in front. The Rebel guards take turns, two at a time, heading to the kitchen door, where they get hot coffee and sandwiches. Once, his young sister, who has a tender heart, tries to sneak over to where the prisoners stand in the darkness. She's with an older Black woman and plans to bring food and comfort to the tired men but is stopped. Her mother has noticed her missing from inside the house and comes to the door, calling out to her. “I understand your kind heart,” she says, [Pg 46] “but it can't be done. No Yankee dog will ever bite into food grown on your father's land. It won't happen, at least while your mother is alive to stop it.”
[Pg 47]
[Pg 47]
NOTE III
SO there was father, sitting comfortably in the warm farmhouse living room—he and Aldrich having been well fed at the table of a prosperous farmer—and having before him what he most loved, an attentive and absorbed audience. By this time the farmer’s wife would be deeply moved by the fate of that son of the South that father had represented himself as being; and as for Tilly—while, in the fanciful picture he is making, he stands in the cold and wet outside the door of that southern mansion, Heaven knows what is going on in poor Tilly’s heart. It is however bleeding with sympathy, one may be sure of that.
So there was Dad, sitting comfortably in the warm farmhouse living room—he and Aldrich had just enjoyed a hearty meal at the table of a prosperous farmer—and in front of him was what he loved most, an attentive and captivated audience. By now, the farmer’s wife would be deeply touched by the story of that son of the South that Dad had claimed to be; as for Tilly—while in the imaginative scene he’s creating, he stands cold and wet outside the door of that southern mansion, who knows what’s going on in poor Tilly’s heart. It is certainly bursting with sympathy, that much is clear.
So there is father and, in the meantime, what of his own actual flesh-and-blood family, the family he had left behind in an Ohio village when he set forth on his career as an actor?
So there’s his father, and in the meantime, what about his own real family, the family he left behind in an Ohio village when he started his career as an actor?
It is not suffering too much. One need not waste too much sympathy on his family. Although he was never what we called in our Ohio country, “a good provider,” he had his points and as one of his sons I at least would be loath to trade him for a more provident shrewd and thoughtful father.
It’s not suffering too much. You don’t need to waste too much sympathy on his family. Even though he was never what we’d call in our Ohio hometown, “a good provider,” he had his qualities, and as one of his sons, I would at least be reluctant to swap him for a more responsible, savvy, and considerate father.
It must however have been a fairly hard winter, for mother at least and in connection with that winter and others that followed I have often since had an amusing thought. In later years, when my own name had a [Pg 48] little got up in the world as a teller of tales I was often accused of having got my impulse, as a story-teller, from the Russians. The statement is a plausible one. It is, in a way, based upon reason.
It must have been a pretty tough winter, at least for my mother, and thinking about that winter and the ones that came after has often made me chuckle. In later years, when my own name had become a bit more recognizable as a storyteller, people frequently claimed that I had drawn my inspiration, as a storyteller, from the Russians. The claim is quite believable. It’s, in some way, grounded in logic. [Pg 48]
When I had grown to be a man, and when my stories began to be published in the pages of the more reckless magazines, such as The Little Review, the old Masses and later in The Seven Arts and The Dial, and when I was so often accused of being under the Russian influence, I began to read the Russians, to find out if the statement, so often made concerning me and my work, could be true.
When I became a man and my stories started getting published in the more daring magazines like The Little Review, the old Masses, and later in The Seven Arts and The Dial, and when I was frequently accused of being influenced by Russian writers, I began to read the Russians to see if the claim made about me and my work might actually be true.
This I found, that in Russian novels the characters are always eating cabbage soup and I have no doubt Russian writers eat it too.
I noticed that in Russian novels, the characters are always eating cabbage soup, and I'm sure Russian writers do too.
This was a revelation to me. Many of the Russian tales are concerned with the lives of peasants and a Boston critic once said I had brought the American peasant into literature; and it is likely that Russian writers, like all the other writers who have ever lived and have not pandered to the popular demand for sentimental romances were fortunate if they could live as well as a peasant. “What the critics say is no doubt true,” I told myself; for, like so many of the Russian writers, I was raised largely on cabbage soup.
This was an eye-opener for me. Many of the Russian stories focus on the lives of peasants, and a critic from Boston once said I had introduced the American peasant into literature; it's probable that Russian writers, like all other writers who have ever existed and haven’t catered to the public’s craving for sentimental romances, were lucky to live as well as a peasant. “What the critics say is probably accurate,” I reassured myself; after all, like many of the Russian writers, I was mostly raised on cabbage soup.
Let me explain.
Let me clarify.
The little Ohio farming community, where I lived as a lad had in it, at that time, no factories, and the merchants artisans lawyers and other townspeople were all either owners of land which they rented out to tenant farmers, or they sold goods or their services to farmers. The soil on the farms about the town was a light sandy loam that [Pg 49] would raise small fruits, corn, wheat, oats or potatoes, but that did particularly well when planted to cabbages.
The small farming community in Ohio where I grew up had no factories back then. The merchants, craftsmen, lawyers, and other residents either owned land that they rented to farmers or provided goods and services to them. The soil on the farms around town was a light sandy loam that could grow small fruits, corn, wheat, oats, or potatoes, but it was especially good for cabbages. [Pg 49]
As a result the raising of cabbages became a sort of specialty with us in our country; and there are now, I believe, in my native place, some three or four prosperous factories, devoted to the making of what before the war was called “sauerkraut.” Later, to help win the war, it was called: “Liberty Cabbage.”
As a result, growing cabbages became a bit of a specialty for us in our area; and now, I believe, in my hometown, there are about three or four successful factories dedicated to producing what was called “sauerkraut” before the war. Later, to support the war effort, it was renamed “Liberty Cabbage.”
The specialization in the raising of cabbage began in our Ohio country in my day, and in a good year some of the fields produced as high as twenty tons of cabbage an acre.
The focus on growing cabbage started in our Ohio region during my time, and in a good year, some of the fields yielded as much as twenty tons of cabbage per acre.
The cabbage fields grew larger and larger and, as we grew older, my brothers and I went every spring and fell to work in the fields. We crawled across the fields, setting out cabbage plants in the spring, and in the fall went out to cut cabbages. The huge round hard heads of cabbage were cut from their stalks and pitched to a man who loaded them upon a hay wagon; and on fall days I have often seen twenty or thirty wagons, each bearing its two or three tons of cabbages and waiting its turn to get to the cars on the railroad siding. The waiting wagons filled our streets as tobacco-laden wagons fill the streets of a Kentucky town in the fall, and in the stores and houses everyone for a time talked of nothing but cabbages. “What would the crop bring on the markets at Cleveland or Pittsburgh?” Pittsburgh, for some reason I have never understood, had a passion for cabbages; and why Pittsburgh hasn’t produced more so-called realistic writers, in the Russian manner, I cannot understand.
The cabbage fields kept getting bigger, and as we got older, my brothers and I went to work in the fields every spring. We crawled through the fields, planting cabbage plants in the spring, and in the fall, we went out to harvest cabbages. The big, round, hard heads of cabbage were cut from their stalks and tossed to a guy who loaded them onto a hay wagon. On fall days, I often saw twenty or thirty wagons, each carrying two or three tons of cabbages, waiting to get to the railroad siding. The waiting wagons filled our streets like tobacco-laden wagons fill the streets of a Kentucky town in the fall, and in the stores and houses, everyone talked about nothing but cabbages for a while. “What would the crop sell for at the markets in Cleveland or Pittsburgh?” For some reason I’ve never understood, Pittsburgh had a thing for cabbages; and I can’t fathom why Pittsburgh hasn’t produced more so-called realistic writers in the Russian style.
[Pg 50]
[Pg 50]
However, one may well leave that to the modern psychologists.
However, one can definitely leave that to the modern psychologists.
During the fall of that year, after father had set out on his adventures as an actor, mother did something she had often done before. By a stroke of strategy she succeeded in getting a winter’s supply of cabbages for her family, without the expenditure of any monies.
During the fall of that year, after Dad had set out on his adventures as an actor, Mom did something she had done many times before. With some clever planning, she managed to secure a winter supply of cabbages for the family without spending any money.
The fall advanced, father had gone, and the annual village cut-up time, called among us “Hallowe’en,” came on.
The fall progressed, Dad was gone, and the yearly village celebration, known to us as "Halloween," approached.
It was the custom among the lads of our town, particularly among those who lived on the farms near town, to make cabbages part of their celebration of the occasion. Such lads, living as they did in the country, had the use of horses and buggies, and on Hallowe’en they hitched up and drove off to town.
It was a tradition among the guys in our town, especially those who lived on the farms nearby, to include cabbages in their celebration of the occasion. These guys, living out in the country, had access to horses and buggies, and on Halloween, they would hitch them up and head into town.
On the way they stopped at the cabbage fields and, finding in some of the fields many cabbages yet uncut, pulled them out by the roots and piled them in the backs of their buggies.
On the way, they stopped at the cabbage fields and, discovering many unharvested cabbages in some of the fields, pulled them out by the roots and piled them in the back of their buggies.
The country lads, giggling with anticipated pleasure, drove into one of the quieter residence streets of our town and, leaving the horse standing in the road, one of them got out of the buggy and took one of the cabbages in his hand. The cabbage had been pulled out of the ground with the great stalklike root still clinging to it and the lad now grasped this firmly. He crept toward one of the houses, preferably one that was dark—an indication that the people of the house, having spent a hard day at labor, had already gone to bed. Approaching the house cautiously, he swung the cabbage above his head, holding it by the long stalk, and then he let it go. The thing was to just hurl the [Pg 51] cabbage full against the closed door of the house. It struck with a thunderous sound and the supposition was that the people of the house would be startled and fairly lifted out of their beds by the hollow booming noise, produced when the head of cabbage landed against the door and, as a matter of fact, when a stout country boy had hurled the cabbage the sound produced was something quite tremendous.
The country boys, giggling with excitement, drove into one of the quieter residential streets in our town. Leaving the horse standing in the road, one of them jumped out of the buggy and picked up a cabbage. The cabbage had been pulled from the ground, with the big stalk still attached, and the boy grabbed it firmly. He crept toward one of the houses, preferably one that was dark—indicating that the people inside, having worked hard all day, had already gone to bed. As he approached the house quietly, he swung the cabbage above his head, holding it by the long stalk, and then let it go. The idea was to throw the cabbage directly against the closed door of the house. It hit with a loud noise, and they expected that the occupants would be startled awake by the booming sound when the cabbage crashed against the door. In fact, when a strong country boy threw the cabbage, the noise it made was absolutely enormous. [Pg 51]
The cabbage having been thrown the country boy ran quickly into the road, leaped into his buggy and, striking his horse with the whip, drove triumphantly away. He was not likely to return unless pursued, and there it was that mother’s strategy came into play.
The cabbage was thrown, and the country boy quickly ran into the road, jumped into his buggy, and, cracking the whip at his horse, drove away triumphantly. He probably wouldn’t come back unless he was chased, and that’s where his mother’s strategy kicked in.
On the great night she made us all sit quietly in the house. As soon as the evening meal was finished the lights were put out and we waited while mother stood just at the door, the knob in her hand. No doubt it must have seemed strange to the boys of our town that one so gentle and quiet as mother could be so infuriated by the hurling of a cabbage at the door of our house.
On that big night, she made us all sit quietly at home. As soon as dinner was over, the lights were turned off, and we waited while Mom stood by the door, holding the doorknob. It must have seemed odd to the boys in our town that someone as gentle and calm as Mom could get so angry over a cabbage being thrown at our front door.
But there was the simple fact of the situation to tempt and darkness had no sooner settled down upon our quiet street that one of the lads appeared. It was worth while throwing cabbages at such a house. One was pursued, one was scolded, threats were hurled: “Don’t you dare come back to this house! I’ll have the town marshal after you, that’s what I’ll do! If I get my hands on one of you I’ll give you a drubbing!” There was something of the actor in mother also.
But there was the simple truth of the situation to entice, and no sooner had darkness fallen over our quiet street than one of the kids showed up. It was worth it to throw cabbages at such a house. One was chased, one was yelled at, threats were thrown around: “Don’t you dare come back here! I’ll call the town marshal on you, that’s what I’ll do! If I catch one of you, I’ll give you a beating!” There was a bit of a performer in mom too.
What a night for the lads! Here was something worth while and all [Pg 52] evening the game went on and on. The buggies were not driven to our house, but were stopped at the head of the street, and town boys went on pilgrimages to cabbage fields to get ammunition and join in the siege. Mother stormed scolded and ran out into the darkness waving a broom while we children stayed indoors, enjoying the battle—and when the evening’s sport was at an end, we all fell to and gathered in the spoils. As she returned from each sally from the fort mother had brought into the house the last cabbage thrown—if she could find it; and now, late in the evening when our provident tormentors were all gone, we children went forth with a lantern and got in the rest of our crop. Often as many as two or three hundred cabbages came our way and these were all carefully gathered in. They had been pulled from the ground, with all the heavy outer leaves still clinging to them, so that they were comparatively uninjured and, as there was also still attached to them the heavy stalklike root, they were in fine shape to be kept. A long trench was dug in our back yard and the cabbages buried, lying closely side by side, as I am told the dead are usually buried after a siege.
What a night for the guys! It was something worth celebrating, and the game went on all evening. The buggies didn't come to our house; instead, they stopped at the end of the street, and kids from town went on quests to the cabbage fields to gather ammo and join in the fun. Mom yelled, scolded, and rushed out into the dark waving a broom while we kids stayed inside, enjoying the battle. When the night’s excitement wrapped up, we all jumped in and collected the loot. Every time Mom came back from her forays from the fort, she brought in the last cabbage she could find—if she managed to spot one. Now, late in the evening, when our clever tormentors were finally gone, we kids ventured out with a lantern to collect the rest of our harvest. We often gathered as many as two or three hundred cabbages, and we made sure to pick them all up. They had been yanked from the ground with the thick outer leaves still attached, so they were mostly intact. Plus, with their sturdy stalks still on, they were in great shape for storage. We dug a long trench in our backyard and buried the cabbages side by side, just as I'm told the dead are usually laid to rest after a siege. [Pg 52]
Perhaps indeed we were somewhat more careful with them than soldiers are with their dead after a battle. Were not the cabbages to be, for us, the givers of life? They were put into the trench carefully and tenderly with the heads downward and the stalks sticking up, mother supervising, and about each head straw was carefully packed—winding sheets. One could get straw from a strawstack in a near-by field at [Pg 53] night, any amount of it, and one did not pay or even bother to ask.
Maybe we were a bit more careful with them than soldiers are with their dead after a battle. Weren’t the cabbages supposed to give us life? They were placed in the trench gently, with their heads down and stalks up, while our mother supervised, and straw was carefully packed around each head—like burial shrouds. You could easily grab straw from a nearby field’s strawstack at night, as much as you wanted, and you didn’t have to pay or even ask. [Pg 53]
When winter came quickly, as it did after Hallowe’en, mother got small white beans from the grocery and salt pork from the butcher, and a thick soup, of which we never tired, was concocted. The cabbages were something at our backs. They made us feel safe.
When winter arrived suddenly, like it did after Halloween, Mom got some small white beans from the grocery store and salt pork from the butcher, and we made a thick soup that we never grew tired of. The cabbages were behind us. They made us feel secure.
And there was also a sense of something achieved. In the land in which we lived one did not need to have a large income. There was food all about, plenty of it, and we who lived so precariously in the land of plenty had, by our “mother’s wit,” achieved this store of food without working for it. A common sense of pride in our cleverness held us together.
And there was also a feeling of accomplishment. In the place where we lived, you didn’t need a big income. Food was everywhere, and we, who lived so on the edge in this land of abundance, had, through our “common sense,” gathered this food without needing to work for it. A shared sense of pride in our cleverness kept us united.
One went out into our back yard on a winter’s night when there was snow on the ground and looked abroad. Already we lads read books, and snow-covered fields stretching away under the winter moon suggested strange, stirring thoughts—travelers beset by wolves on the Russian Steppes—emigrant trains lost in whirling snowstorms on the Western sagebrush deserts of our own country, men in all sorts of strange terrible places wandering, desperate and starving, under the winter moon—and what of us? The place where the cabbages were buried made a long white mound, directly across our back yard, and when one looked at it there was a sense of fullness and plenty in the land. One remembered that down under the snow, buried away in the straw, were those long rows of cabbages. Deer, buffaloes, wild horses and equally wild long-horned cattle, far out on the Western plains, did not worry about food because the ground was covered with snow. With their hoofs they [Pg 54] pawed the snow away, and found buried beneath the snow the sweet little clusters of bunch grass, that again sent the warmth of life singing through their bodies.
One went out into our backyard on a winter night when there was snow on the ground and looked around. By then, we boys were reading books, and the snow-covered fields stretching out under the winter moon sparked strange, exciting thoughts—travelers surrounded by wolves on the Russian Steppes—emigrant trains lost in swirling snowstorms on the sagebrush deserts of our own country, men wandering in all kinds of scary, desperate places, starving under the winter moon—and what about us? The spot where the cabbages were buried formed a long white mound right across our backyard, and looking at it gave a sense of abundance in the land. One remembered that buried under the snow, hidden in the straw, were those long rows of cabbages. Deer, buffalo, wild horses, and equally wild longhorn cattle, far out on the Western plains, weren’t worried about food because the ground was covered in snow. With their hooves, they [Pg 54] pawed the snow away and found buried beneath it the sweet little clusters of bunch grass, which sent warmth and life singing through their bodies again.
It was a chance for the fancy to play, to kick up its heels and have a good time. One could imagine the house in which one lived as a fort, set far out on the Western frontier. The cabbages had been put into the ground with the stalks straight up. They stuck up straight and stiff, like sentinels standing and, after looking, one went into the fort and slept quietly and peacefully. There the soldiers were—they were standing firm and unyielding. Were there enemies prowling out there in the white darkness, the little wild dogs of want? One could laugh at such thoughts. Were not the sentinels standing—quietly and firmly waiting? One could go into the fort and sleep in peace, hugging that thought.
It was a chance for creativity to thrive, to express itself and have a good time. One could picture the house where one lived as a fortress, set far out on the Western frontier. The cabbages had been planted with their stalks straight up. They stood tall and rigid, like sentinels on duty. After taking a look, one could go into the fortress and sleep soundly and peacefully. There were the soldiers—standing strong and resolute. Were there enemies lurking out there in the dim light, the little wild dogs of desire? One could chuckle at such thoughts. Were not the sentinels standing—calm and steadfastly waiting? One could retreat into the fortress and sleep peacefully, holding onto that idea.
To us at home, father was always, somewhat strangely, a part and at the same time not a part of our lives. He flew in and out as a bird flies in and out of a bush, and I am quite sure that, all through the years of our childhood, it never occurred to him to ask, when he set off on one of his winter adventures, whether or not there was anything to eat in our house. The fall came with its snows, and the little creeping fear of actual starvation for her brood, that must often have been in mother’s mind, followed by the spring, the warm rains, the promise of plenty and his return. If he brought no money, he did bring something—a ham, some combs of honey, a jug of cider, or even perhaps a quarter of beef. There he was again and there was food on the table. He made a gesture. “There!” he seemed to be saying; “you see! Who says [Pg 55] I’m not a provider?”
To us at home, Dad was always, somewhat oddly, a part of our lives and at the same time not really part of them. He came and went like a bird flitting in and out of a bush, and I’m pretty sure that throughout our childhood, he never thought to ask, when he headed off on one of his winter adventures, if there was anything to eat in our house. Fall arrived with its snow, along with the creeping worry of actual starvation for us that must have often crossed Mom’s mind, followed by spring, the warm rains, the promise of abundance, and his return. Even if he didn’t bring any money, he brought something—like a ham, some honeycomb, a jug of cider, or maybe even a quarter of beef. There he was again, and there was food on the table. He made a gesture. “There!” he seemed to be saying; “you see! Who says [Pg 55] I’m not a provider?”
There were tales to be told and he was the teller of tales. “It is sufficient. Can man live by bread alone? There is food on the table now. Eat! Stuff yourselves! Spring has come and there are signs to be painted. The night has passed and it is another day. I am a man of faith. I tell you a sparrow shall not fall to the ground without my notice. I will make a tale of it—tell why and how it fell. The most marvelous tale in the world might be made from the fall of a sparrow. Is not the workman worthy of his hire? What about the lilies of the field, eh? They toil not and neither do they spin—do they?”
There were stories to be shared, and he was the storyteller. “That’s enough. Can a person live on bread alone? There’s food on the table now. Eat! Indulge yourselves! Spring has arrived and there are signs to be painted. The night has ended, and it’s a new day. I am a man of faith. I assure you, a sparrow won’t fall to the ground without my notice. I’ll turn it into a story—explain why and how it fell. The most incredible story in the world could come from the fall of a sparrow. Isn’t the worker deserving of their pay? What about the lilies of the field, huh? They don’t toil or spin—do they?”
And yet, was Solomon, in all his glory, arrayed like one of these?
And still, was Solomon, in all his glory, dressed like one of these?
I remember a day in the early spring when we were compelled to move out of one house and into another. The rent for the house in which we had lived all during the winter had been long unpaid and mother had no money. Father had just returned from one of his long adventures, but early in the day of the moving he disappeared again and, as we could not afford a moving wagon, mother and we boys carted our poor belongings to the new place on our backs.
I remember a day in early spring when we had to move out of one house and into another. We hadn’t paid rent for the house where we lived all winter, and mom had no money. Dad had just come back from one of his long adventures, but early on moving day, he disappeared again. Since we couldn’t afford a moving truck, mom and the boys carried our few belongings to the new place on our backs.
As for father, he had managed to borrow a horse and a spring wagon from a neighbor and had set off again into the country. The house to which we were moving was far out at the edge of the town and next to it was a field in which there was a great straw stack—a convenience, as what we called our “bed ticks,” on which we slept, had to be emptied of [Pg 56] the straw that had become fine and dustlike from long use, and then refilled with the new straw.
As for Dad, he had managed to borrow a horse and a spring wagon from a neighbor and had set off again into the countryside. The house we were moving to was far out at the edge of town, and next to it was a field with a big straw stack—very handy, since what we called our “bed ticks,” on which we slept, needed to be emptied of the straw that had turned fine and dusty from long use, and then refilled with fresh straw. [Pg 56]
When all was done and we were quite settled in the new place, father drove into the yard. He had noticed, he explained, a special kind of straw at a farmhouse some five miles away, at a place he had visited during his wanderings of the winter just past, and he had thought he would give us all a treat by getting that particular kind of straw for our beds.
When everything was finished and we were all settled into our new home, Dad pulled into the yard. He explained that he had seen a special type of straw at a farmhouse about five miles away during his winter explorations, and he thought he’d treat us by picking up that specific kind of straw for our beds.
And so he had driven off at daybreak, and, while we packed our furniture to the new place, had dined with the farmer and his family and had now returned. Although our beds had been made for the night the bed ticks must all be brought down again, the straw tumbled out and the special straw put in. “There,” he said, with one of his grand gestures, as we lads tramped wearily up the stairs with the refilled bags and as mother stood smiling—a little resentfully perhaps, but still smiling; “there, you kids, try sleeping on that. There is nothing on earth too good for my kids.”
And so he had left at dawn, and while we were moving our furniture to the new place, he had dinner with the farmer and his family and had now come back. Although our beds had already been made for the night, all the bedticks had to come down again, the straw spilled out, and the special straw put in. “There,” he said, with one of his big gestures, as we boys trudged tiredly up the stairs with the filled bags, and as Mom stood smiling—a bit resentfully maybe, but still smiling; “there, you kids, try sleeping on that. There’s nothing in the world too good for my kids.”
[Pg 57]
[Pg 57]
NOTE IV
LET us, however, return to father and the tale he is telling as he sits in the farmhouse on the winter’s evening. I am too good a son of my father to leave such a tale hanging forever thus, in the air.
LET us, however, return to Dad and the story he is telling as he sits in the farmhouse on a winter evening. I am too good a son to let such a story linger in the air forever.
As it turned out on that night, when it rained and when he in his young manhood stood just outside the door of that southern mansion house of his childhood, and when his mother, that proud woman of the Southland, spat at him and his companions in misery, so that a white speck of her spittle landed on his beard—where, as he said, it lay like a thing of fire burning into his soul—on that night, I say, he did, by a stroke of fortune, escape the fate that seemed to have him in its clutches.
On that night, when it rained and he, in his youth, stood just outside the door of the southern mansion where he grew up, his mother, that proud woman from the South, spat at him and his friends in their despair, causing a white droplet of her spit to land on his beard—where, as he described it, it felt like a fiery thing searing into his soul—on that night, I say, he managed, by a stroke of luck, to escape the fate that seemed to have him in its grip.
Dawn was just beginning to break when the two Confederate officers came out at the door of the house and marched their prisoners away.
Dawn was just starting to break when the two Confederate officers stepped out of the house and led their prisoners away.
“We went off into the gray dawn, up out of the valley and over the hills, and then I turned to look back,” father explained. Gray and weary and half dead with starvation, he turned to look. If he dropped dead from starvation and weariness on his way to the prison pen, what did it matter now? The light of his life had gone out. He was never again to see any of his own people, that he knew.
“We left in the gray dawn, climbing out of the valley and over the hills, and then I turned to look back,” father explained. Gray and exhausted, nearly dead from starvation, he turned to glance back. If he collapsed from starvation and fatigue on his way to the prison camp, what did it matter now? The light of his life had faded. He knew he would never see any of his own people again.
But even as he looked he did see something. The company had stopped to [Pg 58] rest for a moment and stood where a sharp wind blew over them, just at the crest of a hill. Down in the valley the dawn was just breaking and, as father looked, he could see the gray of the old house and against the gray of it, on the front veranda, just a fleck of white.
But even as he looked, he noticed something. The group had paused to rest for a moment and stood where a sharp wind blew over them, right at the top of a hill. Down in the valley, dawn was just starting to break, and, as the father looked, he could see the gray of the old house and, against that gray, on the front porch, just a small spot of white. [Pg 58]
That would be his young and innocent sister, come out of the house, you will understand, to look along the road taken by the prisoners, whose evident misery had touched her young heart.
That would be his young and innocent sister, who had come out of the house, as you can see, to look down the road where the prisoners had gone, their clear suffering having touched her young heart.
For father it would be, as he would so elaborately explain, a very high spot in his life, perhaps the highest spot he was to reach in all his weary march to the grave.
For dad, it would be, as he would so clearly explain, a really important moment in his life, maybe the most significant moment he would experience in his long journey toward the end.
He stood there on the hillside, quite cold and miserable—in just that utterly miserable and weary state when one is sometimes most alive—the senses, that is to say, are most alive. At the moment he felt, as any man must feel sometime in life, that an invisible cord does extend from the innermost parts of himself to the innermost parts of some other person. Love comes. For once in a lifetime a state of feeling becomes as definite a thing as a stone wall touched with the hand.
He stood there on the hillside, feeling cold and miserable—in that completely miserable and exhausted state when you’re sometimes most alive—the senses, in other words, are most heightened. At that moment he felt, as anyone does at some point in life, that there’s an invisible connection extending from the deepest part of himself to the deepest part of someone else. Love arrives. For once in a lifetime, a feeling becomes as real and tangible as a stone wall you can touch with your hand.
And father had that feeling, at that moment on the hill; and that the person for whom he had it was a woman and his own sister, made it even more an assured thing. He might have expressed the feeling by saying that, as by a miracle, the hill dropped away and he stood on dry level ground in the very presence of his younger sister, so close to her in fact that he might very easily have put out his hand and touched her. So strong was the feeling that he lost for the moment all sense of [Pg 59] his presence among the prisoners, all sense of the cold hunger and weariness of the hour and—exactly as the thing might be done, quite ridiculously, by a second-rate actor in the movies—he did in fact step out from among the ranks of prisoners and, with his hands extended before him and his eyes shining, took several steps down the hillside, only to be stopped by an oath from one of the guards.
And in that moment on the hill, his father felt something; knowing that it was for a woman and his own sister made it even more certain. He could have said that it was as if by a miracle, the hill flattened out, and he stood on solid ground right in front of his younger sister, so close that he could have easily reached out and touched her. The feeling was so intense that he temporarily lost awareness of the prisoners around him, of the cold, hunger, and exhaustion of the moment—and just like a not-so-great actor in a movie might do ridiculously—he actually stepped out from among the prisoners and, with his hands stretched out in front of him and his eyes bright, took several steps down the hill, only to be halted by a curse from one of the guards.
In the farmhouse, as he told of that moment he would get out of his chair and actually take several steps. He would at bottom be always a good deal of an actor as well as a story-teller, as every story-teller worth his salt inevitably is.
In the farmhouse, as he recounted that moment, he would get out of his chair and actually take several steps. Deep down, he would always be quite a performer as well as a storyteller, as every good storyteller inevitably is.
And then came the oath from the guard and an upraised gun, the heavy butt of a gun, ready to swing down upon his head, and back he goes into the ranks of prisoners. He mutters some excuse: “I just wanted to have a look”—and is thus jerked down from the high place, to which his imagination had suddenly lifted him, and back into the weariness of his apparently hopeless journey. Gone, he thought at the moment, was the sister he loved, his boyhood with its memories, all his past life, but it wasn’t quite true.
And then the guard shouted an oath and raised his gun, ready to bring the heavy butt down on his head, and he was pushed back into the line of prisoners. He muttered an excuse: “I just wanted to take a look”—and was yanked down from the high place his imagination had suddenly taken him to, and back into the exhaustion of his seemingly endless journey. In that moment, he thought he had lost the sister he loved, his childhood memories, all his past life, but that wasn't entirely accurate.
Father did make an escape. How many escapes he, in fancy, made from the hands of the enemy during that Civil War! He lived, you will understand, in a rather dull farming community and loved at least some air of probability hanging over his tales.
Father did escape. How many times he imagined escaping the enemy during that Civil War! He lived, as you can see, in a pretty boring farming community and appreciated at least some sense of realism in his stories.
And so the Civil War became for him the canvas, the tubes of paint, the brushes with which he painted his pictures. Perhaps one might better say his own imagination was the brush and the Civil War his paint pot. [Pg 60] And he did have a fancy for escapes, as I myself have always had. My own tales, told and untold, are full of escapes—by water in the dark and in a leaky boat, escapes from situations, escapes from dullness, from pretense, from the heavy-handed seriousness of the half artists. What writer of tales does not dote upon escapes? They are the very breath in our nostrils.
And so the Civil War became his canvas, the paint tubes, and the brushes he used to create his images. Maybe it's better to say his imagination was the brush and the Civil War was his paint pot. [Pg 60] He indeed had a taste for escapes, just like I always have. My own stories, both told and untold, are filled with escapes—by water in the dark and in a leaky boat, escapes from situations, from boredom, from pretending, from the heavy-handed seriousness of mediocre artists. What storyteller doesn’t love escapes? They are the very essence of our creativity.
It is just possible that upon that occasion, father would have put it to his audience, that the sight, or the imagined sight, of his sister that morning had given him new hope. She was a virgin and there was something catholic about father.
It’s possible that on that occasion, Dad would have told his audience that seeing, or even just imagining, his sister that morning had given him new hope. She was a virgin, and Dad had a certain universal quality about him.
Very well, then, off he goes down the road with his head held high, thinking of the possible schemes for escape and of his sister. He had been given something, a new flair for life. A ray of new hope had come into the black night of his situation. He walked more stoutly.
Very well, then, off he goes down the road with his head held high, thinking about possible escape plans and his sister. He had been given something—a fresh perspective on life. A glimmer of new hope had entered the dark night of his situation. He walked with more confidence.
It was just that stout way in which he now walked that gave him his opportunity for escape—that time. All that day the other prisoners went with hanging heads, tramping through the deep mud of the southern roads in winter, but father walked with his head up.
It was that strong way he walked now that gave him a chance to escape—that time. All day long, the other prisoners walked with their heads down, trudging through the deep mud of the southern roads in winter, but father held his head high.
Another night came and they were again in a forest, on a dark and lonely road, with the guards walking at the side and sometimes quite lost in the shadows cast by the trees—the prisoners a dark mass in the very centre of the road.
Another night arrived, and they found themselves once more in a forest, on a dark and desolate road, with the guards walking alongside, sometimes completely engulfed in the shadows created by the trees—the prisoners a dark shape right in the middle of the road.
Father stumbled over a stick, the heavy branch of a tree, quite [Pg 61] dead and broken off by the wind, and, stooping down, picked it up. Something, perhaps just the impulse of a soldier, led him to sling the stick lightly over his shoulder and carry it like a gun.
Father tripped over a stick, a thick branch from a tree, completely dead and snapped off by the wind, and bent down to pick it up. Perhaps it was just the instinct of a soldier that made him toss the stick casually over his shoulder and carry it like a gun. [Pg 61]
There he was, stepping proudly among those who were not proud—that is to say, the other prisoners—and not having any plan in mind—just thinking of his virginal sister back there, I dare say; and one of the two officers of the guard spoke to him kindly.
There he was, walking confidently among those who lacked pride—that is to say, the other prisoners—and having no specific plan in mind—just thinking about his innocent sister back there, I dare say; and one of the two guards spoke to him kindly.
“Don’t walk in there so close to the Yanks, in the deep mud, John,” the officer said; “it’s better going out here. There is a path here at the side. Get in here back of me.”
“Don’t walk in there so close to the Yanks, in the deep mud, John,” the officer said; “it’s better to go out here. There’s a path on the side. Get in behind me.”
By his very pride, lifted up out of the ranks of the prisoners, father’s mind acted quickly and with a muttered thanks he stepped to the side of the road and became as one of the guards. The men came out on the crest of another low hill and again, in the valley below, there was the faint light of a farmhouse. “Halt!” one of the officers gave command; and then—the younger of the two officers having been told by his superior to send a man down into the valley to the farmhouse to see if there was a chance for the guard and prisoners to rest for a few hours and to get food—he sent father. The officer touched him on the arm. “Go on you,” he said. “You go down and find out.”
By his pride, which set him apart from the other prisoners, Dad quickly reacted and, with a quiet thank you, stepped to the side of the road to blend in with the guards. The men emerged on the top of another small hill, and once again, in the valley below, there was a faint light coming from a farmhouse. “Halt!” one of the officers commanded; then—the younger officer, instructed by his superior to send someone into the valley to the farmhouse to check if there was an opportunity for the guard and prisoners to rest for a few hours and get some food—sent Dad. The officer touched him on the arm. “You go on,” he said. “Head down and find out.”
So off father went, down a lane, holding the stick very correctly, like a gun, until he was safely out of sight of the others, and then he threw the stick away and ran.
So off Dad went, down a path, holding the stick just right, like a gun, until he was out of sight of the others, and then he tossed the stick aside and ran.
The devil! He knew every inch of the ground on which he now stood. What an opportunity for escape! One of his boyhood friends had lived in [Pg 62] the very house, toward which he was supposed to be going, and often, in his young manhood and when he had come home for vacation from the northern school, he had ridden and hunted along the very path his feet now touched. Why, the very dogs and “niggers” on the place knew him as they might have known their master.
The devil! He was familiar with every inch of the ground he was standing on. What an opportunity to escape! One of his childhood friends had lived in the very house he was supposed to be going to, and often, during his young adulthood when he came home for vacation from the northern school, he had ridden and hunted along the very path his feet were now on. The very dogs and workers on the property recognized him as if he were their master.
And so, if he ran madly now, he ran knowing the ground under his feet. Ah, he would be sure! When his escape was discovered dogs might be set on his trail.
And so, if he ran wildly now, he ran aware of the ground beneath his feet. Ah, he would be certain! When they found out he had escaped, dogs might be unleashed to track him down.
He plunged downward, getting clear of the trees, running across a field—the soft mud clinging to his feet—and so skirted the house and got to where there was a small creek down which he went for a mile in the darkness, walking in the cold water that often came up to his waist. That was to throw dogs off his trail, as any schoolboy should know.
He dove down, getting away from the trees, running across a field—the soft mud sticking to his feet—and circled around the house to reach a small creek, following it for a mile in the dark, walking in the cold water that often rose to his waist. That was to throw the dogs off his trail, as any kid should know.
By making a great circle he got back into the road, by which he and the other prisoners had been marched from his own father’s house. They had come some twelve miles during the day and early evening, but the night was still young and, after he had gone three or four miles, he knew a short cut through the woods by which several miles could be cut off.
By creating a wide circle, he found his way back to the road that he and the other prisoners had been taken from his father’s house. They had traveled about twelve miles during the day and early evening, but the night was still young. After he had walked three or four miles, he remembered a shortcut through the woods that would save him several miles.
And so, you see, father went back again to his old home after all and once again saw the sister he loved. The dawn was just breaking when he arrived, but the dogs knew him and the negroes knew him. The very negro who had held the light while his mother spat at the prisoners hid him away in the loft of a barn and brought him food.
And so, you see, Dad went back to his old home after all and once again saw the sister he loved. The dawn was just breaking when he arrived, but the dogs recognized him and the Black workers recognized him too. The very person who had held the light while his mother spat at the prisoners hid him away in the barn loft and brought him food.
[Pg 63]
[Pg 63]
Not only food was brought, but also a suit of his own clothes that had been left in the house.
Not just food was brought, but also a suit of his own clothes that had been left in the house.
And so he stayed hidden in the loft for three days, and then another night came when it rained and was dark.
And so he stayed hidden in the loft for three days, and then another night came when it rained and was dark.
Then he crept out, with food for the needs of his journey, and knowing that, when he had walked for a mile along the road that led back toward the distant Union camp, a negro would be standing in a little grove with a good horse saddled and bridled for him. The negro, in the late afternoon, had gone off to a distant town, ostensibly for mail and was to be bound to a tree where he would be discovered later by a party of other negroes sent in search of him. Oh, all was arranged—everything elaborately planned to ward off, from his helpers, the wrath of the mother.
Then he quietly left, taking food for his journey, knowing that after walking a mile along the road back to the distant Union camp, a Black man would be waiting in a small grove with a well-prepared horse for him. The man had gone to a nearby town in the late afternoon, supposedly to pick up the mail, and was supposed to be tied to a tree, where he would later be found by a group of other Black men sent to look for him. Everything was set—meticulously arranged to protect his helpers from the fury of the mother.
There was the night and the rain, and father, with a dark cloak now about his shoulders, creeping from the stables and toward the house. By the window of one of the rooms downstairs his young sister sat playing an organ, and so he crept to the window and stood for a time looking. Ah; there was moving-picture stuff for your soul! Why, oh why, did not father live in another and later generation? In what affluence might we not all have flourished! The old homestead, a fire burning in the grate, the stern and relentless parent, and outside in the cold and wet father, the outcast son, the disowned, the homeless one, about to ride off into the night in the service of his country—never to return.
There was the night and the rain, and Dad, with a dark cloak now around his shoulders, was sneaking from the stables toward the house. By the window of one of the rooms downstairs, his young sister was playing an organ, and so he crept to the window and stood there for a while, watching. Ah; there was some serious cinematic stuff for your soul! Why, oh why, couldn’t Dad have lived in a different, later time? In what luxury could we all have thrived! The old family home, a fire burning in the fireplace, the stern and unyielding parent, and outside in the cold and wet, Dad, the outcast son, the disowned, the homeless one, about to ride off into the night in service to his country—never to return.
On the organ his sister would have been playing “The Last Link is Broken,” and there stands father with the great tears rolling down his cheeks.
On the organ, his sister would have been playing “The Last Link is Broken,” and there stands dad with tears streaming down his cheeks.
[Pg 64]
[Pg 64]
Then to ride away into the night, to fight again for the flag he loved, and that to him meant more than home, more than family—ah! more than the love of the woman who was long afterward to come into his life, and to console him somewhat for the fair sister he had lost.
Then to ride away into the night, to fight again for the flag he loved, and that to him meant more than home, more than family—ah! more than the love of the woman who was long afterward to come into his life, and to console him somewhat for the fair sister he had lost.
For he did love her, quite completely. Is it not odd, when one considers the matter, that the fair sister—who would have been my aunt, and who never perhaps existed except in father’s fancy, but concerning whom I have heard him tell so many touching tales—is it not odd that I have never succeeded in inventing a satisfactory name for her? Father never—if I remember correctly—gave her a name and I have never succeeded in doing so.
For he really loved her, completely. Isn’t it strange, when you think about it, that the beautiful sister—who would have been my aunt and who might have only existed in my father’s imagination, but about whom I’ve heard him tell so many heartfelt stories—isn’t it odd that I’ve never been able to come up with a good name for her? If I remember right, my father never gave her a name, and I’ve never been able to do so either.
How often have I tried and without success! Ophelia, Cornelia, Emily, Violet, Eunice. You see the difficulty? It must have a quaint and southern sound and must suggest—what must it not suggest?
How many times have I tried and failed! Ophelia, Cornelia, Emily, Violet, Eunice. You see the challenge? It needs to have a charming and southern vibe and must imply—what must it not imply?
But father’s tale must have its proper dénouement. One could trust the tale-teller for that. Even had he lived in the days of the movies and had the dénouement quite killed his story—for movie purposes, at least in the northern towns, which would have been the best market—even in the face of all of such difficulties which he fortunately did not have to meet, one could be quite sure of the dénouement.
But Dad's story needs to have a proper ending. You could rely on the storyteller for that. Even if he had lived in the era of movies and the ending ruined his story—at least for movie audiences in the northern towns, which would have been the best market—even with all those challenges he was lucky enough not to deal with, you could be pretty sure of the ending.
And he made it splashy. It was at the dreadful battle of Gettysburg, late in the war and on the third of July too. The Confederates had such a dreadful way of getting off on just the wrong foot on the very eve of our national holiday. Vicksburg and Gettysburg for Fourth of July celebrations. Surely it was, what, during the World War, would have [Pg 65] been called, “bad war psychology.”
And he made it flashy. It was at the awful battle of Gettysburg, late in the war and on July third too. The Confederates had a terrible way of starting off on the wrong foot right before our national holiday. Vicksburg and Gettysburg for Fourth of July celebrations. Surely it was, what, during World War II, would have been called “bad war psychology.” [Pg 65]
There can be no doubt that father had been a soldier of some sort during the Civil War and so, as was natural, he would give his tale a soldier’s dénouement, sacrificing even the beloved and innocent younger sister to his purpose (to be brought back to life—oh, many, many times later, and made to serve in many future tales).
There’s no doubt that Dad was some kind of soldier during the Civil War, and naturally, he would end his story like a soldier would, even sacrificing the beloved and innocent younger sister to serve his purpose (to be brought back to life—oh, many, many times later, and made to serve in many future stories).
It was the second day of that great, that terrible battle of Gettysburg, father had picked upon to serve as the setting for the end of his yarn.
It was the second day of that great, terrible battle of Gettysburg, that Dad had chosen to serve as the backdrop for the conclusion of his story.
That was a moment! All over the North the people stood waiting; farmers stopped working in the fields and drove into northern towns, waiting for the click of the little telegraph instruments; country doctors let the sick lie unattended and stood with all the others in the streets of towns, where was no running in and out of stores. The whole North stood waiting, listening. No time for talk now.
That was a moment! People all over the North were waiting; farmers paused their work in the fields and drove into northern towns, anticipating the click of the little telegraph machines; country doctors left the sick unattended and joined everyone else in the streets of towns, where there was no rushing in and out of stores. The entire North was waiting, listening. No time for conversation now.
Ah! that Confederate General Lee—the neat quiet Sunday-school superintendent among generals! One could never tell what he would do next. Was it not all planned that the war should be fought out on southern soil?—and here he had brought a great army of his finest troops far into the North.
Ah! that Confederate General Lee—the tidy, calm Sunday-school superintendent among generals! You could never guess what he would do next. Wasn't it all supposed to be planned for the war to be fought on southern land?—and here he had led a huge army of his best troops deep into the North.
Everyone waited and listened. No doubt the South waited and listened too.
Everyone waited and listened. No doubt the South was waiting and listening as well.
No Lincoln and Douglas debates now. “A nation cannot exist half slave and half free.”
No more Lincoln and Douglas debates now. “A nation can't exist half slave and half free.”
Now there is the rattle of the box, and the dice that shall decide the fate of a nation are being thrown. In an obscure farmhouse, far in the North, long after the battle of those two terrible days was fought [Pg 66] and half forgotten, father also has got his hands on the dice box. He is rattling words in it now. We poor tellers of tales have our moments too, it seems. Like great generals sitting upon horses upon the tops of hills and throwing troops into the arena, we throw the little soldier words into our battles. No uniforms for us, no riders springing away into the gray smoke-mist of battle to carry out orders. We must sit in lonely farmhouses or in cheap rooms in city lodging houses before our typewriters; but if we do not look like generals, we at least feel like that at moments anyway.
Now there's the sound of the dice box rattling, and the dice that will determine the future of a nation are being rolled. In a remote farmhouse far up North, long after the two horrific days of battle have been fought and mostly forgotten, Dad has also gotten his hands on the dice box. He’s shaking words around in it now. We, the storytellers, have our moments too, it seems. Like great generals perched on horseback atop hills, sending troops into the fray, we launch our little soldier words into our conflicts. No uniforms for us, no riders charging into the gray smoke of battle to carry out commands. We must sit in lonely farmhouses or cheap city lodging rooms before our typewriters; but if we don’t look like generals, we at least feel like one at times. [Pg 66]
Father dropping his little rattling words into the hearts of the farmer, the farmer’s wife, Tilly’s heart too. At Gettysburg a nation in the death grapple. The innocent sister, fair virgin of the South, cast in too.
Father dropping his little rattling words into the hearts of the farmer, the farmer’s wife, Tilly’s heart too. At Gettysburg, a nation in the grip of death. The innocent sister, the fair virgin of the South, caught up in it too.
Look at the eyes of that stoic Aldrich. They are shining now, eh? Ah! he has been a soldier too. In his youth he also stood firmly amid shot and shell, but ever after, poor dear, he had to be satisfied with mere blank dumbness about it all. At the best he could but turn the crank of a magic-lantern machine or join the G. A. R., and march with other men through the streets of an Ohio town on Decoration days, when the real question in the minds of all the onlookers was as to whether Clyde or Tiffin, Ohio, would win the ball game to be played at Ame’s field that afternoon.
Look at the eyes of that stoic Aldrich. They’re shining now, right? Ah! He was a soldier too. In his youth, he also stood firm in the midst of gunfire and explosions, but after that, poor guy, he had to settle for just being silent about it all. At best, he could only operate a magic lantern machine or join the G.A.R. and march with other men through the streets of an Ohio town on Decoration Days, when the real question on everyone’s mind was whether Clyde or Tiffin, Ohio, would win the baseball game at Ame’s field that afternoon.
A poor sort Aldrich, being able to do nothing but fight. On Decoration days he marched dumbly through the dust to a graveyard and listened to an address made by a candidate for Congress, who had made his money in [Pg 67] the wholesale poultry business. At best Aldrich could but speak in low tones to another comrade, as the file of men marched along. “I was with Grant at the Wilderness and before that at Shiloh. Where were you? Oh, you were with Sherman, one of Sherman’s bummers, eh?”
A poor guy named Aldrich, who could do nothing but fight. On Memorial Days, he walked silently through the dust to a cemetery and listened to a speech given by a candidate for Congress, who had made his fortune in the wholesale poultry business. At best, Aldrich could only speak in a low voice to another comrade as they marched along. “I was with Grant at the Wilderness and before that at Shiloh. Where were you? Oh, you were with Sherman, one of Sherman’s bummers, right?”
That and no more for Aldrich—but for father, ah!
That and nothing more for Aldrich—but for his father, oh!
The second day at Gettysburg and Pickett’s men ready for their charge. Was that not a moment? What men—those fellows of Pickett’s—the very flower of the Southland—young bearded giants, tough like athletes, trained to the minute.
The second day at Gettysburg and Pickett’s men are prepared for their charge. Was that not a moment? What men—those guys of Pickett’s—the very best of the South—young bearded giants, tough like athletes, finely trained.
It is growing late on that second day of the fight and Pickett’s men are to decide it all. The sun will soon be going down behind the hills of that low flat valley—the valley in which, but a few short days ago, farmers were preparing to gather the grain crops. On the slope of one of the hills a body of men lies waiting. It is the flower of the Union army too. Father is among them, lying there.
It’s getting late on the second day of the battle, and Pickett’s men are about to make a crucial decision. The sun will soon set behind the hills of the flat valley—the same valley where, just a few days ago, farmers were getting ready to harvest their grain. On the slope of one of the hills, a group of men is lying in wait. They’re the best of the Union army. Dad is among them, lying there.
They wait.
They’re waiting.
They are not trembling, but back of them in a thousand towns men and women are both waiting and trembling. Freedom itself waits and trembles—liberty is trembling—“You can’t fool all of the people all of the time” is trembling like a broken reed. How many grand passages, words, Decoration day addresses, messages to Congress, Fourth of July addresses of the next two hundred years, not worth eight cents on the dollar at the moment!
They aren’t shaking, but behind them in a thousand towns, people are waiting and shaking. Freedom itself is waiting and trembling—liberty is shaking—“You can’t fool all of the people all of the time” is shaking like a broken reed. How many grand speeches, words, Memorial Day addresses, messages to Congress, and Fourth of July speeches in the next two hundred years won’t be worth much at all right now!
And now they come—Pickett’s men—down through the valley, in and out of groves of trees and up the little slope. There is a place, known to [Pg 68] history as “the bloody angle.” There the men of the South rush straight into a storm of iron. A hailstorm of iron swept also in among the men of the North waiting for them.
And now they arrive—Pickett’s men—moving through the valley, weaving in and out of groves of trees and climbing the small hill. There's a spot, known to history as "the bloody angle." There, the soldiers from the South charge headfirst into a barrage of iron. An onslaught of iron also rained down on the Northern troops waiting for them.
That wild Rebel yell that broke from the lips of Pickett’s men is dying now. The lips of Pickett’s men are turning white.
That fierce Rebel yell that came from Pickett’s men is fading now. The faces of Pickett’s men are turning pale.
The voice of Meade has spoken and down through the valley go the Union men in their turn—father among them.
The voice of Meade has been heard, and now the Union soldiers move down through the valley—alongside their fathers.
It was then that a bullet in the leg dropped him in his tracks, and in memory of that moment he stops the telling of his tale in the farmhouse long enough to pull up his pants leg and show the scar of his wound. Father was a true naturalist, liked to pin his tales down to earth, put a spike of truth in them—at moments.
It was then that a bullet in the leg took him down, and to remember that moment, he pauses his story in the farmhouse just long enough to roll up his pant leg and show the scar from his wound. Father was a real naturalist; he liked to keep his stories grounded and add a touch of truth to them—at times.
He pitched forward and fell and the men of his company rolled on to a victory in which he could have no part. He had fallen in what was now, suddenly, a little, quiet place among trees in an old orchard, and there close beside him was a confederate boy, mortally wounded. The two men roll uneasily in their pain and look directly into each other’s eyes. It is a long, long look the two men give each other, for one of them the last look into the eyes of a fellow before he goes on, over the river.
He pitched forward and fell, and the men in his unit moved on to a victory in which he could not share. He had fallen in what had suddenly become a small, quiet spot among trees in an old orchard, and there next to him was a wounded comrade, dying. The two men shift uncomfortably in their pain and look directly into each other’s eyes. They share a long, lingering gaze, one that for one of them is the last look into the eyes of a fellow before crossing over to the other side.
The man lying there, and now dying, is just that young man who, as a boy, was father’s best friend and comrade, the lad to whose place—some twelve miles from his own father’s plantation—he used to ride for days of sport. What rides they had taken together through the forests, a [Pg 69] pack of dogs at their heels, and what talks they then had!
The man lying there, now dying, is the same young man who, as a boy, was my father's best friend and buddy, the kid he used to ride to visit—about twelve miles from his own father's plantation—for days of fun. What rides they shared together through the forests, a pack of dogs following them, and what conversations they had! [Pg 69]
You will understand that the young man now dying lived in that very house, far back from the road, toward which father went that night when he escaped the Rebel guard. He had marched off with the stick over his shoulder, you will remember, and had then cut off across fields to his own home where he was concealed by the negroes until the night of his final escape.
You will understand that the young man who is now dying lived in that very house, set back from the road, toward which his father went that night when he escaped the Rebel guard. He had marched off with a stick over his shoulder, as you will remember, and then cut across the fields to his own home where the Black community hid him until the night of his final escape.
And he had gone away from his own home on that dark night, dreaming of a return, some time when the cruel war was over and the wounds it had made were healed; but now he could never return. He was condemned to remain alone, a wanderer always on the face of this earth.
And he had left his own home on that dark night, dreaming of a time when he could come back, after the brutal war was over and the wounds it caused were healed; but now he could never go back. He was stuck being alone, a wanderer forever on this earth.
For the lad now dying beside him on the field of Gettysburg was, in his death hour, telling a fearful and tragic story.
For the young man dying next to him on the field of Gettysburg was, in his final moments, sharing a terrifying and tragic story.
Father’s family had been entirely wiped out. His father had been killed in battle as had also his brothers.
Father's family had been completely destroyed. His dad had been killed in battle, and so had his brothers.
And now, from the lips of his old comrade, he was to hear the most fearful tale of all.
And now, from the words of his old friend, he was about to hear the most terrifying story of all.
A party of northern foragers had come to the southern plantation house on just such another dark, rainy night as the one on which he was taken there as a prisoner. They marched as the confederate troops had marched, along the driveway to the front of the house, and stood on the lawn. A northern officer’s voice called as the southern officer had called on that other night, and again the tall young negro came to the door with a light, followed by that fiery woman of the Southland.
A group of northern foragers arrived at the southern plantation house on another dark, rainy night just like the one when he was taken there as a prisoner. They walked like the Confederate troops had, along the driveway to the front of the house, and stood on the lawn. A northern officer’s voice called out just as the southern officer had on that other night, and once again the tall young Black man came to the door with a light, followed by that fiery woman from the South.
[Pg 70]
[Pg 70]
The negro held the light above his head so that, even in the darkness, the blue coats of the hated northern troops could be seen.
The Black man held the light above his head so that, even in the darkness, the blue uniforms of the hated northern troops could be seen.
The old southern woman came to stand at the edge of the porch. She understood for what purpose the northern men had come, and she had sworn that not a bite of food, raised on that plantation, should ever pass the lips of a Yank.
The elderly Southern woman stood at the edge of the porch. She knew why the Northerners had arrived, and she had promised that not a single mouthful of food grown on that plantation would ever be eaten by a Yank.
Now she held a shotgun in her hand and, without a word or without any sort of warning, raised it and fired into the mass of the men.
Now she held a shotgun in her hand and, without saying a word or giving any kind of warning, aimed it and fired into the crowd of men.
There was a cry of rage, and then many guns were raised to shoulders. A sudden roar of the guns and a hundred leaden bullets cut through the front of the house. It wiped out all of father’s family—except just himself—and deprived his sons, too, of a proud southern ancestry; for, just in the moment, before the shower of bullets came, father’s young and innocent sister—realizing with that sure instinct that, everyone understands, all women inevitably possess—realizing, I say, that death was about to call her mother—the young girl had rushed panic-stricken out of the door and had thrown her arms about her mother’s body, just in time to meet death with her. And so all that was left of the family—except just father—fell there in a heap. The captain of the northern troops—a German brewer’s son from Milwaukee, Wisconsin, cried when later he looked down into the white silent face of the young girl, and all his life afterward carried in his heart the remembrance of the dead, pleading young eyes; but, as father so philosophically remarked, what was done was done.
There was a shout of anger, and then a lot of guns were raised to shoulders. A sudden blast of gunfire sent a hundred bullets tearing through the front of the house. It wiped out all of father’s family—except for him—and took away his sons' proud southern heritage; for, at that moment, just before the hail of bullets arrived, father’s young and innocent sister—realizing with that instinct that everyone understands, which all women inevitably have—realizing, I say, that death was about to take her mother—the young girl had rushed out of the door in a panic and thrown her arms around her mother’s body, just in time to face death alongside her. And so all that remained of the family—except for father—fell in a heap. The captain of the northern troops—a German brewer’s son from Milwaukee, Wisconsin—cried when he later looked down at the pale, still face of the young girl, and carried in his heart for the rest of his life the memory of her lifeless, pleading young eyes; but, as father so wisely said, what was done was done.
And with that fall there was father—a man left to wander forever [Pg 71] stricken and forlorn through life. Later he had, to be sure, married and he had children whom he loved and treasured, but was that the same thing? To the heart of a southerner, as every American understands, ancestry means everything.
And with that fall, there was Dad—a man left to wander endlessly [Pg 71] lost and lonely through life. Later, he did get married and had kids he loved and cherished, but was that really the same thing? To the heart of a southerner, as every American knows, family background means everything.
The purity of a southern woman is unlike any other purity ever known to mankind. It is something special. The man who has been under the influence of it can never afterward quite escape. Father didn’t expect to. He declared always, after he had told the above story, that he did not ever expect to be gay or happy again.
The purity of a southern woman is like no other purity known to humanity. It's something unique. A man who has experienced it can never truly move on. Father didn’t think he could. He always said, after telling that story, that he didn’t expect to ever be joyful or happy again.
What he expected was that he would go on for the rest of his days doing just what he was doing at the time. Well, he would try to bring a little joy into the hearts of others—he would sing songs, dance a little dance—he would join an old comrade in arms, one whose heart he knew was as true as steel, and give a magic-lantern show. Others, for an hour anyway, would be made to forget that element of sadness and tragedy in life that he, of course, could never quite forget.
What he expected was that he would spend the rest of his life doing exactly what he was doing at that moment. He would try to bring a little joy to others—he would sing songs, dance a bit—he would team up with an old buddy from the military, someone whose heart he knew was as true as steel, and put on a magic-lantern show. For at least an hour, others would forget that sadness and tragedy in life that he, of course, could never fully forget.
On that very night, lying half dead on the field of Gettysburg beside the dead comrade of his youth, he had made up his mind to spend the remaining days of his life bringing what sweetness and joy he could into the lacerated hearts of a nation torn by civil strife. It had been two o’clock in the morning before he was picked up by a squad of men sent out to gather in the wounded, and already the news of the great victory and the triumph of the cause of freedom was sweeping over the northern land. And he had lain looking at the stars and had made his resolution. Others might seek for the applause of the world, but, as [Pg 72] for himself, he would go into the dusty highways and byways of life and bring to the lowly and forgotten the joy of a little fun at the schoolhouse.
On that very night, lying almost dead on the battlefield of Gettysburg next to his fallen buddy from youth, he decided he would spend the rest of his life bringing whatever happiness and joy he could to the broken hearts of a nation ripped apart by civil war. It was already two o'clock in the morning when a group of men came to collect the wounded, and the news of the great victory and the triumph of the cause of freedom was spreading across the northern states. While lying there staring at the stars, he made his choice. Others might chase after the world's applause, but as for him, he would travel the dusty roads and paths of life to share a little joy with the humble and forgotten at the schoolhouse. [Pg 72]
[Pg 73]
[Pg 73]
NOTE V
AS for the show father and Aldrich put on, that is another matter. One may, without too much injustice, reserve judgment on the show. I myself never saw one of their performances, but one of my brothers once did and always, quietly and with commendable firmness, refused to speak of it afterward.
AS for the show that father and Aldrich put on, that's a different story. One can, without being too unfair, hold off on forming an opinion about the performance. I personally never saw one of their shows, but one of my brothers did once, and he always, quietly and resolutely, declined to talk about it afterward.
Fancy will, however, serve. Aldrich would show his pictures of McKinley, Grover Cleveland and the others, and then father would sing and do one of his dances. There would be more pictures and another song and dance and after that the picture of the flag, in colors. If the night were fair forty or even fifty people, farmers, their wives, the hired men and the children, would gather in the schoolhouse. The show only cost ten cents. Too much injustice was not done them.
Fancy will, however, work. Aldrich would show his pictures of McKinley, Grover Cleveland, and the others, and then Dad would sing and do one of his dances. There would be more pictures and another song and dance, and after that, the picture of the flag, in colors. If the night was nice, forty or even fifty people—farmers, their wives, the hired hands, and the kids—would gather in the schoolhouse. The show only cost ten cents. They weren't treated too unfairly.
It is, however, rather a shame they did not let father tell stories instead. Perhaps in all his life it never occurred to him they might have been written. Poor father! As a public figure, he had to content himself with the exercise of an art in which he was as bad, I fancy, as any man who has ever lived.
It’s really a shame they didn’t let Dad tell stories instead. Maybe in all his life, it never crossed his mind that they could have been written down. Poor Dad! As a public figure, he had to settle for practicing an art in which, I think, he was as bad as any man who’s ever lived.
And it is his singing and dancing that remains like a scar in my memory of him. In the late fall, before Aldrich and he started out on their adventure, father used to rehearse upstairs in our house.
And it’s his singing and dancing that stays like a scar in my memory of him. In late fall, before Aldrich and he set out on their adventure, Dad used to practice upstairs in our house.
The evening meal would have been out of the way and we children would [Pg 74] be sitting by the stove, about the table in the kitchen. Mother had washed clothes during the day and now she was doing an ironing. Father walked about, his hands clasped behind his back as though in deep thought, and occasionally he raised his eyes to the ceiling, while his lips moved silently.
The dinner would have been finished, and we kids would be sitting by the stove, gathered around the kitchen table. Mom had done laundry during the day and was now ironing. Dad paced around with his hands clasped behind his back, looking deep in thought, occasionally glancing up at the ceiling while silently moving his lips.
Then he went out of the room and we heard him go upstairs into a bedroom above. None of us, in the kitchen below, looked at each other. We pretended to read books, to get our school lessons, or we looked at the floor.
Then he left the room, and we heard him go upstairs into a bedroom. None of us in the kitchen below made eye contact. We acted like we were reading books, doing our schoolwork, or just staring at the floor.
At that time the humor of America—of which we Americans were so inordinately proud—expressed itself in the broader and less subtle jokes of Mark Twain, Bill Nye and Petroleum V. Nasby, and there was a book, commonly read by both children and grown-ups, and reputed to be very funny, called, “Peck’s Bad Boy.” It told, if I remember correctly, of the doings of a certain quite terrible youngster who put chewing gum or molasses on the seats of chairs, threw pepper into people’s eyes, stuck pins into schoolteachers, hung cats over clotheslines by their tails, and did any number of other such charmingly expressive things.
At that time, the humor of America—something we Americans were incredibly proud of—was showcased in the broader and less subtle jokes of Mark Twain, Bill Nye, and Petroleum V. Nasby. There was also a book, widely read by both kids and adults, that was said to be really funny, called “Peck’s Bad Boy.” It told, if I remember correctly, the story of a truly terrible kid who put chewing gum or molasses on chair seats, threw pepper into people’s eyes, stuck pins into teachers, hung cats over clotheslines by their tails, and did a bunch of other equally charming things.
This terrible child was, as I have said, reputed to be very funny and the book recounting his doings must have sold tremendously. And father, having read it, had written a ballad concerning just such another youngster. This child also made life a hell for his fellows, and his father was very proud of him. When the child had done something unusually shocking the father tried, one gathered, to share in the [Pg 75] honor.
This awful kid was, as I mentioned, known to be really funny, and the book about his antics must have sold like crazy. And Dad, after reading it, wrote a ballad about a similar kid. This kid also made life miserable for his peers, and his dad was really proud of him. When the kid did something particularly outrageous, the dad seemed to want to take part in the glory. [Pg 75]
At any rate the refrain of father’s song was:
At any rate, the refrain of Dad's song was:
Evening after evening these words rang through our house. They made all of us children shiver a little. Father sang them, danced a few halting steps, and then sang them again.
Evening after evening, these words echoed throughout our house. They made us kids shiver a little. Dad sang them, danced a few awkward steps, and then sang them again.
In the kitchen, as I have already said, we others sat with our eyes on the floor. One could not hear the words of the verses themselves, but the spirit of the song was known to all of us. Am I right? Were there—sometimes—tears in mother’s eyes as she bent over the ironing board?
In the kitchen, as I mentioned before, we all sat with our eyes on the floor. You couldn’t hear the actual words of the song, but we all felt the emotion behind it. Am I right? Were there—sometimes—tears in Mom's eyes as she bent over the ironing board?
Of that, after all, I cannot be too sure. I can only be everlastingly sure of the refrain:
Of that, I can't be completely sure. I can only be endlessly sure of the refrain:
“You grow more like your dad every day.”
“You’re becoming more like your dad every day.”
And, however that may be, there is always one consoling thought. As a showman, and on stormy nights, there must sometimes have been but slight audiences at the schoolhouses and the takings for Aldrich and father must have been thin. One fancies evenings when eighty cents might cover all the receipts at the door.
And no matter what, there’s always one comforting thought. As a performer, on stormy nights, there probably weren't many people in the schoolhouses, and the earnings for Aldrich and his father must have been low. You can imagine evenings when just eighty cents might cover all the ticket sales at the door.
One thinks of the eighty cents and shudders, and then a consoling thought comes. Of one thing we may be quite sure—father and Aldrich would not have gone hungry, and at night there must always have been comfortable beds into which they could crawl. Father had promised [Pg 76] Aldrich he would see to the matter of bed and board.
One thinks of the eighty cents and feels a shiver, but then a comforting thought comes to mind. We can be sure of one thing—Dad and Aldrich wouldn’t have gone hungry, and at night there would always have been cozy beds for them to crawl into. Dad had promised Aldrich he would take care of their food and housing. [Pg 76]
And no doubt he did.
And no doubt he did.
Even though the farmer and the farmer’s wife should have proved hard-hearted one remembers the number of Tillies in the farmhouses of Ohio. When everything else failed the Tillies would have taken care of the troubadours. Of that one may be, I should say, very very sure.
Even though the farmer and his wife should have been cold-hearted, we can't forget the many Tillies in the farmhouses of Ohio. When everything else fell short, the Tillies would have taken care of the troubadours. That's something I can say with absolute confidence.
[Pg 77]
[Pg 77]
NOTE VI
TO the imaginative man in the modern world something becomes, from the first, sharply defined. Life splits itself into two sections and, no matter how long one may live or where one may live, the two ends continue to dangle, fluttering about in the empty air.
TO the imaginative person in the modern world, something becomes, from the start, clearly defined. Life divides itself into two sections, and no matter how long someone lives or where they live, the two ends continue to dangle, fluttering in the empty air.
To which of the two lives, lived within the one body, are you to give yourself? There is, after all, some little freedom of choice.
To which of the two lives, lived within the same body, will you choose to dedicate yourself? After all, there is a bit of freedom in making your choice.
There is the life of fancy. In it one sometimes moves with an ordered purpose through ordered days, or at the least through ordered hours. In the life of the fancy there is no such thing as good or bad. There are no Puritans in that life. The dry sisters of Philistia do not come in at the door. They cannot breathe in the life of the fancy. The Puritan, the reformer who scolds at the Puritans, the dry intellectuals, all who desire to uplift, to remake life on some definite plan conceived within the human brain die of a disease of the lungs. They would do better to stay in the world of fact to spend their energy in catching bootleggers, inventing new machines, helping humanity—as best they can—in its no doubt laudable ambition to hurl bodies through the air at the rate of five hundred miles an hour.
There’s a life of imagination. In it, you sometimes move with a clear purpose through well-structured days, or at least through organized hours. In the life of imagination, concepts like good or bad don’t exist. There are no Puritans in that life. The dry critics from society don’t step through the door. They can’t exist in the world of imagination. The Puritan, the reformer who criticizes the Puritans, the dry intellectuals—those who want to uplift, to reshape life based on some specific idea created in the human mind—suffer from a suffocating mindset. They would be better off staying in the world of reality, spending their energy catching bootleggers, inventing new machines, or helping humanity—in whatever way they can—in its certainly admirable goal of launching bodies through the air at speeds of five hundred miles an hour.
In the world of the fancy, life separates itself with slow movements and with many graduations into the ugly and the beautiful. What is [Pg 78] alive is opposed to what is dead. Is the air of the room in which we live sweet to the nostrils or is it poisoned with weariness? In the end it must become the one thing or the other.
In the world of the elite, life unfolds gradually, distinguishing itself between the ugly and the beautiful. What is alive contrasts with what is dead. Is the air in the room we inhabit refreshing to our senses, or is it tainted with fatigue? In the end, it has to be one or the other. [Pg 78]
All morality then becomes a purely æsthetic matter. What is beautiful must bring æsthetic joy; what is ugly must bring æsthetic sadness and suffering.
All morality then becomes purely an aesthetic issue. What is beautiful must bring aesthetic joy; what is ugly must bring aesthetic sadness and suffering.
Or one may become, as so many younger Americans do, a mere smart-aleck, without humbleness before the possibilities of life, one sure of himself—and thus one may remain to the end, blind, deaf and dumb, feeling and seeing nothing. Many of our intellectuals find this is the more comfortable road to travel.
Or one might become, like so many younger Americans do, a smart-aleck, lacking humility in the face of life's possibilities, completely sure of themselves—and as a result, they might go through life completely unaware, blind, deaf, and mute to everything around them. Many of our intellectuals find that this is the easier path to take.
In the world of fancy, you must understand, no man is ugly. Man is ugly in fact only. Ah, there is the difficulty!
In the world of fancy, you should know, no man is ugly. A man is only ugly in reality. Ah, there's the challenge!
In the world of fancy even the most base man’s actions sometimes take on the forms of beauty. Dim pathways do sometimes open before the eyes of the man who has not killed the possibilities of beauty in himself by being too sure.
In a world of elegance, even the simplest person's actions can occasionally appear beautiful. Dim pathways can sometimes unfold before the eyes of someone who hasn’t stifled their own potential for beauty by being overly confident.
Let us (in fancy) imagine for a moment an American lad walking alone at evening in the streets of an American town.
Let’s imagine for a moment a young American guy walking alone in the evening on the streets of a town in the U.S.
American towns, and in particular American towns of the Middle West of twenty years ago, were not built for beauty, they were not built to be lived in permanently. A dreadful desire of escape, of physical escape, must have got, like a disease, into our father’s brains. How they pitched the towns and cities together! What an insanity! The lad we have together invented, to walk at evening in the streets of such a [Pg 79] town, must of necessity be more beautiful than all the hurriedly built towns and cities in which he may walk. True immaturity of the body and the spirit is more beautiful than mere tired-out physical maturity: the physical maturity of men and women that has no spiritual counterpart within itself falls quickly into physical and ugly decay—like the cheaply constructed frame houses of so many of our towns.
American towns, especially in the Midwest from twenty years ago, weren't designed for beauty or for people to live in permanently. A terrible urge to escape, almost like a disease, must have crept into our fathers' minds. Just look at how they threw those towns and cities together! What madness! The son we've imagined, walking in the streets of such a town at evening, must be more beautiful than all the hastily built towns and cities he might wander through. The true immaturity of both body and spirit is more beautiful than simply worn-out physical maturity: the physical maturity of men and women that lacks any spiritual depth quickly falls into ugly decline—just like the cheaply built frame houses found in so many of our towns.
The lad of our fancy walks in the streets of a town hurriedly thrown together, striving to dream his dreams, and must continue for a long time to walk in the midst of such ugliness. The cheap, hurried, ugly construction of America’s physical life still goes on and on. The idea of permanent residence has not taken hold on us. Our imaginations are not yet fired by love of our native soil.
The young man we admire walks through a hastily built town, trying to pursue his dreams, and will have to keep doing so for a long time amidst such unappealing surroundings. The fast, cheap, and unattractive development of America’s physical landscape continues relentlessly. The concept of settling down permanently hasn’t caught on with us. Our imaginations aren’t ignited by a love for our homeland yet.
The American boy of our mutual imaginative creation is walking in the streets of an Ohio town, after the factories have begun coming and the day of the hustlers is at hand, the houses of the town pushed up quickly, people swarming into the town who have no notion of staying there—a surprising number of them will stay, but they have, at first, no intention of staying.
The American boy we both imagined is walking the streets of a town in Ohio, after the factories have started to appear and the era of hustle is upon us. The houses in the town have been built quickly, and people are flooding in with no plans to settle down—though surprisingly, many of them will end up staying, even if they initially didn't intend to.
Before the boy’s day how slow the growth of the towns! There were the people of an older generation, coming out slowly to the Middle West, from New York state, from Pennsylvania, from New England—a great many to my own Ohio country from New England. They had come drifting in slowly, bringing traces of old customs, sayings, religions, [Pg 80] prejudices. The young farmers came first, glad of the rich free soil and the friendlier climate—strong young males that were to come in such numbers as to leave New England, with its small fields and its thinner, stonier soil, a place of aging maiden ladies—that old-maid civilization that was, nevertheless, to be the seat of our American culture. An insane fear of the flesh, a touch of transcendentalism, a reaching always up into the sky. In the ground underfoot there is only fear, poverty, hardship. One must look upward, always upward.
Before the boy’s day, the towns grew so slowly! There were people from an older generation gradually making their way to the Midwest, coming from New York, Pennsylvania, and New England—a lot from my own Ohio country. They drifted in slowly, bringing remnants of old customs, sayings, religions, and prejudices. The young farmers arrived first, excited about the rich, free soil and the more welcoming climate—strong young men who came in such numbers that New England, with its small fields and rocky, thin soil, became a place filled with aging single women—that old-maid civilization that would still be the heart of our American culture. There was an irrational fear of the body, a hint of transcendentalism, always striving for something higher. But beneath our feet, there was only fear, poverty, and hardship. One must always look up, always up. [Pg 80]
What of the sensual love of life, of surfaces, words with a rich flavor on the tongue, colors, the soft texture of the skin of women, the play of muscles through the bodies of men?
What about the sensual love of life, the surfaces, words that have a rich taste on the tongue, colors, the soft texture of women's skin, the movement of muscles in men's bodies?
The cry of fear—“that way lies sin.”
The cry of fear—“that way leads to trouble.”
In the new land, in that older time, too much maleness. Deep mud in the streets of the little towns, built in the forest along rivers or on the stage roads. Bearded, rough-handed men gathered about the saloons. Abe Lincoln proving his manhood by lifting a barrel of whisky and drinking from the bunghole. The ruffian of the frontier, father of the modern gunman of our cities, proving his manhood by murder—Blinky Morgan of Ohio, Jesse James of Missouri, Slade of the Overland Route to the gold and silver camps of the Far West—these the heroes of that life.
In the new land, back in that earlier time, there was an excess of masculinity. The streets of the small towns, built in the woods by rivers or along main roads, were muddy. Rough, bearded men gathered around the bars. Abe Lincoln showcased his toughness by lifting a barrel of whiskey and drinking from the opening. The tough guys of the frontier, the ancestors of today’s gunmen in our cities, proved their manliness through violence—Blinky Morgan from Ohio, Jesse James from Missouri, Slade from the route to the gold and silver camps in the Far West—these were the heroes of that era.
A slow culture growing up, however—growing as culture must always grow—through the hands of workmen.
A slow culture developing, however—developing as culture always must—through the hands of workers.
In the small towns artisans coming in—the harness-maker, the carriage-builder, the builder of wagons, the smith, the tailor, the [Pg 81] maker of shoes, the builders of houses and barns too.
In the small towns, artisans arrive—the harness maker, the carriage builder, the wagon maker, the blacksmith, the tailor, the shoemaker, and the builders of houses and barns as well. [Pg 81]
As Slade and James were to be the fathers of the modern gunmen, so these the fathers of the artists of the generations to come. In their fingers the beginning of that love of surfaces, of the sensual love of materials, without which no true civilization can ever be born.
As Slade and James were the pioneers of modern gunmen, they are also the pioneers of the artists of future generations. In their hands lies the start of a passion for surfaces, a sensual appreciation of materials, which is essential for the birth of any true civilization.
And then, like a great flood over it all the coming of the factories, the coming of modern industrialism.
And then, like a massive wave, the factories arrived, bringing modern industrialism with them.
Speed, hurried workmanship, cheap automobiles for cheap men, cheap chairs in cheap houses, city apartment houses with shining bathroom floors, the Ford, the Twentieth Century Limited, the World War, jazz, the movies.
Speed, rushed work, affordable cars for ordinary people, inexpensive chairs in simple homes, city apartments with shiny bathroom floors, the Ford, the Twentieth Century Limited, World War I, jazz, the movies.
The modern American youth is going forth to walk at evening in the midst of these. New and more terrible nerve tension, speed. Something vibrant in the air about us all.
The modern American youth is stepping out to walk in the evening among these. A new and more intense nerve tension, speed. There’s something electric in the air around us all.
The problem is to survive. If our youth is to get into his consciousness that love of life—that with the male comes only through the love of surfaces, sensually felt through the fingers—his problem is to reach down through all the broken surface distractions of modern life to that old love of craft out of which culture springs.
The challenge is to survive. If young people are to grasp that love of life—that with masculinity comes a love for appearances, felt sensually through touch— their task is to dig deeper past all the superficial distractions of modern life to that enduring passion for craft from which culture emerges.
[Pg 82]
[Pg 82]
NOTE VII
THE end of the second year after mother’s death was at hand and our family was at the point of falling to pieces. No more sitting by the fire in the kitchen through the long fall and winter evenings with mother at the ironing board. The kitchen of our house was cold and cheerless. The spirit of the household had fled. It had gone down into the ground with the body of the woman out of whose living body had come five strong sons.
THE end of the second year after Mom's death was approaching, and our family was on the verge of falling apart. No more sitting by the fire in the kitchen during the long fall and winter evenings with Mom at the ironing board. The kitchen of our house was cold and bleak. The spirit of the household had vanished. It had gone down into the ground with the body of the woman who had brought five strong sons into the world.
Mother had died swiftly, mysteriously, without warning. It was as though she had got out of bed on a fall morning and had taken a long look at her sons. “It’s about the time when they will have to push out into the world. Any influence I may have on their lives has already been exerted. There is no time to think of any other purpose in life for myself, and anyway, I am too tired. Having lived out my life, now I shall die.”
Mother had died quickly, mysteriously, and without warning. It was as if she got out of bed on a fall morning and took a long look at her sons. “It’s time for them to step out into the world. Any influence I had on their lives has already been made. There’s no time to consider any other purpose in life for myself, and honestly, I’m too tired. Having lived my life, now I am ready to die.”
It was as though she had said something of the sort to herself, and had then laid down her life as one might lay down a finished book. On a rainy dismal day in the fall there she was, coming in at the kitchen door from hanging a wash out on the line, temporarily strung up in our woodshed, smiling quietly, making one of her quick soft ironic observations, sweetening always the air of the room into which she [Pg 83] came with her presence.
It was like she had said something similar to herself and then set aside her life as if it were a finished book. On a rainy, gloomy day in the fall, she walked in through the kitchen door after hanging out laundry on a line temporarily strung up in our woodshed. She smiled quietly, making one of her quick, soft, ironic comments, always bringing a fresh sweetness to the air of the room she entered with her presence. [Pg 83]
On such a rainy morning in the fall she was like that, as she will live always in the memory of her sons, and then, on another equally wet dismal fall day two or three weeks later, she was dead.
On that rainy morning in the fall, she was like that, and her sons will always remember her that way. Then, on another equally miserable, wet fall day two or three weeks later, she was gone.
What there had been of family life among us was going to pieces. It was sure that father was not one to hold it together. No one could think of him as destined to hold that or any other fort. That surely wasn’t his line.
What little family life we had was falling apart. It was clear that Dad wasn't the one to keep it all together. No one could imagine him as someone who could defend that or any other stronghold. That definitely wasn’t his thing.
There was a period of waiting. The older son had already found his place in life. He had already become what he was to remain to the end, an American artist, a painter. The making of little designs for the gravestones of village merchants was for him a passing phase. Perhaps it was, at that time, the only form of expression one, having a tendency toward the plastic arts, could find in our towns.
There was a time of waiting. The older son had already settled into his life. He had become what he would be for the rest of his days, an American artist, a painter. Creating small designs for the gravestones of local merchants was just a temporary phase for him. Perhaps, at that moment, it was the only way someone inclined towards the visual arts could express themselves in our towns.
And so there was his destiny fixed—but what of us others? We did not often speak openly of the matter among ourselves, but it was obvious something had to be done and soon. In the few talks we had concerning the matter in our broken household, while the one remaining daughter (destined to die before her life could be really developed) was acting as our temporary housekeeper, father held out strongly for the learning of one of the trades. He talked of long years of apprenticeship to some craft, and it was characteristic of him that as he talked he became in fancy himself such a craftsman. One was trained slowly and surely in one’s craft. Then one became a journeyman and went on his travels, going from shop to shop, watching the master craftsmen. “It’s [Pg 84] something at your back,” father said, “something that can be depended upon. It makes a man able to stand up as a man before his fellows.”
And so his fate was set—but what about the rest of us? We didn’t often discuss it openly among ourselves, but it was clear that something needed to be done, and soon. In the few conversations we had about it in our fragmented household, while the last remaining daughter (who was destined to die before she could truly grow) was stepping in as our temporary housekeeper, Dad insisted strongly on learning a trade. He talked about the long years of apprenticeship required for any craft, and as he spoke, he imagined himself as one of those skilled workers. You had to be trained slowly and surely in your craft. Then you became a journeyman and traveled from place to place, going from shop to shop, observing the master craftsmen. “It’s something you can rely on,” Dad said, “something that gives you the confidence to stand tall among your peers.”
Did it? We boys listened and thought our own thoughts. As for father—he had picked up a smattering knowledge of several crafts; and how eloquently he, dear word fellow, could speak of them, sling the jargon of the crafts! He had at various times been a harness-maker, house-painter, sign-writer of a feeble sort, such an actor as I have described, the tooter of a cornet in the village band.
Did it? We guys listened and had our own thoughts. As for Dad—he had picked up some basic knowledge of several trades, and how well he could talk about them, tossing around the jargon of those crafts! He had, at different times, been a harness maker, a house painter, a somewhat mediocre sign writer, the kind of actor I’ve described, and the player of a cornet in the village band.
In reality he was a tale-teller, but that was no craft among us. No union had been formed among tale-tellers. The Authors’ League, the Pen Women, the Poet’s Club, etc., had not yet been formed or, if there were such organizations in existence, they at any rate did not reach down into mid-American towns. At that time even the rumors of the vast sums to be made by turning out clever plot stories for the popular magazines or the movies had not been whispered about.
In reality, he was a storyteller, but that wasn’t a respected profession among us. There was no unity among storytellers. Organizations like the Authors’ League, the Pen Women, or the Poet’s Club hadn’t been established yet, or if they did exist, they certainly didn’t extend to mid-American towns. Back then, even the whispers about the huge amounts of money to be made from creating clever plot stories for popular magazines or movies hadn’t circulated.
Other and more significant-seeming stories were floating however. A new kind of hero, tarnished somewhat later, filled the popular eye. As we boys went about in the main street of our town, citizens, feeling a kindly interest in the motherless sons, continually stopped us. Everyone was singing a new little song:
Other, more interesting stories were circulating, though. A new kind of hero, who became somewhat less admirable later on, captured the public's attention. As we boys walked through the main street of our town, residents, showing a warm interest in the motherless sons, frequently stopped us. Everyone was singing a catchy new song:
“Get on. Make money. Get to the top. A penny saved is a penny earned. Money makes the mare go.”
“Get going. Make money. Reach the top. A penny saved is a penny earned. Money gets things done.”
[Pg 85]
[Pg 85]
sang Sil West, the smith, who was shoeing a horse in the alleyway back of the stores on our main street.
sang Sil West, the blacksmith, who was putting shoes on a horse in the alley behind the shops on our main street.
The factories were calling. One went into a factory, did his work with care and skill, became foreman, superintendent, part owner, married the banker’s daughter, got rich and went off to Paris to sin the sins neglected during so busy a youth and early manhood.
The factories were calling. You entered a factory, did your job with care and skill, became the foreman, then the superintendent, a partial owner, married the banker’s daughter, got wealthy, and headed off to Paris to indulge in the pleasures you missed during such a busy youth and early adulthood.
It sounded reasonable and possible. Learning a craft was slow business and one was in a hurry. “Hurry” was the battle cry of the day.
It sounded logical and achievable. Learning a skill took time, and people were eager to move quickly. “Hurry” was the rallying cry of the moment.
And the time of the factories was just at hand. At that time they were coming into Ohio, and into all the mid-American states in great numbers, and no town was without hope of becoming an industrial centre. The bicycle had come, followed by the automobile, and even the quiet country roads were taking on the new spirit of speed.
And the era of factories was just around the corner. At that time, they were arriving in Ohio and all the mid-American states in large numbers, and no town was without the possibility of becoming an industrial hub. The bicycle had arrived, followed by the automobile, and even the peaceful country roads were embracing the new vibe of speed.
Something was in the air. One breathed a new spirit into the lungs. The paradise, later to be represented by the ford, the city apartment building with tiled bathroom floors, subways, jazz, the movies—was it not all just at hand? I myself and long afterward tried a little, in a novel of mine called, “Poor White,” to give something of the feeling of life in our towns at that time.
Something was in the air. A new spirit filled the lungs. The paradise, later represented by the ford, the city apartment building with tiled bathroom floors, subways, jazz, the movies—wasn’t it all just within reach? I myself, much later, tried a bit in a novel of mine called, “Poor White,” to capture some of the feeling of life in our towns back then.
Oil and gas were spurting out of the ground in Ohio and the discovery of oil and gas meant the coming of factories, it meant the New Age, prosperity, growth going onward and upward. “Death to everything old, slow and careful! Forward the Light Brigade! Theirs not to ask the reason why! Theirs but to do or die”—the light brigade in our particular town consisting of every merchant, doctor, workman, lawyer, [Pg 86] who had saved a few pennies that could be invested. In our ears rang stories of the Lima Boom, the Gibsonburg boom, the Finley boom.
Oil and gas were shooting out of the ground in Ohio, and the discovery of these resources signified the arrival of factories, it marked the New Age, leading to prosperity and growth moving forward. “Death to everything old, slow, and careful! Forward the Light Brigade! They don’t ask why! They just do or die”—the light brigade in our town included every merchant, doctor, worker, lawyer, [Pg 86] who had saved up a few coins to invest. We were filled with stories of the Lima Boom, the Gibsonburg boom, the Finley boom.
And was it not simple? One bored a hole deep down into the ground and out came wealth—oil and gas, followed by the coming of the factories. If we, in our town, did not quite “cut it,” did not “make the grade,” could not become later another fragrant Akron or blissful Youngstown, Ohio, it wasn’t because we didn’t try.
And wasn't it easy? You drilled a hole deep into the ground, and out came riches—oil and gas, followed by factories popping up. If we, in our town, didn't quite "make it," didn't "measure up," and couldn't become another thriving Akron or happy Youngstown, Ohio, it wasn't because we didn't put in the effort.
A hole was being bored at the edge of the town in a field near a grove of hickory trees where we lads had formerly gone for nuts and squirrel shooting on the fall days. In the field—a meadow—there had also been a baseball diamond, and sometimes visiting circuses set up their tents there; but now the hole had gone far down below the usually required depth and nothing had happened. Rumors ran through the streets. The well-drillers had come from over near Gibsonburg. Only a week or two before a stranger had got off a train, had walked about through the streets, and had then visited the place where the drilling was going on. He had been seen to speak with the drillers. No doubt our drillers were in “cahoots” with the Rockefellers, the Morgans, or some of that crowd. Perhaps John D. himself had been pussyfooting about. One couldn’t tell. Stranger things than that had happened. Were we to be caught napping? It was decided to do what was called “shooting the well.”
A hole was being drilled at the edge of town in a field near a grove of hickory trees where we guys used to go for nuts and squirrel hunting in the fall. In the field—a meadow—there had also been a baseball diamond, and sometimes traveling circuses set up their tents there; but now the hole had gone way deeper than usual and nothing had happened. Rumors spread through the streets. The well-drillers had come from over near Gibsonburg. Just a week or two earlier, a stranger had gotten off a train, walked around the streets, and then visited the drilling site. He was seen talking to the drillers. No doubt our drillers were in “cahoots” with the Rockefellers, the Morgans, or some of that crowd. Maybe John D. himself had been snooping around. One couldn’t be sure. Stranger things than that had happened. Were we going to be caught off guard? It was decided to do what was called “shooting the well.”
Surely here was something for a boy to take into account. Mysterious whisperings among our elders on the streets in the evening; plot and counterplot; dark doings among the capitalists—“stand back, villain, [Pg 87] unhand the fair figure of our hopes and dreams”—ah! an explosion at the mysterious hour of dawn, far down in the bowels of Mother Earth. Old Mother Earth to be given an emetic of a stirring sort. Forth would flow wealth, factories, the very New Age itself.
Surely, there was something for a boy to consider. Mysterious whispers among our elders on the streets in the evening; schemes and counter-schemes; shady dealings among the capitalists—“step back, villain, release the fair figure of our hopes and dreams”—ah! an explosion at the mysterious hour of dawn, deep down in the heart of Mother Earth. Old Mother Earth would be given a strong dose to stir things up. Wealth, factories, the very New Age itself would flow forth. [Pg 87]
One didn’t ask oneself how a participating interest in all these new glories was to be achieved, and in the whole town no man was more excited than father who had never owned a share of stock in anything. He ceased speaking of the crafts and only shook his head in sorrow. “I’d just like to be alive two hundred years from now,” he said. “Why, I’ll tell you what; there’ll be a vast city right here—right on the very spot on which I am now standing there’ll be, why there’ll be a huge office building, like as not.”
One didn’t think about how to get a stake in all these new achievements, and in the entire town, no one was more excited than my dad, who had never owned a share of anything. He stopped talking about traditional jobs and just shook his head in disappointment. “I’d just love to be alive two hundred years from now,” he said. “I’ll tell you what; there’ll be a huge city right here—right on the very spot where I’m standing, there’ll probably be a giant office building.”
So sure was he of all this that the wealth of the future became in his fancy a thing of the present, even of the past. He felt himself magnificently wealthy and, one day when he had been drinking and when, because of what we thought his lack of dignity, we youngsters had treated him to a rather thorough snubbing, he grew angry. Night came and it rained. He went up into the garret of the house in which we then lived and presently came down with a package of papers in his hand. Were they old love letters, from the ladies he had known in his youth, or unpaid grocery bills? It is a mystery that may never be solved.
So sure was he of all this that the wealth of the future became, in his mind, something from the present, even the past. He felt incredibly wealthy and, one day when he had been drinking and, because of what we thought was his lack of dignity, we young people had given him a pretty harsh snubbing, he got angry. Night fell and it rained. He went up to the attic of the house where we were living at the time and soon came down with a bundle of papers in his hand. Were they old love letters from the women he had known in his youth, or unpaid grocery bills? It's a mystery that may never be solved.
He went into the little back yard of the house and, making a pile of the papers, burned them solemnly. We boys crowded to the kitchen window to watch. There was the little flare of the flame and above it, and [Pg 88] leaning over, father’s stern face—and then darkness.
He stepped into the small backyard of the house and, after gathering the papers into a pile, solemnly set them on fire. We boys crowded around the kitchen window to watch. There was a brief flash of flames, and above it, father’s serious face leaned over—and then everything went dark. [Pg 88]
Back he came into the house and before he went away, to spend the rest of the evening whispering of the wealth of the future with other men in the barrooms, he told us what had happened. “Do you know what those papers were?” he asked sharply. “They were deeds to the whole business section of the City of Cincinnati. I have been concealing from you the fact that I had such papers, intending to leave them to you as an inheritance but—”
Back he came into the house, and before he left to spend the rest of the evening talking about future wealth with other guys in the bars, he told us what had happened. “Do you know what those papers were?” he asked sharply. “They were deeds to the entire business section of the City of Cincinnati. I’ve been keeping it from you that I had those papers, planning to leave them to you as an inheritance, but—”
“Well, you have not seen fit to treat me with respect and I have burned them,” he declared, tramping out of the house.
“Well, you haven't bothered to treat me with respect, and I've burned them,” he said, storming out of the house.
Romance and mystery. There was the imagined figure of the shooter of wells. The thing was done with nitro-glycerine. One put “nitro” and “glycerine” together, one fancied, and there was this terrible result. One did not know what “nitro” was, but had seen and felt “glycerine.” “Ah! chemistry. You wait and you’ll see what will be done with chemistry,” said father.
Romance and mystery. There was the imagined figure of the well shooter. It was all done with nitro-glycerine. You put “nitro” and “glycerine” together, and that led to this terrible result. You didn’t know what “nitro” was, but you had seen and felt “glycerine.” “Ah! Chemistry. Just wait and see what chemistry can do,” said Dad.
And so there was this mysterious stuff frozen into solid cakes and carted through the night, along unfrequented roads, by the heroic well-shooter.
And so there was this mysterious material frozen into solid blocks and transported through the night along deserted roads by the brave well-shooter.
Now, there was a man to suit a boy’s fancy, that well-shooter, a fellow going nonchalantly along with the frozen cakes in the wagon behind him. Is he worried? Not at all! He lights his pipe. He looks at the stars. He sings a little ditty. “My bonny lies over the ocean. My bonny lies over the sea. My bonny lies over the ocean—Oh, bring back my bonny to [Pg 89] meeeeeee.”
Now, there was a guy who totally matched a boy’s idea of cool, that sharpshooter, casually strolling along with frozen treats in the wagon behind him. Is he stressed? Not at all! He lights his pipe, gazes at the stars, and hums a little tune. “My darling lies over the ocean. My darling lies over the sea. My darling lies over the ocean—Oh, bring back my darling to [Pg 89] meeeeeee.”
In the wagon back of him that stuff. A jar, a sudden jolt of the wagon, the breaking of a wagon axle and then—
In the wagon behind him was that stuff. A jar, a sudden jolt of the wagon, the breaking of a wagon axle and then—
We boys whisper about it when we meet on the streets. One of the boys holds up his thumb. “You see that thumbnail?” he asks. “Well, a little bit of that stuff, no more than would cover that thumbnail, would blow him and his wagon to smithereens.” The question asked was, how much farther would, say a ton of the stuff, blow the outfit? Was there a land as far beyond smithereens as the stars from earth, to which the fellow might be sent, in the wink of an eye?
We guys whisper about it when we hang out on the streets. One of the guys raises his thumb. “You see this thumbnail?” he asks. “Well, just a little bit of that stuff, no more than what would cover that thumbnail, could blast him and his wagon to pieces.” The question was, how much farther would, say a ton of that stuff, send the whole thing? Was there a place even further beyond blowing it to pieces, like the stars are from Earth, to which the guy could be sent in the blink of an eye?
A glimpse of the infinite added to all the other excitement and mystery.
A glimpse of the infinite added to all the excitement and mystery.
My first glimpse of the Industrial Age—with one of my brothers I got out of bed one morning, before dawn, and crept away into the darkness to lie in a grove of trees near the meadow and see the well shot. Several other boys came. The father of one of our town boys, who had stock in the gas-well company, had let slip the carefully hoarded secret of the hour when the fearful thing was to happen.
My first look at the Industrial Age happened one morning before dawn when I got out of bed with one of my brothers and sneaked away into the darkness to lie under some trees by the meadow and watch the gas well being shot. A few other boys joined us. The father of one of the local boys, who had shares in the gas well company, had accidentally revealed the closely guarded secret of when this dramatic event was going to take place.
And so, there we were, ten or twelve of us, lying concealed in the wood. Dawn began to break. Birds and squirrels awoke in the trees over our heads. On the road that came out from town buggies and surreys appeared. The visitors tied their horses far away, by an old sawmill, near the town’s edge, and came afoot to the field.
And so, there we were, ten or twelve of us, hiding in the woods. Dawn started to break. Birds and squirrels woke up in the trees above us. On the road leading out of town, buggies and surreys showed up. The visitors tied their horses far away, by an old sawmill near the edge of town, and walked to the field.
Now it was quite light and we could begin to recognize the men of the party, solid respectable men, with money in the bank. There was [Pg 90] Penny Jacobs, who kept a little candy store; Seth McHugh, cashier of the bank; Wilmott the lawyer, a dozen others. No doubt Em Harkness was there. Of that I cannot be quite sure. He was a man of our town, who ran a small general store and brother, I believe, to that other Harkness who later became a man of vast wealth and a figure in the Standard Oil Company. His money built the Harkness Memorial at Yale, and if our town did not achieve the prominent position in the Industrial Age of which we all at that moment dreamed, we had at least among us the kin of royalty. We were not entirely left in the cold outside world. A Harkness was a Harkness and we had a Harkness.
Now it was pretty bright, and we could start to recognize the men in the group—solid, respectable guys with money in the bank. There was [Pg 90] Penny Jacobs, who owned a little candy store; Seth McHugh, the bank's cashier; Wilmott the lawyer, and a dozen others. No doubt Em Harkness was there. I can’t be totally sure about that. He was a guy from our town who ran a small general store and was the brother, I believe, of that other Harkness who later became extremely wealthy and a notable figure in the Standard Oil Company. His money funded the Harkness Memorial at Yale, and even if our town didn't quite reach the prominent status in the Industrial Age that we all dreamed of at that moment, we at least had someone related to royalty among us. We weren’t completely left out in the cold world. A Harkness was a Harkness, and we had a Harkness.
But to return to that significant moment in the field. As we lads lay in the wood, well concealed from the eyes of our elders, we were silent. Solemnity lay like a frost over our young souls. Even the giggling and whispering that had gone on among us died now. The well-shooter was there and he had turned out to be just an ordinary looking teamster with whiskers, but that did not matter.
But to go back to that important moment in the field. As we boys lay hidden in the woods, safely out of sight from our elders, we were quiet. A sense of seriousness hung over our young spirits like frost. Even the laughter and whispers that had flowed among us faded away. The well-shooter was present, and he turned out to be just an ordinary-looking teamster with a beard, but that didn’t matter.
Greater and more significant things were astir. Even the birds stopped singing and the squirrels chattered no more.
Greater and more important things were happening. Even the birds stopped singing, and the squirrels quieted down.
A long tube, containing no doubt the nitro-glycerine, had been lowered into the hole in the ground and the honored guests of the occasion ran quickly across the field and stood among the trees near our hiding place.
A long tube, definitely holding the nitroglycerin, had been lowered into the hole in the ground, and the distinguished guests of the event ran quickly across the field and stood among the trees near where we were hiding.
They were dressed, these serious-minded citizens, as for a wedding or a funeral. Even Penny Jacobs had put on what was called among us “a boiled shirt.”
They were dressed, these serious-minded citizens, as if for a wedding or a funeral. Even Penny Jacobs had worn what we called “a boiled shirt.”
What an occasion! Now we were, all of us, as we stood or lay under the [Pg 91] trees—we were all one thing; and presently there would be a terrific explosion, far down in the earth, below our bellies as we lay sprawled in the wet grass—there would be this explosion, and then would we not all, at that moment, become something else?
What an event! Here we were, all of us, standing or lying under the [Pg 91] trees—we were all connected; and soon there would be a massive explosion, deep in the earth, beneath our stomachs as we lay sprawled in the wet grass—there would be this explosion, and wouldn’t we all, at that moment, transform into something new?
“Bang!” we would go into the New Age—that was the idea. In the presence of our elders, who now stood in silence very near us, we lads all felt a little ashamed of our ragged clothes and our unwashed faces. Perhaps some of us had been to Sunday school and had heard the parable of the virgins who did not keep their lamps trimmed and filled.
“Bang!” we were set to enter the New Age—that was the plan. In front of our elders, who stood silently close by, we boys all felt a bit embarrassed about our shabby clothes and unwashed faces. Maybe some of us had attended Sunday school and had heard the story of the virgins who didn’t keep their lamps trimmed and filled.
In shame we hid our faces before the glory of the vision before us. There we were, sons of housepainters, carpenters, shoemakers, and the like. Our fathers had worked with their hands. They had soiled their clothes and their faces with common labor. Poor, benighted men! What did they know of what Mark Twain called, “the glorious, rip-roaring century, greatest of all the centuries?” A man could make a wagon that would stand up, or shoe a horse, or build a house slowly and well, but what was that?
In shame, we hid our faces from the glory of the vision in front of us. There we were, the sons of house painters, carpenters, shoemakers, and the like. Our fathers worked with their hands. They dirtied their clothes and faces with everyday labor. Poor, misguided men! What did they know of what Mark Twain called, “the glorious, rip-roaring century, the greatest of all centuries?” A man could build a sturdy wagon, shoe a horse, or construct a house slowly and well, but what did that really mean?
Shucks! There would be this terrific rumble in the bowels of the earth, and then the little cunning machines would come. Men would walk about smoking twenty-five-cent cigars; they would put their thumbs in the armholes of their vests and laugh at the past. Men would fly through the air, dive under the sea, have breakfast in Cleveland, Ohio, and lunch in London. A fellow couldn’t tell what would happen now.
Shucks! There would be this huge rumble deep in the earth, and then the clever little machines would show up. Guys would stroll around smoking expensive cigars; they’d stick their thumbs in the armholes of their vests and laugh about the past. People would fly through the air, dive underwater, have breakfast in Cleveland, Ohio, and lunch in London. You never knew what was going to happen next.
Why, no one would work at all maybe—well, that is to say, not really [Pg 92] work. Some of our fathers had read a book called “Looking Backward” and had talked about it in the homes and in the stores. Then we lads had talked. Well, a fellow would maybe roll downtown from his country home in the late morning and turn a few cranks or pull a few levers. Then he would go and play, make love to some beautiful female or take an afternoon’s ride over to Egypt to see the Pyramids, or visit the Holy Land. A fellow had to get up an appetite for dinner, dang it all!
Why, no one would really work at all—well, that is to say, not in the traditional sense. Some of our dads had read a book called “Looking Backward” and had discussed it at home and in the shops. Then we guys talked about it. A guy might roll into town from his country home late in the morning, turn a few cranks or pull some levers, and then go play, flirt with some stunning girl, or take a ride over to see the Pyramids in Egypt or visit the Holy Land. A guy’s got to work up an appetite for dinner, after all! [Pg 92]
Anyway, that was that, and there we were. The well-shooter dropped a heavy weight down the hole and cut out for the woods. When he was halfway across the meadow the rumbling explosion occurred, down in the earth.
Anyway, that was that, and there we were. The well-shooter dropped a heavy weight down the hole and headed into the woods. When he was halfway across the meadow, a loud explosion happened down in the ground.
And into the bright morning air shot a great fountain of mud and muddy water. The derrick over the hole was covered with it, the grass in the meadow was covered and much of it fell down like rain on us in the wood. The front of Penny Jacobs’ boiled shirt was covered with it.
And into the bright morning air shot a huge spray of mud and muddy water. The derrick over the hole was coated with it, the grass in the meadow was soaked, and a lot of it fell like rain on us in the woods. The front of Penny Jacobs' boiled shirt was splattered with it.
The mud fell on us lads, too, but that didn’t matter so much. None of us had put on Sunday clothes. Our elders, who represented among us the capitalistic class, went over and stood about the well for a time, and then went sadly off up the road to unhitch their horses and drive back to town.
The mud hit us guys, too, but that didn’t bother us much. None of us were dressed up in Sunday clothes. Our elders, who were the wealthy ones among us, gathered around the well for a bit, and then sadly walked back up the road to unhitch their horses and head back to town.
When we lads emerged from the woods no one was left but the well-shooter, and he was suspect, and grumpy as well, not having breakfasted. Those of us whose fathers had no money invested were inclined to take the whole matter as rather a delicious joke, but were overruled. We stood about for a time, staring at the well-shooter, who [Pg 93] was engaged in gathering his paraphernalia together, and then we also moved off toward town.
When we guys came out of the woods, the only one left was the well-shooter, and he looked suspicious and grumpy since he hadn’t had breakfast. Those of us whose dads weren’t financially involved thought the whole situation was pretty funny, but we were outvoted. We hung around for a bit, watching the well-shooter, who was busy packing up his gear, and then we headed towards town too. [Pg 93]
“I’ll bet that well-shooter’s a crook,” said one of my companions. He had, I remember, a great deal of mud in his hair and on his face. He kept complaining as we went along. “He could have stuck that nitro-glycerine only halfway down, and then set it off, that’s what he could have done.” The idea, later taken up enthusiastically by the entire community, pleased us all. It was so apparent the well-shooter was not the hero we had hoped. He didn’t look like a hero. “Well, my dad says he knows him. He lives over by Monroeville and he gets drunk and beats his wife, my dad says so,” another lad declared.
“I bet that well-shooter’s a fraud,” said one of my friends. He had, I remember, a lot of mud in his hair and on his face. He kept complaining as we went along. “He could have just stuck that nitro-glycerin halfway down and then set it off, that’s what he could have done.” The idea, later picked up enthusiastically by the whole community, pleased us all. It was clear the well-shooter was not the hero we had hoped for. He didn’t look like a hero. “Well, my dad says he knows him. He lives near Monroeville and he gets drunk and beats his wife, my dad says so,” another kid said.
It was rather a good solution of our difficulty. If one can’t have a hero, who wants just a teamster?
It was actually a good solution to our problem. If you can’t have a hero, who wants just a driver?
It was infinitely better to have a villainous well-shooter about whose Machiavellian machinations one’s imagination could linger in happiness.
It was way better to have a cunning villain around whose clever schemes one could happily daydream about.
[Pg 94]
[Pg 94]
NOTE VIII
IT must have been about this time that my own imaginative life began to take form. Having listened to the tales told by my father, I wanted to begin inventing tales of my own. At that time and for long years afterward, there was no notion of writing. Did I want an audience, someone to hear me tell my tales? It is likely I did. There is something of the actor in me.
IT must have been around this time that my own creative life started to take shape. After hearing the stories told by my father, I wanted to start making up my own stories. Back then, and for many years after, I had no idea about writing. Did I want an audience, someone to listen to my stories? I probably did. There’s a bit of the performer in me.
When later I began to write I for a time told myself I would never publish, and I remember that I went about thinking of myself as a kind of heroic figure, a silent man creeping into little rooms, writing marvelous tales, poems, novels—that would never be published.
When I eventually started writing, I told myself for a while that I would never publish anything. I remember thinking of myself as a sort of heroic figure, a quiet man sneaking into small rooms, crafting amazing stories, poems, and novels that would never see the light of day.
Perhaps it never went quite that far. They would have to be published sometime. My vanity demanded that. Very well—I had died and had been buried in some obscure place. In my actual physical life I had been a house-painter, a workman in a factory, an advertising writer—whatever you please. I had passed unnoticed through the throng, you see. “I say, John, who is that fellow over there?”
Perhaps it never went that far. They would have to be published eventually. My vanity insisted on that. Fine—I had died and been buried in some unknown spot. In my real physical life, I had been a house painter, a factory worker, an advertising writer—whatever you want to call it. I had slipped through the crowd without anyone noticing, you see. “Hey, John, who’s that guy over there?”
“Oh, I don’t know. I’ve seen him about. He looks like a movie actor or a gambler to me.”
“Oh, I don’t know. I've seen him around. He looks like a movie star or a gambler to me.”
You see, I dreamed of something like that—dead and buried away—and [Pg 95] then one day a man is snooping about in a garret in an old empty house. He finds a pile of papers and begins looking them over, lazily, without much interest. But look! “Hello here! Say, here is something!”
You see, I dreamed of something like that—dead and buried away—and [Pg 95] then one day a guy is poking around in an attic of an old empty house. He comes across a stack of papers and starts flicking through them, casually, without much interest. But wait! “Wow, look at this! Hey, this is something!”
You get the notion. I’ll not go into it further. It might have been a good card had I found within myself the courage to play it, but I didn’t.
You get the idea. I won’t go into it any further. It could have been a good move if I had found the courage to make it, but I didn’t.
As to that first tale of mine and its invention. It grew out of dissatisfaction with my father and a desire to invent another to take his place. And professional jealousy may have had something to do with it. He had been strutting about long enough. “Get out from under the spotlight for a time, daddy. Give your son a chance to see what he can do,” I perhaps really wanted to say.
As for that first story of mine and how it came about, it stemmed from my frustration with my father and a wish to create another character to replace him. Professional jealousy might have played a role too. He had been hogging the spotlight for way too long. "Step out of the limelight for a while, dad. Give your son a shot at showing what he can do," I might have truly wished to say.
It was fall and father had taken me with him to do a house-painting job in the country. The year was growing old and bad rainy weather had come. Perhaps we could not finish the painting job we were about to begin, but, as father had explained to the farmer who had just built a new house, we could at least put on a priming coat.
It was fall, and Dad had taken me with him to work on a house-painting job in the countryside. The year was winding down, and there was some rainy weather. We might not be able to finish the painting job we were about to start, but, as Dad told the farmer who had just built a new house, we could at least apply a primer coat.
If the worst happened and we lost a good deal of time, waiting about—“well,” said father winking at me, “you see, kid, we’ll eat.”
If the worst happened and we wasted a lot of time just waiting—“well,” Dad said, giving me a wink, “you see, kid, we’ll eat.”
The farmer came for us in the early morning, driving in a spring wagon into which was to be packed the ladders, pots and other materials of our trade, and by the time we had got to his place the rain, that had persisted for several days, began again. The carpenters were still at work inside the house, so that nothing could be done there, and father went off to the old cabin in which the farmer and his family were [Pg 96] living until the new house could be finished. He would spend the day gossiping with the women folk or perhaps reading some book he had found in the house. The farmer had a barrel of hard cider in his cellar. The day promised to be not too depressing for father.
The farmer picked us up early in the morning, driving a spring wagon that was meant to be filled with our ladders, pots, and other materials for our work. By the time we arrived at his place, the rain, which had been going on for several days, started again. The carpenters were still working inside the house, so we couldn't do anything there. Dad went to the old cabin where the farmer and his family were living until the new house was done. He would spend the day chatting with the women or possibly reading a book he found in the house. The farmer had a barrel of hard cider in his cellar. The day seemed like it wouldn't be too gloomy for Dad. [Pg 96]
As for myself, I made the acquaintance of the farmer’s son, a lad my own age, and we decided to go squirrel hunting in the near-by woods. “You wait ’til father drives down into the new clearing. He’s going to bring up some fence posts. Then we’ll take the gun and cut out. If he gets onto us he’ll give me some job, make me wheel out manure, or whitewash the henhouse, or something like that.”
As for me, I got to know the farmer’s son, a guy my age, and we decided to go squirrel hunting in the nearby woods. “Just wait until my dad drives down to the new clearing. He’s going to bring some fence posts. Then we’ll grab the gun and sneak out. If he finds out, he’ll give me some chores, like making me wheel out manure or paint the henhouse or something like that.”
We spent the morning and early afternoon tramping through muddy fields to visit the wood lots on neighboring farms and came home too late for the noon meal, but my new-found friend managed to get some sandwiches, made of huge slices of bread and cold meat, and bring them to the barn.
We spent the morning and early afternoon trudging through muddy fields to check out the wood lots on nearby farms and got home too late for lunch, but my new friend managed to grab some sandwiches, made with big slices of bread and cold cuts, and bring them to the barn.
We were tired and wet and had got no squirrels and so we crawled up into the hay loft and burrowed down into the warm hay.
We were exhausted and drenched, had caught no squirrels, so we crawled up into the hayloft and buried ourselves in the cozy hay.
When we had finished eating our lunch and had got ourselves comfortably warm my companion, a fat boy of perhaps sixteen, wanted to talk.
When we finished eating our lunch and were comfortably warm, my friend, a chubby boy of about sixteen, wanted to chat.
We talked as young males do, of hunting and what naturally good shots we were but that we were not used to just the kind of gun we had been handling. Then we spoke of riding horses and how nice it would have been had we both been cowboys, and finally of the girls we had known. What was a fellow to do? How was he to get close to some girl who [Pg 97] wasn’t too hoity-toity. The fat boy had a sister of about his own age that I wanted to ask about but didn’t dare. What was she like? Was she too hoity-toity?
We chatted like young guys do, about hunting and how good we were as shots, even though we weren’t used to the kind of gun we had. Then we talked about riding horses and how great it would have been if we were both cowboys, and finally about the girls we had known. What was a guy supposed to do? How could he get close to a girl who wasn’t too stuck-up? The chubby guy had a sister around his age that I wanted to ask about but didn’t have the courage. What was she like? Was she too stuck-up? [Pg 97]
We spoke vaguely of other girls we had been seated near at school, or had met at boy-and-girl parties. “Did you ever kiss a girl? I did once,” said the fat boy. “Kiss, eh? Is that all you’ve done?” I answered, feeling the necessity of maintaining a kind of advantage, due to my position as a town boy.
We talked casually about other girls we had sat near in school or had met at parties. “Have you ever kissed a girl? I did once,” said the chubby kid. “Kiss? Is that all you’ve done?” I replied, feeling the need to keep some sort of edge, since I was from town.
The hay into which we had burrowed deeply, so that just our heads were in the outer air, was sweet to the nostrils and warm and we began to grow sleepy. What was the use of talking of girls? They were silly things and had in some queer way the power to unman a boy, to make a fellow act and feel nervous and uneasy.
The hay we had dug into, leaving just our heads sticking out, smelled sweet and felt warm, making us start to feel drowsy. What was the point of talking about girls? They were just silly and somehow had the ability to make a guy feel weak, making him act and feel anxious and uncomfortable.
We lay in silence, thinking each his own thoughts, and presently the fat boy closed his eyes and slept.
We lay there quietly, each lost in our own thoughts, and soon the chubby kid shut his eyes and fell asleep.
Father came upon the floor of the stable with his employer the farmer, and the two men pulled boxes to the door looking out into the barnyard and began to talk.
Father walked onto the stable floor with his boss, the farmer, and the two men pulled boxes to the door looking out into the barnyard and started to chat.
The farmer explained that he had come into our country from New England, from Vermont, when he was a young man, and had gone into debt for two hundred acres of land, when land could be had cheap. He had worked and he had achieved. In time the farm had been paid for and fifty additional acres bought. It had taken time, patience, and hard labor. Much of the land had to be cleared. A man worked day and night, [Pg 98] that’s how he managed to get on.
The farmer shared that he had moved to our country from New England, specifically Vermont, when he was young. He went into debt to buy two hundred acres of land when it was still affordable. He worked hard and succeeded. Eventually, he paid off the farm and purchased fifty more acres. It required time, patience, and a lot of hard work. Much of the land needed clearing. A man worked day and night; that’s how he made progress. [Pg 98]
And now he was building a new house. “Well,” he had said to his wife; “Mary, you have been a good wife to me and I want you to have every comfort.” The house was to have a bathroom and a bathtub. It would cost money and maybe it would be all foolishness, but he wanted his wife to have it. When a man was young he didn’t mind splashing about in a washtub in a woodshed on Saturday evenings, but when he got a little older and had, now and then, a touch of rheumatism, well, he thought his wife deserved to have a bathtub in the house if she wanted it, no matter what it cost.
And now he was building a new house. “Well,” he had said to his wife, “Mary, you’ve been a great wife to me and I want you to have every comfort.” The house would have a bathroom and a bathtub. It would cost money, and maybe it was all a waste, but he wanted his wife to have it. When a man is young, he doesn’t mind splashing around in a washtub in a shed on Saturday nights, but once he gets a bit older and occasionally deals with rheumatism, he thinks his wife deserves to have a bathtub in the house if she wants it, no matter the expense.
Father agreed with his host. (It is perhaps as well to think of him as our host and ourselves as guests since we stayed two weeks and worked but two days.) He said that he had always felt just that way himself. Women were the weaker sex and a man had to take that into consideration. “You take a woman, now, that is like a horse and I don’t like her,” said father. He spoke of mother as though she had been a weak, gentle thing, entirely dependent upon the strength in himself in getting through her life. “I married my wife up in your own state, up in Vermont,” father said, indulging in one of his characteristic quick imaginative flights.
Father agreed with his host. (It's probably best to think of him as our host and us as guests since we stayed for two weeks and worked only two days.) He said he had always felt the same way. Women were the weaker sex, and a man needed to consider that. “You take a woman, now, that’s like a horse and I don’t like her,” father said. He talked about mother as if she were a weak, gentle person, completely dependent on his strength to get through life. “I married my wife in your own state, in Vermont,” father said, drifting off into one of his typical imaginative thoughts.
And now that he had got a start I knew there was no telling where his flight might end and I listened for a time, and then, turning away in disgust, I began working my way downward into the hay. My mother, now dead, was something I prized. He had just said she was born in Vermont of an old decayed English gentle family. She wasn’t very strong but [Pg 99] would have children. They were born one after the other, but, thank God! because of his own great natural strength his boys were strong.
And now that he had gotten started, I realized there was no telling where his journey might lead, so I listened for a bit, and then, feeling disgusted, I began making my way down into the hay. My mother, now gone, was something I valued. He had just mentioned she was born in Vermont to an old, faded English noble family. She wasn’t very strong but was able to have children. They came one after another, but, thank goodness! because of his own immense natural strength, his boys were strong. [Pg 99]
“The one I have out here with me now was born in Kentucky,” he said. “I took my wife down there on a visit to my own father’s place and he was born during the visit. I thought his mother would die that time, but she didn’t—I saved her. Night and day I stayed in her sick room, nursing her.”
“The one I have out here with me now was born in Kentucky,” he said. “I took my wife down there to visit my dad’s place, and he was born during the trip. I thought his mother would die that time, but she didn’t—I saved her. I stayed in her sick room, nursing her day and night.”
Now he had got himself launched and I knew the farmer would have no more chance to do his own bragging. Father would invent another decayed, gentle family in Kentucky to match the one he had just so lightly brought into existence in the cold barren hills of Vermont.
Now he had gotten himself started, and I knew the farmer wouldn’t have a chance to brag anymore. Dad would come up with another faded, genteel family from Kentucky to match the one he had just casually created in the cold, barren hills of Vermont.
But I was getting deeper and deeper down into the hay now and the sounds of his voice grew faint, words could no longer be distinguished. There was only a gentle murmuring sound, far off—like a summer breeze just stirring the leaves of a forest; or, better yet, like the soft murmur of some southern sea. Already, you see, I had begun reading romances and knew, in fancy, just how the seas of the South murmured and beat upon coral islands; and then how the fearful hurricane came ramping along and swept the seas clear of ships. No one reads as a boy reads. The boy gives himself utterly to the printed page and perhaps the most blessed of all the tribe of the inkpots are those who write what we used to call “dime novels”—blessed in their audience, I mean, to be sure.
But I was sinking deeper and deeper into the hay now, and the sound of his voice became faint; I could no longer make out the words. There was only a soft murmuring in the distance—like a summer breeze gently rustling the leaves of a forest; or, even better, like the soothing murmur of a southern sea. By now, you see, I had started reading romances and imagined how the southern seas whispered and crashed against coral islands; and then how the fierce hurricane would come barreling through, clearing the seas of ships. No one reads like a boy reads. The boy gives himself completely to the printed page, and perhaps the most fortunate of all the writers are those who create what we used to call “dime novels”—fortunate because of their audience, of course.
So there I was, sunk far down into a mythical Southland, my own Southland, product of my own imaginings—not father’s. One could go deep down into the hay and still breathe. All sounds became faint, [Pg 100] even the gentle sound of the snoring of the fat boy some ten feet away. One closed the eyes and stepped off into a fragrant new world. Mother was in that new world, but not father. I had left him out in the cold.
So there I was, deeply immersed in a mythical Southland, my own Southland, born from my own imagination—not my father’s. You could dive deep into the hay and still breathe. All sounds faded away, even the soft snoring of the chubby kid about ten feet away. I closed my eyes and drifted off into a fragrant new world. My mother was in that new world, but not my father. I had left him out in the cold. [Pg 100]
I considered the matter of births—my own birth in particular. The idea of being born in Kentucky—the result of a union between two decaying, gentle families—did not strike my fancy, not much.
I thought about the subject of births—especially my own. The idea of being born in Kentucky, the product of a mix between two fading, gentle families, didn't really appeal to me.
The devil! Even then I felt myself a little the product of a new age and a new land. Could I then have had all the thoughts I am now about to attribute to myself! Probably not. But these notes make no pretense of being a record of fact. That isn’t their object. They are merely notes of impressions, a record of vagrant thoughts, hopes, ideas that have floated through the mind of one present-day American. It is likely that I have not, and will not, put into them one truth, measuring by the ordinary standards of truth. It is my aim to be true to the essence of things. That’s what I’m after.
The devil! Even then I felt like I was kind of a product of a new age and a new place. Could I really have had all the thoughts I’m about to claim as my own? Probably not. But these notes don’t pretend to be a factual account. That’s not their purpose. They are simply notes of impressions, a record of wandering thoughts, hopes, and ideas that have crossed the mind of one contemporary American. It’s likely that I haven’t, and won’t, include a single truth by standard definitions of truth. My goal is to be true to the essence of things. That’s what I’m aiming for.
And haven’t we Americans built enough railroads and factories, haven’t we made our cities large and dirty and noisy enough, haven’t we been giving ourselves to surface facts long enough? Let us away with the fact of existence, for the moment at least. You, the reader, are to imagine yourself sitting under a tree with me on a summer afternoon; or, better yet, lying with me in the sweet-smelling hay in an Ohio barn. We shall let our fancies loose, lie to ourselves if you please. Let us not question each other too closely.
And haven’t we Americans built enough railroads and factories? Haven’t we made our cities big, dirty, and noisy enough? Haven’t we focused on surface details long enough? Let’s put aside the fact of existence, at least for now. You, the reader, should imagine yourself sitting under a tree with me on a summer afternoon; or even better, lying with me in the fragrant hay in an Ohio barn. Let’s unleash our imaginations and allow ourselves to dream a little. Let’s not dig too deeply into each other’s thoughts.
[Pg 101]
[Pg 101]
There is America, now. What is America? Whee! I say, now, don’t begin with such a gigantic question as that.
There is America, now. What is America? Whee! I say, let’s not start with such a huge question as that.
Let’s think a little about what it isn’t. It isn’t English, for one thing, and—isn’t it odd?—the notion persists that it is. If we are ever to have a race of our own here—if the melting pot we are always talking about ever really melts up the mass—how English, how German, how Puritanic will it be? Not very much, I fancy. Too many Slavs, Poles, Wops, Chinese, Negroes, Mexicans, Hindoos, Jews, whatnot, for the old influences to hold in the end.
Let’s think a bit about what it isn’t. For one, it isn’t English, and—isn’t it strange?—the idea still sticks that it is. If we’re ever going to have a race of our own here—if the melting pot we keep talking about ever really does melt together—how English, how German, how Puritan will it be? Not very much, I think. There are too many Slavs, Poles, Italians, Chinese, Black people, Mexicans, Hindus, Jews, and so on, for the old influences to really take hold in the end.
But is it not odd how that old notion persists? A few English came and settled in that far-away frozen northeast corner—New England—and their sons did the book-writing and the school-teaching. They did not get themselves—physically—as breeders—very deeply into the new blood of the land, but they made their notion of what we are and of what we are to be stick pretty well.
But isn’t it strange how that old idea still sticks around? A few English people came and settled in that distant, icy northeast corner—New England—and their sons ended up as the writers and teachers. They didn’t physically mix much—genetically—with the new people of the land, but they definitely made their idea of who we are and who we should be stick pretty well.
In time, however, the basic cultural feeling of the land must change too. Mind cannot persist without body. Blood will tell.
In time, though, the fundamental cultural vibe of the land has to change as well. The mind can't exist without the body. Blood speaks for itself.
And in my own time I was to see the grip of the old New England, the Puritanic culture, begin to loosen. The physical incoming of the Celts, Latins, Slavs, men of the Far East, the blood of the dreaming nations of the world gradually flowing thicker and thicker in the body of the American, and the shrewd shop-keeping money-saving blood of the northern men getting thinner and thinner.
And during my lifetime, I witnessed the hold of old New England and Puritan culture start to fade. The physical arrival of Celts, Latins, Slavs, and people from the Far East, along with the vibrant cultures from around the world, began to mix more and more within the American identity, while the practical, money-saving traits of the northern men started to diminish.
But I run far, far ahead of myself. Did my own fancy, even then, as a boy, lying in the hay in the barn, did it run ahead of my own day [Pg 102] and my own time? Of that I cannot say, but of one thing I am quite certain—in all my life I have never for a moment subscribed to the philosophy of life as set forth by the Saturday Evening Post, the Atlantic Monthly, Yale, “Upward and Onward,” “The White Man’s Burden,” etc.
But I’m getting ahead of myself. Did my imagination, even back then, as a kid lying in the hay in the barn, jump ahead of my own day and time? I can’t say for sure, but I’m absolutely certain of one thing—in all my life, I’ve never once agreed with the philosophy of life as presented by the Saturday Evening Post, the Atlantic Monthly, Yale, “Upward and Onward,” “The White Man’s Burden,” and so on. [Pg 102]
There was always within me a notion of another aspect of life—at least faintly felt—a life that dreamed a little of more colorful and gaudy things—cruelty and tragedy creeping in the night, laughter, splashing sunlight, the pomp and splendor of the old tyrants, the simple devotion of old devotees.
There was always a part of me that sensed another side of life—if only faintly—a life that yearned for more vibrant and flashy experiences—cruelty and tragedy lurking in the dark, laughter, bright sunlight, the grandeur and showiness of ancient rulers, the genuine devotion of long-time followers.
Had I not seen and did I not then sharply remember that old grandmother from the southeast of Europe, she with the one eye and the quick, dark and dangerous temper! There were possibilities of cruelty in her. Once she had tried to kill my sister with a butcher knife, and one could think of her as killing with a laugh on her lips. Having known her one could easily conceive of the possibility of a life in which cruelty had its place too.
Had I not seen and did I not then clearly remember that old grandmother from southeastern Europe, the one-eyed woman with a quick, dark, and dangerous temper! There was a potential for cruelty in her. Once, she had tried to kill my sister with a butcher knife, and one could imagine her doing that with a laugh on her lips. Knowing her, it was easy to conceive of a life where cruelty had its place as well.
At that moment as I lay deeply buried in the warm hay and when the fancy of my own flesh-and-blood father, down on the floor of the barn, was giving me a birthright of decaying Germanic gentlefolk the dark old woman who was my grandmother was more in my line.
At that moment, as I lay deeply buried in the warm hay, and my own flesh-and-blood father, down on the barn floor, was giving me a claim to a legacy of decaying German nobility, the dark old woman who was my grandmother felt more connected to me.
And no doubt the warmth of the hay itself may have had something to do with the setting and the mood of my first invented tale, as you will perceive as you read of it. Cruelty, like breadfruit and pineapples, is a product, I believe, of the South.
And I'm sure the warmth of the hay had something to do with the atmosphere and vibe of my first made-up story, as you will notice as you read it. I believe cruelty, like breadfruit and pineapples, is a product of the South.
[Pg 103]
[Pg 103]
By the tale, told me by my parents, I had myself been born in a place called Camden, Ohio, and in the articles touching on my birthplace that have appeared in newspapers that town has always been named. It was one of the towns through which father and mother had trekked when they were first married.
By the story my parents told me, I was born in a place called Camden, Ohio, and in the articles about my birthplace that have appeared in newspapers, that town has always been mentioned. It was one of the towns my parents passed through when they first got married.
Father must have had a little money at that time, as there is a tradition of his having been a merchant, and of course there were not, at that time, so many children. One could get up and out more easily. Moving, perhaps at night, from town to town, to escape bill collectors, was not so difficult. And then I fancy that, at first his own people, from time to time, sent him money. However, I know little of his people and only have the notion because I cannot conceive of his having earned it or of his having made it by his shrewdness.
Father must have had some money back then, since it's said that he was a merchant, and of course there weren't as many children at that time. It was easier to get up and leave. Moving from town to town at night to dodge bill collectors wasn’t too hard. Also, I imagine that his family probably sent him money occasionally. However, I don’t know much about his family and only think this because I can't imagine he made it on his own or through cleverness.
And so he was a merchant then, the grandest thing one could be in a small Ohio town at that time. He kept shop in places known as Camden, Morning Sun and Caledonia, Ohio. I believe he and President Harding once played in the same brass band at Caledonia.
And so he was a merchant, the highest status one could achieve in a small Ohio town back then. He ran shops in places like Camden, Morning Sun, and Caledonia, Ohio. I think he and President Harding once played in the same brass band in Caledonia.
He was in the saddlery and harness business and you cannot fail to catch the flavor of that. There would be a little shop on the town’s main street with a leather horse collar hanging on a peg over the sidewalk before the door. Inside there would be shiny new harness hanging on the shop walls and, in the morning when the sun crept in, the brass and nickel buckles would shine like jewels.
He was in the saddlery and harness business, and you can't help but notice the vibe of that. There would be a small shop on the town's main street with a leather horse collar hanging on a hook outside the door. Inside, shiny new harnesses would be displayed on the walls, and in the morning, when the sun came through, the brass and nickel buckles would sparkle like jewels.
Young farmers coming in with great work harnesses on their shoulders and throwing them with a great rattle and bang on the floor—the rich [Pg 104] pungent smell of leather—an old man, a workman, a harness-maker, sitting on his horse and sewing a strap—on the floor by the stove a wooden box filled with sawdust into which the workmen and the visiting farmers, all of whom would chew tobacco, could spit—
Young farmers coming in with heavy work harnesses on their shoulders and dropping them with a loud thud on the floor—the rich, strong smell of leather—an old man, a laborer, a harness-maker, sitting on his horse and sewing a strap—on the floor by the stove, a wooden box filled with sawdust where the workers and visiting farmers, all of whom would chew tobacco, could spit—
Father prancing about—the young merchant then, with the young merchant’s heavy silver watch and gold chain—a prospective Marshall Field, a Wanamaker, a Julius Rosenwald, in his own fancy, perhaps.
Father prancing around—the young merchant back then, with the young merchant's heavy silver watch and gold chain—a future Marshall Field, a Wanamaker, a Julius Rosenwald, in his own imagination, maybe.
“Hello, you, Ted. When you go’en a get that trace sewed up? These new fangle factory harnesses ain’t worth a tinker’s dam. How’s wheat looking out your way? No, the frost ain’t all out of the ground yet. What do you think of elections, eh? D’you hear what that fellow said—‘all Democrats ain’t horse thieves, but all horse thieves is democrats’? Do you think Frank Means will make it for sheriff?”
“Hey, Ted. When are you going to get that trace fixed? These new factory harnesses aren't worth anything. How’s the wheat looking over there? No, the frost isn’t all out of the ground yet. What do you think about the elections? Did you hear what that guy said—‘not all Democrats are horse thieves, but all horse thieves are Democrats’? Do you think Frank Means will get elected for sheriff?”
That—in just that tone—and in a small frame house on a side street of the town myself waiting to be born.
That—in exactly that tone—and in a small house on a side street of the town, I was waiting to be born.
What is a birth? Has a man no rights of his own?
What is a birth? Does a man have no rights of his own?
[Pg 105]
[Pg 105]
NOTE IX
SUCH a birth in an Ohio Village—the neighbor women coming in to help—rather fat women in aprons.
SUCH a birth in an Ohio village—the neighbor women coming over to help—rather heavyset women in aprons.
They have had children of their own and are not too excited, but stand about, waiting and indulging in gossip. “If the men had to have the babies there would never be more than one child in a family. What do men know about suffering? It’s the women who have to do all the suffering in life, I always said—I said a woman feels everything deeper than a man—don’t you think so? A woman has intuition, that’s what it is.”
They have kids of their own and aren’t that thrilled about it, just standing around, waiting and chatting. “If the guys had to have the babies, there would only ever be one kid in each family. What do guys know about suffering? It’s the women who carry all the burdens in life, I’ve always said—I believe a woman feels everything more deeply than a man—don’t you think? A woman has intuition, that’s what it is.”
And then the doctor coming hurriedly, father having run for him. He would be a large man with side whiskers and large red hands. Well; he is a doctor of the new school, a modernist, like the child he is about to help into the world. What he believes in, is fresh air. Wherever he goes, and no matter what the disease he is treating, he always says the same things. Modernists sometimes are like that. “Clean and fresh air—that’s what I believe in. Throw open the doors and the windows. Let’s have some fresh air in here.”
And then the doctor rushed in, since my father had gone to get him. He was a big man with sideburns and large, red hands. Well, he's a doctor from the new school, a modernist, just like the baby he's about to help into the world. What he believes in is fresh air. Wherever he goes, no matter what the illness he’s treating, he always says the same thing. Modernists can be like that. “Clean, fresh air—that’s what I believe in. Open the doors and windows. Let’s get some fresh air in here.”
While the child is being born he tells his one joke. One might as well be cheerful. Cheerfulness is a great healer, and what he believes in is in making his patients smile in the midst of suffering. “Do you want [Pg 106] to know why I’m so strong on cleanliness?” he asks. “It’s because I’m a damned sinner, I guess, and I don’t go to church, and I’ve heard that cleanliness is next to Godliness. I’m trying to slip into Heaven on a cake of soap—ha! that’s what I’m up to.”
While the child is being born, he tells his one joke. Might as well be cheerful. Cheerfulness is a powerful healer, and what he believes in is making his patients smile even in the midst of suffering. “Do you want to know why I’m so focused on cleanliness?” he asks. “It’s because I’m a damned sinner, I guess, and I don’t go to church, and I’ve heard that cleanliness is next to Godliness. I’m trying to slip into Heaven on a bar of soap—ha! That’s what I’m up to.” [Pg 106]
A quick nervous laugh from the lips of father. He goes out of the house to tell the story to a neighbor he has seen raking leaves in a near-by yard. It is September now. He is a little unstrung. Under such conditions a man feels faintly guilty. People conspire to give him the feeling. It is as though all the women of the town were pointing accusing fingers and as though all the men were laughing, “greasy-eyed married men,” Bernard Shaw once called them. One will have to set up the cigars to the men, darn ’em. As for the women—they are saying, half jokingly, half in earnest: “There, you devil; see what you have done—this is your doings.”
A quick, nervous laugh escapes from dad. He steps out of the house to share the story with a neighbor he spots raking leaves in a nearby yard. It’s September now. He feels a bit on edge. In situations like this, a guy often feels a vague sense of guilt. People seem to conspire to make him feel that way. It’s as if all the town’s women are pointing accusatory fingers, while all the men are laughing, “greasy-eyed married men,” as Bernard Shaw once described them. Someone's going to have to buy cigars for the men, damn it. As for the women—they're saying, half-joking, half-serious: “There, you devil; look what you’ve done—this is your doing.”
Father stands beside the fence telling the doctor’s joke to the neighbor, who has heard it many times before but who, out of sympathy, now laughs heartily. As though drawn toward each other by some invisible cord they both sidle along the fence until they are standing close together. It is a moment of masculine obscurity. Men must stand shoulder to shoulder. The women have the centre of the stage—as father would have said later, when he became an actor and loved to sling the actor’s jargon, they were “hogging the footlights.”
Father stands by the fence, telling the doctor’s joke to the neighbor, who has heard it plenty of times before but laughs heartily now out of sympathy. It’s as if they’re drawn toward each other by some invisible tie, and they both shuffle along the fence until they’re standing close together. It’s a moment of masculine uncertainty. Men need to stand shoulder to shoulder. The women are center stage—as Father would say later, when he became an actor and loved to use theatrical lingo, they were “hogging the footlights.”
Not quite succeeding however. This is the moment for me to come upon the stage. The two men stand closely together, father fingering nervously the heavy gold watch chain—he is soon to lose it with all his other property in one of his frequent business failures—and from [Pg 107] the house comes a faint cry. To the two men standing there it sounds not unlike the cry of a puppy inadvertently stepped on by a careless master, and father jumps suddenly aside so that his neighbor laughs again.
Not quite succeeding, though. This is my moment to step onto the stage. The two men stand close together, with the father anxiously playing with his heavy gold watch chain—he's about to lose it along with all his other possessions in one of his frequent business failures—and from the house comes a faint cry. To the two men standing there, it sounds a bit like the yelp of a puppy accidentally stepped on by a distracted owner, and the father suddenly jumps aside, causing his neighbor to laugh again. [Pg 107]
And that is myself—just being actually born into the world.
And that's just me—actually being born into the world.
Which is one thing, but sometimes one’s fancy wants something else. As I lay, deep buried in the hay in the barn on another fall day, and as the resentment—born in me through having been made the son of two decaying, gentle families—grew deeper and deeper, and also as the grateful warmth of the departed summer—captured and held by the hay—stole over my body, cold from the day of tramping in the wood in a cold rain in pursuit of the squirrels—as the warmth took hold of my body, the scene of my actual birth hour, just depicted, faded. I fled from the field of fact and into the field of fancy.
Which is one thing, but sometimes what we want is something different. As I lay, buried deep in the hay in the barn on another fall day, and as the resentment—growing in me from being the son of two fading, gentle families—intensified, and also as the grateful warmth of the fading summer—trapped in the hay—washed over my body, chilled from a day of walking in the woods in a cold rain chasing squirrels—as the warmth enveloped me, the memory of my actual birth hour, just described, faded away. I escaped from the realm of reality and into the realm of imagination.
Upon the sand on a desolated coast far down on the Gulf of Mexico an athletic looking man of perhaps thirty lies looking out over the sea. What cruel eyes he has, like the eyes of some cunning beast of prey.
Upon the sand on a deserted beach far down on the Gulf of Mexico, an athletic-looking man of around thirty lies looking out at the sea. What cruel eyes he has, like the eyes of a cunning predator.
He is perhaps thirty years of age, but one can see well enough, just by looking at him casually, that he has retained all the youthful strength and elasticity of his splendid body. He has a small black mustache and black hair and his skin is burned to a deep brown. Even as he lies, [Pg 108] relaxed and listless, on the yellow sand a glow of life and of strength seems to emanate from him.
He’s probably around thirty years old, but it’s clear, just by glancing at him, that he still has all the youthful strength and flexibility of his impressive body. He has a small black mustache and black hair, and his skin is tanned to a deep brown. Even as he lies, [Pg 108] relaxed and lazy, on the yellow sand, a vibrant energy and strength seem to radiate from him.
As he lies thus one can tell, any schoolboy could tell, that he is physically made to be the very ideal of American romance. He is a man of action—young and strong—there can be little doubt he is a man of daring. What might not be done with such a man! Throw him back into the days of the early pioneers and he will turn you out another Daniel Boone. He will creep through hundreds of miles of forests, never disturbing a grass blade, and bring you back the fair daughter of the English nobleman, traveling in this country, whose daughter inadvertently went for an afternoon’s stroll in the wood and was captured by a skulking Indian; or he will shoot you a squirrel in the eye at five hundred yards with his faithful rifle, called, playfully, “Old Betsy.” Move him up a little now. Let, say Bret Harte, have him. There he is, fine and dandy. He is a gambler in a Western mining camp now, wearing a silk shirt and a Stetson hat. He will lose you a whole fortune without the bat of an eye, but his personal associates are a bit rough. He is always being seen about with Black Peg, who runs a house of prostitution, and with Silent Smith, the killer.
As he lies there, it's obvious—any schoolboy could see—that he embodies the ideal of American romance. He’s a man of action—young and strong—and there’s no doubt he’s daring. Just imagine what could be accomplished with a man like him! If you threw him back to the days of early pioneers, he would become another Daniel Boone. He would navigate through hundreds of miles of forests without leaving a trace and bring back the beautiful daughter of an English nobleman traveling in this country, whose daughter accidentally took a stroll in the woods and was captured by a lurking Indian; or he could shoot a squirrel in the eye from five hundred yards away with his trusty rifle, playfully named “Old Betsy.” Now let’s move him up a bit. Let’s say Bret Harte gets hold of him. There he is, looking sharp. He’s now a gambler in a Western mining camp, wearing a silk shirt and a Stetson hat. He’ll lose an entire fortune without a flinch, but his company is a bit rough around the edges. He’s often seen with Black Peg, who runs a brothel, and with Silent Smith, the killer.
Until, well, until one day when a New England school-teacher comes into the rough mining camp. One night she is set upon and is about to be outraged by a drunken miner. Then he, the associate of Black Peg, steps forward and shoots the miner. Ten minutes before, he was drunk and lying in the gutter, so drunk in fact that flies had been using his eyeballs as sliding places, but the danger to the school-teacher [Pg 109] had sobered him instantly. He is a gentleman now. He offers the school-teacher his arm and they walk to her cabin discussing Emerson and Longfellow, and then our central figure of romance leaves her at her cabin door and goes to a lonely spot in the mountains. He sits down to wait until winter and the deep snows come, in order that he may freeze to death. He has realized that he loves the New England lady and is, in the language of the Far West, as set forth in all the best books, “not fitten for her.”
Until, well, until one day a schoolteacher from New England arrives at the rough mining camp. One night, she is attacked and is about to be assaulted by a drunk miner. Then he, an associate of Black Peg, steps in and shoots the miner. Just ten minutes earlier, he was drunk and lying in the gutter, so intoxicated that flies were using his eyeballs as playgrounds, but the threat to the schoolteacher sobered him up instantly. He’s a gentleman now. He offers the schoolteacher his arm, and they walk to her cabin, discussing Emerson and Longfellow. After that, our romantic lead leaves her at her cabin door and heads to a secluded spot in the mountains. He sits down to wait until winter and the heavy snows come, so he can freeze to death. He has realized that he loves the New England lady and, in the language of the Far West, as described in all the best books, he feels “not fit for her.” [Pg 109]
The truth is that father, that is to say, my fanciful father, might well have been used by any one of a dozen of our American hero-makers. He is in the goods. That is the idea. In the hands of a Jack London he might have been another Sea Wolf or a musher trudging through the deep snow of the frozen North, cornering some fair virgin in an isolated cabin, only to let her off at the last moment out of respect for her dead mother, who expected something quite different of her. Then later he might have gone to Yale, and after that become a stock broker, taking daring chances with railroad stocks, married a woman who loved only the glare and shine of social life, chucked her, failed in business, gone farming, and turned out a clean man after all, say in the pages of the Saturday Evening Post. It could have been done.
The truth is that Dad, or rather my imaginative dad, could have easily been featured in stories by any of our American heroes. He’s the real deal. That’s the point. If a Jack London had written about him, he might have been another Sea Wolf or a musher trudging through the deep snow of the frozen North, rescuing some innocent girl in a remote cabin, only to let her go at the last minute out of respect for her deceased mother, who had her own expectations for her. Then later, he might have gone to Yale, become a stockbroker, taken big risks with railroad stocks, married a woman who only cared about the glamor of high society, dumped her, failed in business, tried farming, and ultimately turned out to be a decent guy after all, perhaps featured in the pages of the Saturday Evening Post. It could have happened.
Where my fanciful father was unfortunate, however, was in that he had to live in the fancy of a boy in a hay barn—one who had as yet had little or no experience with heroes.
Where my imaginative father was unfortunate, though, was that he had to live in the dreams of a boy in a hay barn—one who had little or no experience with heroes.
And then there is no doubt he, from the first, had certain weaknesses. [Pg 110] He wasn’t always kind to old women and children and, as you will see in the sequel, he wasn’t to be trusted with a virgin. He just wouldn’t behave himself, and when it comes to this matter of virgins, perhaps the least said about any man’s attitude toward them—except, to be sure, in novels and in the movies—the better. As Mr. Howells once pointed out, “it is better to present to the readers only the brighter and more pleasant aspects of our common lives.”
And there's no doubt that he had some weaknesses from the start. [Pg 110] He wasn't always nice to old women and children, and as you will see later, he couldn't be trusted around a virgin. He just couldn't control himself, and when it comes to the issue of virgins, maybe it's best not to say much about any man's views on them—unless, of course, it's in books or movies. As Mr. Howells once said, “it's better to show readers only the brighter and more pleasant sides of our shared lives.”
However, let us return to the man lying on the sand. There he is, you see, and it was sure he had been all his life, at any rate, a man of action. The Civil War had just come to an end a few years before and during the war he had been rather busily engaged. He had gone into the war as a spy for the Federal government and when he had got into the South had managed to engage himself as a spy for the Confederate side also. This had permitted him to move rather freely back and forth and to do well carrying contraband goods. When he had no special information to give to one or the other of his employers he could invent information—during a war that is always easy. He was, as I have said, a man of action. He aimed to get results, as they say in the advertising profession.
However, let’s go back to the man lying on the sand. There he is, and it’s clear he’s always been a person of action. The Civil War had just wrapped up a few years earlier, and during that time, he had been quite active. He entered the war as a spy for the Union and, after getting into the South, managed to work as a spy for the Confederate side as well. This allowed him to move around freely and profitably smuggle goods. When he didn’t have real intel to share with either side, he could easily make up information—something that's always simple during a war. As I mentioned, he was a man of action. He focused on getting results, as they say in marketing.
The war at an end, he had gone into the South, having several projects in mind and, at the time we meet him first, he was waiting on the lonely coast to sight a ship that was to bring some business associates of his. In a bayou, near the mouth of the river, some ten miles away, there was a ship, manned by his own men, awaiting his return. He was engaged in the business of smuggling firearms to various revolutionary parties in South American republics and was now only waiting for the [Pg 111] coming of a man who was to hand over to him certain monies.
The war was over, and he had gone down South with several plans in mind. When we first meet him, he is waiting on a lonely coast for a ship to arrive with some business associates. Out in a bayou, about ten miles away, there's a ship crewed by his own men, ready for his return. He was involved in smuggling firearms to various revolutionary groups in South American countries and was now just waiting for a man to arrive and give him some money. [Pg 111]
And so the day passed and the evening came and at last an hour before darkness settled down over the lonely sand dunes a ship appeared. My mythical father arose and, fastening a cloth to the end of a stick, waved it back and forth over his head. The ship drew near and two boats were lowered. Some ten or twelve men were coming ashore and with them a woman. When they had got into the boats the ship did not wait but immediately steamed away.
And so the day went by, and as evening fell, just an hour before darkness blanketed the lonely sand dunes, a ship appeared. My legendary father stood up and, tying a cloth to the end of a stick, waved it back and forth over his head. The ship got closer, and two boats were lowered. About ten or twelve men came ashore with a woman. Once they got into the boats, the ship didn’t wait and immediately set off.
The man on the beach began gathering a great pile of sticks and bits of driftwood, preparative to building a fire, and now and then he turned his head to look toward the approaching boats. That there was a woman among his visitors bothered him. Women were always interfering with business. Why had they wanted to bring a woman? “To the deuce with women!” he growled, making his way through the deep sand with a great pile of sticks in his arms.
The guy on the beach started collecting a huge pile of sticks and pieces of driftwood to build a fire, occasionally glancing at the boats coming in. The fact that there was a woman among his visitors annoyed him. Women always got in the way of things. Why did they have to bring a woman? “Damn women!” he muttered, trudging through the deep sand with a big stack of sticks in his arms.
Then the boat had landed and there was the old Harry to pay. A revolutionary party in one of the South American republics had gone to pieces and nearly all its members had been arrested and were to be executed. There was no money to pay for the firearms that were to have been shipped, and the little band of men, now standing on the lonely beach and facing the smugglers, had barely escaped with their lives. They had rowed out to sea in two boats and had been picked up by a steamer, and one among them had in his possession money enough to bribe the steamer captain to bring them to this spot, where they were to [Pg 112] have landed, just at this time, under quite different circumstances.
Then the boat landed, and there was the old Harry to pay. A revolutionary group in one of the South American countries had fallen apart, and almost all its members had been arrested and were facing execution. There was no money to cover the firearms that were supposed to be shipped, and the small group of men, now standing on the deserted beach and facing the smugglers, had barely escaped with their lives. They had rowed out to sea in two boats and been picked up by a steamer, and one of them had enough money to bribe the steamer captain to bring them to this spot, where they were supposed to have landed at this time, under completely different circumstances. [Pg 112]
Different circumstances indeed!
Different circumstances, for sure!
The lady of the party—well, she was something special—the daughter of one of the wealthiest sugar planters of her native land, she had given her young soul to the cause of the revolution and when the smash came had been compelled to fly with the others. Her own father disowned her in a moment of cowardice and the death sentence was out against her. What else could she do but flee?
The woman at the party—she was truly remarkable—the daughter of one of the richest sugar planters in her homeland, she had dedicated her young life to the revolution and when everything fell apart, she had to escape with the others. Her own father rejected her in a moment of weakness and a death sentence was put out for her. What else could she do but run?
If they had brought nothing else, they had brought food ashore from the ship, and the party might as well eat, since they would, in any event, have to spend the night on the beach. In the morning, it was the hope expressed by the leader of the party, that the firearms smuggler would guide them inland. They had friends in America but had they landed at a regular port of entry it might well have turned out that their own government would have asked the American government to send them home—to face the consequences of their folly.
If they had brought nothing else, they had brought food from the ship, and the group might as well eat since they would have to spend the night on the beach anyway. In the morning, the leader of the group hoped that the firearms smuggler would guide them inland. They had friends in America, but if they had landed at a regular port of entry, it might have turned out that their own government would have asked the American government to send them back home—to face the consequences of their mistakes.
With a grim smile on his cruel lips my fanciful father had heard them out in silence and now began building a fire. Night came and he moved softly about. A strange and new impulse had come into his hard and cruel heart. He had fallen instantly in love with the young female leader of revolution from the foreign land and was trying to figure out how he could get away from the others and have a talk with her.
With a grim smile on his cruel lips, my imaginative father listened to them in silence and then started to build a fire. Night fell, and he moved quietly around. A strange, new feeling had entered his hard and cruel heart. He had instantly fallen for the young female revolutionary leader from a foreign land and was trying to think of a way to get away from the others to talk to her.
At last when food had been prepared and eaten, he spoke, agreeing to perform all that had been asked of him, but declaring that the young woman could not be compelled to spend the night in such a place. [Pg 113] Speaking in the Spanish language—with which he was marvelously conversant—he commanded the others to stay by the fire while he took the young woman inland to where, some two miles away, he declared he had some horses concealed in the stable of an oyster thief, a friend of his who lived up the bay.
Once the food was prepared and eaten, he spoke up, agreeing to do everything that was asked of him but stating that the young woman couldn’t be forced to stay the night in such a place. [Pg 113] Speaking in Spanish—of which he was remarkably fluent—he instructed the others to stay by the fire while he took the young woman inland to a spot about two miles away, where he claimed he had some horses hidden in the stable of an oyster thief, a friend of his who lived up the bay.
The others consenting, he and the young woman set off. She was very beautiful and, as they had all been seated about the fire, she had kept her eyes almost constantly upon the American.
The others agreed, so he and the young woman headed out. She was incredibly beautiful, and while they were all sitting around the fire, she had kept her gaze almost constantly on the American.
He was of the type of which American heroes are made, you see, and she had, in her young girlhood, read American novels. In American novels, as in American plays—as everyone knows—a man can, just as well as not, be a horse thief, a desperado, a child-kidnapper, a gentleman burglar, or a well-poisoner for years and years, and then, in an instant, become the sweetest and most amiable fellow possible, and with perfect manners too. It is one of the most interesting things about us Americans. No doubt it came to us from the English. It seems to be an Anglo-Saxon trait and a very lovely one too. All anyone need do is to mention in the presence of any one of us at any time the word “mother,” or leave one of us alone in the darkness in a forest in a lonely cabin on a mountain at night with a virgin.
He was the kind of guy American heroes are made of, you know, and she had, when she was a young girl, read American novels. In American novels, just like in American plays—as everyone knows—a man can be a horse thief, a desperado, a child kidnapper, a gentleman burglar, or a well-poisoner for years, and then suddenly turn into the sweetest and most charming person imaginable, with excellent manners too. It’s one of the most fascinating things about us Americans. No doubt it comes from the English. It seems to be an Anglo-Saxon trait, and a rather nice one too. All anyone has to do is mention the word “mother” in front of any of us at any time, or leave one of us alone in the dark in a forest in a remote cabin on a mountain at night with a virgin.
With some of us—that is to say, with those of us who have gone into politics—the same results can sometimes be had by speaking of the simple and humble laboring man, but it is the virgin that gets us every shot. In bringing out all the best in us she is a hundred per cent. efficient.
With some of us—specifically, those of us who have entered politics—the same outcomes can often be achieved by talking about the simple and humble working person, but it's the virgin that captivates us every time. She brings out the best in us and is completely effective at it.
[Pg 114]
[Pg 114]
In the presence of a virgin something like a dawn among mountains creeps over the spirit of the Anglo-Saxon and a gentle light comes into his eyes. If he has a dress suit anywhere about he goes and puts it on. Also he gets himself a shave and a hair cut, and you would be surprised to see how everything clears up after that.
In the presence of a virgin, something like a dawn among mountains washes over the spirit of the Anglo-Saxon, and a gentle light fills his eyes. If he has a suit nearby, he puts it on. He also gets a shave and a haircut, and you’d be amazed at how everything brightens up after that.
I, however, digress. In my enthusiasm for my fellows I jerk myself too violently out of my boyhood. No boy could so wholeheartedly appreciate or understand our national traits.
I, however, digress. In my excitement for my peers, I pull myself too forcefully out of my childhood. No boy could appreciate or understand our national traits so completely.
The story I had set myself down to tell was that of my own birth into the world of fancy—as opposed to the rather too realistic birth already depicted—and that, as I have explained, took place in Camden, Ohio.
The story I'm about to share is about my own arrival into the world of imagination—unlike the somewhat too realistic birth previously described—and, as I mentioned, this happened in Camden, Ohio.
Very well, then, a year has passed and I am being born a second time, as it were, but this second birth is quite different from the one in the Ohio town. There is more punch to it. Reading of it will lift you, who have been patient enough to follow me so far, out of your common everyday humdrum existences.
Very well, a year has passed, and I'm experiencing a second birth, so to speak, but this one is very different from the first in that Ohio town. It has more impact. Reading this will elevate you, those of you who have been patient enough to follow me this far, out of your usual, mundane lives.
And if you have read Freud you will find it of additional interest that, in my fanciful birth, I have retained the very form and substance of my earthly mother while getting an entirely new father, whom I set up—making anything but a hero of him—only to sling mud at him. I am giving myself away to the initiated, that is certain.
And if you’ve read Freud, you’ll find it even more interesting that, in my imaginative creation, I’ve kept the exact shape and essence of my earthly mother while getting a completely new father, whom I established—making him anything but a hero—just to throw dirt at him. I’m definitely revealing too much to those in the know.
But be that as it may, however, there is mother lying in bed in a lonely cabin on another long sandy beach, also on the Gulf of Mexico. (In my fanciful life I have always had a hunger for the warm South.) [Pg 115] Mother has been honorably married to my fanciful father on that very evening when she went with him from among her fellow-countrymen, sitting by the fire on that other beach, and after just such a metamorphosis of his character as she had come to expect through having read American novels and through having seen two or three American plays produced in the capital of her native land.
But anyway, there's my mom lying in bed in a lonely cabin on another long sandy beach, also on the Gulf of Mexico. (In my daydreams, I've always craved the warm South.) [Pg 115] Mom has been happily married to my imaginative dad since that very evening when she left her fellow countrymen, sitting by the fire on that other beach, after experiencing just the kind of change in his personality that she expected from reading American novels and seeing a couple of American plays performed in the capital of her home country.
After having secured the horses from the stable of the oyster thief they had ridden off together and had come at last into a deep forest of magnolia trees in blossom. A southern moon came up into the sky and so soft was the night, so gentle the breezes from the now distant sea, and so sweet the hum of insect life under their horses’ feet, that mother found herself speaking of her lost home and of her mother.
After getting the horses from the oyster thief’s stable, they rode off together and eventually reached a dense forest filled with blooming magnolia trees. A southern moon rose in the sky, and the night was so soft, the breezes from the now distant sea so gentle, and the sound of insects under their horses' feet so sweet that the mother found herself talking about her lost home and her mother.
To my fanciful father the combination—the deep forest, the scent of the magnolia blossoms and the word “mother”—together with the fact that he was alone in a dark place with a virgin, an innocent one, these things were all irresistible to him. The metamorphosis spoken of above took place, and he proposes marriage and on the spot proposed to live a better life.
To my imaginative father, the blend of the dense forest, the fragrance of magnolia blossoms, and the word "mother" — along with the fact that he was alone in a dark place with a pure, innocent girl — made everything completely irresistible to him. The transformation mentioned earlier happened, and he proposed marriage right then and there, pledging to live a better life.
And so they rode together out of the forest and were married, but, in his case, the metamorphosis did not hold.
And so they rode together out of the forest and got married, but in his case, the transformation didn't last.
Within a few months he had gone back to his old life, leaving mother alone in a strange land until the time should come when I, having been born, could take up the task of being her protector and guardian.
Within a few months, he had returned to his old life, leaving Mom alone in a strange place until the time came when I, having been born, could take on the role of her protector and guardian.
And now I am being born. It is late in the afternoon of a still hot [Pg 116] day and I, having just been ushered into the world by the aid of a fisherman’s wife, who also does duty as a midwife in that isolated place and who has now left to return again late at night—I, having been so born, am lying on the bed beside mother and thinking my first thoughts. In my own fancy I was, from the very first, a remarkable child and did not cry out as most newly born infants do, but lay buried in deep thought. In the little hut it is stifling hot, and flies and other winged insects of the warm South are buzzing in the air. Strange insects of gigantic size crawl over the walls and, from far-away somewhere, there comes the murmur of the sea. Mother is lying beside me, weak and wan.
And now I am being born. It’s late in the afternoon on a still hot day, and I, just brought into the world with the help of a fisherman’s wife who also serves as a midwife in this remote place, am lying on the bed next to my mother, thinking my first thoughts. I fancied myself as a remarkable child from the very beginning and didn’t cry out like most newborns do, but instead lay deep in thought. The little hut is sweltering, and flies along with other flying insects from the warm South are buzzing around. Strange, oversized insects creep along the walls, and in the distance, I can hear the murmur of the sea. My mother is beside me, weak and pale.
We lie there for a long time and, young as I am, I realize that she is tired and discouraged about life. “Why has not life in America turned out as it always did in the novels and plays?” she is asking herself; but I, having at that time still retained all my young courage and freshness of outlook, am not discouraged.
We lie there for a while, and even though I’m young, I can see that she feels tired and disappointed with life. “Why hasn’t life in America turned out like it always does in the novels and plays?” she wonders; but I, still holding onto my youthful courage and fresh perspective, am not discouraged.
There is a sound outside the cabin, the swishing sound of heavy feet dragged through the hot dry sands, and the low moaning sound of a woman crying.
There’s a noise outside the cabin, the shuffling of heavy feet dragged through the hot, dry sand, and the soft sound of a woman crying.
Again a steamer, from foreign parts, has visited that lonely coast and again a boat has been lowered. In the boat is my fanciful father accompanied by four of his evil henchmen and accompanied also by another woman. She is young and fair, another virgin; but now, alas, father has become hardened on that subject!
Again, a steamer from overseas has arrived at that desolate coast, and once more, a boat has been lowered. In the boat is my imaginative father, along with four of his wicked henchmen and another woman. She is young and beautiful, yet another virgin; but now, unfortunately, father has become callous about that matter!
The strange woman is terribly afraid but is at the same time in love with her captor (owing to the strange natures of women, this, you will understand, is entirely possible), and father has had the cruel impulse to bring the two women together. Perhaps he wants to see them [Pg 117] suffer the pangs of jealousy.
The strange woman is really scared but at the same time loves her captor (because of the complex nature of women, you see, this is totally possible), and father has had the cruel urge to bring the two women together. Maybe he wants to watch them experience the sting of jealousy. [Pg 117]
But he will get no such pangs from mother. With her son beside her she lies silently waiting.
But she won't feel any of those pains for her son. With him next to her, she lies there quietly waiting.
For what? That is the question that, try as he would, the son could not answer.
For what? That's the question that, no matter how hard he tried, the son couldn't answer.
And so the two lie there in silence on the poor bed in the hut while that strange monster of a man drags another woman across the yellow sands and in at the door of the hut. What has happened is that he has gone back to his old wicked life and, with his comrade, has joined another revolutionary party in another South American republic, and this time the revolution has been successful and he and his partners have helped sack a South American city.
And so the two lie there in silence on the shabby bed in the hut while that strange monster of a man pulls another woman across the yellow sands and into the hut. What’s happened is that he’s returned to his old wicked ways and, along with his friend, has joined another revolutionary group in a different South American country, and this time the revolution has succeeded, and he and his partners have helped loot a South American city.
At the forefront of the invaders was my fanciful father and—whatever else may be said of him it can never be said that he lacked in courage—it was from him, in fact, that I got my own courage.
At the front of the invaders was my imaginative father, and whatever else can be said about him, it can never be said that he lacked courage. It was actually from him that I got my own courage.
Into the invaded city he had rushed at the head of his men and, when the city was being sacked, he demanded riches for his men but took none for himself. For his own portion of the loot he had taken the virginal daughter of the leader of the Federal forces and it was this woman he was now dragging in at the door of our hut.
Into the invaded city he had rushed at the front of his men and, when the city was being looted, he demanded wealth for his men but took none for himself. For his own share of the spoils, he had taken the virgin daughter of the leader of the Federal forces, and it was this woman he was now dragging through the door of our hut.
She was very beautiful and perhaps, had I been older, I should not have blamed father, but at that time the love of right was very strong in me.
She was really beautiful, and maybe if I had been older, I wouldn't have blamed my dad, but at that moment, my sense of what was right was very strong.
When father saw that I had already been born he staggered back for a step and leaned against the wall of the cabin, still however clinging to the hand of his new-found woman. “I had hoped to arrive before or [Pg 118] at the very hour of birth, I had counted on that,” he muttered, cursing under his breath.
When Dad saw that I had already been born, he took a step back and leaned against the cabin wall, still holding onto the hand of his new partner. “I had hoped to get here before or right at the moment of birth, I was counting on that,” he muttered, cursing quietly to himself.
For a moment he stood looking at mother and myself and both of us looked calmly at him.
For a moment, he stood there looking at my mom and me, and we both looked back at him calmly.
“Birth—the birth hour—is the test of womanhood,” he said, taking hold of the shoulder of his new woman and shaking her violently, as though to fix her attention. “I wanted you to see how the women of my own race meet bravely all such trying situations; for, as you must know, by the customs of my country, the woman who marries an American becomes instantly an American, with all the American virtues. It is our climate, I dare say, and it happens to people very quickly.
“Birth—the moment of giving birth—is the true test of being a woman,” he said, grabbing his new partner's shoulder and shaking her hard, as if trying to grab her attention. “I wanted you to see how the women of my culture face challenging situations with courage; because, as you should know, according to my country’s customs, when a woman marries an American, she automatically becomes an American, embracing all the American values. It’s our environment, I suppose, and it happens to people pretty fast.”
“At any rate there it is. The woman you see before you I really love, but she has become Anglo-Saxon, through having married me, and is therefore above me, as far above me as the stars.
“At any rate, there it is. The woman you see before you is someone I truly love, but she has become Anglo-Saxon by marrying me, and is therefore above me, as far above me as the stars.”
“I cannot live with her. She is too good, too brave,” said my fanciful father, staggering through the door and dragging his woman after him. Outside the door I heard him still talking loudly to his new woman as they went away. “Our Anglo-Saxon women are the most wonderful creatures in the world,” I heard him saying. “In a few years now they will run the world.”
“I can’t live with her. She’s too good, too brave,” said my imaginative dad, stumbling through the door and pulling his woman along with him. Outside, I could still hear him speaking loudly to his new partner as they left. “Our Anglo-Saxon women are the most amazing people in the world,” I heard him say. “In a few years, they’ll be running the world.”
It was growing dark in the hayloft in the barn in the state of Ohio. Did I, as I lay deeply buried in the warm hay, really imagine the absurd scene depicted above? Although I was very young I had already read many novels and stories.
It was getting dark in the hayloft of the barn in Ohio. As I lay buried in the warm hay, did I really picture the ridiculous scene described above? Even though I was quite young, I had already read plenty of novels and stories.
[Pg 119]
[Pg 119]
In any event the whole silly affair has remained in my fancy for years. When I was a lad I played with such fanciful scenes as other boys play with brightly colored marbles. From the beginning there has been, as opposed to my actual life, these grotesque fancies. Later, to be sure, I did acquire more or less skill in bringing them more and more closely into the world of the actual. They were but the raw materials with which the story-writer must work as the worker in woods works with trees cut in a forest.
In any case, the whole ridiculous situation has stuck with me for years. When I was a kid, I played with those imaginative scenes just like other boys play with colorful marbles. From the start, these bizarre fantasies have existed alongside my real life. Later on, I did gain some skill in bringing them closer to reality. They were just the raw materials that a storyteller needs to work with, like a carpenter using wood cut from the forest.
As for the fancies themselves, they have always seemed to me like trees that have grown without having been planted. Later, after the period in my own life of which I am now writing, I worked for many years as a laborer in many places, and gradually as I stood all day beside a lathe in some factory, or later went about among business men trying to sell some article, in which I was myself not interested, I began to look at other men and to wonder what absurd fancies went on in secret within them. There was that curiosity and there was something else. I had perhaps, as I have no doubt all people have, a great desire to be loved and a little respected. My own fancies rule me. Even to-day I cannot go into a movie theatre and see there some such national hero as, say, Bill Hart, without wishing myself such another. In the theatre I sit looking at the people and see how they are all absorbed in the affairs of the man on the stage. Now he springs lightly off a horse and goes toward the door of a lonely cabin. We, in the theatre, know that within the cabin are some ten desperate men all heavily armed with guns and with them, bound to a chair, is a fair woman, another virgin got off the reservation, as it were. Bill stops at the door of the cabin [Pg 120] and takes a careful look at his guns, and we, in the audience, know well enough that in a few minutes now he will go inside and just shoot all of those ten fellows in there to death, fairly make sieves of them, and that he will get wounded himself but not seriously—just enough to need the help of the virgin in getting out of the cabin and onto his horse—so he can ride to her father’s ranch house and go to bed and get well after a while, in time for the wedding.
As for the fantasies themselves, they've always felt to me like trees that have grown on their own without being planted. Later, after the time in my life I'm currently writing about, I spent many years working as a laborer in various places. Gradually, as I stood all day next to a lathe in a factory, or later went around trying to sell products I had no interest in, I started to observe other men and wonder what ridiculous fantasies they had hidden inside them. I had that curiosity, but also something more. Like most people, I probably had a strong desire to be loved and a bit respected. My own fantasies control me. Even today, I can’t walk into a movie theater and see someone like Bill Hart, a national hero, without wishing I could be like him. While sitting in the theater, I watch the audience, seeing how absorbed they are in the man on stage. He jumps off a horse and heads toward the door of a remote cabin. We, in the audience, know that inside the cabin are about ten desperate men, heavily armed, and bound to a chair is a beautiful woman—another virgin taken from the reservation, so to speak. Bill stops at the cabin door and checks his guns, and we in the audience know that in just a few moments he’ll go inside and shoot all those ten guys dead, making them look like sieves. He’ll get wounded but not badly—just enough to need the help of the virgin getting him out of the cabin and onto his horse—so he can ride to her father’s ranch house, rest up, and recover in time for the wedding. [Pg 120]
All these things we know, but we love our Bill and can hardly wait until the shooting begins. As for myself I never see such a performance but that I later go out of the theatre and, when I get off into a quiet street alone, I become just such another. Looking about to see that I am unobserved, I jerk two imaginary guns out of my hip pockets and draw a quick bead on some near-by tree. “Dog,” I cry, “unhand her!” All my early reading of American literature comes into my mind and I try to do a thing that is always being spoken of in the books. I try to make my eyes narrow to pin points. Bill Hart can do it wonderfully in the pictures and why not I? As I sat in the movie house it was evident that Bill Hart was being loved by all the men women and children sitting about and I also want to be loved—to be a little dreaded and feared, too, perhaps. “Ah! there goes Sherwood Anderson! Treat him with respect. He is a bad man when he is aroused. But treat him kindly and he will be as gentle with you as any cooing dove.”
All these things we know, but we love our Bill and can hardly wait until the shooting starts. As for me, whenever I see a performance like this, I always end up leaving the theater and, when I find myself alone on a quiet street, I transform into that character. Making sure no one’s watching, I pull out two imaginary guns from my hip pockets and aim at a nearby tree. “Hey, dog,” I shout, “let her go!” All my early readings of American literature flood my mind, and I try to do that thing that’s often mentioned in the books. I attempt to squint my eyes into tiny slits. Bill Hart does it amazingly in the movies—so why can’t I? While I was sitting in the theater, it was clear that Bill Hart was adored by everyone around—men, women, and kids—and I want that love too—to be a little feared and respected as well, maybe. “Oh! There goes Sherwood Anderson! Treat him with respect. He’s a dangerous man when provoked. But if you treat him well, he’ll be as gentle as a cooing dove.”
As a boy lying buried in the hay I presume I had some such notion as [Pg 121] that, and later as a man standing by a lathe in some factory some such notion must have still been in my mind. I wanted then to be something heroic in the eyes of my own mother, now dead, and at the same time wanted to be something heroic in my own eyes too.
As a kid lying in the hay, I guess I had some idea like that, and later as a man standing at a lathe in a factory, some idea like that must have still been on my mind. I wanted to be something heroic in the eyes of my mother, who is now gone, and at the same time, I wanted to be something heroic in my own eyes too. [Pg 121]
One could not do the thing in actual life, so one did it in a new world created within one’s fancy.
One couldn't do that in real life, so they did it in a new world built in their imagination.
And what a world that fanciful one—how grotesque, how strange, how teeming with strange life! Could one ever bring order into that world? In my own actual work as a tale-teller I have been able to organize and tell but a few of the fancies that have come to me. There is a world into which no one but myself has ever entered and I would like to take you there; but how often when I go, filled with confidence, to the very door leading into that strange world, I find it locked! Now, in the morning, I myself cannot enter the land into which all last night, as I lay awake in my bed, I went alone at will.
And what a world that imaginative one—how bizarre, how weird, how full of unusual life! Can anyone really bring order to that world? In my actual work as a storyteller, I’ve managed to organize and share only a few of the ideas that have come to me. There’s a world that no one but me has ever entered, and I’d love to take you there; but how often, when I go with confidence to the very door leading into that strange world, do I find it locked! Now, in the morning, I can’t enter the land where I went alone at will all last night, while lying awake in my bed.
There are so many people in that land of whom I should like to tell you. I should like to take you with me through the gate into the land, let you wander there with me. There are people there with whom I should like you to talk. There is the old woman accompanied by the gigantic dogs who died alone in a wood on a winter day, the stout man with the gray eyes and with the pack on his back, who stands talking to the beautiful woman as she sits in her carriage, the little dark woman with the boyish husband who lives in a small frame house by a dusty road far out, in the country.
There are so many people in that land that I want to share with you. I’d like to take you through the gate into that land and let you explore it with me. There are people there I want you to talk to. There's the old woman with the huge dogs who passed away alone in the woods on a winter day, the stocky man with gray eyes and a backpack, who is chatting with the beautiful woman sitting in her carriage, and the little dark woman with her boyish husband who live in a small frame house by a dusty road far out in the country.
These and many other figures, all having a life of their own, all [Pg 122] playing forever in the field of my fancy. The fanciful shadowy life striving to take on flesh, to live as you and I live, to come out of the shadowy world of the fancy into the actuality of accomplished art.
These and many other figures, each with their own existence, all [Pg 122] constantly playing in the realm of my imagination. The imaginative, shadowy life trying to become real, to live like you and I do, to emerge from the shadowy world of imagination into the reality of completed art.
When I had grown to be a man, and had begun to try a little to organize this inner life, I wondered often if a woman, being pregnant, and walking about through the streets, past factory doors, in the “loop district” of Chicago, let us say, if such a woman being conscious of something alive within—that is, at the moment a part of herself, flesh of her flesh, and that will presently come out of herself to live its own life, in a world her eyes now see passing before her—if such a woman does not have dreadful moments of fear.
When I grew into a man and started to organize my inner life a bit, I often wondered if a pregnant woman, walking through the streets—let's say, past the factory doors in Chicago's loop district—being aware of something alive inside her, that is, a part of herself, flesh of her flesh, which will soon come out to live its own life in a world she can now see passing by—if such a woman doesn’t experience moments of deep fear.
To the tale-teller, you must understand, the telling of the tale is the cutting of the natal cord. When the tale is told it exists outside oneself and often it is more living than the living man from whom it came. The imagined figure may well live on and on in the fanciful life of others after the man from whose lips it came, or whose fingers guided the pen that wrote the tale, long after he is forgotten, and I have myself had some curious experiences of this sort. A public speaker, in speaking of my Winesburg tales, praised me as a writer but spoke slightingly of the figures that lived in the tales. “They weren’t worth telling about,” he said; and I remember that I sat at the back of the room, filled with people, hearing him speak, and remember sharply also just the sense of horror that crept over me at the moment. “It is a lie. He has missed the point,” I cried to myself. Could the man not understand that he was doing a quite unpermissible thing? As [Pg 123] well go into the bedroom of a woman during her lying-in and say to her: “You are no doubt a very nice woman, but the child to which you have just given birth is a little monster and will be hanged.” Surely any man can understand that, to such a one, it might be permitted to speak at any length regarding her own failings as a woman, but—if the child live—surely this other thing must not be done. “It must not be condemned for the failings of the mother,” I thought, shivering with fright. As I sat listening certain figures, Wing Biddlebaum, Hugh McVey, Elizabeth Willard, Kate Swift, Jesse Bentley, marched across the field of my fancy. They had lived within me, and I had given a kind of life to them. They had lived, for a passing moment anyway, in the consciousness of others beside myself. Surely I myself might well be blamed—condemned—for not having the strength or skill in myself to give them a more vital and a truer life—but that they should be called people not fit to be written about filled me with horror.
To the storyteller, you need to understand that sharing a story is like cutting the umbilical cord. Once the story is told, it exists outside of you, often becoming more alive than the person who created it. The characters may continue to live on in the imaginative lives of others long after the storyteller is forgotten, and I've had some strange experiences like this myself. A public speaker, while discussing my Winesburg stories, praised me as a writer but dismissed the characters as unworthy. “They weren’t worth telling about,” he said. I remember sitting at the back of a crowded room, hearing him speak, and feeling a sharp sense of horror at that moment. “That’s a lie. He’s missed the point,” I thought to myself. Didn’t he realize he was doing something completely unacceptable? It’s like walking into a woman’s room after giving birth and saying, “You’re a nice woman, but the baby you just had is a little monster and deserves to be punished.” Surely anyone can get that while it might be okay to talk at length about her flaws as a woman, if the child lives—this other thing must not be said. “It must not be judged for the mother’s failures,” I thought, shivering with fear. As I listened, certain characters—Wing Biddlebaum, Hugh McVey, Elizabeth Willard, Kate Swift, Jesse Bentley—marched through my mind. They had lived inside me, and I had given them a sort of life. They had, at least for a moment, existed in others' minds besides my own. It was true that I could be blamed or criticized for not having the strength or skill to give them a more vibrant and accurate life—but to call them unworthy of being written about filled me with terror.
However, I again find myself plunging forward into a more advanced and sophisticated point of view than could have been held by the boy, beginning to remake his own life more to his own liking by plunging into a fanciful life. I shall be blamed. Those of my critics who declare I have no feeling for form will be filled with delight over the meandering formlessness of these notes.
However, I find myself diving into a more advanced and sophisticated perspective than what the boy could have held, starting to reshape his life to better match his desires by immersing himself in a fanciful existence. I know I’ll face criticism. My critics who say I lack an appreciation for structure will be thrilled by the wandering, formless nature of these notes.
It does not matter. My point is that, in the boy, as later in the man into whom the boy is to grow, there are two beings, each distinct, each having its own life and each of importance to the man himself.
It doesn't matter. My point is that, in the boy, just as later in the man he will become, there are two distinct beings, each with its own life and both important to the man himself.
The boy who lives in the world of fact is to help his father put a [Pg 124] priming coat on a new house built by a prosperous Ohio farmer. In my day we used a dirty yellow ochre for the purpose. The color satisfied no sensual part of myself. How I hated it! It was used because it was cheap and later was to be covered up, buried away out of sight. Ugly colors, buried away out of sight, have a way of remaining always in sight in the consciousness of the painter who has spread them.
The boy living in the real world is helping his dad put a priming coat on a new house built by a successful farmer from Ohio. Back in my day, we used a grimy yellow ochre for this. That color didn’t satisfy any part of me. I hated it! It was used because it was inexpensive and was supposed to be covered up later, hidden away from view. Ugly colors, hidden away from sight, tend to stay in the painter’s mind forever, even after they’ve been painted over.
In the hayloft the fat boy was awake now. Darkness was coming fast and he must bestir himself, must if possible escape the wrath of his father for the day wasted in entertaining me. He crawled up out of his own hole and, reaching down, put a fat hand on my shoulder and shook me. He had a plan for his own escape which he whispered to me as my head came up into sight in the dim evening light in the loft.
In the hayloft, the chubby boy was awake now. Darkness was approaching quickly, and he had to get moving; he needed to avoid his father's anger for the time wasted on keeping me company. He crawled out of his own spot and, reaching down, placed a pudgy hand on my shoulder and shook me. He had a plan for his own escape, which he whispered to me as my head appeared in the dim evening light in the loft.
He was an only son and his mother was fond of him—she would even lie for him. Now he would creep away unseen to the house and frankly tell his mother he has been fooling about with me all day long. She would scold a little but, after a time, when his father came into the house for supper and when in harsh tones he asked what the boy had been doing, the gentle little lie would come. “It won’t really be a lie,” the fat boy declared stoutly, defending the virtue of his mother. “Do you expect me to do all the housework and the churning as well?” the farm woman would ask her husband sharply. She, it seemed, was a person of understanding and did not expect a boy to do a man’s work all the time. “You’d think dad never was a kid,” he whispered to me. “He works all the time and he wants me to work all the time too. I wouldn’t [Pg 125] never have no fun if it wasn’t for ma. Gee, I only wish I had a dad like your’n. He’s just like a kid himself, isn’t he now?”
He was an only son, and his mother really adored him—she would even lie for him. He would sneak back to the house without being seen and honestly tell his mom he had been messing around with me all day. She’d scold him a bit, but later, when his dad came home for dinner and asked in a harsh tone what the boy had been up to, the gentle little lie would come out. “It won’t really be a lie,” the chubby boy said confidently, defending his mom's honor. “Do you expect me to do all the housework and the churning too?” the farm woman replied sharply to her husband. She obviously understood and didn’t expect a boy to do a man’s work all the time. “You’d think Dad never was a kid,” he whispered to me. “He works all the time and wants me to work all the time too. I wouldn’t have any fun if it weren’t for Mom. Man, I just wish I had a dad like yours. He’s just like a kid himself, isn’t he?” [Pg 125]
In the gathering darkness the farm boy and I crept down a ladder to the floor of the barn and he ran away to the farmhouse, his feet making no sound in the soft mud of the farmyard. The rain persisted and the night would be cold. In another part of the barn the farmer was doing his evening chores, assisted by father—always the accommodating one—who held the lantern and ran to get ears of corn to throw into the horses’ feed-boxes. I could hear his voice, calling cheerfully. Already he knew all the farm horses by name and spoke of them familiarly. “How many ears for old Frank? Does Topsy get five ears too?”
As the darkness settled in, the farm boy and I quietly climbed down the ladder to the barn floor. He took off toward the farmhouse, his feet silent in the soft mud of the yard. The rain kept falling, and the night would be chilly. Elsewhere in the barn, the farmer was finishing his evening tasks, helped by my dad—always willing to help—who was holding the lantern and running to grab ears of corn to toss into the horses' feed boxes. I could hear his cheerful voice. He already knew all the farm horses by name and talked about them like old friends. “How many ears for old Frank? Does Topsy get five ears too?”
Outside the barn, as I stood under the eaves, there was still a faint streak of light in the western sky, and the new house we were to give the priming coat, built close down to the road, could still be seen. Little strings of water fell from the roof above and made a tiny stream at my feet. The new house had two full stories and an attic. How magnificent to be a man, to be rich and to be able to build such a house! When the fat boy grew into manhood he would inherit the house and many broad acres. He also would be rich and would have a great house, with bathrooms and perhaps electric lights. The automobile had come. No doubt he would have one. How magnificent a house, a farm, an automobile—a beautiful wife to lie with him at night! I had been to Sunday school and had heard the stories of the magnificent men of old, Jacob and David and that young man Absalom, who had everything in the [Pg 126] world to look forward to but who nevertheless did unspeakable things.
Outside the barn, as I stood under the eaves, there was still a faint streak of light in the western sky, and the new house we were about to primer, built right next to the road, was still visible. Little strings of water dripped from the roof above and formed a tiny stream at my feet. The new house had two full stories and an attic. How amazing it was to be a man, to be wealthy, and to be able to build such a house! When the chubby boy grew up, he would inherit the house and many acres of land. He would also be rich and have a great house, complete with bathrooms and maybe even electric lights. The car had arrived. No doubt he would have one. How magnificent—a house, a farm, a car—a beautiful wife to share his nights! I had been to Sunday school and heard the tales of the great men of old, Jacob and David and that young man Absalom, who had everything in the world to look forward to but still did terrible things. [Pg 126]
And now the voices of the men inside the barn seemed far away. The new house was in some queer way a menace to me. I wondered why. The older house, the one the young New Englander had builded when he had first come into the new land, stood far away from the road. One went, from the barns, along a path to the right. The path lay beside an apple orchard, and at the orchard’s end there was a bridge over a small stream. Then one crossed the bridge and started climbing the hill against the side of which the house had been built. It had been built of logs, very solidly, on a small terrace, and as the farmer had begun to prosper wings had been added. Back of the house stood forest trees, some the same trees that had been there when the first room of the cabin was built. The young farmer, with some of his neighbors, had felled the trees for his house on the very ground on which it now stood, and then during the long winter he had felled many other trees in the flat plain below, where his farming land was to lie, and, on a certain day, there had no doubt been a log-rolling, with other young farmers and their women coming from far and near. A whole forest of magnificent trees had been rolled into a great pile and burned—there had been feastings, tests of physical strength among the young men, a few unmarried fellows about, looking shyly at the unmarried girls, game on the table, talk in the evening of the possibilities of a war with the slaveholding farmers of the South.
And now the voices of the men inside the barn sounded distant. The new house felt strangely threatening to me. I couldn't figure out why. The old house, built by the young New Englander when he first arrived in this new land, was far from the road. To get there from the barns, you followed a path to the right. The path ran alongside an apple orchard, and at the end of the orchard, there was a bridge over a small stream. After crossing the bridge, you began climbing the hill where the house was constructed. It was built solidly from logs on a small terrace, and as the farmer started to succeed, more sections were added. Behind the house were forest trees, some of which had been there since the first room of the cabin was made. The young farmer, along with some neighbors, had cut down the trees for his house right on the land it occupied now, and then during the long winter, he had also chopped down many other trees in the flat land below, where his fields would be. On one particular day, there must have been a log-rolling event, with other young farmers and their women traveling from near and far. A whole forest of magnificent trees was piled up and burned—there were feasts, competitions of strength among the young men, a few single guys shyly checking out the single girls, game on the table, and evening discussions about the potential for war with the slaveholding farmers in the South.
All these things the older house had seen as it crouched on the side of the hill, and now it seemed to have crept away out of sight in [Pg 127] the darkness, hidden itself among the trees still left standing on the hill; but even as I stood looking lights began to appear at its windows. The old house seemed smiling and calling to me. Now, myself and my brothers had no home—the house in which we at that time lived was not a home—for us there could be no home now that mother was not there. We but stayed temporarily in a house, with a few sticks of furniture—waiting—for what?
All of these things the old house had witnessed as it sat on the side of the hill, and now it seemed to have faded into the darkness, hiding among the trees still standing on the hill; but even as I stood there, lights began to appear at its windows. The old house seemed to be smiling and calling out to me. My brothers and I didn’t have a home—the place we lived in at that time was not a home—for us, there could be no home now that our mother was gone. We were merely staying in a house temporarily, with just a few pieces of furniture—waiting—for what?
The older people of our native town had gone out of themselves, warmly, toward us. How many times had I been stopped on the street by some solid citizen of our town, a carpenter, Vet Howard, a wheelwright, Val Voght, a white bearded old merchant, Thad Hurd. In the eyes of these older people, as they talked to me, there was something, a light shining as the lights now shone from the farmhouse among the trees. They knew father—loved him, too, in a way—but well they knew he was not one to plan for his sons, help his sons in making their own plans. Was there something wistful in their eyes as they stood talking to the boy on the village street? I remember the old merchant spoke of God, but the carpenter and the wheelwright spoke of something else—of the new times coming. “Things are on the march,” they said, “and the new generation will do great things. We older fellows belong to something that is passing. We had our trades and worked at them, but you young fellows have to think of something else. It is going to be a time when money will count big, so save your money, boy. You have energy. I’ve watched you. Now you are a little wild after the girls and going to dances. I saw you going down toward the cemetery with that little [Pg 128] Truscan girl last Wednesday evening. Better cut that all out. Work. Save money. Get into the manufacturing business if you can. The thing now is to get rich, be in the swim. That’s the ticket.”
The older folks in our hometown had really opened up to us. How many times had I been stopped on the street by some upstanding citizen, like Carpenter Vet Howard, Wheelwright Val Voght, or the white-bearded old merchant Thad Hurd? As they talked to me, there was something in their eyes, a light shining just like the lights now shine from the farmhouse among the trees. They knew my dad—and cared about him, too—but they also understood that he wasn’t one to plan for his sons or help them make their own plans. Was there a hint of nostalgia in their eyes as they chatted with me, the boy on the village street? I remember the old merchant mentioning God, but the carpenter and the wheelwright talked about something different—about the new times ahead. “Things are changing,” they said, “and this new generation will achieve great things. We older guys are part of something that’s fading. We had our trades and worked hard at them, but you young ones need to think about something else. It’s going to be a time when money will matter a lot, so save your cash, kid. I've seen your energy. I’ve noticed you’re a bit wild with the girls and going to dances. I saw you heading down toward the cemetery with that little Truscan girl last Wednesday evening. You should really cut that out. Focus on work. Save up. Get into manufacturing if you can. The goal now is to get rich and be part of the action. That’s the way to go.”
The older fellows had said these words to me, somewhat wistfully, as the old house, hidden now in the darkness, seemed to look at me. Was it because the men who said the words were themselves not quite convinced? Did the old American farmhouse among the trees know the end of its life was at hand and was it also calling wistfully to me?
The older guys had said these words to me, a bit sadly, as the old house, now shrouded in darkness, seemed to watch me. Was it because the men who spoke weren’t entirely sure themselves? Did the old American farmhouse among the trees sense that its life was coming to an end, and was it also reaching out to me with longing?
One remains doubtful and, as I now sit writing, I am most doubtful of all the veracity of this impression I am trying to give of myself as a boy standing in the darkness in the shelter of the barn’s eaves.
One remains unsure, and as I sit here writing, I’m quite unsure about the truth of the impression I'm trying to create of myself as a boy standing in the darkness under the barn's eaves.
Did I really want to be the son of some prosperous farmer with the prospect ahead of some day owning land of my own and having a big new house and an automobile? Or did my eyes but turn hungrily toward the older house because it represented to my lonely heart the presence of a mother—who would even go to the length of lying for a fellow?
Did I really want to be the son of a successful farmer, with the possibility of someday owning my own land, having a big new house, and a car? Or were my eyes just longing for the older house because it symbolized to my lonely heart the presence of a mother—who would even go so far as to lie for someone?
I was sure I wanted something I did not have, could never (having my father’s blood in me) achieve.
I was certain I wanted something I didn’t have, something I could never achieve (having my father’s blood in me).
Old houses in which long lives have been lived, in which men and women have lived, suffered and endured together—a people, my own people, come to a day when entire lives are lived in one place, a people who have come to love the streets of old towns, the mellow color of the stone walls of old houses.
Old houses where long lives have been lived, where men and women have experienced joy and hardship together—a community, my own community, reaching a point where entire lives are spent in one place, a community that has grown to love the streets of historic towns, the warm color of the stone walls of old houses.
Did I want these things, even then? Being an American in a new land and facing a new time, did I want even what Europe must have meant [Pg 129] in the hearts of many of the older men who had talked to the boy on the streets of an Ohio town? Was there something in me that, at the moment, went wandering back through the blood of my ancestors, through the blood of the ancestors of the men about me—to England, to Italy, Sweden, Russia, France, Germany—older places, older towns, older impulses?
Did I really want these things, even back then? As an American in a new place and facing a new era, did I want what Europe might have symbolized in the hearts of many older men who spoke to the boy on the streets of an Ohio town? Was there something in me that, at that moment, reached back through my ancestors' blood, through the blood of the ancestors of the men around me—to England, Italy, Sweden, Russia, France, Germany—older places, older towns, older impulses? [Pg 129]
The new house, the farmer was having built, stood clear of the forest and directly faced the dirt road that led into town. It had instinctively run out to meet the coming automobile and the interurban car—and how blatantly it announced itself! “You see I am new, I cost money. I am big. I am bold,” it seemed to be saying.
The new house the farmer was having built stood away from the forest and directly faced the dirt road leading into town. It instinctively stretched out to greet the approaching car and the interurban train—and it announced itself quite boldly! “Look at me, I’m new, I cost money. I’m big. I’m bold,” it seemed to say.
And looking at it I crouched for a moment against the wall of the barn, instinctively afraid.
And as I looked at it, I crouched for a moment against the barn wall, instinctively scared.
Was it because the new house was, for all its size, cheaply constructed and at bottom ugly? Could I have known that even as a boy? To make such a declaration would, I am sure, be giving myself an early critical instinct too much developed. It would be making something of a little monster of the boy crouching there in the darkness by the barn.
Was it because the new house was, despite its size, poorly built and fundamentally ugly? Could I have realized that even as a kid? To say something like that would, I’m sure, mean I had an overly developed critical instinct for someone my age. It would turn the boy huddled there in the darkness by the barn into something of a little monster.
All I can say is that I remember how the boy who, on that evening long ago, went slowly away from the barn through the mud of the barnyard, turned his back on the new house, and stopped for a moment on the bridge leading to the old house, sad and frightened. Before him lay a life of adventures (imagined if not actually experienced), but at the moment he went not toward the future but toward the past. In the older house there was, to be sure, a meal to be had without labor—in this [Pg 130] case a meal prepared at the hands of a kindly faced woman—and there was also a warm bed into which the boy could crawl to indulge all night long undisturbed in his dreams; but there was something else. A sense of security? It may be, after all, just the sense of security, or assurance of warmth, food, and leisure—most of all leisure—the boy wanted on that evening, that, for some reason I cannot explain, marked the end of boyhood for him.
All I can say is that I remember how the boy who, on that evening long ago, walked slowly away from the barn through the muddy yard, turned his back on the new house, and paused for a moment on the bridge leading to the old house, feeling sad and scared. In front of him stretched a life of adventures (imagined if not actually lived), but at that moment, he was not heading toward the future but back to the past. In the older house, there was, of course, a meal to be had without any effort—in this case, a meal prepared by a kindly faced woman—along with a warm bed where he could crawl in and lose himself in his dreams all night long, undisturbed; but there was something else. A sense of security? Maybe, after all, it was just the feeling of security, or the promise of warmth, food, and relaxation—most importantly, relaxation—that the boy craved on that evening, which, for some reason I can’t explain, marked the end of his childhood.
[Pg 131]
[Pg 131]
BOOK TWO
[Pg 133]
[Pg 133]
NOTE I
I WAS rolling kegs of nails out of a great sheet-iron warehouse and onto a long platform, from where they were to be carted by trucks, down a short street, out to a wharf and aboard a ship. The kegs were heavy but they were not large, and as they were rolled down a slight incline to the platform the rolling could be done with the foot. Like practically all modern workmen my body had plenty to do but my mind was idle. There was no planning of the work, no scheming to make the day’s work fit the plan. The truckmen, four heavy and good-natured Swedes, loaded the trucks, and that also required no skill. The kegs were so heavy that a few of them only could be put on a truck at one time and the trucks did not have to be loaded skillfully.
I was rolling kegs of nails out of a big sheet-iron warehouse and onto a long platform, where they were going to be loaded onto trucks, down a short street, out to a wharf and onto a ship. The kegs were heavy but not big, and as they were rolled down a slight incline to the platform, I could do it with my foot. Like almost all modern workers, my body was busy but my mind was idle. There was no planning for the work, no strategizing to make the day’s tasks fit a plan. The truck drivers, four strong and friendly Swedes, loaded the trucks, and that didn't require any special skill. The kegs were so heavy that only a few could fit on a truck at one time, and the trucks didn’t need to be loaded carefully.
As for the nails themselves, they came pouring out of machines somewhere back in the factory at the edge of which the warehouse stood.
As for the nails themselves, they were coming out of machines somewhere in the factory located at the edge of which the warehouse stood.
The warehouse had two platforms, one at which cars were loaded and our own for the loading of trucks, and I could hear voices on the other platform—an oath, a broken laugh—but never did I see the men employed there.
The warehouse had two platforms, one for loading cars and our own for loading trucks, and I could hear voices on the other platform—an oath, a broken laugh—but I never actually saw the men working there.
On our side we had a little life of our own. My single fellow-workman, who all day long ran in and out of the warehouse with me, was a short, stocky young man who on Saturday afternoons played baseball and, in [Pg 134] the winter, hockey. He continually boasted of his prowess in games and when the warehouse foreman was not about—he seldom appeared on our platform—the athlete stopped work to tell one of the teamsters a story.
On our side, we had a small life of our own. My only coworker, who spent the entire day running in and out of the warehouse with me, was a short, stocky young guy who played baseball on Saturday afternoons and hockey in the winter. He was always bragging about his skills in sports, and when the warehouse foreman wasn't around—he rarely showed up on our platform—the athlete would pause his work to share a story with one of the teamsters. [Pg 134]
The stories all concerned one impulse in life, and as I had grown unspeakably weary of hearing them and indeed doubted the man’s potency, he was so insistent about it, I did not stop working but rolled kegs busily. The teamster laughed heavily. “There was a fat woman, hanging out clothes, on a line. Two stray dogs came along,” etc. The story-teller himself laughed as he told his tale and sometimes glared at me because I did not stop to listen. “You ain’t afraid of your job, are you?” he asked, but I did not answer. The horses hitched to the trucks were quiet beasts with broad flanks, and as he talked, telling his tales, they switched their tails slowly back and forth, driving flies away. Then they turned their heads to look at me, running out of the warehouse and down the incline behind one of the flying kegs. “Don’t be in a hurry. You ain’t afraid of your job, are you?” they also seemed to be saying.
The stories all revolved around one theme in life, and since I had grown incredibly tired of hearing them and honestly questioned the guy’s ability, he was so persistent about it that I didn’t stop working and kept rolling kegs busily. The teamster chuckled loudly. “There was a chubby woman hanging out laundry on a line. Two stray dogs came along,” etc. The storyteller himself laughed as he shared his tale and sometimes glared at me because I didn’t pause to listen. “You’re not scared of your job, are you?” he asked, but I didn’t respond. The horses hitched to the trucks were calm animals with broad sides, and as he talked, sharing his stories, they swished their tails slowly back and forth, shooing away flies. Then they turned their heads to look at me as I ran out of the warehouse and down the slope behind one of the rolling kegs. “Don’t rush. You’re not scared of your job, are you?” they also seemed to be suggesting.
My legs and arms, my body had enough to do but my mind was idle. During the year before I had been with race horses, going with them about Ohio to the fairs and race meetings, and then I had given up that life, although I loved it well, because I wanted something from men I did not think I could find at the tracks. The life of the sporting fraternity had color and the horses themselves, beautiful temperamental things, fascinated me, but I hungered for something of my own. At the tracks one received a succession of thrills and was kept on the alert but the [Pg 135] emotions aroused were all vicarious.
My legs and arms were busy, but my mind was idle. The year before, I had been with racehorses, traveling around Ohio to fairs and race meetings, but I had left that life behind, even though I really loved it, because I wanted something from people that I didn’t think I could find at the tracks. The world of sports had its excitement, and the horses themselves, such beautiful and spirited creatures, fascinated me, but I craved something of my own. At the tracks, I experienced a constant stream of thrills and stayed alert, but the emotions stirred up were all indirect. [Pg 135]
“No Wonder,” a gray pacer, was on the track for his morning workout and I, being unoccupied at the moment, leaned over a wooden fence to watch. He had been jogged slowly around the track and now his driver was about to do what we called “setting him down.” His flanks flattened and he seemed to spring into his stride, and what a stride it was! He fairly flew over the ground and the boy by the fence, half asleep but a moment before, was now all attention. He leaned far over the fence to watch and wait. Now the gray was making the upper turn and soon he would be headed directly down the home stretch. By leaning far forward the boy could see just the play of the muscles over the powerful breast. Oh, the flying legs, the distended nostrils, the sobbing whistle of the wind in and out of the great lungs!
“No Wonder,” a gray horse, was on the track for his morning workout, and since I had some free time, I leaned over a wooden fence to watch. He had been jogged slowly around the track, and now his driver was about to do what we called “setting him down.” His flanks flattened, and he seemed to spring into his stride, and what a stride it was! He absolutely flew over the ground, and the boy by the fence, who had been half asleep just a moment before, was now completely focused. He leaned far over the fence to watch and wait. Now the gray was making the upper turn, and soon he would be headed straight down the home stretch. By leaning far forward, the boy could see the play of muscles over the powerful chest. Oh, the flying legs, the flared nostrils, the gasping whistle of the wind rushing in and out of those huge lungs!
But all vicarious after all, all something outside myself. I rubbed the legs of the horses and later walked them slowly for miles, cooling them out after a race or after a workout. Plenty of time to think. Could I, in time, become a Geers, a Snapper Garrison, a Bradley, a Walter Cox, a Murphy? Something whispered to me that I could not. There was required of a successful horseman something I did not have. Either the trotting or the running tracks required a calm, a seemingly indifferent exterior I could not achieve. A track negro with whom I worked had spoken discouraging words. “You’re too excitable, too flighty,” he said. “A horse, that wanted to, would know how to bluff you. You ain’t made to get all they is outen a horse.”
But all of it was vicarious, all something outside of myself. I rubbed the legs of the horses and later walked them slowly for miles, cooling them down after a race or workout. There was plenty of time to think. Could I, over time, become a Geers, a Snapper Garrison, a Bradley, a Walter Cox, a Murphy? Something whispered to me that I couldn’t. There was something required of a successful horseman that I didn’t have. Whether on the trotting or the running tracks, you needed a calm, a seemingly indifferent exterior that I just couldn’t manage. A track worker I was with said some discouraging words. “You’re too excitable, too flighty,” he told me. “A horse that wanted to would know how to bluff you. You’re not cut out to get everything there is out of a horse.”
[Pg 136]
[Pg 136]
Restlessness had taken hold of me and I had left the tracks to go visit certain cities.
Restlessness had settled in, and I had stepped off the tracks to visit some cities.
The work, I found, did not tire me and after the longest and hardest day I went to my room, bathed, took off my sweaty clothes and was a new man, quite refreshed and ready for adventure.
The work, I realized, didn't exhaust me, and after the longest, toughest day, I went to my room, showered, changed out of my sweaty clothes, and felt like a brand new man, completely refreshed and ready for anything.
At the warehouse a kind of understanding between myself and the Swedish teamsters, had already been achieved. When they returned with the empty trucks along the short street between our warehouse and the wharf they stopped at a saloon to have filled the tin pails for beer they carried on the trucks, and the athlete and myself had also provided ourselves with pails which they had filled for us. Aha! the athlete might boast of his prowess on the baseball field or at playing hockey in the winter, but I could outdrink him and in the eyes of the teamsters that made me the better man. How foolish the athlete! Had he declined to have anything to do with drink all might have been well with him, but as the ability to “carry your liquor” was an accepted standard among us he foolishly accepted it. On hot days and in the late afternoon the pails were sent frequently to the saloon and the athlete became worried. “Ah, let’s cut it out,” he said to me coaxingly and the teamsters laughed. “Why, Eddie, we haven’t had any at all yet,” they said; but he insisted, was compelled to insist. Already he staggered a little as he rolled the kegs out of the warehouse and now it was my turn to loiter with the teamsters while he worked. No more story-telling now. “I have a kind of headache to-day,” he said, while the teamsters and I drank six, eight, sometimes ten or twelve of the generous portions of strong beer, flauntingly. As the beer was paid [Pg 137] for from a fund collected from all, we were drinking, in part at least, at the athlete’s expense. I drank and drank, enjoying the discomfiture of my fellow-worker, and something happened inside my head. My legs remained steady and I could roll the kegs more rapidly and accurately than ever—they became like corks and I fairly whirled them along the warehouse floor and down the incline and to the trucks—but at the same time all reality became strangely colored and overlaid with unreality inside myself. Beyond the roadway, in which the trucks stood, there was a vacant lot and this now became the centre of my attention. The vacant lot was in reality filled with rubbish, rusty tin cans, piles of dirt, broken wagon wheels and wornout household utensils, and among all this foul stuff dirty-faced children played and screamed; but now all this unsightliness was wiped off the surface of my vision. I talked to the teamsters and together we laughed at Eddie who kept scolding and saying apologetically that the beer we had been drinking was rotten stuff and gave him a headache, while all the time the most marvelous things took place in the vacant lot before my eyes.
At the warehouse, I had developed a sort of understanding with the Swedish teamsters. When they came back with the empty trucks along the short street between our warehouse and the wharf, they stopped at a bar to fill the tin pails with beer they were carrying on the trucks. The athlete and I also got pails that they filled for us. Aha! The athlete could brag about his skills on the baseball field or playing hockey in the winter, but I could outdrink him, and to the teamsters, that made me the better man. How silly the athlete was! If he had refused to drink, everything might have turned out fine for him, but since being able to “hold your alcohol” was an accepted norm among us, he foolishly went along with it. On hot days and in the late afternoon, the pails were often sent to the bar, and the athlete started to get anxious. “Come on, let’s stop this,” he said to me, trying to be persuasive, and the teamsters laughed. “Why, Eddie, we haven’t had any at all yet,” they said; but he insisted, and he had to insist. He was already swaying a bit as he rolled the kegs out of the warehouse, and now it was my turn to hang out with the teamsters while he worked. No more storytelling now. “I’ve got a bit of a headache today,” he said, while the teamsters and I downed six, eight, sometimes ten or twelve generous servings of strong beer, proudly. Since the beer was paid for from a fund collected from everyone, we were drinking, at least partly, at the athlete’s expense. I drank and drank, relishing the discomfort of my co-worker, and something shifted in my head. My legs felt steady, and I could roll the kegs more quickly and accurately than ever—they felt like corks, and I whirled them across the warehouse floor and down the slope to the trucks—but at the same time, everything around me became oddly tinted and blurred within myself. Beyond the road where the trucks were parked, there was a vacant lot, which now captured my full attention. The lot was actually filled with trash—rusty cans, piles of dirt, broken wagon wheels, and old household items—and amid all this mess, dirt-faced kids played and screamed; but now all that ugliness vanished from my sight. I chatted with the teamsters and we laughed at Eddie, who kept complaining and apologizing, saying that the beer we drank was bad and gave him a headache, while all the while the most amazing things unfolded in the vacant lot before my eyes.
First of all an army of soldiers appeared and marched back and forth directed by a man on a magnificent horse. He was many years older but at the same time looked strangely like myself and wore a long, flowing purple mantle. And also he had a golden helmet on his head while his soldiers, who obeyed his slightest wish, were also richly dressed. First there came a file of men dressed in light green and with bright yellow plumes flying from their helmets, and these were followed by [Pg 138] others dressed in blue, in flaming red and in uniforms combining all these colors.
First of all, an army of soldiers appeared and marched back and forth, led by a man on a magnificent horse. He was many years older but strangely resembled me and wore a long, flowing purple cloak. He also had a golden helmet on his head, while his soldiers, who followed his every command, were richly dressed. First, a line of men in light green with bright yellow feathers waving from their helmets came in, followed by others dressed in blue, bright red, and uniforms that combined all these colors. [Pg 138]
The men marched for what seemed a long time in the vacant lot while I dreamed of becoming a great general, a world conqueror perhaps, but continued meanwhile sending the kegs whirling down the incline. Eddie and I had a race to see who could roll kegs most accurately and rapidly—an hour before he could have beaten me easily, but now I could roll six to his five and land them just so, standing upright on the platform below—while at the same time there was this other life, outside myself, going on before my eyes.
The men marched for what felt like a long time in the empty lot while I imagined becoming a great general, maybe even a world conqueror, but I kept sending the kegs rolling down the hill. Eddie and I had a competition to see who could roll the kegs more accurately and quickly—an hour ago he could have easily beaten me, but now I could roll six to his five and land them perfectly upright on the platform below—while at the same time, there was this other life happening right in front of me.
I raised my eyes and looked at the vacant lot and the soldiers went through quick and accurate manœuvres. Then they marched away along a near-by street and the place became a great canvas over which colors played. The surface was brown, a soft velvety glowing brown, now other colors appeared, reds, golden yellows, deep purples. The colors stole swiftly out across the open place and designs were formed. I will be a great painter, I decided; but now the vacant lot had become a carpet on which walked beautiful men and women. They smiled at me, beckoned to me, and then they paid me no more attention and became absorbed in each other. “Very well; if you prefer to roll kegs, go your own way,” they seemed to be saying, and when they laughed there was something derisive in their laughter.
I lifted my gaze to the empty lot where the soldiers executed quick and precise maneuvers. Then they marched away down a nearby street, and the area transformed into a large canvas filled with vibrant colors. The ground was a soft, velvety brown that began to change as reds, golden yellows, and deep purples emerged. The colors quickly spread across the open space, creating patterns. I thought to myself, I will be a great painter; but now the empty lot had turned into a carpet where beautiful men and women walked. They smiled at me, waved me over, and then completely ignored me, getting lost in each other. “Fine; if you prefer rolling barrels, go ahead,” they seemed to say, and their laughter had an edge of mockery to it.
Was I a little insane? Had I been born a little insane? I rolled the kegs of nails, drank innumerable pails of beer, the sweat rolled from my body and soaked my clothes and presently quitting time came [Pg 139] and I returned along a street with hundreds of other workers—all smelling equally vile—to a rooming house where I lived with many other laborers, Hungarians, Swedes, a few Irish, several Italians and, oddly enough, one English Jew.
Was I a bit crazy? Had I always been a little off? I rolled kegs of nails, drank countless buckets of beer, sweat poured from my body and drenched my clothes, and eventually, quitting time arrived [Pg 139] and I walked back down a street with hundreds of other workers—all smelling just as bad—to a boarding house where I lived with many other laborers: Hungarians, Swedes, a few Irish, several Italians, and oddly enough, one English Jew.
The house was run by a worried-looking woman of forty who had one daughter, a young woman of nineteen, who had taken a kind of fancy to me. Her father, a laborer like myself, had deserted her mother when the child was but four or five years old and had never been seen again. As for the daughter, she had a strong body, clear blue eyes, thick lips and a large nose, and like myself she had Italian blood in her veins, her father having been an Italian.
The house was managed by a worried-looking woman in her forties who had one daughter, a nineteen-year-old who had developed a bit of a crush on me. Her father, a laborer like me, had left her mother when she was just four or five years old and was never heard from again. As for the daughter, she was strong, had clear blue eyes, full lips, and a prominent nose, and like me, she had Italian heritage, since her father was Italian.
Toward her mother she was loyal, staying in the house and doing the work of a chambermaid for very little pay when she might have made a great deal more money at something else; but her loyalty was tempered by a sturdy kind of independence that nothing could shake. During the spring, before I came to live at the house, she had become engaged to marry a young sailor, an engineer’s assistant on a lake boat, but, although later I spoke to her of the danger, she did not let the fact of her engagement to another interfere with her relationship with me.
Toward her mother, she was loyal, staying home and doing the work of a maid for very little pay when she could have made a lot more money doing something else; however, her loyalty was balanced by a strong sense of independence that nothing could change. During the spring, before I moved into the house, she got engaged to marry a young sailor, an engineer’s assistant on a lake boat, but even though I later warned her about the risks, she didn’t let her engagement to someone else affect her relationship with me.
Our own relationship is a little hard to explain. When I came from the warehouse and climbed the stairs to my room I found her there at work, making my bed, which had been allowed to air all day, or changing the sheets. The sheets were changed almost daily and her mother constantly scolded about the matter. “If he wants clean sheets every day let him pay for them,” the mother said, but the daughter paid no attention, [Pg 140] and indeed I was no doubt responsible for more than one quarrel between mother and daughter. Among laboring people a girl engaged is taboo and the other men in the house thought I was doing an unfair thing to her absent lover. Whether or not he knew what was going on I never found out.
Our relationship is a bit hard to explain. When I came from the warehouse and climbed the stairs to my room, I found her there at work, making my bed, which had been airing out all day, or changing the sheets. The sheets were changed almost every day, and her mother was always complaining about it. “If he wants clean sheets every day, let him pay for them,” the mother said, but the daughter ignored her, and I was definitely responsible for more than one argument between them. Among working-class people, a girl with a fiancé is off-limits, and the other men in the house thought I was treating her absent boyfriend unfairly. I never found out whether he knew what was happening. [Pg 140]
What was going on? I came into the house, climbed the stairs and found her at work in my room. At the foot of the stairs I had met her mother, who had scowled at me, and now the other workers, trooping in, attempted to tease. She kept on working and did not look at me and I went to stand by a window that looked down into the street. “Which one is she going to marry?—that’s what I want to know,” one of the workers on the floor below called to another. She looked up at me and something I saw in her eyes made me bold. “Don’t mind them,” I said. “What makes you think I do?” she replied. I was glad none of the men who worked at our warehouse roomed at the house. “They would be shouting, laughing and going on about it all day,” I thought.
What was happening? I walked into the house, climbed the stairs, and found her working in my room. At the bottom of the stairs, I had run into her mother, who frowned at me, and now the other workers, coming in, tried to tease. She kept working and didn’t look at me, so I stood by a window that overlooked the street. “Which one is she going to marry?—that’s what I want to know,” one of the workers on the floor below called to another. She glanced up at me and something in her eyes gave me courage. “Don’t worry about them,” I said. “What makes you think I do?” she shot back. I was relieved that none of the guys who worked at our warehouse lived in the house. “They would be shouting, laughing, and carrying on about it all day,” I thought.
The young woman—her name was Nora—talked to me in whispers as she did the work in the room, or she listened and I talked. The minutes passed and we stayed on together, looking at each other, whispering, laughing at each other. In the house all, including the mother, were convinced I was working to bring about Nora’s ruin and the mother wanted to order me out of the house but did not dare. Once as I stood in the hallway outside my door late at night I had overheard the two women talking in the kitchen of the house. “If you mention the matter again I shall [Pg 141] walk out of the house and never come back.”
The young woman—her name was Nora—talked to me in hushed tones while she worked in the room, or she listened while I spoke. Time flew by, and we stayed together, looking at each other, whispering, and laughing. Everyone in the house, including her mother, believed I was trying to ruin Nora, and her mother wanted to kick me out but didn't have the courage. One night, as I stood in the hallway outside my door late, I overheard the two women talking in the kitchen. “If you bring this up again, I’ll walk out of this house and never come back.”
Occasionally in the evening Nora and I walked along the street, past the warehouse where I was employed, and out upon the docks, where we sat together looking into the darkness and once—but I will not tell you what happened upon that occasion.
Occasionally in the evening, Nora and I walked along the street, past the warehouse where I worked, and out to the docks, where we sat together looking into the darkness and once—but I won’t share what happened that time.
First of all I will tell you of how the relationship of Nora and myself began. It may be that the bond between us was brought into existence by the beer I drank at the warehouse in the late afternoons. One evening, when I had first come to the house, I came home, after drinking heavily, and it was then Nora and I had our first intimate conversation.
First of all, let me tell you how my relationship with Nora started. It might have been that the connection between us was created by the beer I had at the warehouse in the late afternoons. One evening, when I had just arrived at the house, I came home after drinking a lot, and that’s when Nora and I had our first deep conversation.
I had come into the house and climbed the three flights of stairs to my room, thinking of the vacant lot covered with the soft glowing carpet and of the beautiful men and women walking thereon, and when I got to my room it seemed unspeakably shabby. No doubt I was drunk. In any event there was Nora at work and it was my opportunity. For what? I did not quite know, but there was something I knew I wanted from Nora and the beer drinking had made me bold. I had a sudden conviction that my boldness would overawe her.
I had entered the house and climbed the three flights of stairs to my room, thinking about the empty lot covered in a soft, glowing carpet and the beautiful men and women walking on it. When I got to my room, it felt incredibly shabby. I was probably drunk. Regardless, there was Nora working, and it was my chance. For what? I wasn’t entirely sure, but I knew I wanted something from Nora, and the beer had made me feel brave. I suddenly believed that my courage would impress her.
And there was something else too. Although I was but a young man I had already worked in factories in several cities and had lived in too many shabby rooms in shabby houses in factory streets. The outer surface of my life was too violently uncouth, too persistently uncouth. Well enough for Walt Whitman, Carl Sandburg and others to sing of the strength and fineness of laboring men, making heroes of them, but already the democratic dream had faded and laborers were not my [Pg 142] heroes. I was born fussy, liked cleanness and orderliness about me and had already been thrown too much into the midst of shiftlessness. The socialists and communists I had seen and heard talk nearly all struck me as men who had no sense of life at all. They were so likely to be dry intellectual sterile men. Already I had begun asking myself the questions I have been asking myself ever since. “Does no man love another man? Why does not some man arise who wants the man working next to him to work in the midst of order? Can a man and a woman love each other when they live in an ugly house in an ugly street? Why do working men and women so often seem perversely unclean and disorderly in their houses? Why do not factory owners realize that, although they build large, well-lighted factories, they will accomplish nothing until they realize the need of order and cleanliness in thinking and feeling also?” I had come into the midst of men with a clean strong body, my mother had been one who would have fought to the death for order and cleanliness about her and her sons. Was it not apparent that something had already happened to the democracy on which Whitman had counted so much? (I had not heard of Whitman then. My thoughts were my own. Perhaps I had better be more simple in speaking of them.)
And there was something else too. Even though I was still a young man, I had already worked in factories across several cities and had lived in too many shabby rooms in rundown houses on factory streets. The surface of my life felt too raw and rough. It was fine for Walt Whitman, Carl Sandburg, and others to sing about the strength and nobility of working men, turning them into heroes, but the democratic dream had faded, and laborers weren’t my heroes anymore. I was born particular, I liked cleanliness and order around me, and I had already been thrown too often into a world of carelessness. The socialists and communists I had seen and heard talk all struck me as men who had no real understanding of life. They often seemed like dry, intellectual, sterile individuals. I had already begun asking myself the questions I’ve been grappling with ever since. “Does no man love another man? Why doesn’t someone rise up who wants the person working next to him to work in a place that’s organized? Can a man and a woman truly love each other while living in an ugly house on an ugly street? Why do working men and women often seem oddly unclean and chaotic in their homes? Why don’t factory owners understand that, even if they build large, well-lit factories, nothing will change until they recognize the importance of order and cleanliness in thoughts and feelings too?” I had come among men with a clean, strong body; my mother had been someone who would’ve fought to the death for order and cleanliness for herself and her children. Wasn’t it clear that something had already happened to the democracy Whitman had placed so much hope in? (I hadn’t heard of Whitman back then. My thoughts were my own. Maybe I should be simpler in expressing them.)
I had come out of a messy workplace along a messy street to a messy room and did not like it and within me was the beer that made me bold.
I had walked out of a chaotic job down a disorganized street to a cluttered room and I wasn’t happy about it, and inside me was the beer that gave me courage.
And there were the visions I had seen in the vacant lot. It may be that I thought then that all my fellows lived as I did, having quite [Pg 143] conscious and separate inner and outer lives going on in the same body that they were trying to bring into accord. As for myself I saw visions, had from boyhood been seeing visions. Moments of extreme exaltation were followed by times of terrible depression. Were all people really like that? The visions were sometimes stronger than the reality of life about me. Might it not be that they were the reality, that they existed rather than myself—that is to say, rather than my physical self and the physical fact of the men and women among whom I then worked and lived, rather than the physical fact of the ugly rooms in ugly houses in ugly streets?
And there were the visions I had seen in the empty lot. Maybe I thought back then that everyone else lived like I did, with their own separate inner and outer lives happening in the same body, trying to find a balance. As for me, I saw visions; I'd been seeing them since I was a boy. Moments of intense joy were often followed by deep sadness. Were other people really like that? Sometimes the visions felt more real than the life around me. Could it be that they were the real deal, that they existed more than I did—that is, more than my physical self and the physical reality of the men and women I worked and lived with, more than the actual existence of the grim rooms in grim houses on grim streets?
Was there a consciousness of something wrong, a consciousness we all had and were ashamed of?
Was there a sense that something was off, a feeling we all shared and were embarrassed about?
There was the vacant lot in which an hour before I had seen the marching soldiers and the beautifully gowned men and women walking about. Why might that not exist as really as the half-drunken teamsters, myself, the irritated athlete and the piles of unsightly rubbish?
There was the empty lot where just an hour before, I had watched the marching soldiers and elegantly dressed men and women stroll around. Why couldn't that be as real as the half-drunk truck drivers, me, the annoyed athlete, and the heaps of ugly garbage?
Perhaps it did exist in all of us. Perhaps the others saw what I saw. At that time I had a great deal of faith in a belief of my own that there existed a kind of secret and well-nigh universal conspiracy to insist on ugliness. “It’s just a kind of boyish trick we’re up to, myself and the others,” I sometimes told myself, and there were times when I became almost convinced that if I just went suddenly up behind any man or any woman and said “boo” he or she would come out of it and I would come out of it, and we would march off arm in arm laughing at ourselves and everyone else and having really quite a wonderful time.
Maybe it was something that existed in all of us. Maybe others felt what I felt. Back then, I really believed in the idea that there was a kind of secret, almost universal conspiracy pushing for ugliness. “It’s just a childish thing we’re all doing,” I sometimes told myself, and there were moments when I almost believed that if I snuck up behind any guy or girl and said “boo,” they would snap out of it, I would snap out of it, and we’d walk off together, laughing at ourselves and everyone else, having a genuinely great time.
[Pg 144]
[Pg 144]
I had decided to try to say “boo” to Nora, I fancy. There I was in the room with her (I had been in the house about three days and had only seen her and heard her name spoken once before, when she was sweeping out the hallway by my door), and now she was throwing the covers back over the soiled sheets on my bed and there was dust on the window panes and streaks along the wall paper, while the floor of the room had been given but two or three careless whisks with a broom. Nora was making the bed and back of her head, as she leaned over to do the job, there was a picture on the wall, a picture of five or six water lilies lying on a table. There was a streak of dust down across the white face of the lilies and at that moment a cloud of dust, stirred up by the heavy trucks now going homeward along the street, floated just outside the window.
I had decided to try to say “boo” to Nora, I guess. There I was in the room with her (I had been in the house for about three days and had only seen her and heard her name once before, when she was sweeping the hallway by my door), and now she was pulling the covers back over the dirty sheets on my bed, and there was dust on the window panes and streaks on the wallpaper, while the floor of the room had only been swept a couple of times with a broom. Nora was making the bed, and behind her head, as she leaned over to do the job, there was a picture on the wall, a picture of five or six water lilies sitting on a table. There was a streak of dust across the white face of the lilies, and at that moment, a cloud of dust, stirred up by the heavy trucks now heading home along the street, floated just outside the window.
“Well, Miss Nora,” I suddenly said after I had been standing in the room for a moment, silently and boldly staring at her. I began advancing toward her and no doubt my eyes were shining with enthusiasm. I dare say I was pretty drunk but I am sure I walked steadily. “Well,” I cried in a loud voice, “what are you up to there?”
“Well, Miss Nora,” I suddenly said after I'd been standing in the room for a moment, silently and boldly staring at her. I started moving toward her, and no doubt my eyes were shining with excitement. I’d say I was pretty drunk, but I’m sure I walked straight. “Well,” I shouted in a loud voice, “what are you up to there?”
She turned to stare at me and I went on, still speaking rapidly, with a kind of hurried nervous stuttering manner brought on by the liquor and a fear that if I stopped speaking I should not be able to start again. “I refer to the bed,” I said, going up close to her and pointing at it. “You see, don’t you, that the sheets you are putting on the bed are soiled?” I pounded on my own chest, much in the manner of the primitive hero in Mr. Eugene O’Neill’s play “The Hairy Ape”; and no doubt had I [Pg 145] at that time seen the play I might at that moment have begun saying in hoarse, throaty tones: “I belong. I belong.”
She turned to look at me, and I kept talking quickly, with a kind of anxious stuttering brought on by the alcohol and the fear that if I stopped, I wouldn’t be able to start again. “I’m talking about the bed,” I said, stepping closer to her and pointing at it. “You see that the sheets you’re putting on the bed are dirty, right?” I thumped my chest, much like the primitive hero in Eugene O’Neill’s play “The Hairy Ape”; and if I had seen the play at that time, I might have started shouting in a rough voice: “I belong. I belong.” [Pg 145]
I did not say anything of the sort because I am not primitive and had not then seen the play, nor did I whine or complain because of the soiled sheets on the bed. I talked, I am afraid, rather like a Napoleon or a Tamerlane to poor Nora who was already appalled by my sudden descent upon her.
I didn't say anything like that because I'm not naive and hadn't seen the play yet. I also didn't whine or complain about the dirty sheets on the bed. I probably spoke more like Napoleon or Tamerlane to poor Nora, who was already shocked by my unexpected visit.
Pounding on my chest and descending upon her I made a speech something in the following manner: “My dear Nora, you are a woman and no doubt a virgin, but you may not always be one. Have hopes. Some day a man will come along who will admire your person and will ask your hand in marriage.” I looked at her somewhat critically. “You will not refuse him,” I declared, with the air of a soothsayer delivering himself of a prophecy. “You will accept the marriage state, Nora, partly because you are bored, partly because you will look upon the opportunity as a means of escape from your present way of life, and partly because you will find within yourself an instinct telling you that any kind of marriage will bring you something you want.”
Pounding on my chest and leaning down to her, I delivered a speech something like this: “My dear Nora, you are a woman and, without a doubt, a virgin, but that might not always be the case. Hold onto hope. One day, a man will come along who will admire you and ask for your hand in marriage.” I looked at her somewhat critically. “You won’t refuse him,” I declared, like a fortune teller making a prediction. “You will embrace marriage, Nora, partly because you’re bored, partly because you’ll see it as a way to escape your current life, and partly because you’ll feel an instinct within you that tells you any kind of marriage will give you something you desire.”
“But we will not discuss you. We will discuss myself,” I declared. I continued pounding myself on the chest and so great was my momentary enthusiasm that later my breast was somewhat sore. “Nora, woman,” I said, “look at me! You cannot see my body and I dare say if I did not have on these soiled clothes your maidenly modesty would compel you to run out of this room. But do not run. I do not intend to take off my clothes.”
“But we won't talk about you. We'll talk about me,” I declared. I kept hitting my chest, and my excitement was so intense that later my chest was a bit sore. “Nora, listen,” I said, “look at me! You can't see my body, and I bet if I weren't in these dirty clothes, your modesty would make you want to leave this room. But don’t leave. I don’t plan to take off my clothes.”
[Pg 146]
[Pg 146]
“Very well, we will not speak any more of my body,” I said in a loud voice, wishing to reassure her since I could see she was becoming a little alarmed. No doubt she thought me insane. She had grown slightly pale and had stepped away from me so that her back was against the wall and the soiled water lilies were just above her head. “I am not speaking of my own body in relation to your body, do not get that entirely feminine notion into your head,” I explained. “I am speaking of my body in relation to yonder soiled sheets.”
“Alright, we won't talk about my body anymore,” I said loudly, trying to comfort her since I could see she was getting a bit worried. She probably thought I was crazy. She had paled a little and had stepped back until her back was against the wall, with the dirty water lilies just above her head. “I'm not talking about my body in relation to yours, so don’t get that entirely feminine idea in your head,” I clarified. “I'm talking about my body in relation to those dirty sheets over there.”
And now I pointed toward the bed and stopped pounding my own chest which was becoming sore. Stepping quite close to her, so close in fact that my face was within a few inches of her own, I put one hand against the wall and tried to quiet my own loud, blustering tones, and to assume a tone of great ease, or rather, of nonchalance. I took a cigarette from my pocket and succeeded in lighting it without burning my fingers, a feat requiring a good deal of concentration under the circumstances. The truth is, that I had bethought myself that in a moment more Nora would either hit me with the broom, that stood close at her hand, or would run out of the room thinking me insane.
And now I pointed to the bed and stopped banging my own chest, which was getting sore. I stepped closer to her, so close that my face was just a few inches from hers. I put one hand against the wall and tried to lower my loud, blustery voice to sound more relaxed, or rather, indifferent. I took a cigarette from my pocket and managed to light it without burning my fingers, which took a good amount of focus given the situation. The truth is, I realized that at any moment, Nora might either hit me with the broom that was right next to her or run out of the room, thinking I was crazy.
As I had a notion I wanted to put over to her while I could and while my beer-born courage lasted I now tried to be more at my ease. A little smile began to play about the corners of my mouth and I thought of myself at the moment as a diplomat—not an American or an English diplomat, let me say, but an Italian diplomat of, we will suppose, the sixteenth century.
As I had an idea I wanted to share with her while I could and while my beer-fueled courage lasted, I tried to relax. A small smile began to form at the corners of my mouth, and I imagined myself as a diplomat—not an American or English diplomat, but an Italian diplomat from, let's say, the sixteenth century.
In as light and bantering a tone as I could assume under the [Pg 147] circumstances—my task was the more difficult because a workman, hearing my speech from a neighboring room, had come along the hallway and was now standing at the door with a look of astonishment on his face—assuming, I say, a light bantering tone, I now rapidly explained to Nora the notion that had been in my head when I interrupted her bed-making. She had been about to reach for the broom and with it to drive me from the room, but now the words streaming from my lips caught and held her attention. With a fluency in words that never comes to me when I am writing and that only comes to my lips when I am slightly under the influence of strong drink I explained myself. To the astonished young woman I compared the bed she had been making to a suit of clothes I might be about to put on my body after I had bathed the aforesaid body. Talking rapidly and enunciating my words very distinctly so she should lose nothing of my discourse (and I might here explain to you, my readers, that in ordinary conversation I am rather given to the slovenly dragging of words so common to the people of the Middle West. We, you must know, do not say “feah,” as a New Englander might, nor “fear,” as an Italian-American might, that is to say, pronouncing distinctly the “r,” but “feehr”), going on very clearly and distinctly I told Nora she was not to judge me by the smell that came from my clothes, that under my clothes lived a body I was about to wash clean as soon as she had finished her work in the room and had gone away. Leaving both her and the workman outside the door standing and staring at me I walked to the window and threw it up. “The cloud of dust you see floating up from the street below,” I explained, [Pg 148] “does not represent all the elements of the atmosphere even in an American industrial city.” I then tried, as best I could, to explain to my limited audience that air, normally, might be a clean thing to be cleanly breathed into the lungs and that a man like myself, although he might wear dirty, soiled clothes in order to earn money to keep his body alive might also at the same time have a certain feeling of pride and joy in his body and want clean sheets to put it between when he laid it down to sleep at night.
In as light and playful a tone as I could manage given the situation—my job was made even harder because a worker, hearing me from a nearby room, had walked down the hall and was now standing at the door looking surprised—I quickly explained to Nora the idea that had come to me when I interrupted her making the bed. She had been about to grab the broom and shoo me out, but now my words grabbed her attention. With a fluency that only flows when I’ve had a bit to drink, I expressed myself. I compared the bed she was making to a suit of clothes I might put on after washing myself. Speaking quickly and making sure to articulate my words clearly so she wouldn't miss any of what I was saying (and let me clarify for you, my readers, that in regular conversation I tend to mumble in a way that’s typical for people from the Midwest. We don’t say “feah,” like someone from New England, nor “fear,” like an Italian-American who pronounces the “r” clearly, but “feehr”), I continued to explain to Nora that she shouldn’t judge me by the smell of my clothes, because underneath them was a body I intended to clean as soon as she finished her work and left the room. Leaving both her and the worker standing outside the door and staring at me, I walked over to the window and opened it. “The cloud of dust you see floating up from the street below,” I said, “does not represent all the elements in the air, even in an American industrial city.” I then tried, as best I could, to explain to my small audience that air is normally something clean that can be breathed into the lungs and that a man like me, even though he might wear dirty clothes to earn a living, can still feel pride and joy in his body and want clean sheets to sleep between at night.
To Nora, standing there and staring at me, half in wonder, half in anger, I tried to explain a little my habit of having visions and sketched for her, as rapidly and briefly as I could, the marvelous sights I had in fancy seen in the vacant lot near the warehouse in the late afternoon, and also I preached her a kind of sermon, not, I assure you, with the object of changing her own character but rather to carry out the plan that had formed in my rather befuddled brain, a plan for bullying her—that is to say of bending her to my own purpose if possible.
To Nora, who stood there staring at me with a mix of wonder and anger, I tried to explain a bit about my habit of having visions. I quickly sketched for her the incredible sights I had imagined in the empty lot by the warehouse in the late afternoon. I also gave her a sort of sermon, not to change who she was, but to execute the idea that had formed in my somewhat confused mind—a plan to manipulate her, that is, to get her to do what I wanted if I could.
Being by nature a rather shrewd man, however, I did not put the case to her directly but pursuing the method common to preachers who always try to conceal their own wants under the mask of the common good, so that a man who is apparently always trying to get others into Heaven is really only afraid he will not manage to get there himself, pursuing valiantly this method, I pointed to the soiled water lilies above Nora’s head. An inspiration seized me. At that time, you must remember, I did know that Nora was engaged to be married to an engineer’s assistant on a [Pg 149] lake steamer. I chanced at that moment to see the picture of the water lilies and thought of the little quiet back waters of Sandusky Bay where as a boy I had sometimes gone fishing with a certain charming old country doctor who for a time had employed me, ostensibly as a stable boy but really as a companion on long country drives. The old doctor had been a talkative soul and loved to speculate on life and its purposes and we often went fishing on summer afternoons and evenings, not so much for the purpose of catching fish as to give the doctor the opportunity to sit in a boat on the bank of some stream and pour wisdom into my willing young ears.
Being a pretty shrewd guy by nature, I didn’t bring the issue up with her directly. Instead, I used the approach that preachers often take, hiding their own needs behind the facade of wanting the greater good. It’s like a person who seems focused on getting others into Heaven is really just worried they won’t get there themselves. With this strategy in mind, I pointed to the dirty water lilies above Nora’s head. An idea struck me. At that time, you should know, I was aware that Nora was engaged to marry an engineer’s assistant on a [Pg 149] lake steamer. Just then, I caught sight of the water lilies and remembered the quiet backwaters of Sandusky Bay, where I used to go fishing as a boy with a lovely old country doctor who had, for a while, hired me as a stable boy but really just needed a companion for long drives in the countryside. The old doctor was quite chatty and loved to ponder life and its meanings, and we often went fishing on summer afternoons and evenings, not so much to catch fish but to give him the chance to sit in a boat by a stream and share his wisdom with my eager young ears.
And so there I was, in the presence of Nora and that wondering workman, standing with one arm raised and pointing at the cheap chromo on the wall and being as much the actor as I could. Even though my brain was somewhat befuddled I was watching Nora, waiting and hoping that something I might say would really arrest her attention, and now I thought, as I have said, of quiet sweet back waters of bays and rivers, of suns going down in clean evening skies, of my own white bare feet dangling in warm pellucid waters.
And there I was, with Nora and that curious workman, standing with one arm raised, pointing at the cheap print on the wall, trying my hardest to be impressive. Even though my mind was a bit foggy, I was focusing on Nora, waiting and hoping that something I said would really grab her attention. Now I thought, as I mentioned, about the calm, sweet backwaters of bays and rivers, about sunsets in clear evening skies, about my own bare white feet hanging in warm, clear waters.
To Nora I said the following words, quite without definite thought, as they came flowing from my lips: “I do not know you, young woman, and have never until this moment thought of you and your life but I’ll tell you this: the time will come when you will marry a man who now sails on the seas. Even at this moment he is standing on the deck of a boat and thinking of you, and the air about him is not like this air you and I for our sins are compelled to breathe.”
To Nora, I said the following words, without really thinking, as they just came out: “I don’t know you, young woman, and I’ve never thought about you and your life until now, but I’ll tell you this: there will come a time when you’ll marry a man who is currently out at sea. Even right now, he’s standing on the deck of a boat and thinking about you, and the air around him isn’t like this air you and I have to breathe.”
[Pg 150]
[Pg 150]
“Ah ha!” I cried, seeing by a look in Nora’s eyes that my chance shot had hit home and shrewdly following up the advantage that gave me. “Ah ha!” I cried; “let us think and speak of the life of a sailor. He is in the presence of the clean sea. God has made clean the scene upon which his eyes rest. At night he lies down in a clean bunk. Nothing about him is as it is about us. There is no foul air, no dirty streaks on wall paper, no unclean sheets, no unclean beds.”
“Ah ha!” I exclaimed, noticing by the look in Nora’s eyes that my chance comment had struck a chord, and I quickly took advantage of that. “Ah ha!” I said; “let’s think and talk about the life of a sailor. He’s surrounded by the clear sea. God has made the view he sees pristine. At night, he lies down in a clean bunk. Nothing about his life is like ours. There’s no stuffy air, no dirty marks on wallpaper, no filthy sheets, no unclean beds.”
“Your young sailor lies in bed at night and his body is clean, as I dare say also is his mind. He thinks of his sweetheart on shore and of necessity, do you see, all about him is so clean, he must think of her as one who in her soul is clean.”
“Your young sailor lies in bed at night, his body clean and, I would say, his mind as well. He thinks of his sweetheart back on shore, and because everything around him is so clean, he can't help but imagine her as someone who is pure in her soul.”
And now to my readers I must stop a moment to explain that I speak at length in this way of my conversation with Nora, my triumph with her, as I may I think legitimately call it, because it was a purely literary feat and I am writing, as you know, of the life of a literary man. I had never, when all this occurred, been at sea nor had I ever been aboard a ship, but I had, to be sure, read books and stories regarding ships and the conduct of sailors aboard ships, and in my boyhood I had known a man who was once mate on a river boat on the Mississippi River. He to be sure had spoken more often of the gaudiness rather than the cleanliness of the boats on which he had worked but, as I have said, I was being as literary as I could.
And now, I need to take a moment to explain to my readers why I've gone on at length about my conversation with Nora, which I can legitimately call a triumph because it was a purely literary achievement, and I'm writing, as you know, about the life of a literary man. At the time all this happened, I had never been at sea or aboard a ship, but I had certainly read books and stories about ships and how sailors behave on them. In my childhood, I knew a man who had been a mate on a riverboat on the Mississippi River. He often talked more about the flashy side of the boats he worked on rather than their cleanliness, but as I mentioned, I was trying to be as literary as I could.
And realizing now that I had by good fortune stumbled upon the right note I went on elaborating the romantic side of the life of the sailor aboard ship, touching upon the hopes and dreams of such a man and [Pg 151] pointing out to Nora that it was a great mistake on her part not to have one room in the great house of so many rooms, upon the care of which she could pour some of the natural housewifely qualities with which her nature was, I was certain, so richly endowed.
And now realizing that I had luckily found the right note, I continued to elaborate on the romantic aspects of a sailor's life at sea, discussing the hopes and dreams of such a man and [Pg 151] pointing out to Nora that it was a big mistake not to have one room in the huge house filled with so many rooms, where she could channel some of the natural homemaking skills that I was sure her nature was richly endowed with.
I saw, you understand, that I had her but was careful not to press my advantage too far. And then, too, I had begun to like her, as all literary men like inordinately those who take seriously their outpourings.
I realized, you see, that I had her but was cautious not to take advantage of the situation too much. Plus, I had started to like her, just like all writers have a tendency to really appreciate those who genuinely value their work.
And so I now quickly drove a bargain with Nora. Like herself, I explained, I was lonely and wanting companionship. Strange thoughts and fancies came to me that I would like to tell to another. “We will have a friendship,” I exclaimed enthusiastically. “In the evenings we will walk about together. I will tell you of the strange notions that come into my head and of the marvelous adventures that sometimes occur to me in the life of my fancy. I will do that and you—well, you see, you will take extra good care of my room. You will lavish upon it some of the affection natural to your nature, thinking as you do so, not of me but of your sailor man at sea, and of the time to come when you may make a clean warm nest for him ashore.”
And so I quickly struck up a deal with Nora. Like her, I was lonely and looking for company. I was having some strange thoughts and ideas that I wanted to share with someone. “Let’s be friends,” I said excitedly. “In the evenings, we can go for walks together. I’ll tell you about the odd thoughts that pop into my mind and the amazing adventures I imagine in my mind. I’ll do that, and you—well, you’ll take really good care of my room. You’ll show it some of the affection that comes naturally to you, thinking, as you do that, not of me but of your sailor man at sea, and of the future when you can make a cozy, warm nest for him on land.”
“Poor man,” I said, “you must remember that he is buffeted often by storms, often his life is in danger and often too he is in strange ports where but for his constancy to the thoughts of you, he might get into almost any kind of a muddle with some other woman.”
“Poor guy,” I said, “you have to remember that he’s often tossed around by storms, his life is frequently at risk, and he’s often in unfamiliar places where, if it weren’t for his loyalty to you, he could easily get into all sorts of trouble with another woman.”
I had succeeded, you see, by a purely literary trick, in getting myself into Nora’s consciousness as in some way connected with her absent lover.
I had managed, you see, through a purely literary trick, to get into Nora’s mind as somehow linked to her missing lover.
“But I must not press the matter too far,” I thought, and, stepping [Pg 152] back, stood smiling at her as genially as I could.
“But I shouldn’t push this too far,” I thought, and, stepping [Pg 152] back, I stood smiling at her as warmly as I could.
And then another thought came. “There will be a kind of wrath in her soul at this moment and I must direct it quickly toward someone other than myself.” The workman who, attracted by my loud words at the beginning of my discourse, had come along the hallway and who now stood at the door of my room looking in, did not speak English very well and I was sure had not understood much of my long speech.
And then another thought hit me. “She’s going to be really upset right now, and I need to redirect that anger to someone other than myself.” The worker who had been drawn in by my loud voice at the start of my talk had come down the hallway and was now standing at my door looking in. He didn’t speak English very well, and I was sure he hadn’t understood much of my long speech.
Going to the open window I now said, over my shoulder: “I am silly saying all these things to you, Nora, but I have been lonesome and to tell the truth I am a little drunk. Forgive me. You know yourself that the other men in this house are stupid fellows and do not care at all in what shape their rooms are kept. They work like dogs and sleep like dogs and do not have thoughts and dreams as you do and as I and your sailor man do.”
Going to the open window, I said over my shoulder, “I know it’s silly to say all this to you, Nora, but I’ve been feeling lonely, and to be honest, I’ve had a bit to drink. Please forgive me. You know that the other guys in this house are clueless and don’t care at all about how their rooms look. They work hard and sleep hard and don’t have thoughts or dreams like you do, like I do, and like your sailor does.”
“There is that man listening to our little conversation, there now, by the door,” I said straightening up and pointing; but my speech got no further. As I had conjectured within myself, Nora had for some minutes been anxious to hit someone with the broom that stood close at hand and she now, suddenly and quite unreasonably, decided to hit the workman. Grabbing the broom in her hand she flew at him screaming with wrath. “Can’t we have a little talk, my friend and I, without your sticking in your nose?” she cried, and the workman fled down the hallway with Nora at his heels, striking vigorously at him with the broom.
“There’s that guy eavesdropping on our little chat right by the door,” I said as I straightened up and pointed; but I couldn't get any further. Just as I suspected, Nora had been itching to hit someone with the broom that was nearby, and out of nowhere, she decided to go after the worker. She grabbed the broom and charged at him, shouting in anger. “Can’t my friend and I have a little conversation without you sticking your nose in?” she yelled, and the worker ran down the hallway with Nora chasing after him, swinging the broom at him.
[Pg 153]
[Pg 153]
NOTE II
ONE who like myself could not, because of circumstances, spend the years of his youth in the schools must of necessity turn to books and to the men and women directly about him; upon these he must depend for his knowledge of life and to these I had turned. What a life the people of the books led! They were for the most part such respectable people, with problems I did not have at all or they were such keen and brainy villains as I could never hope to become. Being a Nero a Jesse James or a Napoleon I often thought would suit me first rate but I could not see how I was going to make it. In the first place I never could shoot very well, I hadn’t the courage to kill people I did not like and to steal on any grand scale involved the risk of prison—or at least I then thought it did. I later found that only petty thieves were in danger but at that time, long before I myself became a schemer in business, I knew only petty thieves. At the race tracks some of my friends were always being marched off to prison or I heard of some man I had known being nabbed and taken away and prisons frightened me. I remembered vividly a night of my boyhood and myself going through an alleyway and past our town jail and the white face of a man staring out at me from behind iron bars. “Hey kid, get me an iron bar or a hammer and [Pg 154] pass it up here to me and I’ll give you a quarter,” he said in harsh throaty tones but I was frightened at the sight of his white drawn face in the moonlight and at the thoughts of the grim silent place in which he stood. A murderer, a crazed farmer who had killed his wife and hired man with an ax, had once been lodged in the jail and I had got the notion into my head that all men who passed into its doors were terrible and dangerous. I ran quickly away and got out of the alleyway into a lighted street and always afterward I remembered that moment, the stars in the sky, the moonlight shining on the faces of buildings, the quick sharp laughter of a girl somewhere in the darkness on the porch of a house, the sound of a horse’s hoofs in a roadway, all the sweet sounds of free men and women walking about. I wanted to spend my life walking about and looking at things, listening to words, to the sound of winds blowing through trees, smelling life sweet and alive, not put away somewhere in a dark ill-smelling place. Once later when I was working at Columbus, Ohio, I went with a fellow—he had a sickening kind of curiosity about such places and kept urging and urging—to the state prison on visiting day. It was at the hour when the prisoners take exercise and many of them were in a large open place between high walls, on which guards with guns walked up and down. I looked once and then closed my eyes and during the rest of our pilgrimage through the place I carefully avoided looking into the prisoners’ faces or into the cells before which we stopped but looked down instead at the stone floors until we were again outside in the sunlight.
ONE who, like me, couldn’t spend his youth in schools due to circumstances had to turn to books and the people around him; I relied on them for my understanding of life. I became fascinated by the lives of the characters in books! Most of them were respectable individuals, facing problems I didn’t experience at all, or they were clever and cunning villains I could never hope to emulate. I often thought that being a Nero, a Jesse James, or a Napoleon would suit me perfectly, but I couldn’t figure out how to make that happen. For one, I never could shoot very well, and I didn’t have the guts to hurt people I didn’t like. Stealing on a grand scale seemed risky and likely to land me in prison—or at least that’s what I believed at the time. I eventually learned that only petty thieves were in danger, but back then, long before I became a schemer in business, I only knew petty thieves. At the racetracks, some of my friends were frequently taken off to prison, or I would hear about someone I knew getting caught and whisked away, and prisons terrified me. I vividly recalled a night from my childhood when I walked through an alley and passed our town jail, spotting the pale face of a man staring out at me from behind iron bars. “Hey kid, grab me an iron bar or a hammer and pass it up here to me, and I’ll give you a quarter,” he said in a gravelly voice, but I was scared by the sight of his white, drawn face in the moonlight and the thought of the grim, silent place where he stood. A murderer, a maniacal farmer who had killed his wife and hired hand with an ax, had once been locked up there, and I had gotten the idea that all men who went inside were terrible and dangerous. I hurried away from the alley into the lighted street, and I always remembered that moment—the stars in the sky, the moonlight reflecting off the buildings, the sharp laughter of a girl in the darkness on a porch, the sound of a horse's hooves on the roadway, all the sweet sounds of free men and women walking around. I wanted to spend my life wandering, observing, listening to words, enjoying the rustling winds through the trees, and breathing in the sweet, vibrant essence of life, not hidden away in some dark, foul-smelling place. Once, while working in Columbus, Ohio, a friend—who had a weird fascination with such places and kept insisting—took me to the state prison on visiting day. It was the time when the prisoners exercised, and many were out in a large open area surrounded by high walls, with guards patrolling with guns. I glanced once and then shut my eyes, and throughout the rest of our tour, I avoided looking at the prisoners' faces or into the cells we passed, instead staring at the stone floors until we were finally back outside in the sunlight.
[Pg 155]
[Pg 155]
As I have said the books were mostly about respectable people with moral problems, with family fortunes that must be saved or built up, daughters safely married, hints at a possible loss of virtue on the part of some woman and the terrible consequences that were to follow. In the books the women who grew familiar with men, to whom they were not married, were always having children and thus giving themselves away to all and I did not know any such women. The kind of women among whom life at that time threw me were much wiser and pretty much seemed to have children or not as they chose and I presume I thought the other kind must be a rather foolish sort and not worth bothering or thinking about.
As I mentioned, the books mostly focused on respectable people dealing with moral issues, with family fortunes that needed to be saved or built up, daughters safely married off, hints of women possibly losing their virtue, and the terrible consequences that would follow. In those books, women who got close to men they weren’t married to were always having children, essentially giving themselves away, but I didn’t know any women like that. The women I was around at that time were a lot wiser and seemed to have children whenever they wanted, and I probably thought the other kind were rather foolish and not worth my time or consideration.
And then there was the grand life in the big world, the life of the courts, the field, camp and palace, and in the America of Newport, Boston and New York. It was all a life far away from me but it seemed to occupy the attention of most of the novelists. As for myself I did not think at that time that I would ever see much of such life and I am afraid it did not much tempt me.
And then there was the glamorous life in the big world, the life of the courts, fields, camps, and palaces, as well as in the America of Newport, Boston, and New York. It was all a world far from my reach, yet it seemed to capture the interest of most novelists. As for me, I didn’t believe at that time that I would ever experience much of that life, and honestly, it didn’t really appeal to me.
However, I read greedily everything that came into my hands. Laura Jean Libbey, Walter Scott, Harriet Beecher Stowe, Henry Fielding, Shakespeare, Jules Verne, Balzac, the Bible, Stephen Crane, dime novels, Cooper, Stevenson, our own Mark Twain and Howells and later Whitman. The books—any books—have always fed my dreams and I am one who has always lived by his dreams and even to-day I can often get as much fun and satisfaction out of a dull book as out of a so-called brilliant or witty one. The books like life itself are only useful to me in as much as they feed my own dreams or give me a background upon [Pg 156] which I can construct new dreams.
However, I eagerly read everything that I could get my hands on. Laura Jean Libbey, Walter Scott, Harriet Beecher Stowe, Henry Fielding, Shakespeare, Jules Verne, Balzac, the Bible, Stephen Crane, dime novels, Cooper, Stevenson, our own Mark Twain, Howells, and later Whitman. Books—any books—have always fueled my dreams, and I’ve always lived by my dreams. Even today, I can still find just as much enjoyment and satisfaction in a boring book as in one that's supposed to be brilliant or witty. Books, like life itself, are only useful to me as long as they nourish my own dreams or provide a backdrop for me to build new dreams upon. [Pg 156]
Books I have always had access to and I am sure there is no other country in the world where people in general are so sentimentally romantic on the subject of books and education. Not that we read the books or really care about education. Not we. What we do is to own books and go to colleges and I have known more than one young man without money work his way patiently through college without paying much attention to what the colleges are presumed to teach. The fact of having got through college and of having managed to get a degree satisfies us and so the owning of books has become in most American families a kind of moral necessity. We own the books, put them on the shelves and go to the movies and the books, not being read and sitting dumbly there on the shelves in the houses, fairly jump at anyone who cares for them. It was so also in my own youth. Wherever I went someone was always bringing me books or urging me to come to some house and help myself and having got into most houses I could have helped myself, if books were not offered, simply by re-arranging the shelves so there was no gaping hole left. I did it sometimes but not often.
I've always had access to books, and I'm pretty sure there’s no other country in the world where people are so sentimentally attached to the idea of books and education. Not that we actually read the books or truly care about education. We don’t. What we do is own books and go to colleges, and I’ve known more than one young guy without money who worked his way through college while barely paying attention to what the colleges are supposed to teach. Just getting through college and managing to get a degree is enough for us, so owning books has become a kind of moral obligation in most American families. We own the books, put them on the shelves, and go to the movies, while the books, not being read and sitting there silently on the shelves, seem to leap at anyone who might actually want them. It was the same in my own youth. Wherever I went, someone was always bringing me books or inviting me over to help myself, and having been in most homes, I could have helped myself, if books weren’t offered, just by rearranging the shelves to fill in any gaps. I did that sometimes, but not often.
As for the owners, they were interested, absorbed in the great industrial future just ahead for all Americans. We were all to have college degrees, ride in automobiles, come by some kind of marvelous mechanical process into a new, more cultured and better age, “Clear the track! Come on! Get in the swim!” was the cry and later I was to take up the cry myself and become one of the most valiant of the hustlers [Pg 157] but for a time—for several years—I stayed in the backwaters of life and looked about.
The owners were interested, caught up in the great industrial future that lay ahead for all Americans. We were all supposed to have college degrees, drive cars, and experience some amazing technological advancement that would lead us into a new, more cultured, and better era. “Clear the track! Come on! Join the crowd!” was the rallying cry, and later I joined in and became one of the most enthusiastic go-getters. [Pg 157] But for a while—for several years—I remained on the sidelines of life and observed.
My companions for the time being were flash men, the sharpshooters and touts at the race tracks. How many such fellows as Sit-still Murphy, Flatnose Humphrey of Frisco, Horsey Hollister and others of that stripe I knew at that time! And there were also gamblers, a politician or two and most of all a strange kind of sensitive and footloose man or woman, unfitted for the life of a hustler, not shrewd, usually lovable and perplexed, feeling themselves out of touch with the mood of the times and often spending life getting drunk, wandering about and loving to talk away long hours on bridges in cities, on country roads and in the back rooms of little saloons, which for all the evil they are presumed to have brought upon us I thank my gods existed during my youth. How often have I said to myself: “What kind of a world will this be when we are all moral and good people, when there are no more rascals to be found among us and no places left where rascals may congregate to speak lovingly of their rascalities?”
My companions for the time being were flashy guys, the sharpshooters and hustlers at the racetracks. I knew so many characters like Sit-still Murphy, Flatnose Humphrey from Frisco, Horsey Hollister, and others like them back then! There were also gamblers, a politician or two, and most of all, a unique kind of sensitive and restless person, not cut out for the hustling life, not very shrewd, usually charming and confused, feeling out of sync with the times, often spending their days getting drunk, wandering around, and loving to chat for hours on bridges in cities, on country roads, and in the back rooms of little bars, which, despite all the trouble they’re said to have caused, I’m thankful existed during my youth. How often have I thought to myself: “What will the world be like when we’re all moral and decent, when there are no more rascals among us and no places left for them to gather and nostalgically talk about their mischief?”
Of the rascals I met at that time there was one of a far different sort than the others who did much to educate me in the ways of the world. I found him in a town of northern Ohio to which I had drifted and in which I had got a job in a stable run by a man named Nate Lovett, who owned several race horses and who also kept a livery barn. Nate had a stallion, a fast trotter named “Will you Please” and got most of his income by taking him about to neighboring towns to serve mares but he had also some ten or twelve half-wornout old driving horses that were let to the young men of the town when they wanted to take some girl to [Pg 158] a dance or for a drive in the country. These I took care of, working all day and sleeping on a cot in what we called the office but having my evenings free. A gigantic and goodhearted Negro took care of the racing horses and stayed in the office from eight until eleven in the evening. “Go on child. I ain’t got no folks in this town and I don’t want none here neither,” he said.
Of the troublemakers I met back then, there was one who was very different from the others and really helped me understand the world. I found him in a town in northern Ohio where I had ended up and got a job at a stable run by a guy named Nate Lovett, who owned several racehorses and had a livery barn as well. Nate had a stallion, a fast trotter called “Will you Please,” and earned most of his money by taking him to nearby towns to breed mares. He also had about ten or twelve old driving horses that were rented out to the young men in town when they wanted to take a girl out to a dance or for a drive in the countryside. I took care of these horses, working all day and sleeping on a cot in what we called the office, but I had my evenings free. A huge and kind-hearted Black man took care of the racing horses and was in the office from eight until eleven at night. “Go on, child. I don’t have any family in this town and I don’t want any here either,” he said.
Lovett, a man of the English jockey type, had lost one eye in a fight but was a quiet enough fellow, never losing his temper except when someone spoke favorably of the Irish or of the Catholic religion. He had a fixed notion that the Pope at Rome had made up his mind to get control of America and had filled the land with crafty spies and agents who worked tirelessly night and day to accomplish his ends and when he spoke of the Irish Catholics he lowered his voice, put his hand over his mouth, winked, scowled and acted in general like one creeping stealthily through some mountainous country, infested with desperadoes, and in which every tree and stone might conceal a deadly enemy.
Lovett, a guy who looked like the typical English jockey, had lost one eye in a fight but was generally a pretty easygoing guy, rarely losing his temper unless someone praised the Irish or the Catholic faith. He firmly believed that the Pope in Rome was plotting to take control of America and had sent a bunch of sneaky spies and agents to work around the clock to achieve this goal. Whenever he talked about the Irish Catholics, he'd lower his voice, cover his mouth with his hand, wink, scowl, and act like someone creeping through a dangerous mountainous region where every tree and rock could hide a deadly foe.
At the stable during the long quiet winter afternoons there was little to do so we all gathered in the office, a room some fifteen by twenty with a large stove in the centre. There certain citizens of the town came daily to visit us.
At the stable during long, quiet winter afternoons, there wasn’t much to do, so we all gathered in the office, a room about fifteen by twenty feet, with a large stove in the center. Some local residents came by to visit us every day.
In the room there would be at one time Bert the Negro; Lovett, sitting on a stool and tapping the floor with a driver’s whip; myself, taking in everything and sometimes with my nose in a book; Tom Moseby, who had been a gambler on a Mississippi River boat in his young days and [Pg 159] who always wore a large dirty white collar with a black stock; Silas Hunt, a lawyer who had no practice nor seemed to want any and who was said to be writing a book on the subject of constitutional law, a book that no one ever saw; a fat German, who was a follower of Karl Marx and who owned a large farm near the town, but who, for all his anti-capitalistic beliefs, was said to cheat ruthlessly all who had any sort of dealings with him; Billy West, who owned two race horses himself and whose wife ran the town millinery store and who was himself something of a dandy and, last of all, Judge Turner.
In the room, there would be Bert, the Black guy; Lovett, sitting on a stool and tapping the floor with a driver’s whip; me, taking everything in and sometimes with my nose in a book; Tom Moseby, who had been a gambler on a Mississippi River boat in his younger days and who always wore a big, dirty white collar with a black tie; Silas Hunt, a lawyer with no practice who didn’t seem to want one and was said to be writing a book on constitutional law, a book that no one ever saw; a hefty German, a follower of Karl Marx, who owned a large farm near town but, for all his anti-capitalist beliefs, was said to cheat ruthlessly anyone who dealt with him; Billy West, who owned two racehorses and whose wife ran the town's millinery store and who was a bit of a dandy; and lastly, Judge Turner.
The judge was a short fat neatly-dressed man with a bald head, a white Vandyke beard, cold blue eyes, soft round white cheeks and extraordinarily small hands and feet. In his younger days he had a cousin, at one time a quite powerful political figure in Ohio, and after the Civil War the judge, an unsuccessful young lawyer, had managed through the cousin to get himself sent South on some sort of financial mission, to settle, I believe, certain claims covering cotton corn and other stores requisitioned or destroyed by the conquering Union armies.
The judge was a short, stoutly-built man who dressed neatly, had a bald head, a white Vandyke beard, cold blue eyes, soft round white cheeks, and surprisingly small hands and feet. In his younger years, he had a cousin who was once a significant political figure in Ohio. After the Civil War, the judge, then an unsuccessful young lawyer, leveraged his cousin's influence to secure a position in the South on a financial mission, to settle, as I understand it, various claims related to cotton, corn, and other supplies that were requisitioned or destroyed by the victorious Union armies.
It had been the great opportunity of the judge’s life and he had taken shrewd advantage of it, had come near being shot in two or three southern cities but had kept his head and had, it was whispered about, well feathered his own and the cousin’s nest. After it was all over and the cousin had fallen from power he had come back to his native place—after three or four years spent in Europe, lying low in fear of a threatened investigation of his operations—and had bought a large brick house with a lawn and trees and had imported a Negro man-servant [Pg 160] from the South. He spent his time reading books and listening during the afternoon to the talk of the men of our little circle, flattering women rather grossly, drinking a good deal of raw whisky and delivering himself of rather shrewd observations on life and the men he had known and seen.
It had been the biggest opportunity of the judge's life, and he had cleverly taken advantage of it. He almost got shot in a couple of southern cities but stayed calm and, it was rumored, did quite well for himself and his cousin. Once everything settled down and his cousin lost power, he returned to his hometown—after spending three or four years in Europe, laying low because of fears regarding a possible investigation into his dealings—and purchased a large brick house with a lawn and trees. He also brought in a Black manservant from the South. He spent his time reading books and, in the afternoons, listening to the conversations of the men in our small circle, rather bluntly flattering women, drinking a lot of straight whiskey, and sharing insightful observations about life and the people he had known. [Pg 160]
The judge had never married and indeed cared nothing for women although he fancied himself in the rôle of a gallant who could do with women as he pleased, a notion constantly fed by the reactions to his advances of the women with whom his life in the town threw him into contact—the wife of the grocer from whom he bought the supplies for his home, a fat girl with red cheeks who clerked in the dry-goods store, Billy West’s wife, and several others. To all these women he was elaborately courteous, bowing before them, making pretty speeches and when no one was watching even boldly caressing them with his little fat hands. In the grocery he even pressed the hand of the merchant’s wife while her lord was engaged, with his back turned, in getting a package down off a shelf, and even sometimes pinched her hips, laughing softly while she shook her head and scowled at him, but to me, for whom he had taken a fancy born of my predilection for books, he spoke of women always with contempt.
The judge had never married and honestly didn’t care about women, even though he liked to think of himself as a charming guy who could do whatever he wanted with them. This idea was constantly reinforced by how the women he encountered in town reacted to his advances—the grocer’s wife from whom he got supplies for his home, a chubby girl with rosy cheeks who worked at the dry-goods store, Billy West’s wife, and a few others. He was overly polite to all these women, bowing to them and making sweet speeches. When no one was looking, he would even boldly touch them with his little fat hands. In the grocery store, he once held the merchant’s wife’s hand while her husband had his back turned, busy taking a package off a shelf, and he would sometimes even pinch her hips, laughing quietly while she shook her head and frowned at him. But to me, someone he took a liking to because of my love for books, he always talked about women with disdain.
“My dislike of them is however but a peculiarity of my own nature and I would not have it influence you in the least,” he explained. “The French, among whom I once lived and whose language I speak, make an art of this matter of love-making between men and women and I admire the French exceedingly. They are a wise and shrewd people and not much [Pg 161] given to the talking of tommyrot I assure you.”
“My dislike for them is just a quirk of my personality, and I wouldn’t want it to affect you at all,” he explained. “The French, among whom I once lived and whose language I speak, really know how to do this whole love-making thing between men and women, and I admire them a lot. They are a smart and perceptive people and not at all prone to talking nonsense, I assure you.” [Pg 161]
The judge had, early in our acquaintance, invited me to his house where I later spent many of my evenings during that spring, drinking his whisky, listening to his talk and smoking cigarettes with him. It was the judge in fact who taught me to smoke cigarettes, a habit much looked down upon in American towns at that time, being taken as an indication of weakness and effeminacy. The judge was, however, able to carry off his own devotion to the habit because he had been in Europe, spoke several languages and most of all because he was reported to be educated. In the saloons of the town, when men congregated before the bar in the evening, the subject of cigarette smoking was often discussed. “If I ever caught a son of mine smoking one of those coffin nails I’d knock his fool head off,” said a drayman. “I agree with you for all except maybe Judge Turner now,” said his companion. “For him it’s all right. He sets a bad example maybe, but looket! Ain’t he been to college and to Paris and London and all them places? Lord, I only wish I had his education, that’s all I wish.”
The judge had, early in our friendship, invited me to his house where I later spent many of my evenings that spring, drinking his whiskey, listening to him talk, and smoking cigarettes with him. It was the judge who actually taught me to smoke cigarettes, a habit that was frowned upon in American towns back then, seen as a sign of weakness and femininity. However, the judge was able to get away with his smoking because he had been to Europe, spoke several languages, and most importantly, was said to be educated. In the local bars, when men gathered at the bar in the evening, the topic of cigarette smoking often came up. “If I ever caught my son smoking one of those coffin nails, I’d knock his foolish head off,” said a delivery driver. “I agree with you, except maybe when it comes to Judge Turner,” replied his friend. “For him, it’s fine. He sets a bad example, sure, but look! Hasn’t he been to college and to Paris and London and all those places? Man, I only wish I had his education, that’s all I want.”
I am in the judge’s house and it is dark and stormy outside. I have dined with the Negro Bert at six in the kitchen of Nate Lovett’s house and now, although it is but shortly past seven, the judge has also dined and is ready for an evening of talk. There is a large stove of the sort known as a baseburner in the room and the walls are lined with books. We sit by a small table and there is a decanter of whisky upon it. Although I am but eighteen the judge does not hesitate to invite me to help myself to the whisky. “Drink all you want. If you are the kind [Pg 162] of a fool who makes a pig of himself you might as well find it out.”
I’m at the judge’s house, and it’s dark and stormy outside. I had dinner with Bert, the Black man, at six in the kitchen of Nate Lovett’s place, and now, even though it’s only just past seven, the judge has also eaten and is ready for a night of conversation. There’s a large baseburner stove in the room, and the walls are lined with books. We’re sitting by a small table that has a decanter of whiskey on it. Even though I’m only eighteen, the judge doesn’t hesitate to tell me to pour myself some whiskey. “Drink as much as you want. If you’re the kind of fool who overindulges, you might as well find out now.”
The judge talks as we drink and his talk is something new to my ears. These are not the words or thoughts of the towns, the city factories or the sports of the race tracks. All of the judge’s talk is a laughing, half-cynical, half-earnest kind of confession. Were the things the judge told me of himself true? They were no doubt as true as these confessions of myself and my own relations to life I am setting down here. What I mean is that he was at least trying to inject into them the essence of truth.
The judge speaks as we drink, and his words are refreshing to me. These ideas aren’t what you’d hear from the towns, the city factories, or the race tracks. The judge's conversation is a blend of humor and sincerity, almost like a confession. Were the things he shared about himself real? They were likely as real as the confessions I’m writing down about myself and my own experiences with life. What I mean is that he was at least attempting to bring some truth into them.
I drank of the whisky sparingly, not so much through fear of being convicted of piggishness by getting drunk as from a desire to hear all the judge might have to say.
I sipped the whisky carefully, not so much out of fear of being seen as greedy by getting drunk, but because I wanted to hear everything the judge had to say.
At the barn when he came there to loaf with the others during the winter afternoons the judge usually remained silent and managed always to achieve an effect of wisdom by the good-natured but cynical expression of his face and eyes. He sat with his fat white hands folded over his round neatly-waistcoated paunch and looked about with the cold little eyes that were so amazingly like the eyes of a bird. My employer, Nate Lovett, was upon his everlasting theme. “Now you just look at it. I wish the people would begin to do some thinking in this country. Why, there were six Catholics elected to this last Congress and people just sit still and say there’s no harm in a Catholic.” The horseman was a regular subscriber to a weekly paper that attributed all the ills of society to the growth in America of the Catholic faith and read it eagerly—it was the only thing he did read—that his own [Pg 163] pet prejudice be properly fed and nourished, and no doubt there was published somewhere a paper that carried on an equally earnest campaign against the Protestants. My employer went to no church but the notion of six Catholics in the national Congress alarmed him. The horseman declared that the Catholics would in a short time come into absolute power in America and drew a black enough picture of the future when all of the things he so feared had come to pass. The wheels of the factories would stop turning, streets of towns would be unlighted, men and women would be burned at the stake, there would be no schools, no books accessible to the general public, we would have a tyrant king instead of a Congress and no man who did not bow his knee to the Pope in Rome would be safe in his bed at night. The horseman declared he had once read a book showing just the condition of affairs when the Catholics were in power—that is to say in the Middle Ages. Pointing the butt of his driving whip at Judge Turner he pleaded, and never in vain, for a more learned and scholarly substantiation of his theory. “Ain’t I right now, Judge?” he asked pleadingly. “Mind you, I ain’t setting myself up before a man who knows more than I do and has read all the books and been everywhere, even in Rome itself, but I’ll tell you something. That king, that Englishman, of the name of Henry the Eighth, who first told the Pope at Rome to go back to his Dago town and mind his own business was some man now, wasn’t he, eh?”
At the barn, when he came to hang out with the others during winter afternoons, the judge usually stayed quiet and always managed to seem wise with the good-natured yet cynical look on his face and in his eyes. He sat with his chubby white hands folded over his round, neatly waistcoated belly and looked around with his cold little eyes that were incredibly bird-like. My boss, Nate Lovett, was on his usual rant. “Just look at this. I wish people would start thinking in this country. There were six Catholics elected to this last Congress, and people just sit back and say there’s no problem with a Catholic.” The horseman regularly subscribed to a weekly paper that blamed all of society's issues on the rise of the Catholic faith in America and read it eagerly—it was the only thing he read—to ensure his own bias was properly fed and nurtured. No doubt there was another paper out there that was equally dedicated to criticizing Protestants. My boss didn’t go to church, but the idea of six Catholics in the national Congress worried him. The horseman claimed that Catholics would soon gain complete control in America and painted a grim picture of the future where everything he feared would come true. The factories would stop operating, town streets would be dark, people would be burned at the stake, there would be no schools, no books available to the public, we would have a tyrant king instead of Congress, and anyone who didn’t kneel to the Pope in Rome wouldn’t be safe in their own bed at night. The horseman insisted he once read a book that illustrated what life was like when Catholics were in power—that is, during the Middle Ages. Pointing the tip of his whip at Judge Turner, he urged, and never in vain, for a more educated and scholarly backing for his theory. “Aren't I right, Judge?” he asked earnestly. “I’m not pretending to be smarter than a man who knows more than I do and has read all the books and traveled everywhere, even to Rome, but let me tell you something. That king, that Englishman named Henry the Eighth, who first told the Pope in Rome to go back to his hometown and mind his own business was quite a guy, wasn’t he, huh?”
And now Nate had got himself warmed up and lit into his theme. “They say he was too free with women, that King Henry. Well, what if he [Pg 164] was?” he cried. “I knew a man once, Jake Freer it was, from over near Muncie Indiana, who could get more out of a bum horse in a hard race than any man you ever set your eyes on and he was the darndest woman-chaser in ten states. Why, he couldn’t get near a skirt, old or young, without prancing around like a two-year-old stud and he was forty-five if he was a day but put him in a hard race and then you’d see the stuff come out in him. He’d be laying back in second or third place, let us say. Well, they gets to the upper turn and he knows he ain’t got the speed to outstep ’em. What does he do? Does he give up? Not he. He lets on to go crazy and begins to swear and rip around. Such language! Lord a’mighty, how he could swear! It was wonderful to hear him. He tells them other stiffs of drivers, laying in there ahead of him, that he’s going to kill ’em or punch their eyes out and the first you know he slides his old skate of a horse out in front and once in front he stays there. They don’t dast to try to pass him. He scares his own horse too I suppose but anyway he sure scares them other drivers. Down he sails to the wire looking back over his shoulder making threats and switching his long whip around. He was a big fine-looking man that had had his cheek laid open with a razor in a fight with a nigger and was an ugly looking man to see. “I’m going to whip hell outen you,” he keeps saying over his shoulder, just loud enough so the judges can’t hear him up in the stand. But them other drivers can hear him all right.
And now Nate had warmed up and got into his topic. “They say King Henry was too friendly with women. So what if he was?” he exclaimed. “I once knew a guy, Jake Freer from near Muncie, Indiana, who could get more out of a lousy horse in a tough race than anyone you've ever seen, and he was the biggest woman chaser in ten states. I mean, he couldn't get anywhere near a woman, old or young, without prancing around like a two-year-old stud, and he was forty-five if he was a day. But put him in a tough race, and you’d see what he was made of. Let’s say he’d be hanging back in second or third place. Well, they get to the upper turn, and he knows he can't outrun them. What does he do? Give up? No way. He acts like he’s going crazy, cursing and thrashing about. Such language! Good Lord, how he could swear! It was amazing to hear. He tells those other drivers ahead of him that he’s going to hurt them or knock their lights out, and before you know it, he slides his old horse out in front, and once he’s ahead, he stays there. They don’t dare to try to pass him. He probably scares his own horse too, but he definitely intimidates those other drivers. Down he goes to the finish line, looking back and making threats, swinging his long whip around. He was a big, good-looking guy who had a scar from a razor in a fight with a guy and was pretty rough to look at. “I’m going to beat you to a pulp,” he keeps saying over his shoulder, just loud enough so the judges can’t hear him up in the stands. But those other drivers can hear him just fine.
“And then what does he do? As soon as the heat is finished he hurries up to the stand, to the judges’ stand you see, pretending to be mad [Pg 165] as a wildcat and he claims the other drivers put it up between them to foul him. That’s what he does, and he talks so hard and so earnest that he half makes the judges believe it and he gets away with maybe hitting one of the other horses in the face with his whip at the upper turn and throwing him off his stride or something like that.
“And then what does he do? As soon as the heat is over, he rushes up to the judges’ stand, acting like a total wild man, claiming that the other drivers conspired against him to foul him. That’s what he does, and he talks so intensely and seriously that he almost convinces the judges, and he manages to get away with maybe hitting one of the other horses in the face with his whip at the upper turn, throwing him off his stride or something like that. [Pg 165]
“Now, Judge, I ask you, wasn’t he all right, if he was a woman-chaser? And that Henry the Eighth was just like him. He told the Pope to go hang himself and I’m an Englishman and once I told two Catholic stiffs the same thing. They banged out this here eye of mine but you bet I gave ’em what for, and that’s just what Henry did to the Pope, now ain’t it?”
“Now, Judge, I ask you, wasn’t he okay, even if he was a womanizer? And Henry the Eighth was just like him. He told the Pope to go screw himself, and I’m English, and once I told two Catholic guys the same thing. They knocked out this eye of mine, but you can bet I stood up for myself, and that’s exactly what Henry did to the Pope, right?”
At the livery barn the judge had smilingly agreed with Nate Lovett that Henry the Eighth was one of the great and noble kings of the world and had expressed unbounded admiration for Jake Freer, adding that, as far as his own reading and traveling had carried him, he had never been able to find that the Catholics when they were in absolute power all over the world had ever done anything for racing or to improve the trotting or pacing-horse breeds. “All they did,” he remarked, quietly “except perhaps Francesco Gonzago, Marquis of Mantua, who did rather go in for good horses, was to build a lot of cathedrals like Chartres, Saint Mark’s at Venice, Westminster Abbey, Mont St. Michel and others and to inspire the loveliest and truest art in the world. But,” he said smilingly, “what good does all that do for a man like you Nate, or for anyone here in this town? You didn’t know Francesco, who had a knack [Pg 166] for fast horses, and forty cathedrals would never get you another mare for ‘Will you Please’ or help either you or Jake Freer to win one race, and there is at present little doubt in my own mind that the future of America lies largely with just such men as you and Jake.”
At the stable, the judge had cheerfully agreed with Nate Lovett that Henry the Eighth was one of the great and noble kings of the world. He also expressed deep admiration for Jake Freer, adding that, as far as his own reading and travel had taken him, he had never found that the Catholics, when they had absolute power around the world, ever did anything for racing or to enhance the trotting or pacing horse breeds. “All they did,” he noted calmly, “except maybe Francesco Gonzago, Marquis of Mantua, who was really into good horses, was to build a bunch of cathedrals like Chartres, Saint Mark’s in Venice, Westminster Abbey, Mont St. Michel, and others, and to inspire some of the most beautiful and genuine art in the world. But,” he said with a smile, “what good does all that do for someone like you, Nate, or anyone here in this town? You didn’t know Francesco, who had a talent for fast horses, and forty cathedrals wouldn’t get you another mare for ‘Will you Please’ or help you or Jake Freer win a single race. Right now, I have no doubt in my mind that the future of America rests largely with guys like you and Jake.”
At his own house as we sat together in the evenings, the judge paid me the rare compliment, always deeply appreciated by a young man, of assuming I was on the same intellectual level with himself. He smoked cigarettes and drank surprising quantities of whisky, holding each glass for a moment between his eyes and the light and making a queer clicking sound with his thin dry lips as he sat looking at it.
At his house, as we relaxed together in the evenings, the judge gave me the rare compliment that a young man always values: he treated me as if I were on the same intellectual level as him. He smoked cigarettes and drank a surprisingly large amount of whisky, holding each glass up for a moment between his eyes and the light, making a strange clicking sound with his thin, dry lips as he looked at it.
The man talked on whatever subject came into his mind and I remember an evening when he got on the subject of women and his own attitude toward them and the queer feeling of sadness that crept over me as he talked. Much of what he had to say I did not at that time understand but I sensed the tragedy of the man’s figure as he drew for me a picture of his life.
The man chatted about whatever topic popped into his head, and I remember one evening when he started talking about women and his own views on them. A strange sadness washed over me as he spoke. I didn't understand much of what he was saying at the time, but I could feel the tragedy of his life as he painted a picture of his experiences.
His father had been a Presbyterian minister and a widower in the town to which the son came later to lead his own solitary life and the judge said that in his youth he remembered his father chiefly as a silent figure given to long solitary walks in fields and on country roads. “He loved my mother I fancy,” the judge said. “Perhaps he was one of those rare men who can really love.”
His father had been a Presbyterian minister and a widower in the town where the son later came to lead his own solitary life. The judge said that in his youth, he mainly remembered his father as a quiet figure who took long, solitary walks in the fields and on country roads. "I think he loved my mother," the judge said. "Maybe he was one of those rare men who can truly love."
The boy had grown up, himself rather drawn away from the life of the town, and had been sent later to a college in the East, and during [Pg 167] his first year in college his father died. There was a suspicion of suicide, although little was said about it, the man having taken an overdose of some sort of medicine given him by one of the town physicians.
The boy had grown up, becoming somewhat distant from the town's life, and was later sent to a college in the East. During his first year there, his father passed away. There were whispers of suicide, although not much was discussed, as the man had taken an overdose of some medication prescribed by one of the town doctors. [Pg 167]
It was then that the politician cousin appeared and after the funeral he talked to the younger man, telling him that a few days before his death the father had come to him and talked of the son, securing from the politician a promise that in case of his own sudden death, the lad would be looked after and given a fair chance in life. “Your father killed himself,” said the cousin, a rather downright fellow who was fifteen years older than the young man he addressed. “He was in love with your mother and was also a man who believed in a future life. What he did was to spend years in prayer. He was always praying, day and night as he walked around, and in the end he convinced himself that his untiring devotion had won him so high a place in God’s esteem he would be forgiven for doing away with his own life and would be admitted into Heaven to live throughout eternity with the woman he loved.”
It was then that the politician cousin showed up, and after the funeral, he spoke to the younger man. He told him that a few days before his death, the father had come to him and mentioned the son, getting a promise from the politician that if anything happened to him, the young man would be taken care of and given a fair shot in life. “Your father took his own life,” said the cousin, who was pretty straightforward and fifteen years older than the young man he was talking to. “He loved your mother and was also someone who believed in an afterlife. He spent years praying. He prayed constantly, day and night, as he went about his life, and eventually, he convinced himself that his relentless devotion had earned him such a high spot in God’s eyes that he would be forgiven for ending his own life and would be welcomed into Heaven to spend eternity with the woman he loved.”
After his father’s funeral young Turner had gone back to the eastern college and there the tragedy that had been long awaiting him suddenly pounced.
After his father’s funeral, young Turner went back to the eastern college, and there the tragedy that had been looming over him suddenly struck.
During his boyhood, he explained, he had been rather a solitary, spending his time in reading books and in playing on a piano that had belonged to his mother and that his father, who was also devoted to music, had taught him to play. “The boys of the town,” he said, in speaking of that portion of his life, “were not of my sort and I could not understand them. At school the larger boys often beat me [Pg 168] and they encouraged the younger boys in treating me with contempt. I could not play baseball or football, physical pain of any sort made me ill, I would begin crying when anyone spoke harshly to me, and then I developed a kind of viciousness in myself too. Being unable to beat the other boys with my fists and having even at that early age read a great many books, particularly books of history, with which my father’s library were filled, I spent my days and nights dreaming of all sorts of sly deviltry.”
During his childhood, he shared, he was quite solitary, spending his time reading books and playing a piano that belonged to his mother, which his father, who also loved music, had taught him to play. “The boys in town,” he remarked, reflecting on that time in his life, “were not my kind, and I couldn’t relate to them. At school, the older boys often bullied me and egged the younger ones on to treat me with disdain. I couldn’t play baseball or football; any kind of physical pain would make me feel sick, and I would start crying if anyone spoke to me harshly, which caused me to develop a bit of cruelty myself. Unable to fight back physically and having read a lot of books at such a young age, especially history books from my father’s library, I spent my days and nights dreaming up all kinds of sneaky mischief.”
“For one thing,” the judge went on, laughing and rubbing his hands together, “I thought a great deal of poisoning some of the boys at the school. At the recess time we were all gathered in a large yard given over to the boys as a playground. There was the yard without any grass and at one side, by a high board fence, a long wooden shed into which we went to perform certain necessary functions of the body. The board fence separated our play place from one given over to the recreation of the girls.”
“For one thing,” the judge continued, laughing and rubbing his hands together, “I thought a lot about poisoning some of the boys at school. During recess, we all gathered in a big yard that was set aside for the boys to play in. There was a yard with no grass, and on one side, next to a tall wooden fence, there was a long wooden shed where we went to take care of certain bodily functions. The fence separated our play area from one designated for the girls' recreation.”
“The walls of our own shed and our side of the fence itself were covered with crude drawings and scrawled sentences expressing the sensual dreams of crude and adolescent youth and these were allowed by the authorities to remain. The place filled me with unspeakable revulsion as did also much of the talk of the boys and I shall remember always something that happened to me there. A great loutish boy is standing at the door of our shed into which I am at that moment forced by nature to go and is gazing at the sky over the high board fence that separates us from the playground of the girls. His eyes are [Pg 169] heavy with stupid sensuality. From beyond the fence comes the shrill laughter of the little girls. Suddenly, as I am about to pass—a small creature I was then with delicate hands and at that time I believe with small delicate features—suddenly and quite without apparent cause he raises a large heavy hand and strikes me full in the face, so that the blood runs in a stream from my nose, and then, without a word to me, shrinking in terror against the fence on which the horrible pictures and words are scrawled and mingling my blood with tears, he goes calmly away. He is quite cheerful in fact, as though some deep want of his nature had suddenly been satisfied.
The walls of our shed and our side of the fence were covered with crude drawings and messy sentences that showed the sensual dreams of rough, teenage boys, and the authorities allowed them to stay. The place filled me with intense disgust, just like a lot of what the boys talked about, and I'll always remember something that happened to me there. A big, clumsy boy stood at the door of our shed, where I had to go because nature called, and he stared at the sky over the high board fence that separated us from the girls’ playground. His eyes were heavy with foolish desire. From beyond the fence came the loud laughter of the little girls. Suddenly, just as I was about to pass—being a small, delicate creature at that time, with slender hands and, I think, delicate features—without any clear reason, he raised a large hand and struck me right in the face, causing blood to stream from my nose. Then, without a word to me, he shrank back in fear against the fence covered with those awful images and words, mixing my blood with my tears, and calmly walked away. He even seemed cheerful, as if some deep need of his had just been fulfilled.
“I had been reading a history of Italy; a most flamboyant book it was, filled with the doings of vicious and crafty men—I now suppose they must have been, vicious and crafty but then how I delighted in them! My father’s being a minister had I presume turned my mind to the Church and how I wished he had been a great and powerful cardinal or a pope of the fifteenth century instead of what he was! I had dreamed of him as a Cosmo de Medici and myself as that Duke Francisco who succeeded Cosmo.
“I had been reading a history of Italy; it was quite an extravagant book, filled with the exploits of ruthless and clever men—I guess they must have been ruthless and clever, but I totally loved them! Since my dad was a minister, I think it made me more interested in the Church, and I wished he had been a great and powerful cardinal or a pope from the fifteenth century instead of what he actually was! I imagined him as Cosmo de Medici and myself as Duke Francisco, who took over from Cosmo.”
“What a grand time in which to live I thought that must have been and how I loved the book in my father’s library that described the life of those days. In the book were such sentences! Some of them I remember even to this day and in my bed at night, even yet sometimes, I lie laughing with delight at the thought of the fanfaronading march of the words across the pages of that book. ‘Italian vitality had subsided [Pg 170] into the repose of the tomb. The winged arrow of death entered his heart. The hour of vengeance had struck.’
“What a fantastic time it must have been to live in, I thought, and how I loved the book in my dad’s library that talked about life back then. The book had such sentences! Some of them I still remember today, and at night in bed, sometimes I find myself laughing with joy at the thought of the flashy march of the words across the pages of that book. ‘Italian vitality had faded into the peace of the grave. The winged arrow of death pierced his heart. The moment of revenge had come.’ [Pg 170]
“I will read you something from the book itself,” said the judge, pouring himself another glass of whisky, holding it for a moment between his eyes and the light and then, after drinking, going to a shelf from which he took a book in a red cover. After turning the pages for a few minutes and having lighted himself a fresh cigarette he read: “‘The emperor Charles the Fifth placed Cosmo de Medici on the ducal chair of Florence and Pope Pius Fifth granted him the title of grand duke of Tuscany. He was a cruel and perfidious tyrant.’”
“I’ll read you something from the book,” said the judge, pouring himself another glass of whisky, holding it up for a moment between his eyes and the light, and then, after drinking, going to a shelf to grab a book with a red cover. After flipping through the pages for a few minutes and lighting a fresh cigarette, he read: “‘Emperor Charles the Fifth put Cosimo de’ Medici on the ducal chair of Florence, and Pope Pius Fifth gave him the title of Grand Duke of Tuscany. He was a cruel and treacherous tyrant.’”
“‘Cosmo was succeeded by Francisco, a duke who governed through the instrumentality of the poisoned cup and the dagger, and who lapped blood with the greed of a bloodhound. He married Bianca Cabello, the daughter of a nobleman of Venice. She was the wife of a young Florentine. Francisco saw her, and, inflamed by her marvelous beauty, invited her and her husband to his palace, and assassinated her husband. His own wife died at just that time, probably by poison, and the grand duke married Bianca. His brother, the Cardinal Ferdinando, displeased with the union, presented them each with a goblet of poisoned wine, and they sank into the grave together.’”
“Cosmo was succeeded by Francisco, a duke who ruled with poison and daggers, consuming blood with the eagerness of a bloodhound. He married Bianca Cabello, the daughter of a nobleman from Venice. She was the wife of a young man from Florence. Francisco saw her and, captivated by her incredible beauty, invited her and her husband to his palace, where he assassinated her husband. Around the same time, his own wife died, likely from poison, and the grand duke married Bianca. His brother, Cardinal Ferdinando, unhappy with the marriage, offered them both a goblet of poisoned wine, and they died together.”
“Aha!” cried Judge Turner, looking over the top of the book at me and laughing gleefully. “There you are, you see. That was myself in my boyhood, that young Francisco. In my fancy I succeeded, when there was no one about, when I was walking alone along the sidewalks of this very town or when I had got into my bed at night, I succeeded [Pg 171] I say in making the great metamorphosis. In the books in my father’s library were many pictures of the streets of old Italian and Spanish cities. There was one I sharply remember. Two young bloods, with cloaks over their shoulders and with swords swinging at their sides, are approaching each other along a street. Two or three monks, a man seated on the back of a donkey going along a narrow roadway, a great stone bridge in the far distance, a bridge spanning perhaps a deep dark gulf between high mountain peaks, peaks faintly seen amid clouds and in the foreground, near the two young men and dominating the whole scene, a great cathedral done in the glorious Gothic style that I myself later, in my real flesh and blood life, so loved and bowed down before at Chartres in France.”
“Aha!” Judge Turner exclaimed, peering over the top of the book at me and laughing joyfully. “There you are, see? That was me as a boy, that young Francisco. In my imagination, I succeeded, when no one was around, when I was walking alone on the sidewalks of this very town or when I was tucked into bed at night, I succeeded, [Pg 171] I say, in making the great transformation. In my father's library, there were many pictures of the streets of old Italian and Spanish cities. There's one I clearly remember. Two young guys, cloaks draped over their shoulders and swords swinging at their sides, are walking toward each other on a street. Two or three monks, a man sitting on the back of a donkey traveling along a narrow path, a massive stone bridge in the distance, a bridge possibly spanning a deep, dark chasm between towering mountain peaks, peaks barely visible among clouds, and in the foreground, near the two young men and dominating the entire scene, a magnificent cathedral crafted in the stunning Gothic style that I later, in my real life, came to love and revere at Chartres in France.”
“And there was I, in fancy you understand, one of the two young men walking in that glorious street and not frightened little Arthur Turner, son of a sad and discouraged Presbyterian minister in an Ohio town. There was the metempsychosis. I was Francisco before he had succeeded Cosmo and had become himself the great and charmingly wicked duke sitting in his ducal chair, and long before he became enamored of the lovely Bianca. Every day I went into my own little room in my father’s house and got out a sword of wood I had fashioned from a lath and buckled it on. I had got one of my father’s coats from a closet and this, serving me as a cloak, I imagined it of the finest Florentine stuff, a cloak of such stuff as would become the shoulders of one who belonged to the great Medici family and who was to sit in the proud ducal chair of Florence. Up and down the room I went and below my [Pg 172] father, the sad long-faced man, had become in my fancy the great Cosmo himself. We were in our ducal palace and cardinals in their red cloaks, princes, captains of armies, ambassadors and other princely personages were waiting at the door for a word with the great Cosmo.
“And there I was, in my imagination, one of the two young men walking down that beautiful street, not the scared little Arthur Turner, son of a sad and discouraged Presbyterian minister in an Ohio town. That was the reincarnation. I was Francisco before he had taken over from Cosmo and had become the great and charmingly wicked duke sitting in his ducal chair, long before he fell in love with the beautiful Bianca. Every day, I would go to my small room in my dad’s house and pull out a wooden sword I had made from a lath and strap it on. I had taken one of my dad’s coats from a closet, using it as a cloak, imagining it was the finest Florentine fabric, a cloak worthy of someone from the great Medici family, destined to sit in the proud ducal chair of Florence. I paced up and down the room, and in my mind, my dad, the sad, long-faced man, had become the great Cosmo himself. We were in our ducal palace, and cardinals in their red cloaks, princes, army captains, ambassadors, and other royal figures were waiting at the door for a word with the great Cosmo.”
“Welladay! My own time would come. For the present I was concerning myself with the study of poisons. On a little table in my room I had a collection of various small receptacles, an old saltcellar with a broken top, two small teacups, an empty baking-powder can and other small vessels, found in the street or stolen from our kitchen, and into these I had put salt, flour, pepper, ginger and other spices taken also by stealth from the kitchen. I mixed and remixed, making various colored powders which I folded into small packets or dampened and rolled into little balls which I concealed about my person, and then went forth into the street, to visit in fancy other palaces or to poison, or run through with my sword, people who were enemies of our house. What beautifully wicked men and women all about me and with what suavity we greeted each other! How deeply we loved and served—to the very death—our friends and how quietly crafty and urbane we were with our enemies! Oh, I loved then the word urbane. What a glorious word, I thought. At that time, as the young Francisco, I was determined that if my craftiness could raise me to the great office of pope I would take for myself the name Urbane, adding the ‘e’ to a name already taken by some of them.
“Well, my time would come eventually. For now, I was focused on studying poisons. On a small table in my room, I had a collection of different little containers: an old salt shaker with a broken lid, two small teacups, an empty baking powder can, and other small vessels I found on the street or swiped from our kitchen. I filled these with salt, flour, pepper, ginger, and other spices that I also stealthily took from the kitchen. I mixed and remixed them into various colored powders, which I folded into small packets or dampened and rolled into little balls that I hid on my person. Then I would head out into the street, imagining visiting other palaces or to poison or stab the enemies of our house. What beautifully wicked people surrounded me, and how smoothly we greeted one another! How deeply we loved and served our friends—unto death—and how quietly crafty and sophisticated we were with our enemies! Oh, how I loved the word sophisticated. What a glorious word, I thought. At that time, as young Francisco, I was determined that if my cunning could elevate me to the grand office of pope, I would take the name Urbane for myself, adding an ‘e’ to a name that had already been used by some of them.”
“These were my dreams, and then, well I was compelled to go to the town school and sit sometimes in that horrible shed facing the crude and [Pg 173] terrible scrawlings on the walls and to become also the victim of the crude outbreaks of my companions.
“These were my dreams, and then, well, I had to go to the town school and sit sometimes in that awful building facing the rough and terrible scribbles on the walls, and also become the target of the harsh outbursts from my classmates.”
“Until one day in the spring. I had gone for a walk with my father in the late afternoon after school was dismissed and we were botanizing, as my father was fond of doing, both for his own edification and also I suppose in order to further his son’s education. In a meadow at the edge of a strip of woodland into which we were passing I found a white mushroom with which I ran to father. ‘Throw it away,’ he cried. ‘It is an Amanita Phalloides, the Destroying Angel. A bit of it no larger than a mustard seed would destroy your life.’
“Until one day in the spring. I had gone for a walk with my dad in the late afternoon after school let out, and we were collecting plants, as my dad liked to do, both for his own knowledge and I guess to help teach me. In a meadow at the edge of a patch of woods we were passing through, I found a white mushroom and ran over to my dad with it. ‘Throw it away,’ he shouted. ‘It’s an Amanita Phalloides, the Destroying Angel. Just a piece no bigger than a mustard seed could take your life.’”
“We returned to our own house and sat down for the evening meal with the words ‘Amanita Phalloides’ ringing in my ears and with the round bell-like shape of the Amanita Phalloides dancing before my eyes. It was white, of a strange glowing whiteness, suggesting I thought not the death of some common man of low degree but that of a prince or a great duke. It was so Francisco and Bianca must have looked, I thought, when in the words of the flamboyant writer of the book in my father’s library, they ‘sank into the grave together.’ There must have been just that very white metallic pallor on their cheeks. What a picture of that sinking I had in my fancy. It was not just a grave, a mere dirty hole scooped out of the ground, as graves were wont to be in our Ohio town. No indeed! An opening had been made in the earth it is true but this had been entirely rimmed with flowers and was filled with a liquid, a soft purple perfumed liquid. And so into the grave went the bodies of myself as Francisco and of my lovely paramour, Bianca. The weight of [Pg 174] our golden robes made us sink slowly into the soft purple flood and as we sank from sight music from the lips of all the fair children of the aristocracy of Florence was wafted far over fair fields, while back of the massed children in white stood also—upon a kind of green eminence at the foot of a majestic mountain—all the great lords, dukes, cardinals and other dignitaries of our imperial city.
“We returned to our house and sat down for dinner with the words ‘Amanita Phalloides’ echoing in my ears and the round, bell-like shape of the Amanita Phalloides dancing in front of my eyes. It was white, with a strange glowing whiteness, suggesting not the death of some common person but that of a prince or a great duke. It was just how Francisco and Bianca must have looked, I thought, when, in the words of the flamboyant writer from the book in my father’s library, they ‘sank into the grave together.’ There must have been that very white metallic pallor on their cheeks. What a vivid image of that sinking I had in my mind. It wasn’t just a grave, a mere dirty hole dug out of the ground, like graves typically were in our Ohio town. No indeed! An opening had been made in the earth, it’s true, but it had been entirely surrounded by flowers and was filled with a liquid, a soft purple perfumed liquid. And so into the grave went the bodies of me as Francisco and my lovely lover, Bianca. The weight of our golden robes made us sink slowly into the soft purple flood, and as we vanished from sight, music from the lips of all the beautiful children of the aristocracy of Florence floated far over beautiful fields, while behind the crowd of children in white stood—on a kind of green hill at the foot of a majestic mountain—all the great lords, dukes, cardinals, and other dignitaries of our imperial city.
“It was so that, as the grown-up Francisco, I was to die but I was yet alive and there was the Amanita Phalloides—later when I grew older I laughed to myself and told myself it should have been a Phallus Impudicus—there it was lying on the grass in the meadow at the edge of the wood. I had placed it carefully there at the command of my father and had, oh very carefully, marked the spot. One went along the main road leading out of town, to the south, to a certain bridge and across a meadow by a cowpath, climbed a fence, walked a certain number of steps along a rail fence beside a young wheat field, where elders grew, crossed another meadow and came to the edge of the wood. There was a stump near which grew a bush and even as I sat with father at our evening meal and as our housekeeper, a fat silent old woman with false teeth that rattled sometimes as she talked, even as she served the evening meal I was repeating to myself a certain formula I had made on our homeward journey. One hundred and nineteen steps along the cowpath in the meadow, ninety-three steps along the fence in the shadow of the elders, two hundred and six steps across the second meadow to the stump and my prize.
“It was that, as the grown-up Francisco, I was supposed to die, but I was still alive, and there was the Amanita Phalloides—later, as I got older, I chuckled to myself and thought it should have been a Phallus Impudicus—there it was lying on the grass in the meadow at the edge of the woods. I had carefully placed it there at my father's command and had, oh so carefully, marked the spot. You would head down the main road leading out of town to the south, towards a specific bridge, then across a meadow by a cowpath, climbed over a fence, walked a certain number of steps along a rail fence beside a young wheat field, where elderberry bushes grew, crossed another meadow, and arrived at the edge of the woods. There was a stump near which a bush grew, and even as I sat with my father at our evening meal and our housekeeper, a plump silent old woman with false teeth that sometimes rattled when she spoke, served us dinner, I was repeating to myself a certain formula I had created on our way back home. One hundred and nineteen steps along the cowpath in the meadow, ninety-three steps along the fence in the shadow of the elderberry bushes, two hundred and six steps across the second meadow to the stump and my prize.”
[Pg 175]
[Pg 175]
“I had determined to get the Amanita Phalloides on that very night after my father and our housekeeper had gone to sleep and although I was terribly frightened at the prospect of the tramp along lonely country roads and across fields, that I imagined were at night infested by strange and ferocious beasts lying in wait ready to destroy, I did not think of giving up for that reason.
“I had decided to get the Amanita Phalloides that very night after my dad and our housekeeper had gone to sleep, and even though I was really scared about walking along lonely country roads and across fields that I imagined were filled with strange and dangerous beasts lying in wait to attack, I didn’t think about giving up for that reason.”
“And so in fact in the middle of that very night, when all in our house and in the town were asleep, I went. Buckling on my wooden sword and creeping silently downstairs I let myself out at the kitchen door, having first supplied myself with matches and two or three bits of candle from a kitchen shelf.
“And so in the middle of that very night, when everyone in our house and in the town was asleep, I went. Strapping on my wooden sword and sneaking quietly downstairs, I slipped out through the kitchen door, first grabbing some matches and a couple of candles from a kitchen shelf.”
“Oh, how I suffered on that journey and how determined I was! When I had got out from among the silent terrifying houses and had come nearly to the place where I was to turn off the highroad two men on horseback passed and I hid myself, lying on my belly, white and silent, in a ditch at the side of the road. ‘They are desperadoes going forth to kill,’ I told myself.
“Oh, how I suffered on that journey and how determined I was! When I got away from the silent, terrifying houses and was almost to the spot where I had to leave the main road, two men on horseback rode by, and I hid, lying flat on my stomach, pale and silent, in a ditch by the side of the road. ‘They’re dangerous people going out to kill,’ I thought to myself.
“And then they were gone and I could no longer hear the tramp of their horses and there was the trip to be made across the fields, recounting the steps as I had counted them during the homeward journey that afternoon with my father. During the walk homeward that afternoon both father and myself were muttering to ourselves, he praying no doubt that when he had taken his own life God would admit him into Heaven and into the company of the woman he loved and I counting steadily ‘eighty-six, eighty-seven, eighty-eight,’ counting steadily the steps that would lead me again to the Amanita Phalloides, to the Destroying Angel, with [Pg 176] which I dreamed I might take many lives.
“And then they were gone, and I could no longer hear the sound of their horses. There was the trip to be made across the fields, counting the steps just like I had during the walk home that afternoon with my dad. During that walk home, both my dad and I were quietly talking to ourselves; he was probably praying that when he took his own life, God would let him into Heaven and reunite him with the woman he loved, while I was counting, ‘eighty-six, eighty-seven, eighty-eight,’ steadily counting the steps that would lead me back to the Amanita Phalloides, the Destroying Angel, with which I dreamed I could take many lives. [Pg 176]
“I got my prize by the aid of the matches and the bits of candle and after a good deal of nervous fumbling about, creeping on my hands and knees in the wet grass,” said the old judge laughing in his peculiarly bitter and at the same time half-jolly way. “I got it and ran all the way home, imagining every bush and every deep shadow on the road and in the fields might contain man or beast lying in wait ready to destroy me. Then later I managed without the old housekeeper knowing to dry it on a small shelf at the back of our kitchen stove and after it was thoroughly dried I powdered it and putting the horrible powder I had concocted into papers, carried them off with me to school.”
“I got my prize with the help of matches and some candle stubs, and after a lot of nervous fumbling around, crawling on my hands and knees in the wet grass,” the old judge said, laughing in his uniquely bitter yet somewhat cheerful way. “I got it and ran all the way home, imagining that every bush and every dark shadow on the road and in the fields might hide a man or beast waiting to get me. Later, I managed to dry it on a small shelf at the back of our kitchen stove without the old housekeeper knowing, and after it was completely dry, I powdered it and put the awful powder I had made into papers, then took them with me to school.”
“Many of the boys of our school lived at a distance and carried their luncheons and I fancied myself going nonchalantly into the hallway where the luncheon pails were left standing in a row and sprinkling the powders over their contents. As for the boys who went home at the noon hour—well, you see I had read in one of the books in my father’s library of a certain elegant lady of Pisa who once cut a peach, handing half of it to a gallant she wished to destroy and herself eating the other quite harmless half. I thought I might work out some such scheme, using an apple instead of a peach and working some of the poison under the skin of one side with a pin point.”
“Many of the boys at our school lived far away and brought their lunches, and I imagined strolling casually into the hallway where the lunchboxes were lined up and sprinkling the powders over their contents. As for the boys who went home for lunch—well, I had read in one of the books in my dad’s library about an elegant lady from Pisa who once cut a peach, giving half to a charming guy she wanted to ruin while she ate the other harmless half. I thought I might come up with a similar plan, using an apple instead of a peach and injecting some poison under the skin on one side with a pin.”
The judge had been laughing, I thought in a somewhat nervous manner, as he told me the above tale of his youth. “To be sure I never really intended to poison anyone,” he said. “Well now, did I or did I not? [Pg 177] I really can’t say. I had achieved however, through the accidental discovery of the qualities of the Amanita Phalloides, a certain new attitude toward myself. As I went about with the little poison packets in my pockets I felt suddenly a new kind of respect for myself. I felt power in myself and something quite new to the other boys must have crept at about this time into the expression of my eyes. I was no longer frightened and did not shrink away or begin crying when one of the bullies of the school approached me at the recess time now and—could it be true?—I felt they were suddenly afraid of me. The thought filled me with a queer sort of joy and I walked boldly about the school yard, not strutting but at the same time shrinking from no one. There was at that time a report current among the boys—I do not know where it came from but it was believed and I did not deny it—that I carried a loaded pistol about in my pocket.”
The judge was laughing, although it felt a bit nervous to me, as he shared the story of his youth. “I never really meant to poison anyone,” he said. “Well, did I or didn’t I? [Pg 177] Honestly, I can’t say. However, through the accidental discovery of the qualities of the Amanita Phalloides, I developed a new attitude toward myself. With those little poison packets in my pockets, I suddenly felt a new kind of respect for myself. I felt powerful, and there must have been something different in my eyes that the other boys noticed around that time. I was no longer scared; I didn’t flinch or start crying when one of the school bullies approached me during recess now—could it really be true?—I felt like they were suddenly afraid of me. That thought gave me a strange sort of joy, and I walked confidently around the schoolyard, not showing off but also not backing down from anyone. At that time, there was a rumor circulating among the boys—I don’t know where it came from, but everyone believed it, and I didn’t deny it—that I carried a loaded pistol in my pocket.”
The judge—and by the way his title was a quite spurious one given him by his fellow-townsmen late in his life because he had been a lawyer, because he had money, had been in the government service and had been to Europe—the judge now told me of his experience as a young man in college. Now that I come to think of it he no doubt did not tell me at one time all the things I am here setting down. During that winter and spring I spent a great many evenings in his company and he talked continuously of himself, of his cheating the men of the South to get money for himself and cousin, of his wanderings in Europe, of the men he had met at home and abroad and of what he had concluded concerning men’s lives, their motives and impulses and what he thought it would be best for me to do to make my own life as happy as possible.
The judge—and by the way, his title was pretty questionable, given to him by his fellow townspeople late in life because he was a lawyer, had money, worked in government, and had been to Europe—now told me about his experiences as a young man in college. Looking back, I realize he probably didn’t share everything at once that I’m writing down here. During that winter and spring, I spent a lot of evenings with him, and he talked non-stop about himself, about how he tricked the men from the South to get money for himself and his cousin, about his travels in Europe, about the people he met both at home and abroad, and what conclusions he reached regarding people's lives, their motives and impulses, and what he thought would be the best way for me to live my life as happily as possible.
[Pg 178]
[Pg 178]
He had returned at the end of his own life to live out his days alone in his native place because, as he said, one had in the end to accept his own time, place and people, whatever they might be, and that one gained nothing by wandering about the earth among strangers. During his middle years he had thought he would live out his life in some European town or city, in Chartres where, while he lived there for some months, he was all tender with love and regard for the men of a bygone age who had built the lovely cathedral at that place; at Oxford where he had spent some months wandering filled with joy among the old colleges and under the great trees that line the river Thames; in London where he got to have a great respect for the half-stupid but as he said wholly dignified self-respect of the young Englishmen he saw walking in the Strand or along Piccadilly; or in some more colorful town of the south like Madrid or Florence. The French and Paris he declared he could not understand, although he wanted very much to understand and be understood by them, as he felt they were in a way more like himself than any of the others of the Europeans he had seen. “I learned to speak their language quite fluently,” he said, “but they never really took me into their lives. The men I met, painters, writers and fellows of that sort, went about with me, borrowed my money and tried continually to sell me inferior paintings but I always realized they were laughing up their sleeves, and just what about I couldn’t make out or perhaps I shouldn’t have cared.”
He had returned at the end of his life to spend his days alone in his hometown because, as he said, one ultimately had to accept their own time, place, and people, no matter what they were, and that wandering among strangers didn’t lead to anything valuable. During his middle years, he thought he would settle down in some European town or city, like Chartres, where he had lived for a few months and felt great affection for the men of a past era who built the beautiful cathedral there; or Oxford, where he spent months joyfully exploring the old colleges and the magnificent trees along the Thames; or London, where he developed a deep respect for the half-oblivious yet, as he said, entirely dignified self-respect of the young Englishmen he saw strolling in the Strand or along Piccadilly; or in a more vibrant city in the south like Madrid or Florence. He claimed he couldn’t understand the French and Paris, even though he really wanted to connect with them, as he felt they were somehow more like him than any other Europeans he had encountered. “I learned to speak their language quite fluently,” he said, “but they never truly welcomed me into their lives. The men I met—painters, writers, and others like them—hung out with me, borrowed my money, and constantly tried to sell me mediocre paintings, but I always sensed they were laughing behind my back, and I couldn’t quite figure out why, or maybe I just didn’t care.”
In the end the judge had come home to his Ohio town and had settled down to his books, his whisky and his companionship with such men [Pg 179] as Nate Lovett, Billy West, and the others. “We are what we are, we Americans,” he said, “and we had better stick to our knitting. Anyway,” he added, “people are nice here as far as I have been able to observe and although they are filled with stupid prejudices and are fools, the common people, workers and the like, such as the men of this town, wherever you find them, are about the nicest folk one ever finds.”
In the end, the judge returned to his Ohio town and settled into his books, his whiskey, and the company of men like Nate Lovett, Billy West, and others. “We are who we are, we Americans,” he said, “and we’d better focus on what we do best. Anyway,” he added, “people here are nice from what I’ve seen, and even though they have some silly prejudices and can be foolish, the average folks, the workers, and the like, such as the men in this town, are pretty much the nicest people you’ll ever meet.” [Pg 179]
As for the judge’s experience as a young college man and the sort of tragedy that then came and that no doubt set the tone of his after life, it was stupid enough. With his mind filled with the thoughts taken from the books in his father’s library and after a boyhood of such loneliness and brooding as I have here described he went to college filled with high hopes but was there doomed to live as lonely an existence as he had lived in his home town. The young men of the college, given for the most part to the cultivation of athletic sports and to going about to parties and dances with the girls of a near-by city, did not take to young Turner and he did not take to them.
As for the judge's experiences as a young college guy and the kind of tragedy that followed, which surely shaped his later life, it was pretty foolish. With his mind filled with ideas from the books in his father's library and after a childhood marked by loneliness and deep thinking, he started college with high hopes but ended up leading as solitary a life there as he had in his hometown. The other college guys, mostly focused on athletics and socializing at parties and dances with girls from a nearby city, didn't really connect with young Turner, and he didn’t connect with them either.
And then during his second year something happened. There was a young man in one of the upper classes, an athlete of note but at the same time an earnest student, toward whom the Ohio boy’s fancy now turned. It was an entirely sentimental affair, as the man afterward explained and might have done him no harm had he been content never to give it any kind of expression.
And then during his second year, something changed. There was a young guy in one of the upper classes, a recognized athlete but also a serious student, who caught the Ohio boy’s attention. It was purely a sentimental thing, as the guy later explained, and it might not have hurt him if he had just been okay with keeping it to himself.
He did however near the end of his second year try to give it expression. For weeks he had been going about, much like a young girl [Pg 180] in love, thinking constantly of the athlete, of his splendid rugged figure, fine eyes and quick active mind and of how wonderful it would be if he could have an intimate friendship with such a fellow. He dreamed of walks the two might take together in the evenings under the elms that grew on the campus. “I thought he would take my arm or I would take his and we would walk and talk,” Judge Turner said, and I remember that as he spoke he got out of his chair and walked about the room and that his small white hands played nervously over the front of his coat. He seemed not to want to face me as he told the more vital part of his tale but going behind my chair walked up and down the room at my back, and I remember how, although I was then but a boy, I knew he suffered and wanted to put his arms about me as he talked but did not dare. My own heart was filled with sadness so that unknown perhaps to him tears came in my eyes and what part of his tragedy and his words I did not understand I am sure I did dimly sense the meaning of.
He did, however, near the end of his second year, try to express it. For weeks he had been going around, much like a young girl in love, constantly thinking about the athlete, his strong, rugged build, his beautiful eyes, and his quick, active mind, and how amazing it would be to have a close friendship with someone like him. He imagined the walks they could take together in the evenings under the elms on campus. “I thought he would take my arm or I would take his, and we would walk and talk,” Judge Turner said. I remember that as he spoke, he got out of his chair and walked around the room, his small white hands fidgeting nervously with the front of his coat. He seemed reluctant to face me while sharing the more important part of his story, so he went behind my chair and paced back and forth. Even though I was just a boy at that time, I could tell he was in pain and wanted to embrace me as he spoke, but he didn’t have the courage to do so. My own heart was heavy with sadness, and, perhaps without him realizing it, tears started to fill my eyes. Even if I didn't fully understand his tragedy and his words, I could vaguely sense their meaning.
He had, it happened, gone about for months thinking of the older fellow of his college as one much like himself but blessed with a stronger body, greater ability to make his way in the world and no doubt also wanting to give something of himself, or something beautiful outside himself that would represent some spirit of himself, to another man. Once young Turner went to a near-by city and spent a whole afternoon going from shop to shop trying to find some bit of jewelry, a painting or something of the sort he himself thought lovely and that would be within the limits of his own slender means that he might in secret [Pg 181] send to the man he so admired.
He had been thinking for months about an older guy from his college who seemed a lot like him but had a stronger body, more skill at navigating life, and probably also wanted to share a part of himself or something beautiful that represented his spirit with another man. Once, young Turner went to a nearby city and spent the whole afternoon going from shop to shop, trying to find a piece of jewelry, a painting, or something similar that he thought was lovely and that he could afford to secretly send to the man he admired so much. [Pg 181]
“For women I did not care,” the judge said huskily. “To tell the truth I was afraid of women. In a relationship made with a woman one, I thought, risked too much. It might be quite altogether perfect or it might be just nothing at all. To tell the truth I did not then have and never have had enough assurance of fineness in myself to make it possible for me to approach a woman with the object of becoming her lover and I was not then and never have been a strong lustful man and I had, even at that time, put all thought of anything very definite ever happening between myself and a woman utterly aside.”
“For women, I didn't care,” the judge said in a raspy voice. “Honestly, I was afraid of women. I thought being in a relationship with a woman was too risky. It could either be completely amazing or it could be nothing at all. To be honest, I never had enough confidence in myself to approach a woman with the intention of being her lover, and I’ve never been a particularly passionate man. Even back then, I had completely set aside the idea of anything significant ever happening between me and a woman.”
“I had put the thought aside, and had taken up this other, you see. Between myself and the young athlete I had created in fancy a relation that would never attempt to come to any sort of physical expression. We would live, I dreamed, each his own life, each gathering what beauty might be possible from the great outer world and bringing it as a prize to the other. There would be this man I loved and of whom I asked nothing and toward whom my whole impulse would be forever just to give and give to the very top of my bent.
“I had pushed the thought to the back of my mind and focused on this other thing, you see. In my imagination, I had created a relationship between myself and the young athlete that would never try to become something physical. We would live, I dreamed, our own lives, each of us collecting whatever beauty we could find in the vast outside world and bringing it back as a reward for the other. There would be this man I loved, and I expected nothing in return; my entire desire would always be just to give and give with all my heart.”
“You understand how it was, or rather of course you do not understand now but some day it may be you will,” said the voice coming from the thin lips of the small fat man walking up and down the room behind me in the house in Ohio. “I did a foolish thing,” said the voice. “One day I wrote a note to the man telling something of the dream that had been in my mind and as I had nothing else to send I went to a florist’s and [Pg 182] sent him a great bunch of beautiful roses.”
“You get how it was, or rather you probably don’t get it now, but maybe one day you will,” said the voice from the thin lips of the short, chubby man pacing back and forth in the room behind me in the house in Ohio. “I did something stupid,” the voice continued. “One day I wrote a note to the guy sharing a bit about the dream that was on my mind, and since I didn’t have anything else to send, I went to a florist and sent him a big bunch of beautiful roses.” [Pg 182]
“I got no answer to the note but later he showed it about and all during the rest of my days at the school—and out of a kind of blind determination I stayed on there until I graduated and had got my degree, my expenses after my father’s death being paid by my cousin—during all the rest of my days at the school I was looked upon generally as a—perhaps you do not even know the meaning of the word—I was looked upon as a pervert.
“I didn’t get a response to the note, but later he shared it around, and throughout the rest of my time at the school—and out of a kind of stubborn resolve, I stayed there until I graduated and earned my degree, with my expenses covered by my cousin after my father passed away—during all of that time at the school, I was generally seen as a—maybe you don’t even know what this means—I was seen as a pervert.”
“There was another and more vulgar word, a word I had seen on the walls of the shed and on the board fence when I was a schoolboy that was also shouted at me. Like my father before me I, in my trouble, took to walking in the streets and in lonely places at night. The word would be shouted at me from the darkness or from the steps of a house as I stumbled along in the darkness and I had not then, as I had when I was a lad, the satisfaction of thinking of myself as another Francisco, as one who could resort to poison powders to assert his own supremacy and to reëstablish himself with himself.
“There was another, more vulgar word—a word I had seen on the walls of the shed and on the wooden fence when I was in school—that was shouted at me too. Like my father before me, I found myself wandering the streets and lonely places at night during my troubles. The word would echo at me from the darkness or from the steps of a house as I stumbled along. In those moments, I no longer had the comfort, as I did when I was a kid, of thinking of myself as another Francisco, one who could use poison powders to claim his own superiority and to regain his sense of self.”
“I was simply determined I would finish my days in college and would not follow my father’s footsteps in taking my own life—having then and always having had a queer sort of respect, do you see, for life as it manifested itself in my own body—that I would finish my days in that place and that I would then, at the first opportunity, get hold of enough money to make myself respected among the men with whom and in whose company I would in all likelihood have to live out my days.
“I was totally determined to finish my college years and not follow my father's path of taking his own life—having a strange kind of respect, you see, for life as it showed up in my own body—that I would complete my time there and then, at the first chance, get enough money to earn respect among the men I would probably have to spend my life with.”
[Pg 183]
[Pg 183]
“I conceived, do you see, of money-making as the only sure method to win respect from the men of the modern world and as for you, my lad, if you have sensibilities as I suppose you have or I should not have taken the trouble to invite you to my house—as for you, my lad, if an opportunity comes to you, as it did to me when my cousin got me sent South, you had better take advantage of it,” said the judge, coming from behind my chair and standing before me to pour himself another glass of the whisky which he drank this time I noticed without the customary little ceremony of holding it for a moment between his eyes and the light.
“I thought, you see, that making money was the only reliable way to earn respect from the men of today. And as for you, my boy, if you have the sensitivities that I think you do—or I wouldn't have bothered to invite you here—if an opportunity comes your way, like the one I had when my cousin got me sent South, you should definitely take it,” said the judge, coming out from behind my chair and standing in front of me to pour himself another glass of whisky, which this time I noticed he drank without the usual little ceremony of holding it for a moment between his eyes and the light.
I thought, or I may fancy I then thought, that the judge’s bright birdlike eyes were clouded and looked tired as he said these last words and that his hands as he poured the whisky trembled a little but perhaps the notion but springs from my more mature fancy playing over a dramatic moment in life.
I thought, or maybe I just imagined I thought, that the judge’s bright, birdlike eyes seemed clouded and tired as he said these last words, and that his hands trembled slightly as he poured the whisky. But perhaps this idea comes from my more grown-up imagination dramatizing a pivotal moment in life.
And at any rate he came to loaf away the next afternoon at the stable and was as he always had been, sitting in silence, listening to the talk that went round and folding his fat little hands over his neatly-waistcoated paunch. And when he spoke he, as always, concealed under so thick a coat of good-natured toleration what sarcasm may have lurked in his words that he won and seemed always to hold the respect of all of his hearers.
And anyway, he showed up to hang out at the stable the next afternoon, just like always, sitting quietly, listening to the chatter going around while folding his chubby little hands over his well-fitted waistcoat. When he did speak, he still hid under a thick layer of friendly tolerance any sarcasm that might have been there, earning and seemingly keeping the respect of everyone listening to him.
[Pg 184]
[Pg 184]
NOTE III
DEFINITION
DEFINITION
“A really high-class horse is one that is consistent, game, intelligent, gentle, obedient, courageous, and at all times willing and able to go any route with weight up and maintain a high rate of speed and overcome all ordinary difficulties under adverse conditions.
A genuinely top-quality horse is one that is reliable, spirited, smart, kind, obedient, brave, and always ready and capable of going any path with a load while keeping a high speed and handling all typical challenges even in tough conditions.
“Remember that horses are not machines.”
Remember that horses aren't robots.
—Trainer and Cloeker’s Handicap (strictly private).
—Trainer and Cloeker’s Handicap (completely private).
A NARROW beam of yellow light against the satin surface of purplish gray wood, wood become soft of texture, touched with these delicate shades of color. The light from above falls straight down the face of a great heavy beam of the wood. Or is it marble rather than wood, marble touched also by the delicate hand of time? I am perhaps dead and in my grave. No, it cannot be a grave. Would it not be wonderful if I had died and been buried in a marble sepulchre, say on the summit of a high hill above a city in which live many beautiful men and women? It is a grand notion and I entertain it for a time. What have I done to be buried so splendidly? Well, never mind that. I have always been one who wanted a great deal of love, admiration and respect from others without having to go to all the trouble of deserving it. I am buried magnificently in a marble sepulchre cut into the side of a large hill, [Pg 185] near the top. On a certain day my body was brought hither with great pomp. Music played, women and children wept and strong men bowed their heads. Now on feast days young men and women come up the hillside to look through a small glass opening left in the side of my burial place. It must be through the opening the yellow light comes. The young men who come up the hillside are wishing they could be like me, and the young and beautiful women are all wishing I were still alive and that I might be their lover.
A narrow beam of yellow light shines on the smooth surface of purplish-gray wood, which feels soft to the touch, highlighted by these delicate shades of color. The light from above falls directly onto the face of a heavy beam of wood. Or is it marble instead of wood, marble that has also been gently shaped by time? Perhaps I’m dead and lying in my grave. No, it can't be a grave. Wouldn’t it be wonderful if I had died and been laid to rest in a marble tomb, say, on top of a high hill overlooking a city filled with many beautiful men and women? It’s a grand idea, and I entertain it for a moment. What have I done to deserve such a splendid burial? Well, never mind that. I've always wanted a lot of love, admiration, and respect from others without the hassle of actually earning it. I am magnificently buried in a marble tomb carved into the side of a large hill, near the top. On a certain day, my body was brought here with great ceremony. Music played, women and children cried, and strong men lowered their heads. Now, on feast days, young men and women climb the hill to look through a small glass opening left in the side of my resting place. The yellow light must come through that opening. The young men who ascend the hill wish they could be like me, while the young and beautiful women all wish I were still alive and that I could be their lover. [Pg 185]
How splendid! What have I done? The last thing I remember I was working at that place where so many kegs of nails had to be rolled down an incline. I was full of beer too. What happened after that? Did I save a besieged city, kill a dragon like Saint George, drive snakes out of the land like Saint Patrick, inaugurate a new and better social system, or what could I have done?
How amazing! What have I done? The last thing I remember is being at that place where I had to roll a ton of kegs of nails down a slope. I was also really drunk. What happened after that? Did I save a city under siege, slay a dragon like Saint George, chase snakes out of the land like Saint Patrick, launch a new and better social system, or what could I have possibly done?
I am somewhere in a huge place. Perhaps I am standing in that great cathedral at Chartres, the cathedral that Judge Turner told me about when I was a lad and that I myself long afterward saw and that became for me as it has been for many other men and women the beauty shrine of my life. It may be that I am standing in that great place at midnight alone. It cannot be that there is any one with me for I feel very lonely. A feeling of being very small in the presence of something vast has taken possession of me. Can it be Chartres, the Virgin, the woman, God’s woman?
I find myself in a vast space. Maybe I’m in that magnificent cathedral at Chartres, the one Judge Turner mentioned when I was a kid, and that I eventually visited, becoming, like it has for many others, a beautiful sanctuary in my life. It's possible that I’m alone there at midnight. There’s no one else around because I feel incredibly lonely. A sense of being tiny in the presence of something immense has overwhelmed me. Could this be Chartres, the Virgin, the woman, God’s woman?
What am I talking about? I cannot be in the cathedral at Chartres or buried splendidly in a marble sepulchre on a hillside above a [Pg 186] magnificent city. I am an American and if I am dead my spirit must now be in a large half-ruined and empty factory, a factory with cracks in the walls where the work of the builders was scamped, as nearly all building was scamped in my time.
What am I even saying? I can't be in the cathedral at Chartres or laid to rest in a fancy marble tomb on a hill overlooking a stunning city. I'm an American, and if I'm dead, my spirit must be in a big, half-dilapidated, empty factory, a factory with cracks in the walls where the builders cut corners, just like nearly all construction was done in my time. [Pg 186]
It cannot be I am in the presence of the Virgin. Americans do not believe in either Virgins or Venuses. Americans believe in themselves. There is no need of gods now but if the need arises Americans will manufacture many millions of them, all alike. They will label them “Keep smiling” or “Safety first” and go on their way, and as for the woman, the Virgin, she is the enemy of our race. Her purpose is not our purpose. Away with her!
It can't be that I'm in the presence of the Virgin. Americans don't believe in Virgins or Venuses. Americans believe in themselves. There’s no need for gods now, but if the need comes up, Americans will create millions of them, all the same. They’ll label them “Keep smiling” or “Safety first” and keep moving forward, and as for the woman, the Virgin, she is the enemy of our race. Her goals are not our goals. Get rid of her!
The beam of wood I see is just a beam of wood. It was cut in a forest and brought to the factory to support a wall that had begun to give way. No one touched it with careless hurried hands and so it aged as you see, quite beautifully—as trees themselves age. All about me are broken wheels. In the factory the great steam-driven wheels are forever still now.
The beam of wood I see is just a beam of wood. It was cut in a forest and brought to the factory to support a wall that had started to collapse. No one handled it with careless, hurried hands, so it aged as you can see, quite beautifully—just like trees age. All around me are broken wheels. In the factory, the huge steam-driven wheels are forever still now.
Broken dreams, ends of thoughts, a stifled feeling within my chest.
Broken dreams, unfinished thoughts, a suffocating feeling in my chest.
Aha, you Stephenson, Franklin, Fulton, Bell, Edison—you heroes of my Industrial Age, you men who have been the gods of the men of my day—is your day over so soon? “In the end,” I am telling myself, “all of your triumphs come to the dull and meaningless absurdity, of say a clothespin factory. There have been sweeter men in old times, half forgotten now, who will be remembered after you are forgotten. The Virgin too, will be remembered after you are forgotten. Would it not [Pg 187] be amusing if Chartres continued to stand after you are forgotten?”
Aha, you Stephenson, Franklin, Fulton, Bell, Edison—you champions of my Industrial Age, you men who were the gods of my time—is your era over so quickly? “In the end,” I keep reminding myself, “all your achievements lead to the dull and pointless reality of something like a clothespin factory. There have been more admirable figures in the past, now nearly forgotten, who will be remembered long after you fade from memory. The Virgin too will be remembered after you are forgotten. Wouldn’t it be amusing if Chartres continued to stand after you're gone?” [Pg 187]
Is it not absurd? Because I do not want to work in a warehouse and roll kegs, because I do not want to work in a factory anywhere I must needs go getting gaudy and magnificent and try to blow all factories away with a breath of my fancy. My fancy climbs up and up.
Isn’t it ridiculous? Just because I don’t want to work in a warehouse rolling kegs or in a factory, I have to go all out and try to dazzle and impress everything with my imagination. My imagination keeps reaching higher and higher.
Democracy shall spread itself out thinner and thinner, it shall come to nothing but empty mouthings in the end. Everywhere, all over the earth, shall be the dreary commercial and material success of, say the later Byzantine Empire. In the West and after the great dukes, the kings and the popes, the commoners—who were not commoners after all but only stole the name—are having their day. The shrewd little money-getters with the cry “democracy” on their lips shall rule for a time and then the real commoners shall come—and that shall be the worst time of all. Oh, the futile little vanity of the workers who have forgotten the cunning of hands, who have long let machines take the place of the cunning of hands!
Democracy will spread thinner and thinner until it ends up being just empty words. Everywhere around the world, we'll witness the dull commercial and material success similar to the later Byzantine Empire. In the West, after the powerful dukes, kings, and popes, the common people—who aren't really common but just borrowed the title—are now in charge. The clever little money-makers shouting “democracy” will have their time in power, but eventually, the true common people will rise—and that will be the worst time of all. Oh, the pointless pride of the workers who have forgotten the skill of their hands, who have allowed machines to replace that skill!
And the tired men of the arts. Oh, the cunning smart little men of the arts of New York and Chicago! Painters making advertising designs for soap, painters making portraits of bankers’ wives, story-tellers striving wearily to “make” the Saturday Evening Post or to be revolutionists in the arts. Artists everywhere striving for what?
And the exhausted artists. Oh, the clever little guys in the arts of New York and Chicago! Painters creating ads for soap, painters doing portraits of bankers’ wives, writers struggling to get their work in the Saturday Evening Post or to be revolutionaries in the arts. Artists everywhere striving for what?
Respectability perhaps—to call attention to themselves perhaps.
Respectability, maybe—to grab attention for themselves, perhaps.
They will get—a Ford. On holidays they may go see the great automobile races on the speedway at Indianapolis Indiana. Not for them the [Pg 188] flashing thoroughbreds or the sturdy trotters and pacers. Not for them freedom, laughter. For them machines.
They will get—a Ford. On holidays, they might go to see the big car races at the speedway in Indianapolis, Indiana. It's not about flashy sports cars or strong trotting horses for them. It's not about freedom or laughter. It's all about machines for them.
Long ago that Judge Turner had corrupted my mind. He played me a hell of a trick. I have been going about trying to have thoughts. What a fool I have been! I have read many books of history, many stories of men’s lives. Why did I not go to college and get a safe education? I might have worked my way through and got my mind fixed in a comfortable mold. There is no excuse for me. I shall have to pay for my lack of a proper training.
Long ago, Judge Turner messed with my mind. He pulled a major trick on me. I've been going around trying to think for myself. What a fool I've been! I've read a lot of history books and stories about people's lives. Why didn't I just go to college and get a solid education? I could have worked my way through and shaped my mind in a comfortable way. There's no excuse for me. I'll have to face the consequences of not getting the proper training.
In the next room to the one in which I am lying two men are talking.
In the next room from where I’m lying, two men are talking.
FIRST VOICE. “He took straw, ground it, put it into some kind of rubber composition. The whole was mixed up together and subjected to an immense hydraulic pressure. It came out a tough kind of composition that can be made to look like wood. It can be grained like wood. He will get rich. I tell you he is one of the great minds of the age.”
FIRST VOICE. “He took straw, ground it up, mixed it with some kind of rubber blend. Everything was combined and put under immense hydraulic pressure. It turned into a durable material that looks like wood and can be grained like wood. He's going to get rich. I'm telling you, he's one of the great minds of our time.”
SECOND VOICE. “We shall have prohibition after a while and then you’ll see how it will turn out. You can’t down the American mind. Some fellow will make a drink, a synthetic drink. It won’t cost much to make. Perhaps it can be made out of crude oil like gasoline and then the Standard will take him up. He’ll get rich. We Americans can’t be put down, I’ll tell you that.”
SECOND VOICE. “We’ll have prohibition eventually, and then you’ll see how it goes. You can’t suppress the American spirit. Some guy will come up with a drink, a synthetic one. It won’t be expensive to produce. Maybe it can be made from crude oil like gasoline, and then the Standard will pick him up. He’ll get rich. We Americans can’t be held back, that’s for sure.”
FIRST VOICE. “There is a man in New York makes car wheels out of paper. It is ground, I suppose, and made into a kind of mush and then is subjected to an immense hydraulic pressure. The wheels look [Pg 189] like iron.”
FIRST VOICE. “There’s a guy in New York who makes car wheels out of paper. I guess it gets ground up and turned into a sort of paste, then it’s exposed to a huge amount of hydraulic pressure. The wheels look [Pg 189] like they’re made of iron.”
SECOND VOICE. “Do you suppose he paints them black like iron?”
SECOND VOICE. “Do you think he paints them black like metal?”
FIRST VOICE. “It’s a great age we live in. You can’t down machinery. I read a book by Mark Twain. He knocked theories cold, I’ll tell you what. He made out all life was just a great machine.”
FIRST VOICE. “It’s an amazing time we live in. You can’t ignore technology. I read a book by Mark Twain. He totally challenged all the theories, I’ll tell you. He portrayed life as just one big machine.”
Where am I? Am I dreaming or am I awake? It seems to me that I am somewhere in a great empty place. I shall have one of my terrible fits of depression if I am not careful now. Sometimes I walk gayly along the streets and talk to men and women gayly but there are other times when I am so depressed that all the muscles of my body ache. I am like one on whose back a great beast sits. Now it seems to me I am in a huge empty place. Has the roof of a factory in which I was at work at night fallen in? There is a long shaft of yellow light falling down a beam of wood or marble.
Where am I? Am I dreaming or awake? It feels like I'm in a vast, empty space. I could easily slip into one of my terrible bouts of depression if I'm not careful. Sometimes I stroll cheerfully down the streets and chat with people, but other times the weight of depression makes every muscle in my body ache. I feel like there's a huge beast sitting on my back. Right now, it seems like I'm in this enormous empty space. Did the roof of the factory where I was working at night collapse? There's a long beam of yellow light coming down from a wooden or marble beam.
Thoughts flitting, an effort to awaken out of dreams, voices heard, voices talking somewhere in the distance, the figures of men and women I have known flashing in and out of darkness. There is a tiny faint voice speaking: “The money-makers will grow weary and disgusted with their own money-making and labor shall have lost all faith, all sense of the cunning of the hand. The factory hands shall rule. What a mess it will be!”
Thoughts darting around, struggling to wake up from dreams, voices echoing, conversations happening far away, the faces of men and women I’ve known flickering in and out of the dark. There’s a faint little voice saying: “The money-makers will get tired and fed up with their own money-making, and the workers will have lost all faith, all sense of skill. The factory workers will take over. What a disaster that will be!”
[Pg 190]
[Pg 190]
Where am I? I am in a bed somewhere in a room in a workers’ rooming house. Two young mechanics live in the next room and now they are getting out of bed and are talking cheerfully. Once on cold nights monks awoke in cold cells in monasteries and muttered prayers to God. Now in a cold room two young mechanics proclaim their faith in new gods.
Where am I? I'm in a bed somewhere in a room in a workers' boarding house. Two young mechanics live in the next room and are now getting out of bed, chatting cheerfully. Once on cold nights, monks would wake in chilly cells in monasteries and mumble prayers to God. Now, in a cold room, two young mechanics express their faith in new gods.
Words in a brain trying to come into consciousness out of heavy sleep. “Service! They make a point of service,” says one of the young men’s voices. My brain, a voice in my own brain, chattering: “The woman who had been taken in adultery came to wash with her hands the tired feet of the Christ. She wiped his feet with her long hair and poured precious ointment upon them.” A distorted thought born of the effort to awaken from a heavy dream: “Many men and women are going along a street. They all have long hair and bear vessels of precious ointment. They are going to wash the feet of a Rockefeller, of ‘Bet a million’ Gates, of a Henry Ford or the son of a Henry Ford, the gods of the new day.”
Words in a mind waking up from a deep sleep. “Service! They really emphasize service,” says one of the young men. My brain, a voice in my own head, chattering: “The woman caught in adultery came to wash the tired feet of Christ with her hands. She dried his feet with her long hair and poured precious ointment on them.” A twisted thought from the struggle to wake up from a heavy dream: “Lots of men and women are walking down a street. They all have long hair and carry containers of precious ointment. They’re going to wash the feet of a Rockefeller, of ‘Bet a Million’ Gates, of a Henry Ford or the son of a Henry Ford, the gods of today.”
And now the dream again. Again the great empty place. I cannot breathe. There is a great black bell without a tongue, swinging silently in darkness. It swings and swings, making a great arch and I await silent and frightened. Now it stops and descends slowly. I am terrified. Can nothing stop the great descending iron bell? It stops and hangs for a moment and now it drops suddenly and I am a prisoner under the great iron bell.
And now the dream again. Again the vast empty space. I can’t breathe. There’s a huge black bell without a tongue, swinging silently in the darkness. It swings back and forth, making a huge arc, and I wait, silent and scared. Now it stops and slowly comes down. I am filled with dread. Can nothing stop the enormous descending iron bell? It halts and hangs for a moment, and now it drops suddenly, trapping me underneath the massive iron bell.
[Pg 191]
[Pg 191]
NOTE IV
WITH a frantic effort I am awake, I am in my laborers’ rooming house and Nora, who is my friend, has been trying to clean the wall paper in my room. She takes bits of bread dough and rubs the walls. The paper on the walls was originally yellow but time and coal soot have made it almost black. Light is struggling in through a window, wiped clean by Nora but yesterday, but already nearly black again. The morning sun is playing on the wall.
WITH a frantic effort, I wake up in my workers' rooming house. Nora, my friend, has been trying to clean the wallpaper in my room. She takes pieces of bread dough and rubs the walls. The wallpaper was originally yellow, but over time and with coal soot, it has turned almost black. Light is struggling to come through a window that Nora wiped clean yesterday, but it’s nearly black again. The morning sun is playing on the wall.
Nora’s lover does not come home although he writes whenever his ship comes to port. The ship carries ore from Duluth to Chicago and one may be quite sure he does not sleep much of the time in a clean berth nor smell in his nostrils the clean sea air, as I represented things to Nora when I wanted her to take better care of my room. Nora has tried. That idea of mine was a purely literary one but it has made Nora and myself friends.
Nora’s boyfriend doesn’t come home, even though he writes every time his ship docks. The ship transports ore from Duluth to Chicago, and it’s clear he probably doesn’t get much sleep in a clean bunk or enjoy the fresh sea air like I described to Nora when I wanted her to take better care of my room. Nora has made an effort. That idea of mine was purely imaginative, but it has brought Nora and me closer together.
She fancies the notion of having someone to care for, to do things for, and so do I. It is a literary triumph for me and I instinctively like literary triumphs. We are much together and as the time is a black one for me she makes life livable. Nora is a true modern, not fussy, not making a great brag and bluster about it as did so many of the “moderns” in the arts I was to see later in New York. In my day I was to see a time when if a man wrote ten honest paragraphs or painted [Pg 192] three honest paintings he immediately set himself up as a persecuted saint and wept if Mr. Sumner of New York or the Watch and Ward Club of Boston did not descend upon him. Most “moderns” of the arts I was later to see regretted the day of the passing of the Inquisition. They did not hanker to be burned at the stake but would have loved having it done to them, as in the moving picture, with some sort of mechanical cold flame. As for Nora she wanted to know all I thought, all I felt. She was not afraid I would “ruin” her. She knew how to look out for herself.
She likes the idea of having someone to care for and do things for, and so do I. It feels like a big achievement for me, and I naturally appreciate achievements like that. We spend a lot of time together, and since this is a tough period for me, she makes life bearable. Nora is truly modern—not pretentious and not making a big deal about it like so many of the “moderns” I later encountered in New York. Back in my day, I saw a time when if a guy wrote ten honest paragraphs or painted three honest paintings, he immediately acted like a persecuted saint and cried if Mr. Sumner from New York or the Watch and Ward Club from Boston didn't come after him. Most of the “moderns” I later met missed the days of the Inquisition. They didn’t actually want to be burned at the stake, but they would have loved to experience something like that in a movie, with some kind of mechanical cold flame. As for Nora, she wanted to know everything I thought and felt. She wasn't worried I would “ruin” her. She knew how to take care of herself.
In the evenings we went out to walk together, sometimes going to the docks and sitting together while the moon came up over the waters of the lake and sometimes going to what was called the better part of town to walk under trees in a park or along a residence street.
In the evenings, we would go out for walks together, sometimes heading to the docks and sitting side by side as the moon rose over the lake, and other times going to what was known as the nicer part of town to stroll under the trees in a park or along a residential street.
There was no love-making for Nora’s mind was turned toward her sailorman and I was ill. My body was well and strong most of the time, but there was an illness within.
There was no intimacy because Nora's thoughts were focused on her sailor, and I was unwell. My body was mostly healthy and strong, but there was an illness inside me.
My mind dwelt too much of the time in darkness. I had already worked in a dozen factories and much of the time it had been with me as it was with Judge Turner when he was a boy in an Ohio town. Nature had compelled him to go into a vile shed on the walls of which were scrawled sentences that revolted his soul and the necessity of keeping my body going—a necessity I myself did not understand but that was there, in me—had compelled me, time and again, to go into the door of a factory as an employee.
My mind often was consumed by darkness. I had already worked in a dozen factories, and much of the time, it was like what Judge Turner experienced as a boy in an Ohio town. Nature forced him into a dirty shed covered with words that sickened him, and the need to keep my body going—a need I didn’t fully understand but was always there—had driven me again and again to walk through the doors of a factory as a worker.
I talked constantly to Nora of the thoughts in my mind. There was a kind of understanding between us. I did not try to come between her [Pg 193] and her sailorman and I had the privilege of saying to her what I pleased.
I always talked to Nora about what was on my mind. There was a sort of understanding between us. I didn’t try to get in the way of her relationship with her sailor, and I had the freedom to say whatever I wanted to her. [Pg 193]
What a mixed-up affair! I was always pretending to Nora that I loved men and was a great mixer with men while at the same time I was dreaming of having a fight with my fists with the athlete at the warehouse.
What a confusing situation! I was constantly pretending to Nora that I loved being around men and was great at socializing with them, while at the same time I was daydreaming about getting into a fistfight with the athlete at the warehouse.
In the late afternoon I went along a street homeward bound, filled with beer and imagining a scene. In my wanderings I had known personally two fighters, Bill McCarthy, a lightweight, and Harry Walters, a heavy. Once I was second for Harry Walters in a fight with a Negro in a barn near Toledo, Ohio. Sports came out from the city to the barn near a river and when Harry began to lose I was shrewd enough to spread the alarm that the police were coming so that everyone fled and Harry was saved a beating at the hands of the black.
In the late afternoon, I walked down the street heading home, feeling buzzed from the beer and lost in thought. Along my journey, I had personally known two fighters: Bill McCarthy, a lightweight, and Harry Walters, a heavyweight. Once, I was in Harry Walters' corner for a fight against a Black opponent in a barn near Toledo, Ohio. People came from the city to the barn by the river, and when Harry started to lose, I cleverly spread the word that the police were on their way, causing everyone to rush out, which saved Harry from taking a beating from his opponent.
I remembered the blows Harry had struck and that the black had struck and the blows I had seen Billy McCarthy strike. The black had a feint and a cross that confused Harry and that landed the black’s left every time full on Harry’s chin. Each time it landed Harry became a little more groggy but he could not avoid the blow. And I remembered how the black smiled each time as it landed. He had two rows of gold-covered teeth and his smile was like Jack Johnson’s golden smile.
I remembered the punches Harry had taken, the hits from the black guy, and the ones I saw Billy McCarthy throw. The black guy had a feint and a cross that threw Harry off, landing his left punch right on Harry’s chin every time. Each hit made Harry a bit groggier, but he couldn’t dodge the punch. I also recalled how the black guy smiled every time he landed a shot. He had two rows of gold teeth, and his smile was just like Jack Johnson’s golden grin.
I went along factory streets fancying myself the great black, possessing the knowledge of the black’s feint and cross and with the athlete of the warehouse standing before me.
I walked through factory streets, imagining myself as the great black, equipped with the skills of the black’s feint and cross, with the athlete of the warehouse standing right in front of me.
Aha! There is a slight rocking movement of the body, just so. The head [Pg 194] moves slowly and rhythmically like the head of a snake when it is about to strike. Oh, for a long row of yellow gold-crowned teeth to glisten in the mouth when one smiles the golden smile in factory streets, in factories themselves or, most of all, when in a fight, when about to knock an athlete who works with one on a certain platform, “for a goal,” as we used to say among us fighters—an athlete on a platform and with three or four large heavy Swede teamsters standing looking on and smiling also their own slow smiles.
Aha! There's a subtle rocking motion of the body, just like that. The head [Pg 194] moves gently and steadily, like a snake's head ready to strike. Oh, how I wish for a full set of shiny yellow, gold-crowned teeth to sparkle when I flash a smile in factory streets, in the factories themselves, or especially when I'm in a fight, about to take down an athlete who’s working with me on a certain platform, “for a goal,” as we used to say among us fighters—an athlete on a platform with three or four big, heavy Swedish teamsters watching and sharing their own slow smiles.
Patience now! One gets the body and the head moving just so, in opposite directions, with opposing rhythm—a sort of counterpoint, as it were—and then the golden smile comes and, quickly, shiftily, the feint with the right for the belly followed with lightning quickness by the left, crossed to the chin.
Patience now! You get your body and head moving just right, in opposite directions, with different rhythms—a kind of counterpoint, if you will—and then the golden smile appears and, quickly, with a clever move, the feint with the right for the belly is followed, lightning fast, by the left, crossing to the chin.
Oh, for a powerful left! “I would give freely and willingly all the chances I possess of being buried with great pomp in a marble sepulchre on a hillside above a magnificent city for a powerful left,” I think each evening as I go home from work.
Oh, for a strong left! “I would gladly give up all my chances of being buried with grandeur in a marble tomb on a hillside overlooking a beautiful city for a strong left,” I think each evening as I head home from work.
And all the time pretending to Nora and myself that I am one who loves mankind! Love indeed! Nora who wished to make happy the one man she understood and with whom she was to live was the lover, not I.
And all the time pretending to Nora and myself that I'm someone who loves humanity! Love, really! Nora, who wanted to make happy the one man she understood and with whom she would live, was the one in love, not me.
For me the athlete, poor innocent one, has become a symbol.
For me, the athlete, the poor innocent one, has become a symbol.
[Pg 195]
[Pg 195]
NOTE V
IN the many factories where I have worked most men talked vilely to their fellows and long afterward I was to begin to understand that a little. It is the impotent man who is vile. His very impotence has made him vile and in the end I was to understand that when you take from man the cunning of the hand, the opportunity to constantly create new forms in materials, you make him impotent. His maleness slips imperceptibly from him and he can no longer give himself in love, either to work or to women. “Standardization! Standardization!” was to be the cry of my age and all standardization is necessarily a standardization in impotence. It is God’s law. Women who choose childlessness for themselves choose also impotence—perhaps to be the better companions for the men of a factory, a standardization age. To live is to create constantly new forms: with the body in living children; in new and more beautiful forms carved out of materials; in the creation of a world of the fancy; in scholarship; in clear and lucid thought; and those who do not live die and decay and from decay always a stench arises.
IN the many factories where I’ve worked, most men spoke poorly to each other, and it took me a long time to start to understand why. It’s the powerless man who acts this way. His very powerlessness has made him bitter, and eventually I learned that when you strip a man of the skill of his hands, the chance to constantly create new things from materials, you render him powerless. His masculinity fades away, and he can no longer invest himself in love, whether it’s for work or for women. “Standardization! Standardization!” became the battle cry of my time, and every form of standardization is essentially a standardization of powerlessness. It’s a law of nature. Women who choose to be childless also choose powerlessness—perhaps to be better companions for the men in a factory, in an age of standardization. To live is to continuously create new forms: with our bodies in the form of children; in crafting new and more beautiful items from materials; in bringing to life a world of imagination; in scholarship; in clear and lucid thinking; and those who do not truly live will die, decay, and with decay, an unpleasant odor always arises.
These the thoughts of a time long after the one of which I am now writing. One cannot think of the figure of a single man as being in himself to blame but as the man named Ford of Detroit has done more [Pg 196] than any other man of my day to carry standardization to its logical end might he also not come to be looked upon as the great killer of his age? To make impotent is surely to kill. And there is talk of making him President. How fitting! Tamerlane, who specialized in the killing of men’s bodies but who tells in his autobiography how he was always desirous that all living men under him retain their manhood and self-respect, was the ruler of the world in his age. Tamerlane for the ancients. Ford for the moderns.
These are the thoughts from a time long after the one I'm currently writing about. You can't really blame a single person, but the man named Ford from Detroit has done more than anyone else in my time to push standardization to its extreme. Could he also be seen as the great killer of his era? To render someone powerless is definitely a form of killing. And there's talk of making him President. How appropriate! Tamerlane, who was known for killing men but claimed in his autobiography that he always wanted all those living under him to maintain their dignity and self-respect, was the ruler of the world in his time. Tamerlane for the ancients. Ford for the moderns.
In our age why should we not all have houses alike, all men and women clad alike (I am afraid we shall have a bad time managing the women), all food alike, all the streets in all of our cities alike? Surely individuality is ruinous to an age of standardization. It should at once and without mercy be crushed out. Let us give all workers larger and larger salaries but let us crush out of them at once all flowering of individualities. It can be done. Let us arise in our might.
In our time, why shouldn't we all have the same houses, everyone dressed the same (I worry that managing the women will be difficult), eating the same food, and having identical streets in every city? Clearly, individuality is harmful in an era of standardization. It should be eliminated without hesitation. Let's give all workers bigger and bigger salaries, but let's eliminate any expression of individuality immediately. It can be done. Let's rise up in our strength.
And let us put at our head the man who has done in his own affairs what we are all so universally agreed should everywhere be done, the man who has made standardization the fetish of his life.
And let's put at the forefront the person who has handled his own matters in a way that we all widely agree should be done everywhere, the person who has made standardization the focus of his life.
Books may be standardized—they are already almost that; painting may be standardized—it has often been done, and the standardization of poetry will be easy. Already I know a man who is working on a machine for the production of poetry. One feeds into it the letters of the alphabet and out comes poetry and one may pull various levers for the production of poems either of the vers libre sort or poetry in the classic style.
Books might become standardized—they're nearly that already; painting might be standardized—it’s been done before, and standardizing poetry will be simple. I already know someone who is developing a machine to create poetry. You input the letters of the alphabet, and out comes poetry, with options to pull different levers to produce either free verse or classic style poems.
Arise, men of my age! Under the banner of the new age we shall have a [Pg 197] great machine moving slowly down a street and depositing cement houses to the right and left as it goes, like a diarrhœic elephant. All the young Edisons will enlist under the banner of a Ford. We shall have all the great minds of our age properly employed making car wheels out of waste newspapers and synthetic wines out of crude oils. I am told by intelligent men who were soldiers in the World War that in all the world before the war standardization had been carried to the highest pitch by the Germans but now the Germans have been defeated. May it not be that we Americans have all along been intended by God to be the nation that will carry highest the banner of the New Age?
Rise up, men of my generation! Under the banner of the new age, we will have a [Pg 197] massive machine slowly moving down the street, dropping cement houses to the right and left as it goes, like a messy elephant. All the young Edisons will join the cause under a Ford. We’ll have all the brilliant minds of our time properly engaged creating car wheels from waste newspapers and synthetic wines from crude oil. Intelligent veterans of World War I have informed me that before the war, the Germans had taken standardization to great heights, but now they have been defeated. Could it be that we Americans were meant by God to be the nation that will most proudly wave the banner of the New Age?
[Pg 198]
[Pg 198]
NOTE VI
BUT I wander from my subject to leap into the future, to become a prophet, and I have no prophet’s beard. In reality I am thinking of a certain young man who once came rushing, full of vitality and health, into a mechanical age and of what happened to him and to the men among whom he worked.
BUT I drift from my topic to jump into the future, trying to be a prophet, even though I don't have a prophet's beard. Honestly, I'm thinking of a young man who once burst in, full of energy and health, into a mechanical age and about what happened to him and the men he worked with.
There was in the factories where I worked and where the efficient Ford type of man was just beginning his dull reign this strange and futile outpouring of men’s lives in vileness through their lips. Ennui was at work. The talk of the men about me was not Rabelaisian. In old Rabelais there was the salt of infinite wit and I have no doubt the Rabelaisian flashes that came from our own Lincoln, Washington and the others had point and a flare to them.
There was in the factories where I worked, and where the efficient Ford type of man was just starting his monotonous reign, this strange and pointless outpouring of men’s lives in vulgarity through their speech. Boredom was at play. The conversations of the men around me were not Rabelaisian. In the old Rabelais, there was the essence of infinite wit, and I have no doubt that the Rabelaisian sparks that came from our own Lincoln, Washington, and the others had depth and flair to them.
But in the factories and in army camps!
But in the factories and in military camps!
Into my own consciousness, as I, a young man wishing vaguely to mature, walked in a factory street wishing childishly for a golden smile and a wicked left to cross over to the chin of some defender of the new age there was burned the memory of the last place in which I had worked before I had come to the warehouse to roll the kegs of nails.
Into my own thoughts, as I, a young man wishing to grow up, walked down a factory street hoping childishly for a bright smile and a strong punch to connect with the chin of some defender of the new age, I was reminded of the last place I worked before coming to the warehouse to roll the kegs of nails.
It was a bicycle factory where I was employed as an assembler. With some ten or twelve other men I worked at a bench in a long room facing a row of windows. We assembled the parts that were brought to us [Pg 199] by boys from other departments of the factory and put the bicycles together. There was such and such a screw to go into such and such a screw hole, such and such a nut to go on such and such a bolt. As always in the modern factory nothing ever varied and within a week any intelligent quick-handed man could have done the work with his eyes closed. One turned certain screws, tightened certain bolts, whirled a wheel, fastened on certain foot pedals and passed the work on to the next man. Outside the window I faced there was a railroad track lined on one side by factory walls and the other by what had started to be a stone quarry. The stone of this quarry had not, I presume, turned out to be satisfactory and the hole was being filled with rubbish carted from various parts of the city and all day carts arrived, dumped their loads—making each time a little cloud of dust—and over the dump wandered certain individuals, men and women who were looking among the rubbish for bits of treasure, bottles I fancy and bits of cloth and iron that could later be sold to junk men.
It was a bicycle factory where I worked as an assembler. Along with about ten or twelve other guys, I sat at a bench in a long room facing a line of windows. We put together the parts that were brought to us by boys from other parts of the factory and assembled the bicycles. There was a specific screw for a particular screw hole, and a specific nut for a certain bolt. As always in a modern factory, everything was the same, and within a week, any skilled person could do the job with their eyes closed. You would turn certain screws, tighten specific bolts, spin a wheel, attach certain pedals, and then pass the work on to the next person. Outside the window in front of me, there was a railroad track bordered on one side by factory walls and on the other by what had started as a stone quarry. I guess the stone from this quarry didn’t turn out to be good enough, so they started filling in the hole with trash hauled in from different parts of the city. All day long, carts came, dumped their loads—creating little clouds of dust each time—and over the pile of junk wandered various people, men and women, searching through the debris for bits of treasure, probably looking for bottles and scraps of fabric and metal that they could later sell to junk dealers. [Pg 199]
For three months I had worked at the place and listened to the talk of my companions and then I had fled. The men seemed everlastingly anxious to assert their manhood, to make it clear to their fellows that they were potent men able to do great deeds in the realms of the flesh and all day I stood beside a little stand-like bench, on which the frame of the bicycle was stuck upside down, tightening nuts and screws and listening to the men, the while I looked from their faces out the window to the factory walls and the rubbish heap. An unmarried man had been on the evening before to a certain house in a certain [Pg 200] street and there had happened between himself and a woman what he now wished to talk about and to describe with infinite care in putting in all the details. What an undignified stallion he made of himself! He had his moment, was allowed his moment by the others and then another, a married man, took up the theme, also boastfully. There were days as I worked in that place when I became physically ill and other days when I cursed all the gods of my age that had made men—who in another age might have been farmers, shepherds or craftsmen—these futile fellows, ever more and more loudly proclaiming their potency as they felt the age of impotency asserting itself in their bodies.
For three months, I worked there and listened to my coworkers, and then I left. The guys were constantly eager to prove their masculinity, wanting to show their peers that they were strong men capable of great feats in the realm of physicality. All day, I stood next to a small stand-like bench with a bicycle frame turned upside down, tightening nuts and screws, while I listened to them. I looked from their faces out the window at the factory walls and the trash pile. The night before, an unmarried guy had gone to a certain house on a certain street, and something happened between him and a woman that he now wanted to discuss in excruciating detail. What an undignified show-off he was! He had his moment, which the others allowed him, and then another guy, who was married, picked up the topic and bragged too. There were days while I worked there when I felt physically sick and other days when I cursed all the gods of my time for creating men—who in another time might have been farmers, shepherds, or craftsmen—into these pointless guys, increasingly and loudly proclaiming their strength as they sensed the onset of weakness in their bodies.
In the bicycle factory I had repeatedly told the other men that I was subject to sick headaches and I used to go often to a window, throw it open and lean out, closing my eyes and trying to create in fancy a world in which men lived under bright skies, drank wine, loved women and with their hands created something of lasting value and beauty and seeing me thus, white and with trembling hands, the men dropped the talk that so sickened me. Like kind children they came and did my work or, after the noon hour, brought me little packages of remedies they had bought at the drug store or had carried to me from their homes.
In the bicycle factory, I often told the other guys that I suffered from bad migraines. I would frequently go to a window, open it wide, and lean out, closing my eyes and trying to picture a world where people lived under sunny skies, drank wine, fell in love, and created things of lasting value and beauty. When they saw me like that, pale and with shaking hands, the men would stop the conversations that annoyed me so much. Like kind-hearted friends, they would take over my work or, after lunch, bring me little packages of medicine they had bought at the drugstore or brought from their homes.
I had worked the sick headache racket to the limit and then, feeling it had become wornout, had quit my job and had gone to the place where I worked with the young athlete I now wanted to beat with my fists.
I had pushed the sick headache act to the max, and then, feeling it was played out, I quit my job and went to the place where I worked with the young athlete I now wanted to take down with my fists.
And on a certain day I tried. I had now convinced myself that the feint, the cross and the golden smile were all in good working condition and that no man, least of all the young athlete who could [Pg 201] not stand up to his drink, could stand up against me.
And one day I decided to give it a shot. I had convinced myself that my tricks, my confidence, and my charming smile were all in top shape, and that no guy, especially not the young athlete who couldn’t handle his alcohol, could beat me. [Pg 201]
For weeks I had been as nasty as I could be to my fellow-workman. There was a trick I had learned. I gave one of the kegs I was rolling down the incline just a little sudden turn with my foot so that it struck him on the legs as he came into the house through a door. I hit him on the shins and when he howled with pain expressed the greatest regret and then as soon as I could, without arousing too much suspicion, I did it again.
For weeks, I had been as mean as possible to my coworker. I had figured out a trick. I would give one of the barrels I was rolling down the slope a quick kick with my foot so it would hit him on the legs as he walked in through the door. I kicked him in the shins, and when he yelped in pain, I acted really sorry. Then, as soon as I could do it without raising too much suspicion, I did it again.
We ceased speaking and only glared at each other. Even the dull-witted teamsters knew there was a fight brewing. I waited and watched, making my lips do the nearest thing possible to a golden smile, and at night in my room and even sometimes when I was walking with Nora and had come into a quiet dark street I practiced the feint and the cross. “What in Heaven’s name are you doing?” Nora asked, but I did not tell her but talked instead of my dreams, of brave men in rich clothes walking with lovely women in a strange land I was always trying to create in a world of my fancy and that was always being knocked galley-west by the facts of my life. Regarding the queer sudden little movements I was always making with my shoulders and hands I tried to be very mysterious and once I remember, when we had been sitting on a bench in a little park, I left her and went behind a bush. She thought I had gone there out of a natural necessity but it was not true. I had remembered how Harry Walters and Billy McCarthy, when they were preparing for a fight, did a good deal of what is called shadow boxing. One imagines an opponent before oneself and advances and recedes, feints and crosses, whirls [Pg 202] suddenly around and gives ground before a rushing opponent only to come back at him with terrific straight rights and lefts, just as his attack has exhausted itself.
We stopped talking and just stared at each other. Even the slow-witted truck drivers could tell a fight was about to happen. I waited and watched, trying to make my smile look as golden as possible. At night in my room, and sometimes when I was walking with Nora on a quiet, dark street, I practiced the feint and the cross. “What on earth are you doing?” Nora asked, but I didn’t tell her. Instead, I talked about my dreams, of brave guys in fancy clothes walking with beautiful women in a fictional world I was always trying to create, a world that kept getting messed up by the reality of my life. With my strange little movements of my shoulders and hands, I tried to seem mysterious. I remember one time, after we had been sitting on a bench in a small park, I left her and went behind a bush. She thought I was just taking care of a natural need, but that wasn’t true. I remembered how Harry Walters and Billy McCarthy, when they were getting ready for a fight, did a lot of what they called shadow boxing. You imagine an opponent in front of you and move forward and backward, feinting and crossing, suddenly spinning around and giving ground before a charging opponent, only to come back at him with powerful straight punches just as his attack runs out. [Pg 202]
I wanted, I fancy, to have Nora grow tired of waiting for me and to come look around the bush and to discover my secret—that I was not as she thought, a rather foolish but smart-talking fellow inclined to be something of a cloud man. Ah, I thought, as I danced about on a bit of grass back of the bush, she will come to peek and see me here in my true light. She will take me for some famous fighter, a young Corbett or that famous middleweight of the day called “The Nonpareil.” What I hoped was that she would come to some such conclusion without asking questions and would go back to the bench to wait for my coming filled with a new wonder. A famous young prizefighter traveling incognito, not wanting public applause, a young Henry Adams of Boston with the punch of a Bob Fitzsimmons, a Ralph Waldo Emerson with the physical assurance of a railway brakeman—what painter, literary man or scholar has not had moments of indulging in some such dream? A burly landlord has been crude enough to demand instant pay for the room in which one is living, or some taxi driver, who has all but run one down at a corner, jerked out of his seat and given a thorough beating in the face of an entire street. “Did you see him pummel that fellow? And he such a pale intellectual looking chap, too! You can never tell how far a dog can jump by the length of his tail.” Etc., etc.
I wanted Nora to get tired of waiting for me and come over to the bush to discover my secret—that I wasn’t as she thought, just a somewhat foolish but smooth-talking guy who acted a bit like a dreamer. I imagined, as I danced around on a patch of grass behind the bush, that she would peek and see me in my true light. She would think I was some famous fighter, like a young Corbett or that well-known middleweight of the time called “The Nonpareil.” What I hoped was that she would reach some conclusion like that without asking any questions and would return to the bench, eagerly waiting for me with a sense of wonder. A famous young prizefighter traveling incognito, not seeking public applause; a young Henry Adams from Boston with the punch of a Bob Fitzsimmons; a Ralph Waldo Emerson with the confidence of a railway brakeman—what painter, writer, or scholar hasn’t had moments of dreaming like this? A burly landlord could be rude enough to demand immediate payment for the room where you’re staying, or some taxi driver, who nearly ran you down at a corner, could pull you out of your seat and give you a thorough beating right there in front of everyone. “Did you see him beat that guy? And he looked like such a pale, intellectual type, too! You can never tell how far a dog can jump by the length of his tail.” And so on.
Men lost in admiration going off along a street talking of one’s [Pg 203] physical prowess. Oneself flecking the dust off one’s hands and lighting a cigarette, while one looks with calm indifference at a red-faced taxi driver lying pale and quite defeated and hopeless in a gutter.
Men, full of admiration, walked down the street talking about someone's physical strength. I brushed the dust off my hands and lit a cigarette, looking calmly and indifferently at a red-faced taxi driver who lay pale, defeated, and hopeless in a gutter. [Pg 203]
It was something of that sort of admiration I wanted from Nora but I did not get it. Once when I was walking in a street with her and had just gone through with my exercises she looked at me with scorn in her eyes. “You’re a nice fellow but you’re bughouse all right,” she said and that was all I ever succeeded in getting out of her.
It was that kind of admiration I wanted from Nora, but I never got it. Once, when we were walking down the street together after I’d just finished my exercises, she looked at me with disdain in her eyes. “You’re a nice guy, but you’re definitely crazy,” she said, and that was all I ever managed to get out of her.
But I got something else at the warehouse.
But I found something else at the warehouse.
The fight came off on a Wednesday at about three in the afternoon and the athlete and myself had two teamsters as witnesses to the affair.
The fight took place on a Wednesday around three in the afternoon, and the athlete and I had two teamsters as witnesses to the event.
All day I had been bedeviling him—being just as downright ugly and nasty as I could, clipping him on the shins with several flying kegs, making my apologies as insolently as possible and when he started telling one of his endless nasty tales to the teamsters starting a loud conversation on some other subject just as he was about to come to the nub of his story. The teamsters felt the fight brewing and wanted to encourage it. They purposely listened to me and did not hear the nub.
All day I was tormenting him—being as rude and mean as I could, hitting him on the shins with a few flying kegs, making my apologies as disrespectful as possible. When he began telling one of his never-ending awful stories to the teamsters, I would start a loud conversation about something else just as he was about to get to the point of his story. The teamsters sensed the tension and wanted to fuel it. They deliberately paid attention to me and ignored the main point.
He thought, I dare say, that I would never be foolish enough to fight him and I must have taken his scorn of me for timidity for I suddenly grew very bold. He was coming in at the door of the house just as I was on my way out behind one of the kegs and I suddenly stopped it, looked him squarely in the eyes and then, with an attempt at the golden smile on my lips, sent the keg flying directly at him.
He thought, I bet, that I would never be dumb enough to fight him, and I must have mistaken his disdain for fear because I suddenly became very bold. He was walking in the front door just as I was heading out behind one of the kegs, and I suddenly stopped, looked him straight in the eyes, and then, trying to put on a charming smile, sent the keg flying right at him.
[Pg 204]
[Pg 204]
He leaped over the keg and came toward me in silence and I prepared to bring my technique into play. Really I had, at the moment, a great deal of confidence in myself and began at once rocking my head, making queer little shifting movements with my feet and trying to establish a kind of cross rhythm in my shoulders and head that would, I felt, confuse him.
He jumped over the keg and approached me silently, and I got ready to put my skills to use. Honestly, I felt quite confident at that moment and immediately started shaking my head, making strange little movements with my feet and attempting to create a sort of cross rhythm in my shoulders and head that I believed would throw him off.
He looked at me lost in astonishment and I decided to lead. Had I been content to hit him in the belly with my right, putting all my strength back of the blow and then had I begun kicking, biting and pummeling furiously, I might have come out all right. He was so astonished—no doubt, like Nora, he thought me quite bughouse—that the right would surely have landed, but that, you see, was not the technique of the situation.
He looked at me in shock, and I decided to take charge. If I had just punched him in the stomach with my right hand, putting all my strength behind the hit, and then started kicking, biting, and hitting wildly, I might have done okay. He was so surprised—probably thinking I was crazy like Nora did—that the punch would have definitely landed, but that wasn't the right approach for the situation.
The thing was to feint for the belly and then “pull one’s punch” as it were, and immediately afterwards whip over the powerful left to the jaw. But my left was not powerful and anyway it did not land.
The idea was to fake a punch to the stomach and then "pull back" as it were, and right after that, swing a strong left to the jaw. But my left wasn't strong, and in any case, it didn't connect.
He knocked me down and when I got up and started my gymnastics again he knocked me down a second time and a third and a fourth. He knocked me down perhaps a dozen times and the two teamsters came to the door to watch and all the time there was the most foolish look on his face and on their faces. It was a look a bulldog attacked by a hen might have assumed—no doubt by my bullyragging I had convinced them, as I had myself, I could fight—but presently both my eyes were so swollen and my nose and mouth so bruised and cut that I could not see and so I got to my feet and walked away, going out of the warehouse in the midst of an intense silence on the part of all three of the spectators.
He knocked me down, and when I got back up and started my gymnastics again, he knocked me down a second time, then a third, and a fourth. He knocked me down maybe a dozen times, and the two teamsters came to the door to watch. The whole time, he had this ridiculous look on his face, and so did they. It was a look a bulldog might wear if it was attacked by a hen. No doubt my taunting had convinced them, just like it had convinced me, that I could fight—but eventually, my eyes were so swollen and my nose and mouth were so bruised and cut that I couldn’t see. So, I got to my feet and walked away, leaving the warehouse in an intense silence from all three spectators.
[Pg 205]
[Pg 205]
And so along a street I went to my room, followed by two or three curious children who perhaps thought I had been hit by a freight train and succeeded in also getting my door bolted against any sudden descent of Nora. My eyes were very evidently going to be badly discolored, my nose bled and my lips were badly cut, and so, after bathing my face in cold water, I put a wet towel over it and went and threw myself on the bed.
And so I walked down the street to my room, followed by two or three curious kids who probably thought I had been hit by a freight train. I managed to get my door locked to keep Nora from suddenly barging in. It was clear my eyes were going to be really bruised, my nose was bleeding, and my lips were cut up badly. After splashing my face with cold water, I put a wet towel over it and collapsed onto the bed.
It was one of those moments that come, I presume, into every man’s life. I was lying on my bed in my room, in the condition already described, the door was bolted, Nora was not directly about and I was out from under the eyes of my fellowmen.
It was one of those moments that I guess happens in every man’s life. I was lying on my bed in my room, in the state I already mentioned, the door was locked, Nora wasn't around, and I was free from the scrutiny of others.
I tried to think as one will at such moments.
I tried to think like someone does in those moments.
As for Nora, I might very well have gone to my door and called to her—she was at work somewhere on the floor below and would have gladly come running to offer her woman’s sympathy to my hurt physical self—but it was not my hurt physical self that I thought wanted attention. As far as that is concerned I was then, as I have been all my life, not so much concerned with the matter of physical discomfort or pain. Always it has been true of me that a framed water lily on a wall or a walk in a factory street can hurt me worse than a blow on the jaw and long afterward when I became a scribbler of tales I was able to take advantage of this peculiarity of my nature to do my work under conditions that would have disheartened a more physically sensitive man. As I was destined to live most of my life and do most of my work in factory towns and in little, ill-smelling, hideously-furnished rooms, freezing cold in winter and hot and cheerless in summer, it [Pg 206] turned out to be a good and convenient trait in me and in the end I had so trained myself to forget my surroundings that I could sit for hours lost in my own thoughts and dreams, or scribbling oftentimes meaningless sentences in a cold room in a factory street, on a log beside some country road, in a railroad station or in the lobby of some large hotel, filled with the hurrying hustling figures of business men, totally unconscious of my surroundings, until my mood had worn itself out and I had sunk into one of the moods of depression common, I think, to all such fellows as myself. Never was such an almighty scribbler as I later became and am even now. Ink, paper and pencils are cheap in our day and I have taken full advantage of that fact and have during some years written hundreds of thousands of words which have afterward been thrown away. Many have told me, in print or by word of mouth, that all should have been thrown away and they may be right, but I am one who loves, like a drunkard his drink, the smell of ink, and the sight of a great pile of white sheets that may be scrawled over with words always gladdens me. The result of the scribbling, the tale of perfect balance, all the elements of the tale understood, an infinite number of minute adjustments perfectly made, the power of self-criticism fully at work, the shifting surface of word values and color in full play, form and the rhythmic flow of thought and mood marching forward with the sentences—these are things of a dream, of a far dim day toward which one goes knowing one can never arrive but infinitely glad to be on the road. It is the story I dare say of the “Pilgrim’s Progress,” and the sloughs and sink holes on the road are many but the tale of that [Pg 207] journey is known to other men than scribblers.
As for Nora, I could have easily gone to my door and called out to her—she was working on the floor below and would have happily come running to offer her sympathy for my hurt body—but I didn’t think it was my physical pain that needed attention. Honestly, I've never been too concerned about physical discomfort or pain. It’s always been true for me that a framed water lily on a wall or a stroll down a factory street can hurt me more than a punch to the jaw. Later, when I became a storyteller, I was able to use this quirk of mine to work under conditions that would discourage someone more sensitive. Since I was meant to spend most of my life and do most of my work in factory towns and in small, smelly, poorly furnished rooms, freezing in the winter and hot and grim in the summer, this trait turned out to be quite handy. I eventually trained myself to forget my surroundings so I could sit for hours lost in my thoughts and dreams, or scribbling often meaningless sentences in a cold factory street room, on a log by a country road, in a train station, or in a big hotel lobby filled with busy businesspeople, completely oblivious to what was going on around me until my mood wore off and I sank into one of the depressive moods that I think many like me experience. I became an incredibly prolific writer, and I still am today. Ink, paper, and pencils are cheap nowadays, and I’ve made the most of that, writing hundreds of thousands of words over the years that have since been thrown away. Many have told me, in print or in conversation, that all of it should have been discarded, and they might be right, but I’m one who loves, like an alcoholic loves their drink, the smell of ink, and the sight of a big stack of blank pages waiting to be filled always brings me joy. The outcome of the scribbling, the perfectly balanced story, with all its elements understood, countless tiny adjustments perfectly made, the power of self-criticism fully engaged, the changing values and colors of words in full play, form and the smooth flow of thoughts and feelings moving forward with the sentences—these are things of a dream, of a distant day that you know you can never fully reach, but you’re infinitely happy to be on the journey. It’s like the story of “Pilgrim’s Progress,” and there are many obstacles and pitfalls along the way, but the tale of that journey is known to more than just writers.
The consolation of ink and paper came, however, long after the time with which I am now concerned, and what a consolation it is! How much easier it is to sit in a room before a desk and with paper before one to describe a fight between oneself as hero of some tale and five or six burly ruffians than with the fists to dispose of one baseball player on the platform of a warehouse.
The comfort of writing with ink and paper arrived, though, much later than the period I'm currently focusing on, and it truly is a comfort! It’s so much simpler to sit in a room at a desk with paper in front of you and craft a story about battling against five or six tough guys than it is to actually use your fists to take on one baseball player on the loading dock of a warehouse.
In the tale one can do any such job as it should be done and in the doing give satisfaction both to oneself and the possible reader, for the reader will always share in the emotions of the hero and gloat with him over his victories. In the tale, as you will understand, all is in order. The feint and the cross, the powerful left to the jaw, the golden smile, the shifting movements of the shoulders that confuse and disconcert the opponent, all work like well-oiled machines. One defeats not one baseball player or ruffian of the city streets but a dozen if the need arises. Oh, what glorious times I have had, sitting in little rooms with great piles of paper before me; what buckets of blood have run from the wounds of the villains, foolish enough to oppose me on the field of honor; what fair women I have loved and how they have loved me and on the whole how generous, chivalrous, open-hearted and fine I have been! I remember how I sat in the back room of a small bootlegging establishment at Mobile, Alabama, one afternoon, long after the time with which I am now concerned and while three drunken sailors discussed the divinity of Christ at a near-by table wrote the story of little, tired-out and crazed Joe Wainsworth’s killing of Jim Gibson in the [Pg 208] harness shop at Bidwell Ohio, that afterward was used in the novel “Poor White”; and of how at a railroad station at Detroit I sat writing the tale of Elsie Leander’s westward journey, in “The Triumph of the Egg,” and missed my own train—these remain as rich and fine spots in a precarious existence.
In the story, you can do any job the way it should be done and find satisfaction in it for yourself and the potential reader, because the reader will always connect with the hero's emotions and celebrate his victories. In the story, as you’ll see, everything is in order. The feint and the cross, the powerful left hook, the charming smile, the quick shoulder movements that confuse the opponent, all work like perfectly functioning machines. You don't just defeat one baseball player or a street thug; you can take on a dozen if necessary. Oh, the glorious times I've had, sitting in small rooms with piles of papers in front of me; the rivers of blood that have flowed from the wounds of the villains foolish enough to challenge me in the field of honor; the beautiful women I've loved and who have loved me back; and how generous, chivalrous, open-hearted, and fine I've been overall! I remember sitting in the back room of a small bootlegging joint in Mobile, Alabama, one afternoon, long after the time I'm currently focused on, while three drunk sailors at a nearby table debated the divinity of Christ, writing the story of little, exhausted, and crazed Joe Wainsworth’s killing of Jim Gibson in the harness shop in Bidwell, Ohio, which later became part of the novel “Poor White”; and how at a railroad station in Detroit, I was writing the story of Elsie Leander’s journey west in “The Triumph of the Egg,” and ended up missing my own train—these moments remain as rich and significant highlights in a sometimes uncertain life.
But at the time of which I am speaking the consolation of ink and paper was a thing of the future and my bunged-up eyes and hurt spirits were facts.
But at the time I'm talking about, the comfort of writing things down on paper was still in the future, and my messed-up eyes and hurt feelings were a reality.
I lay on my back on my bed, trying to get up courage to face facts. As for the throbbing of the hurt places, the pain was a kind of satisfaction to me at the moment.
I lay flat on my back in bed, trying to muster the courage to face reality. As for the throbbing pain in my injuries, it felt oddly satisfying to me at that moment.
There was the warehouse where I had been more or less a spiritual bully but where I would now have to eat crow. Well, I need not go back. The day before had been payday and I would, by never going near the place again, lose little money and save myself the humiliation of facing the teamsters. And when it came to the scratch, I thought, there was the city I was in, the state, the very United States of America itself—I could if I chose desert them all. I was young, had been well trained in poverty, had no family ties, no social position to uphold, I was unmarried and as yet childless.
There was the warehouse where I had been somewhat of a spiritual bully, but now I would have to swallow my pride. Well, I didn’t have to go back. The day before had been payday, and by staying away from the place, I would lose very little money and avoid the embarrassment of facing the teamsters. And when it came to the money, I thought, there was the city I was in, the state, even the entire United States—I could, if I wanted, abandon them all. I was young, had learned to live in poverty, had no family ties, no social status to maintain, I was unmarried and still childless.
I was a free man, I told myself, sitting on the bed and staring about the room through swollen eyelids. Was I free? Did any man ever achieve freedom? I had my own life before me. Why did I not, by some grand [Pg 209] effort, begin to live a life?
I was a free man, I reminded myself, sitting on the bed and looking around the room with puffy eyelids. Was I really free? Has anyone ever truly achieved freedom? I had my own life ahead of me. Why didn’t I, through some big effort, start living that life? [Pg 209]
I lay on the bed with the wet towel thrown aside thinking, trying to make plans. A faint suspicion of something permanently wrong with me had begun to creep into my consciousness. Was I, alas, a fellow born out of his place and time? I was in a world where only men of action seemed to thrive. Already I had noted that fact. One wanted a definite thing to go after, money, fame, a position of power in the big world, and having something definite of the sort in mind one shut one’s eyes and pitched in with all the force of one’s physical and mental self. I squirmed about trying to force myself to face myself. My body was strong enough for all practical purposes, when not scarred and bruised by the blows of an angry ball player, and I was not such a bad-looking fellow. I was not lazy and on the whole rather liked hard physical labor. Need I be what I at the moment seemed to myself to be, a useless and foolish dreamer, a child in a world filled with what I thought to be grown-up men? Why should I myself not also grow up, take the plow by the handle, plow vast fields, become rich or famous? Perhaps I could become a man of power and rule or influence many other men’s lives.
I lay on the bed with the wet towel tossed aside, thinking and trying to make plans. A faint suspicion that something was permanently wrong with me had started to creep into my mind. Was I, sadly, someone who didn’t belong in this place and time? I was in a world where only action-oriented people seemed to succeed. I had already noticed that. One needed a clear goal to strive for—money, fame, or a position of power in the big world. With a specific goal in mind, people closed their eyes and threw themselves into it with all their physical and mental strength. I squirmed, trying to force myself to confront my own thoughts. My body was strong enough for most things, when not battered and bruised by the blows of an angry ball player, and I didn’t think I looked too bad. I wasn't lazy and generally preferred hard physical work. Did I really have to be what I perceived myself to be in that moment—a useless and foolish dreamer, a child in a world full of what I thought were grown-up men? Why couldn’t I also grow up, take charge, work hard, and become rich or famous? Maybe I could become a person of power and influence many other men’s lives.
There is a trick the fancy has. Start it in any direction and it goes prancing off at a great rate and that trick my own fancy now did.
There’s a trick that imagination has. Start it in any direction and it takes off quickly, and that’s exactly what my own imagination did now.
Although my body ached as a result of my recent plunge into the field of action I, in fancy, plunged in again and began thinking of myself as holding the handle of a plow and plowing the fields of life, turning [Pg 210] great furrows, planting perhaps the seeds of new ideas. Oho, for the smell of new-turned earth, the sight of the sower casting his seed!
Although my body hurt from my recent dive into action, I imagined diving in again and pictured myself gripping a plow's handle, cultivating the fields of life, creating deep furrows, and maybe planting the seeds of new ideas. Oh, how I longed for the smell of freshly turned soil and the sight of the sower scattering his seeds! [Pg 210]
I was off again. On that day Nora had done the work in my room early but now she was sweeping and dusting on the floor below and I could hear her moving about.
I was on the move again. That day, Nora had finished the chores in my room early, but now she was sweeping and dusting downstairs, and I could hear her moving around.
Why should I not first of all conquer Nora? That, I at that moment thought, was surely the beginning of manhood, to conquer some woman, and why not Nora as well as another? It would be something of an undertaking that was sure. Nora was not beautiful nor perhaps too subtle in her outlook on life but then was I myself subtle? She was direct and simple and had, I thought, a direct and simple mind and after I had conquered her, had bent her to my own will, what might we not do together? There was to be sure the sailor with whom she was to live and to whom she was promised but I brushed him aside. “I can cook his goose in some way,” I thought to myself, much as I had thought I could easily dispose of the ball player by my feints and crosses.
Why shouldn’t I start by winning over Nora? I figured that would be the first step into adulthood—conquering a woman, and why not Nora, just like any other? That would definitely be a significant challenge. Nora wasn’t gorgeous or particularly insightful about life, but then again, was I really that insightful? She was straightforward and down-to-earth, and I thought she had a simple way of thinking. Once I had won her over and made her conform to my wishes, what could we accomplish together? Sure, there was the sailor she was supposed to be with, but I pushed that thought aside. “I can deal with him somehow,” I told myself, just like I had convinced myself I could easily handle the ballplayer with my tricks and feints.
We might, I thought, following up the fancy I had just had, begin by being tillers of the soil. We could go West somewhere and take up land. Already I had read many tales of the West and had a fancy for casting in my fortunes with the West. “Out where the smile lasts a little longer, out where the handclasp is a little stronger,” etc. “Oho, for the land where men are men and gals are gals!” I thought my fancy running away like a wild horse broken out of its stall. I saw myself owning vast farms somewhere in the Far West and saw, I am afraid, Nora [Pg 211] doing most of the plowing, planting and the harvesting of crops, the while I rode grandly over the estate on a black stallion, receiving the homage of serfs.
I thought, inspired by the idea I just had, that we could start out as farmers. We could head West and claim some land. I had already read many stories about the West and was excited about the idea of joining that adventure. “Out where the smile lasts a little longer, out where the handshake is a little stronger,” and so on. “Oh, for the land where men are men and women are women!” My imagination was running wild like a horse that broke free from its stable. I pictured myself owning huge farms somewhere in the Far West, and I regret to say, I imagined Nora doing most of the plowing, planting, and harvesting, while I rode majestically around the estate on a black stallion, receiving the admiration of the workers. [Pg 211]
But what would I do with my odd moments? I had tried talking to Nora of the things that interested me most, the play of light over a factory chimney, seen amid smoke as darkness came on, odd expressions caught from the lips of passing men and women, the play of the fancy over the imagined lives of men and women too. Had Nora understood or cared? Could I go on always talking and talking in the face of the fact that I knew she was not much interested?
But what would I do with my spare moments? I had tried talking to Nora about the things that fascinated me the most, like the way light plays over a factory chimney as darkness falls, the strange expressions I noticed on the faces of people passing by, and the flights of imagination regarding the lives of those men and women. Did Nora understand or care? Could I keep talking endlessly when I knew she wasn’t really interested?
With a rush of resolution I threw my doubts aside. Oh, to be one who made two blades of grass where but one had grown before! With Nora at my side I would in some field become great and powerful. I was at the moment but a bunged-up fellow lying on the bed in a cheap rooming house but what did that matter? All about me was the great American world rushing on and on to new mechanical and material triumphs. Teddy Roosevelt and the strenuous life had not yet come but he was implicit in the American mood. Imperialism had already come. It was time, I told myself, to be up and doing.
With a burst of determination, I pushed my doubts aside. Oh, to be someone who could grow two blades of grass where only one had been before! With Nora by my side, I would become great and powerful in some field. Right now, I was just a messed-up guy lying on a bed in a cheap boarding house, but what did that matter? All around me, the great American world was moving forward, achieving new mechanical and material successes. Teddy Roosevelt and the idea of the strenuous life hadn't arrived yet, but he was already part of the American spirit. Imperialism had shown up. It was time, I told myself, to get up and take action.
[Pg 212]
[Pg 212]
NOTE VII
JUMPING off the bed I instantly began to try to prepare myself for new adventures. As I had been lying on the bed thinking the thoughts above set down and working myself up to new heights of fancied grandeur some time had passed. Perhaps I had slept and awakened. At any rate it was now dark in the room and I lighted a lamp. By its light and after I had bathed my face for some time it did not look so swollen although both eyes had turned a deep purple.
JUMPING off the bed, I immediately started getting ready for new adventures. I had been lying there, mulling over my thoughts and building myself up to new heights of imagined greatness for a while. Maybe I had dozed off and woken up. In any case, it was now dark in the room, so I turned on a lamp. Under its light, and after I had washed my face for a bit, it didn’t look as puffy, although both eyes were now a deep purple.
Undaunted I dressed in my best Sunday clothes and prepared to set out. I had engaged to walk with Nora on that evening and it was our custom on such occasions for me to pass quietly out of the house, tapping on the door of her room on the floor below and waiting for her on the front steps.
Undeterred, I put on my best Sunday clothes and got ready to leave. I had made plans to walk with Nora that evening, and it was our tradition for me to quietly slip out of the house, knock on her room door on the floor below, and wait for her on the front steps.
To tell the truth I had already got well going the new dramatization of myself as a man of action but was not sure of myself in the new rôle to want to face any of the workmen in the house. Nora I thought I could handle.
To be honest, I had already gotten pretty into my new portrayal as a man of action, but I wasn't confident enough in this new role to face any of the workers in the house. I thought I could manage Nora, though.
As I stood in the room dressed in my best clothes I counted my money and then decided I would not be a Western ranchman after all but a man of commerce, an empire builder perhaps. I had in my possession some ninety-eight dollars which seemed to me at the moment sufficient for a start in almost any undertaking. It would support me for a few weeks [Pg 213] while I looked about and then I would pitch in somewhere and become an empire builder. It would take time but what was time to me? I had an abundance of time. “I’ll do it,” I told myself resolutely.
As I stood in the room wearing my best clothes, I counted my money and decided that I wouldn’t be a Western rancher after all, but rather a businessman, maybe even an empire builder. I had about ninety-eight dollars, which seemed like a good starting point for almost any venture. It would tide me over for a few weeks while I explored my options, and then I would dive in somewhere and work on building my empire. It would take time, but I had plenty of that. “I’ll make it happen,” I told myself firmly. [Pg 213]
Why not? Was I not a man of imagination? Was I not young and did I not have a strong body?
Why not? Was I not a man of imagination? Was I not young, and didn’t I have a strong body?
As I washed the dried blood off my face, put on my Sunday suit and adjusted my tie I in fancy swept the field of commercial adventure with my somewhat damaged eyes. There were the great cities of Chicago and New York I had not yet seen, although I had read much about them and about men who had grown from poverty to riches and power in them. Like all young Americans I had read innumerable tales of men who had begun with nothing and had become great leaders, owners of railroads, governors of states, foreign ambassadors, generals of armies, presidents of great modern republics. Abraham Lincoln walking miles through a storm after a hard day’s work to borrow his first book, Jay Gould the young Wall Street clerk, setting up a great dynasty of wealth, Daniel Drew the cattle dealer becoming a millionaire, Garfield the canal-boat boy and Vanderbilt the ferryman become President and millionaire, Grant the failure, hauling hides from his father’s tannery at Galena, Illinois, to St. Louis—and, it was said, getting so well piped sometimes on the homeward journey that he fell off the wagon—he also became great, the winner of a mighty war, President of his country, a noted traveler, receiving the homage of kings. “And I can carry my liquor better than he could, by all reports,” I said to myself.
As I washed the dried blood off my face, put on my Sunday suit, and adjusted my tie, I took a sweeping look at the world of business adventure with my somewhat damaged eyes. There were the great cities of Chicago and New York I hadn’t seen yet, even though I’d read a lot about them and about men who had risen from poverty to wealth and power there. Like all young Americans, I had read countless stories of men who started with nothing and became great leaders, railroad owners, state governors, foreign ambassadors, army generals, and presidents of modern republics. Abraham Lincoln walking miles through a storm after a long day’s work to borrow his first book, Jay Gould the young Wall Street clerk building a vast fortune, Daniel Drew the cattle dealer turning into a millionaire, Garfield the canal-boat boy and Vanderbilt the ferryman becoming President and millionaires, Grant the failure, hauling hides from his dad’s tannery in Galena, Illinois, to St. Louis—and it was said he sometimes got so drunk on the way home that he fell off the wagon—he too became great, a winner of a huge war, President of his country, a well-known traveler who received the respect of kings. “And I can hold my liquor better than he could, or so I’ve heard,” I said to myself.
[Pg 214]
[Pg 214]
Were these men any better than myself? At the moment and in spite of the gloom of an hour before, I thought not, and as for my having but ninety-eight dollars, what did that matter? As a matter of fact one gathered from having read American history that there was a sort of advantage to be gained from starting with nothing. One had something to talk and brag about in one’s old age, and when one became a candidate for President one furnished one’s campaign managers with materials for campaign slogans.
Were these guys any better than me? Right now, despite how down I felt an hour ago, I thought not. And what did it matter that I only had ninety-eight dollars? Actually, from reading American history, you could see there was kind of an advantage to starting with nothing. You had something to talk about and boast about when you were older, and when you ran for President, you gave your campaign managers plenty of material for slogans.
And now I was dressed and had tiptoed out of the house, tapped on Nora’s door and was waiting for her outside. I had decided that when she came out I would not make an appeal for her woman’s sympathy by telling of what had actually happened to me. “I do not want woman’s sympathy,” I thought proudly. What I wanted was woman’s respect. I wanted to conquer them, to have them at my feet, to stand before them the conquering male.
And now I was dressed and had quietly slipped out of the house, knocked on Nora’s door, and was waiting for her outside. I decided that when she came out, I wouldn’t ask for her sympathy as a woman by sharing what had really happened to me. “I don’t want a woman’s sympathy,” I thought proudly. What I wanted was a woman’s respect. I wanted to dominate them, to have them at my feet, to stand before them as the conquering man.
When Nora came and when we had walked to where there was a street light and she had seen my damaged countenance I began at once to brag and to reconstruct the fight at the warehouse more to my own fancy. Not one but four men had attacked me and I had valiantly stood my ground. An inspiration came. I had got into the fight, I told Nora, because of a woman. A young woman, a working girl like Nora herself had passed the platform and the men at work there with me had begun making remarks that were not very nice. What was I to do? I was one who could never stand quietly by and hear an innocent woman, particularly one who had to work for her living and had perhaps no men of her own to stand up for her, hear such a woman subjected to insult. I had, I told Nora, at [Pg 215] once pitched into the four men and there had been a terrible fight.
When Nora showed up and we walked to the streetlight, and she saw my battered face, I immediately started to brag and embellish the fight at the warehouse to make it sound better. It wasn't just one guy who attacked me; it was four, and I stood my ground like a champ. Then I had a brilliant idea. I told Nora that the reason I got into the fight was because of a woman. A young working woman, just like Nora, had walked by the platform, and the guys I was working with started making some pretty rude comments. What was I supposed to do? I couldn't just stand by and let an innocent woman, especially one who had to work for a living and might not have anyone to defend her, be insulted like that. So, I told Nora, I jumped right into it with those four guys, and it turned into a terrible fight. [Pg 215]
As I described the fancied affair to Nora the feint and the cross on which I had so depended had worked wonderfully. I had received many hard blows, it was true, and Nora could see by looking at my face how I had suffered, but I had given better than I had received. Like a tornado I had swept up and down the warehouse platform making feints with my right and whipping my powerful left to the jaws of my opponents until at last they were all laid out like dead men before me. And then I had come home, a little fearful that I might have killed one or two of the men but not waiting to see. “I did not care,” I said. “If my opponents have suffered a terrible beating at my hands and if one or two of them die of their injuries it was their own fault. They should have known better than to have insulted a woman in my presence.”
As I explained the imagined situation to Nora, the feint and the cross I had relied on had worked wonders. I had taken quite a few hard hits, that was true, and Nora could tell from my expression just how much I had endured, but I had definitely given more than I had taken. Like a tornado, I had rushed back and forth on the warehouse platform, making feints with my right and delivering powerful left hooks to the jaws of my opponents until finally, they were all out cold in front of me. Then I came home, a bit worried that I might have seriously injured one or two of them but didn’t stick around to find out. “I didn’t care,” I said. “If my opponents took a brutal beating at my hands and if one or two of them end up dying from their injuries, it’s on them. They should have known better than to insult a woman in my presence.”
I had told Nora my story and we had walked in silence until we had come to a street lamp when she suddenly stopped and, taking my left hand, turned it up to the light. As I had not succeeded in the actual fight in striking a blow with it, the hand was unmarked by a bruise. “Huh!” said Nora and we went on in silence.
I had shared my story with Nora, and we walked in silence until we reached a street lamp. Suddenly, she stopped, took my left hand, and turned it up to the light. Since I hadn’t actually landed a hit during the fight, my hand was unmarked by a bruise. “Huh!” said Nora, and we continued walking in silence.
The silence, which was one of the hardest I have ever had to bear, continued until we had finished our walk—which on that evening did not last very long,—and had got back to the house.
The silence, which was one of the toughest I’ve ever had to deal with, lasted until we wrapped up our walk—which that evening didn’t go on for too long—and made it back to the house.
On the steps in front we stopped and Nora stood for a time looking at me. It was a look I did not much fancy, but what was I to do? Two or three times during our walk I had tried to begin talking a little and [Pg 216] had attempted to patch up the structure of my yarn so that it would not be quite so full of holes and leaky but could think of no way to explain the unbruised surface and uninjured knuckles of my left, so I had taken refuge in a kind of sullen silence.
On the steps in front, we stopped and Nora stood there for a while looking at me. It was a look I didn’t really like, but what could I do? A couple of times during our walk, I had tried to start a conversation and tried to fix up my story so it wouldn’t be so full of gaps and inconsistencies, but I couldn’t think of any way to explain why my left hand was unbruised and my knuckles were fine, so I just settled into a kind of sulky silence. [Pg 216]
I had even begun to feel a little injured and angry and was asking myself what right Nora had to question my story—was feeling, to tell the truth, much as I was later to feel when some editor or critic rejected, as not sound, one of my written tales—that is to say, resentful and intolerant of the editor or critic and inclined to call him a fool and to attribute to him all kinds of secret and degrading motives. I was feeling much in this mood, I say, when we had got back to the steps and were standing in the darkness in front.
I had started to feel a bit hurt and angry and was questioning what right Nora had to challenge my story—I felt, to be honest, much like I would later feel when some editor or critic rejected one of my written works as not being good enough—that is to say, resentful and intolerant of the editor or critic, ready to call him a fool and to assume he had all sorts of shady and dishonorable motives. I was feeling pretty much like this when we returned to the steps and stood in the darkness out front.
And then Nora suddenly put her strong arm about my neck and pulled my head down upon her shoulder and I began to cry like a child.
And then Nora suddenly wrapped her strong arm around my neck and pulled my head down onto her shoulder, and I started to cry like a child.
That in an odd way made me more resentful than ever. It faced me with a problem I have all my life been trying to face and have never quite succeeded. One does so hate to admit that the average woman is kinder, finer, more quick of sympathy and on the whole so much more first class than the average man. It is a fact perhaps but a fact that I have always thought we men should deny with all the strength of our more powerful wills. We men should conquer women. We should not stand in the darkness with our heads on their shoulders, blubbering as I was doing at that moment.
That, in a strange way, made me feel more resentful than ever. It put me face to face with a problem I’ve been trying to tackle my whole life but have never quite managed to resolve. It’s so difficult to admit that the average woman is kinder, more refined, more empathetic, and overall so much better than the average man. It may be true, but it's something I’ve always believed men should deny with all the strength of our greater wills. We men should be the ones to conquer women. We shouldn't be standing in the darkness with our heads on their shoulders, crying like I was at that moment.
However, I continued crying and being ashamed of myself and Nora did not press her advantage. When, now and then, I lifted my face from her [Pg 217] shoulder and looked at her face, dimly seen in the darkness, it seemed to me just kindly and filled with sympathy for my position.
However, I kept crying and feeling ashamed of myself, and Nora didn’t take advantage of the situation. When I occasionally lifted my face from her shoulder and looked at her face, barely visible in the darkness, it appeared kind and filled with sympathy for my situation. [Pg 217]
I felt, I presume, most of all the story-teller’s shame at the failure of his yarn and there was something else too. There was a suspicion that Nora, the woman who had been for weeks listening to my talk and whom I had somewhat looked down upon as not being my equal, had suddenly become my superior. I had prided myself on my mind and on the superiority of my imaginative flights. Could it be that this woman, this maker of beds in a cheap laborers’ rooming house, had a better mind than my own?
I felt, I guess, mostly the storyteller’s embarrassment about his story not working out, and there was something else too. I started to suspect that Nora, the woman who had been listening to me for weeks and whom I had looked down on as not being my equal, had suddenly become my superior. I had taken pride in my intellect and in my imaginative ideas. Could it be that this woman, who made beds in a rundown laborers’ boarding house, had a better mind than I did?
The thought was unbearable and so, as soon as I could conveniently manage it, I got my head off Nora’s shoulder and made my escape.
The thought was too much to handle, so as soon as I could, I pulled my head off Nora’s shoulder and slipped away.
In my room I sat again on the edge of the bed and I had again bolted the door. The notion of using Nora to plant and sow fields for me while I rode about on a magnificent black stallion was now quite gone and I had to construct another and at once. That I realized. I had to construct a new dramatization of myself and leave Nora out of it. I was not ready for the Noras. Perhaps I would never be ready for them. Few American men I have ever known have ever shown any signs of being ready for the Noras of the world or of being able really to understand or face them.
In my room, I sat again on the edge of the bed, and I had bolted the door again. The idea of using Nora to plant and tend fields for me while I rode around on a beautiful black stallion was completely gone now, and I needed to come up with something new right away. I realized that I had to create a new version of myself and leave Nora out of it. I wasn’t ready for the Noras. Maybe I would never be ready for them. Few American men I’ve ever known have shown any signs of being ready for the Noras of the world or being able to truly understand or confront them.
My mind turned again to the field of business and affairs. I had already known a good many men and, while such fellows as the baseball player at the warehouse had the better of me because I had been fool enough to let the struggle between us get on a physical plane, I had [Pg 218] not met many men who had caused me to tremble because of any special spiritual or intellectual strength in themselves.
My thoughts drifted back to business and the issues at hand. I had met quite a few men, and although guys like the baseball player at the warehouse had the upper hand since I’d been foolish enough to take our rivalry to a physical level, I hadn’t encountered many men who made me feel uneasy due to any particular spiritual or intellectual power they possessed. [Pg 218]
To be sure the world of affairs was one of which I knew nothing and yet I thought I might tackle it. “It cannot be worse than the world of labor,” I thought as I sat in the darkness, trying not to think of Nora—thoughts of whom I was convinced might weaken the resolution I had taken and might even cause me to begin blubbering again—and keeping my mind fixed on the laborers I had known, even as the laborers who lived in the house with me tramped heavily, one by one, up the stairs and went off to their rooms and to sleep.
I knew absolutely nothing about how the world worked, but I thought I could handle it. “It can’t be worse than the world of work,” I told myself as I sat in the dark, trying not to think about Nora—thinking of her might weaken my resolve and make me start crying again. So I focused my thoughts on the workers I had known, as the workers living in the house with me trudged up the stairs, one by one, and headed to their rooms to sleep.
“I will become a man of action, in the mood of the American of my day. I will build railroads, conquer empires, become rich and powerful. Why should I not do something of the sort as well as all the other men who have done it so brilliantly? America is the land of opportunity. I must keep that thought ever in my mind,” I told myself as I tiptoed out of the house at two o’clock in the morning, having left a note of good-by to Nora and the amount of my room rent in an envelope on my bed. I was being very careful not to make any noise as I went along the hallway and past Nora’s door. “I had better not wake up the woman,” I was wise enough to say to myself as I went away, hugging my new impulse in life.
“I’m going to be a person of action, just like the Americans of my time. I’ll build railroads, take over empires, and become rich and powerful. Why shouldn’t I achieve something like all the other men who have done it so successfully? America is the land of opportunity. I need to keep that in mind,” I told myself as I quietly slipped out of the house at two in the morning, leaving a goodbye note for Nora and the rent for my room in an envelope on my bed. I was careful not to make any noise as I walked down the hallway past Nora’s door. “I better not wake her up,” I thought wisely as I left, embracing my new drive in life.
[Pg 219]
[Pg 219]
NOTE VIII
I HAD come to that period of a young man’s life where all is uncertainty. In America there seemed at that time but one direction, one channel, into which all such young fellows as myself could pour their energies. All must give themselves wholeheartedly to material and industrial progress. Could I do that? Was I fitted for such a life? It was a kind of moral duty to try and then, as now, men at the heads of the great industrial enterprises filled or had filled all the newspapers and magazines with sermons on industry, thrift, virtue, loyalty and patriotism, meaning I am afraid by the use of all these high-sounding terms only devotion to the interests in which they had money invested. But the terms were good terms, the words used were magnificent words. And I was by my nature a word fellow, one who could at most any time be hypnotized by high-sounding words. It was confusing to me as it must be confusing to many young men now. During the World War did we not see how even the very government went into the advertising business, selling the war to the young men of the country by the use of the same noble words advertising men used to forward the sale of soap or automobile tires? To the young man a kind of worship of some power outside himself is essential. One has strength and enthusiasm and wants gods to worship. There were only these gods of [Pg 220] material success. Chivalry was gone. The Virgin had died. In America there were no churches. What were called churches were merely clubs, ruled over by the same forces that ruled over the factories and great mercantile houses. Often the men I heard speaking in churches spoke in the same words, used the same terms to define the meaning of life that were used by the real-estate boomer, the politician, or the enterprising business man talking to his employees of the necessity of steadfastness and devotion to the interests of his firm.
I had reached that stage in a young man’s life where everything feels uncertain. Back then, it seemed like there was only one path in America for guys like me to channel our energy. We all needed to throw ourselves into material and industrial progress. Could I do that? Was I cut out for that lifestyle? It felt like a moral obligation to give it a shot. At that time, just like now, the leaders of major industrial companies filled newspapers and magazines with speeches about industry, frugality, virtue, loyalty, and patriotism, but what they really meant by those lofty terms was just being devoted to their financial interests. But those terms sounded good, and I have always been captivated by impressive language. It was overwhelming for me, just as it must be for many young men today. During World War I, didn’t even the government start promoting the war using the same noble language that advertisers used to sell soap or car tires? For young men, it’s essential to have some external power to look up to. We have strength and enthusiasm and crave something to idolize. The only icons available were those of material success. Chivalry was gone. The Virgin was dead. In America, there were no real churches. What passed for churches were just clubs run by the same powers that controlled factories and big businesses. Often, the men speaking in those churches used the same language and concepts to define life that the real estate mogul, politician, or enterprising business person used when urging their employees to remain committed to the company’s interests.
The Virgin was dead and her son had taken as prophets such men as Ralph Waldo Emerson and Benjamin Franklin, the one with his little books in which he set down and saved his acts and impulses, striving to make them all serve definite ends as he saved his pennies and the other preaching the intellectual doctrine of Self-reliance, Up and Onward. The land was filled with gods but they were new gods and their images, standing on every street of every town and city, were cast in iron and steel. The factory had become America’s church and duplicates of it stood everywhere, on almost every street of every city belching black incense into the sky.
The Virgin was gone, and her son had chosen prophets like Ralph Waldo Emerson and Benjamin Franklin. Emerson, with his small books where he recorded and preserved his actions and thoughts, worked tirelessly to ensure they all served specific purposes just like he saved his coins. Franklin preached the philosophy of Self-reliance, Up and Onward. The land was filled with gods, but they were new deities, their representations made of iron and steel, standing on every street in every town and city. Factories had become America's church, and copies of them were everywhere, on nearly every street in every city, spewing black smoke into the sky.
A passion for reading books had taken possession of me and I did not work when I had any money at all but often for weeks spent my time reading any book I could get my hands on. In every city there were public libraries and I could get books without spending money.
A passion for reading had taken over my life, and whenever I had any money, I didn’t work but instead spent weeks reading every book I could find. There were public libraries in every city, so I could borrow books without spending a dime.
The past took a strong hold on my imagination and I went eagerly down through the ages, reading of the lives of the great men of antiquity; [Pg 221] of the Romans and their conquest of the world; of the early Christians and their struggles before the great organizer Paul came to “put Christianity across”; of the Cæsars, Charlemagnes and Napoleons, marching and countermarching across Europe at the head of their troops; of the cruel but powerful Peters and Ivans of Russia; of the great and elegant dukes of Italy—the poisoners and schemers listening to the words of their Machiavellis; of the magnificent painters and craftsmen of the Middle Ages; of English and French kings; roundheads; Spanish kings of the days of conquest and of gold ships bringing riches from the Spanish Main; the Grand Inquisitor; the coming of Erasmus, the cool scholarly questioner whose questions brought to the front Luther, the conscientious barbarian—all, all spread out before me, the young American coming into manhood, all in the books.
The past captured my imagination, and I eagerly explored the ages, reading about the lives of the great figures from history; [Pg 221] of the Romans and their conquest of the world; of the early Christians and their struggles before the great organizer Paul came to "establish Christianity"; of the Caesars, Charlemagnes, and Napoleons marching and counter-marching across Europe at the heads of their armies; of the ruthless yet powerful Peters and Ivans of Russia; of the grand and cunning dukes of Italy—the poisoners and schemers listening to the words of their Machiavellis; of the magnificent painters and craftsmen of the Middle Ages; of English and French kings; roundheads; Spanish kings from the days of conquest and the gold ships bringing riches from the Spanish Main; the Grand Inquisitor; the arrival of Erasmus, the cool, scholarly questioner whose inquiries led to Luther, the earnest rebel—all of it laid out before me, the young American coming into adulthood, all found in the books.
It was a feast. Could I digest it? I had saved a little money and knew how to live very cheaply. After working for some weeks, and when I did not spend money for drinking bouts to ease the confusion of my mind I had a few dollars put aside and dollars meant leisure. That is perhaps all dollars have ever meant to me.
It was a feast. Could I handle it? I had saved some money and knew how to live on a tight budget. After working for a few weeks, and when I didn’t spend money on drinking to escape my thoughts, I had a few dollars saved up, and dollars meant free time. That’s probably all they've ever meant to me.
Since I was always making the acquaintance of some fellow who lived by gambling I went now and then into a gambling place and sometimes had luck. I had five dollars when I went in at a certain door and came out with a hundred dollars in my pocket. Oh, glorious day! On such an amount I could live among books for weeks and so, renting a small room on a poor street, I went every day to a public library and got a new [Pg 222] book. The book some man had spent years in composing was often waded through in a day and then thrown aside. What a jumble of things in my head! At times the life directly about me ceased to have any existence. The actuality of life became a kind of vapor, a thing outside of myself. My body was a house in which I lived and there were many such houses all about me but I did not live in them. Perhaps I was but trying to make solid the walls of my own house, to roof it properly, to cut windows, becoming accustomed to living in the house so that I could have leisure to look out at the windows and into other houses. Of that I do not know. To make such a claim for myself and my purpose seems giving my life a more intelligent direction than I can convince myself it has had.
Since I was often meeting guys who lived off gambling, I occasionally went into a gambling place and sometimes got lucky. I walked in with five dollars and walked out with a hundred dollars in my pocket. Oh, what a glorious day! With that kind of money, I could spend weeks surrounded by books. So, I rented a small room on a run-down street and went to a public library every day to pick up a new [Pg 222] book. The book that some guy had spent years writing was often skimmed in a day and then tossed aside. What a jumble of thoughts in my mind! Sometimes, the life around me felt like it didn’t even exist. The reality of life turned into a kind of mist, something separate from me. My body was like a house where I lived, and there were many similar houses all around me, but I didn’t live in them. Maybe I was just trying to make my own house feel sturdy, to properly roof it, to cut windows so I could get used to living in it and have the time to look out the windows and see into other houses. I really don’t know. Claiming that for myself and my purpose feels like I’m giving my life a more thoughtful direction than I can honestly believe it has.
I walked in and out of the little rooms in which I lived, often in what was called the tough part of a city, hearing all about me the oaths of drunken men, the crying of children, the weeping of some poor girl of the streets who has just been beaten by her pimp, the quarreling of laborers and their wives, walked hearing and seeing nothing, walked gripping a book in my hand.
I walked in and out of the small rooms where I lived, often in what was known as the rough part of the city, surrounded by the cursing of drunk men, the cries of children, the sobbing of a poor girl from the streets who had just been beaten by her pimp, and the arguments of workers and their wives. I walked, hearing and seeing nothing, clutching a book in my hand.
In fancy I was at the moment with the great Florentine Leonardo da Vinci on a day when he sat on a little hill above his country house in Italy studying the flight of birds or was making the mathematical and geometrical calculations he so loved. Or I was sitting in a carriage beside the scholar Erasmus as he drove across Europe going from the court of one great duke or king to the court of another. The lives of the dead men and women had become more real to me than the lives of [Pg 223] the living people about me.
In my imagination, I was with the great Florentine Leonardo da Vinci on a day when he sat on a small hill above his villa in Italy, studying the flight of birds or working on the mathematical and geometric calculations he loved so much. Or I was in a carriage next to the scholar Erasmus as he traveled across Europe from the court of one great duke or king to another. The lives of the dead men and women felt more real to me than the lives of the living people around me. [Pg 223]
How bad an American I had become, how utterly out of touch with the spirit of my age! Sometimes for weeks I did not read a newspaper—a fault in me that would have been considered almost in the light of a crime had it been generally known to my fellows. A new railroad might have been built, a new trust formed or some great national excitement like the free silver affair—that did fall in at about that time—might have shaken the whole country while I knew nothing about it.
How bad an American I had become, how completely out of touch with the spirit of my time! Sometimes for weeks, I didn't read a newspaper—a flaw in me that would have been seen almost like a crime if my peers had known. A new railroad might have been built, a new trust created, or some major national event like the free silver issue— which did happen around that time—might have stirred the entire country while I was completely unaware.
There was indeed a kind of intimate acquaintance with an unknown and unheralded kind of people I was unconsciously getting. In Chicago, where I had now gone I for a time lived in a room in a huge cheaply constructed building that had been erected about a little court. The building was not old, had in fact been built but a few years before—during the Chicago World’s Fair—but already it was a half-tumbledown unsafe place with great sags in the floors in the hallways and cracks in the walls. The building surrounded the little brick-paved court and was divided into single rooms for bachelor lodgers and into small two- and three-room apartments. Since it was near the end of several street-car lines and a branch of the Chicago elevated railroad it was occupied for the most part by street-car conductors and motormen with their wives and children. Many of my fellow-lodgers were young fellows having wives but no children and not intending to have children if the accidents of life could be avoided. They went off to work and came home from work at all sorts of odd hours.
I was unknowingly becoming familiar with a unique group of people. In Chicago, where I now lived for a while, I stayed in a room in a large, cheaply built structure that surrounded a small courtyard. The building wasn’t old; it had only been constructed a few years earlier—during the Chicago World’s Fair—but it was already starting to fall apart, with sagging floors in the hallways and cracks in the walls. The building enclosed the little brick-paved courtyard and was divided into single rooms for bachelor lodgers and small two- and three-room apartments. Because it was close to several streetcar lines and a branch of the Chicago elevated railroad, it was mostly occupied by streetcar conductors and motormen along with their wives and children. Many of my fellow lodgers were young men who had wives but no children and had no plans to have kids if they could help it. They went to work and returned home at all sorts of odd hours.
I hadn’t very much money but did not mind. My room was small and cost [Pg 224] little and I lived on fruit and on stacks of wheatcakes that could be had at ten cents the stack at a near-by workingmen’s eating place. When I was broke I told myself I could always go again to some place where laborers were wanted. I was young and my body was strong. “If I cannot get work in the city I can get on a freight train at night and go away to the country and work on a farm,” I thought. Sometimes I had qualms of conscience because I had not already started on the great career as an industrial magnate I had half-heartedly mapped out for myself but I managed to put my sins of omission aside. There was plenty of time I told myself and in any event I planned eventually to do the thing with a grand rush.
I didn’t have much money, but I didn’t mind. My room was small and affordable, and I lived on fruit and stacks of wheatcakes that I could get for ten cents each at a nearby diner for workers. When I was out of cash, I reassured myself that I could always find a job somewhere laborers were needed. I was young and strong. “If I can’t find work in the city, I can hop on a freight train at night and head to the countryside to work on a farm,” I thought. Sometimes I felt guilty for not already starting the impressive career as an industrial mogul that I had only half-heartedly planned for myself, but I managed to push those feelings aside. I told myself there was plenty of time, and anyway, I intended to make my move with a big flourish eventually.
In the meantime I lay for long hours on the little bed in my room reading the last book I had got from the library or walked in a near-by park under the trees. Time ceased to exist and the days became night while the nights became days. Often I came back to my room at two in the morning, washed my shirt, underwear and socks at a washbowl in a corner, hung them out at my window facing the court to dry and lying down naked on my bed read by a gaslight until daylight had come.
In the meantime, I spent long hours on the small bed in my room reading the last book I had borrowed from the library or walking in a nearby park under the trees. Time seemed to disappear, and days turned into nights while nights turned into days. Often, I returned to my room at two in the morning, washed my shirt, underwear, and socks at a basin in the corner, hung them out of my window facing the courtyard to dry, and lay down naked on my bed, reading by gaslight until dawn.
Marvelous days! Now I was marching with the conqueror Julius Cæsar over the vast domains of the mighty Roman Empire. What a life and how proud Julius and I were of his conquests and how often we spoke together of the doings of Cicero, Pompey, Cato and the others in Rome. Indeed Cæsar and I had become for the nonce the most intimate of friends and often enough we discussed the unworthiness of some of the other [Pg 225] Romans, particularly of that Cicero. The man was no better than a dog, a literary hack, when all was said and done, and such fellows are never to be trusted. Often enough Cicero had talked with Cæsar and pretended to be Cæsar’s friend but, as Julius often pointed out to me, such fellows were wont to veer about with every wind that blew, “Writers are the greatest cowards in the world and my own greatest weakness is that I have a kind of hankering that way myself. Let a man but get into power and he will always find such scribbling fellows willing and anxious to sing his praises. They are the greatest cur dogs in the world,” he declared vehemently.
Amazing days! Now I was marching with the conqueror Julius Caesar across the vast territories of the mighty Roman Empire. What a life it was, and how proud Julius and I felt about his conquests. We often talked about the actions of Cicero, Pompey, Cato, and the others in Rome. Indeed, Caesar and I had become, for the time being, the closest of friends, and we frequently discussed the unworthiness of some of the other [Pg 225] Romans, especially that Cicero. The guy was no better than a dog, just a writer for hire, when it came down to it, and people like that can never be trusted. Cicero had often spoken with Caesar, pretending to be his friend, but as Julius often pointed out to me, those types would change their opinions with every gust of wind. “Writers are the biggest cowards in the world, and my own biggest weakness is that I have a bit of that tendency myself. Let a man gain power, and he will always find those scribbling types eager to sing his praises. They are the greatest lapdogs in the world,” he declared passionately.
And so I had become in fancy the friend of Cæsar and all day I marched beside him and at evening went with him and his men into their camp.
And so I imagined myself as Caesar’s friend, and all day I walked alongside him and in the evening joined him and his men in their camp.
The days and weeks passed. I sat by the window looking into the little brick-paved court and there were many other windows. As it was summer they were all open. Evening came, after a day of walking in dreams, and I had come into my room and taking off my coat had thrown myself down on my bed. When darkness came I did not light a light but lay quietly listening.
The days and weeks went by. I sat by the window, looking out into the small brick-paved courtyard, where there were many other windows. Since it was summer, they were all open. Evening arrived after a day spent drifting in my thoughts, and I came into my room, took off my coat, and flopped down onto my bed. When it got dark, I didn’t turn on a light; I just lay there quietly, listening.
I had stepped now out of the past and into the present and all about me were the voices of living people. The men and women in the rooms along the court did not laugh or sing often and indeed in the many times, during my life, I have lived, as I did then, lying like a little worm in the middle of the apple of modern life, I have never found that [Pg 226] American men and women, except only the Negroes, laugh or sing much in their homes or at their work.
I had now stepped out of the past and into the present, surrounded by the voices of real people. The men and women in the rooms along the courtyard didn't laugh or sing much, and honestly, in all my experiences throughout life, just like I was then, feeling like a little worm in the middle of the apple of modern life, I’ve never noticed that American men and women, aside from the Black community, laugh or sing very often in their homes or at their jobs. [Pg 226]
It was evening and a street-car conductor had come home to his wife. They were silent in each other’s presence for a time, then they began to quarrel. Sometimes they fought and after that they made love. The love-making of the couples along the court aroused my own passions and I had bad dreams at night.
It was evening, and a streetcar conductor had returned home to his wife. They sat quietly together for a while, then started to argue. Sometimes they fought, and afterward, they made love. Watching the couples in the courtyard being intimate stirred my own desires, and I had disturbing dreams at night.
What a strange thing love-making had become among modern factory hands, street-car conductors and all such fellows! Almost always it was preceded by a quarrel, often blows were struck, there were tears, repentance and then embraces. Did the tired nerves of the men and women need the stimulation of the fights and quarrels?
What a strange thing love-making had become among modern factory workers, streetcar drivers, and those like them! It was almost always preceded by an argument, often leading to physical fights, tears, regret, and then hugs. Did the weary nerves of both men and women need the excitement of these fights and arguments?
A red-faced man who stumbled as he walked along the hallways to his small apartment had secured a small flat stick which he kept behind a door. His wife was young and fat. When he had come home from work and had in silence eaten his evening meal he sat by the window facing the court and read a newspaper while his wife washed the dishes. Suddenly, when the dishes were washed, he jumped to his feet and ran to get the stick. “Don’t, John, don’t,” his wife pleaded half-heartedly, as he began to pursue her about the narrow room. Chairs were knocked over and tables upset. He kept hitting her with the flat stick upon the nether cheeks and she kept laughing and protesting. Sometimes he struck her too hard and she grew angry and, turning upon him, scratched his face with her finger nails. Then he swore and wrestled with her. Their period of more intense love-making had now come and silence reigned [Pg 227] over the little home for the rest of the night.
A red-faced man who stumbled as he walked down the hall to his small apartment had a flat stick he kept behind the door. His wife was young and overweight. After coming home from work and silently eating his dinner, he sat by the window facing the courtyard and read a newspaper while his wife washed the dishes. Suddenly, when the dishes were done, he jumped to his feet and ran to grab the stick. “Don’t, John, don’t,” his wife begged half-heartedly as he started chasing her around the cramped room. Chairs toppled over and tables got knocked askew. He kept hitting her with the flat stick on her backside, and she just laughed and protested. Sometimes he hit her too hard, and she got mad, turning on him to scratch his face with her fingernails. Then he cursed and wrestled with her. Their phase of more intense love-making had begun, and silence took over the little home for the rest of the night. [Pg 227]
I lay on my bed in the darkness and closed my eyes. Once more I was in the camp of Cæsar and we were in Gaul. The great captain had been writing at a small table near the door of his tent but now a man had come to speak with him. I lay in silence upon a kind of thick warm cloth spread on the ground beside the tent.
I was lying on my bed in the dark with my eyes shut. Once again, I found myself in Caesar's camp, and we were in Gaul. The great leader had been writing at a small table near his tent's door, but now someone had come to talk to him. I lay quietly on a thick, warm blanket spread on the ground next to the tent.
The man who talked with Cæsar was a bridge-builder and had come to speak with him regarding the building of a bridge that the legions might cross a river beside which they now lay encamped. A certain number of men would be needed with boats and others were at daylight to go hew great timbers in a near-by forest and roll them into the stream.
The man who spoke with Caesar was a bridge-builder and had come to discuss constructing a bridge so that the legions could cross a river where they were currently camped. A certain number of men would be required with boats, and others were to go at dawn to cut down large timbers in a nearby forest and roll them into the water.
How very quiet and peaceful it was where I lay! Cæsar’s tent was pitched on a hillside. In person he was like ... there was an Italian fruit dealer who had a small store on a street near the park where I went every day to sit, a tall gaunt man who had lost one eye and whose black hair was turning gray. The fruit dealer had evidently lost his eye in a fight as there was a long scar on his cheek. It was this man I had metamorphosed into a Cæsar.
How quiet and peaceful it was where I lay! Caesar's tent was set up on a hillside. In person, he resembled... there was an Italian fruit vendor who had a small shop on a street near the park where I went every day to sit, a tall, thin man who had lost one eye and whose black hair was turning gray. The fruit vendor had clearly lost his eye in a fight since there was a long scar on his cheek. It was this man I had transformed into a Caesar.
Below, at the foot of the hill on which the tent stood and on the banks of a river the legions were camped. They had built fires and some of the men were bathing in the river but when they came out they dressed quickly because of little biting flies that swarmed about their heads. I was glad Cæsar’s tent was pitched on a hill where there was a little breeze and there were no biting flies or insects. Below, the fires in the valley glowed and cast yellow and red lights over the tawny bodies [Pg 228] and faces of the soldiers.
Below, at the bottom of the hill where the tent was set up and beside a river, the troops were camped. They had built fires, and some of the soldiers were bathing in the river, but once they came out, they quickly got dressed because of the little biting flies that buzzed around their heads. I was glad that Cæsar’s tent was pitched on a hill where there was a slight breeze and no biting flies or insects. Below, the fires in the valley glowed, casting yellow and red lights over the tan bodies and faces of the soldiers. [Pg 228]
The man who had come to Cæsar was a craftsman and had a maimed hand. Two of the fingers of his left hand had been cut sharply off as by a blow with an ax. He went away into the darkness and Cæsar went within his tent.
The man who had come to Caesar was a craftsman and had a damaged hand. Two of the fingers on his left hand had been sharply cut off, as if by an axe. He walked away into the darkness, and Caesar went inside his tent.
I lay on my bed in the room in the building in Chicago not daring to open my eyes. Had I been asleep? Now there was no quarreling in the other places along the court but there were still lights at some of the windows. The workers had not yet all come home. Two women were talking together across the space between their windows. Street-car conductors and motormen, who had been all day working their cars slowly through crowded streets, propitiating quarrelsome passengers, cursing and being cursed at by teamsters and crossing policemen, were now asleep. Of what were they dreaming? They had come from the car barns, had read a newspaper, telling perhaps of a fight between English troops and the natives of Thibet, had read also a speech by the German emperor demanding a place in the sun for Germany, had noted who had beaten the Chicago White Sox or who had been beaten by them. Then they had quarreled with their wives, blows had been struck, there had been love-making and then sleep.
I lay on my bed in the room in the building in Chicago, too afraid to open my eyes. Had I been asleep? Now there was no arguing in the other places along the hallway, but there were still lights on in some of the windows. The workers hadn’t all come home yet. Two women were chatting across the space between their windows. Streetcar conductors and motormen, who had spent all day slowly maneuvering their cars through crowded streets, dealing with difficult passengers, cursing and being cursed at by teamsters and crossing guards, were now asleep. What were they dreaming about? They had come from the car barns, read a newspaper perhaps reporting a fight between English troops and the natives of Tibet, also read a speech from the German emperor demanding a place in the sun for Germany, and noted who beat the Chicago White Sox or who was beaten by them. Then they had argued with their wives, punches were thrown, there was some romance, and then sleep.
I arose and went to walk in the silent streets and twice during that summer I was stopped by holdup men who took a few dollars from me. The World’s Fair had been followed by a time of industrial depression. How many miles I have walked in the streets of American cities at night! In Chicago and the other industrial cities long streets of houses—how [Pg 229] many houses almost universally ugly and cheaply constructed, like the building in which I then lived! I passed through sections where all the people were Negroes and heard laughter in the houses. Then came the sections entirely inhabited by Jews, by Greeks, Armenians, Italians, Germans, or Poles. How many elements not yet combined in the cities! The American writers, whose books I read, went on assuming that the typical American was a transplanted Englishman, an Englishman who had served his term in the stony purgatory of New England and had then escaped out into the happy land, this Heaven, the Middle West. Here they were all to grow rich and live forever, a happy blissful existence. Was not all the world supposed to be watching the great democratic experiment in government and human happiness they were to conduct so bravely?
I got up and went for a walk in the quiet streets, and twice that summer I was stopped by robbers who took a few dollars from me. The World’s Fair had been followed by a period of economic downturn. How many miles have I walked in the streets of American cities at night! In Chicago and other industrial cities, long streets of houses—how many houses were almost universally ugly and poorly built, like the one I was living in at the time! I walked through neighborhoods where all the residents were Black, and I heard laughter coming from inside the houses. Then I went through areas completely inhabited by Jews, Greeks, Armenians, Italians, Germans, or Poles. There were so many groups not yet blended in the cities! The American writers whose books I read kept assuming that the typical American was a transplanted Englishman, someone who had spent their time in the rocky purgatory of New England and then escaped to the promised land, this paradise, the Midwest. Here, they were all supposed to get rich and live forever, in a state of blissful happiness. Wasn’t the whole world supposed to be watching the great democratic experiment in governance and human happiness that they would carry out so bravely?
I wandered on into factory districts, long silent streets of grim black walls. Had men but escaped out of the prisons of the Old World into the more horrid prisons of the New? Dread took hold of me as on a dark street I was approached by a man who put a gun to my face. He wanted money and I tried to be facetious with him, telling him I hadn’t enough money to buy drinks for the two of us but would match him pennies for what I had but he only growled at me and taking my few pieces of silver hurried away. Perhaps he did not even understand my words. America, once a place that prided itself on its sense of humor, was now, since the coming of the factories, a place where the very robbers were all too serious about life.
I wandered into the factory districts, long deserted streets lined with grim black walls. Had people really escaped from the prisons of the Old World only to find themselves in even worse prisons in the New? Fear gripped me when a man approached on a dark street and pointed a gun at my face. He wanted money, and I tried to lighten the mood by joking that I didn’t have enough to buy drinks for us but would gladly match him penny for penny with what I did have. He just growled at me, took my few coins, and hurried away. Maybe he didn’t even understand what I was saying. America, once proud of its sense of humor, had turned into a place where even the robbers took life way too seriously, all because of the factories.
Periods of lust kept coming and going. In the building where I lived [Pg 230] there was a woman, very young yet, a high-school graduate from an Illinois town who had married a young man of the place. They had come to live in Chicago, to make their way in the great world, and as he could get no other work he had taken a place as street-car conductor. Oh, it was but a temporary arrangement. He was one who intended, as for that matter I did myself, to rise in the world.
Periods of desire came and went. In the building where I lived [Pg 230] there was a woman, still very young, a high school graduate from a town in Illinois who had married a local guy. They had moved to Chicago to pursue their dreams, and since he couldn't find any other work, he became a streetcar conductor. Oh, it was just a temporary situation. He was someone who planned, just like I did, to move up in the world.
The man I never saw but all afternoon the woman sat by a window in one of the two rooms of her apartment or went for short walks in the park. We began presently to smile shyly at each other but did not speak, both being embarrassed. Like myself she read books and that was a kind of bond between us. I got into the habit of sitting by my window with my book in my hand while she sat by her window also holding a book.
The man I never saw, but all afternoon, the woman sat by a window in one of the two rooms of her apartment or took short walks in the park. We gradually started to smile shyly at each other but didn’t speak, both feeling a bit awkward. Like me, she read books, and that created a sort of connection between us. I got into the routine of sitting by my window with my book in hand while she sat by her window, also holding a book.
And here was a new confusion. The pages of the books no longer lived. The woman, sitting there, but a few feet away from me, across the little court, I did not want. Of that I was quite sure. She was another man’s wife. What thoughts had she in her head, what feelings had she? Her face was round and fair and she had blue eyes. What did she want? Children perhaps, I thought. She wanted to have a house like all the other houses lived in by the people of her home town who had made money and who held positions of some importance in the town’s life. One day she sat on a bench in the park and I, walking past, saw the title of the book she read. It was a popular novel of the day but I have forgotten its name and the name of its author. Even at that time, although I knew little enough, I did know that such books had always [Pg 231] been written, would always be written, books that sold by the hundreds of thousands and were often proclaimed as great works of art and that after a year or two were utterly forgotten. In them was no sense of strangeness, no wonder about life. They lacked the touch of life. “Dead books for men and women who dare not live,” I thought contemptuously. There was a kind of pretense of solving some problem of life but the problem was so childishly stated that later a childish solution seemed quite natural and right. A young man came to an American city from a country town and, although at bottom he was true and fine, the city for a time diverted him from his noble aims. He committed some near crime that made both himself and the girl he really loved suffer terribly, but she stood firmly by him and at the last, and with her help, he pulled himself up again, by the bootstraps as it were, and became a rich manufacturer who was kind to his employees.
And here was a new confusion. The pages of the books no longer came alive. The woman sitting there, just a few feet away from me across the small courtyard, I didn't want. I was sure of that. She was another man’s wife. What thoughts were running through her mind, what feelings did she have? Her face was round and fair, and she had blue eyes. What was she looking for? Maybe children, I thought. She wanted a home like all the other houses owned by people from her hometown who had made money and held respectable positions in the community. One day, she sat on a bench in the park, and as I walked by, I saw the title of the book she was reading. It was a popular novel at the time, but I’ve forgotten its name and the author’s name. Even back then, though I knew little, I realized that such books had always been written and would always be written—books that sold by the hundreds of thousands and were often hailed as great works of art, yet were completely forgotten a year or two later. They lacked a sense of strangeness, no wonder about life. They didn’t capture the essence of life. “Dead books for men and women who are afraid to live,” I thought with disdain. There was a sort of pretense of addressing some life problem, but the problem was presented so naively that a simple solution later seemed natural and right. A young man moved to a big city from a small town and, despite being genuinely good at heart, the city temporarily led him away from his noble goals. He made some borderline mistake that caused both himself and the girl he truly loved to suffer greatly, but she stood by him unwaveringly, and in the end, with her support, he managed to lift himself up, so to speak, and became a wealthy manufacturer who treated his employees kindly.
The book she read expressed perhaps the high-school girl’s dream, the dream she had when she married and came to Chicago. Was her dream the same now? I had already, as far as I reacted to the life about me at all, started upon another road, was becoming, a little, the eternal questioner of myself and others. Not for me the standardized little pellets of opinion, the little neatly wrapped packages of sentiment the magazine writers had learned to do up, I told myself. In modern factories food was packed in convenient standard-sized packages and I half suspected that behind the high-sounding labels the food was often enough sawdust or something of the sort. It was apparent publishers [Pg 232] also had learned to do up neat packages containing sawdust and put bright-colored labels on them.
The book she read probably represented the dream of a high school girl, the one she had when she got married and moved to Chicago. Was her dream still the same? I had already started down a different path, becoming a little bit more of an eternal questioner of myself and others in response to the life around me. I didn't want the standard little pellets of opinion, the neatly wrapped packages of sentiment that magazine writers had mastered, I told myself. In modern factories, food was packaged in convenient, standard-sized containers, and I suspected that behind the fancy labels, the food was often just sawdust or something similar. It was clear that publishers had also learned to package up neat little bundles containing sawdust and slap bright-colored labels on them. [Pg 232]
Oh, glorious contempt! Seeing the book the woman was reading, knowing she was the wife of another and that never by any chance could we come close to each other, give to each other anything of value, I enjoyed my contempt for an hour and then it faded. I sat as before by my window and held an open book but could not follow the thoughts and ideas of the writer of the book. I sat by my window and she with her book sat by her window.
Oh, glorious disdain! Seeing the book the woman was reading, knowing she was someone else's wife and that we could never get close to each other or share anything meaningful, I reveled in my disdain for an hour before it faded. I sat as before by my window, holding an open book but unable to grasp the thoughts and ideas of the author. I sat by my window while she, with her book, sat by her window.
Was something about to happen that neither of us wanted, of which we were both afraid, that would be without value to either of us?
Was something about to happen that neither of us wanted, something we were both scared of, that would be pointless for either of us?
One evening when I met her in the hallway of the building I stopped before her and we stood thus for a minute facing each other. We both blushed, both felt guilty, and then I tried to say something to her but did not succeed. I stammered out a few words about the weather, saying how hot it was, and hurried away but a week later, when we again met in the same place it was dark and we kissed.
One evening, when I saw her in the hallway of the building, I stopped in front of her, and we stood there for a minute facing each other. We both blushed and felt guilty, and then I tried to say something to her but failed. I fumbled through a few words about the weather, mentioning how hot it was, and rushed away. However, a week later, when we met again in the same spot, it was dark, and we kissed.
We began then to walk in silence together in the park in the early evenings and sometimes we sat together on a park bench. How careful we were not to be seen by others who lived in our building. Her husband left the house at three in the afternoon and did not return until midnight and when he came home he was tired and discouraged. He scolded at his wife. “He is always scolding,” she said. Well, one wanted to save money, get into business for oneself. And now he had a wife to support and the wages of street-car conductors were not large. The [Pg 233] young man who wanted to rise in the world had begun to resent his wife and she felt it vaguely, uneasily. She also was filled with resentment. Did she want revenge? She had no words to express what she felt and I had no way of understanding. Was I not also confused, wanting something very much, that at the same time I did not want? I sat in my room until darkness came holding the book I now could not read and when the darkness had come threw it with a loud bang on a table. The sound had become a signal to her and when I went into the park she came to join me. One evening when we had kissed in the darkness of the park I went home ahead of her but did not close the door of my room. I stood in the darkness by the door waiting. She had to pass along the hallway to reach her own place and I put out my hand and drew her inside.
We started walking together in silence in the park during the early evenings, and sometimes we would sit together on a park bench. We were careful not to be seen by anyone from our building. Her husband left the house at three in the afternoon and didn’t come back until midnight, and when he did, he was tired and frustrated. He often scolded his wife. “He’s always scolding,” she said. Well, he wanted to save money and start a business. Now, he had a wife to support, and the pay for streetcar conductors wasn’t high. The young man who wanted to succeed in life had begun to resent his wife, and she sensed it, feeling uneasy. She was filled with resentment herself. Did she want revenge? She couldn’t find the words to express what she felt, and I couldn’t understand either. Wasn’t I also confused, desiring something very much that I also didn’t want? I sat in my room until it was dark, holding the book I couldn’t read, and when darkness fell, I threw it down loudly on the table. The noise became a signal to her, and when I went into the park, she came to join me. One evening, after we kissed in the darkness of the park, I went home ahead of her but left my room door open. I stood in the dark by the door, waiting. She had to walk down the hallway to get to her place, and I reached out my hand and pulled her inside.
“I’m afraid,” she kept saying, “I don’t want to. I’m afraid.” What a queer silent frightened love-making it was—no love-making at all. She was afraid and I was afraid, not of her husband but of myself. Later she went away crying silently along the hallway and after that she and I did not sit at our two windows or walk in the park and I returned to my books. Once, on a night two or three weeks later as I lay in my own bedroom, I heard the husband and wife talking together. Something had happened that had pleased and excited her. She had been able to offer something she thought would help her husband and was urging him to give up being a street-car conductor and to go back to the town from which they had come. Her father owned a store there, I gathered, and had objected to her marriage but she had secretly written, perhaps been [Pg 234] very humble, and had persuaded her father to take the younger man into partnership in his business. “Don’t be proud now, Jim. I’m not proud any more. Something has happened to me Jim. I’m not proud any more,” I heard her saying as I lay in my own room in the darkness, and I leave the reader to judge whether, under the circumstances, I could be proud. But perhaps after all the woman and I have done something for each other, I thought.
“I’m scared,” she kept saying, “I don’t want to. I’m scared.” It was such a strange, silent, frightened moment of intimacy—there was no intimacy at all. She was scared, and I was scared, not of her husband but of myself. Later, she walked away crying quietly down the hallway, and after that, she and I didn’t sit by our windows or walk in the park anymore, so I went back to my books. Once, a couple of weeks later, as I lay in my own bedroom, I heard the husband and wife talking. Something had happened that excited her. She had found something she thought would help her husband and was encouraging him to quit being a streetcar conductor and to go back to the town they came from. I gathered that her father owned a store there and had been against her marriage, but she had secretly written to him and maybe been very humble, persuading her father to take the younger man into partnership in his business. “Don’t be proud now, Jim. I’m not proud anymore. Something has happened to me, Jim. I’m not proud anymore,” I heard her say from my dark room, and I’ll let the reader decide if, given the situation, I could feel proud. But maybe after all, the woman and I had done something for each other, I thought.
[Pg 235]
[Pg 235]
NOTE IX
ON a certain Sunday morning of that summer I found myself sitting in a little garden under apple trees back of a red brick house that had green window blinds and that stood on the side of a hill near the edge of an Illinois town of some five or six thousand people. Sitting by a small table near me was a dark slender man with pale cheeks, a man I had never seen until late on the evening before and who I had half thought would die but a few hours earlier. Now, although the morning was warm, he had a blanket wrapped around him and his thin hands, lying on the table, trembled. Together we were drinking our morning coffee, containing a touch of brandy. A robin hopped on the grass near by and the sunlight falling through the branches of the trees made yellow patches at our feet.
ON a certain Sunday morning that summer, I found myself sitting in a little garden under apple trees behind a red brick house with green window blinds. It was on the side of a hill near the edge of a small Illinois town with around five or six thousand people. Sitting at a small table next to me was a dark, slender man with pale cheeks, someone I had never seen until late the night before, and I had half expected he wouldn’t make it through the night. Now, even though the morning was warm, he had a blanket wrapped around him, and his thin hands, resting on the table, were trembling. We were sipping our morning coffee, which had a dash of brandy in it. A robin hopped on the grass nearby, and the sunlight filtering through the tree branches created yellow patches at our feet.
I sat in silence filled with wonder at the strangeness of the circumstances that had brought me to the spot and of my own mood. The garden in which we sat had a gravel path running down through the centre and on one side vegetables grew, with narrow beds of flowers about the vegetable plots. Along the further side against a fence were tall berry bushes and on our side there was grass under the trees and near by a tall hedge of elders. Looking toward the foot of the garden one got a view of a river valley dotted with farmhouses and beyond the [Pg 236] elders there was a road that led along a hillside down into town.
I sat in silence, filled with wonder at the odd situation that had brought me here and my own feelings. The garden we were in had a gravel path running down the middle, with vegetables growing on one side and narrow flower beds around the vegetable plots. On the other side, tall berry bushes lined a fence, and on our side, there was grass under the trees and a tall hedge of elderberries nearby. Looking toward the end of the garden, you could see a river valley scattered with farmhouses, and beyond the elder bushes, there was a road that wound down the hillside into town. [Pg 236]
The town itself was old, for that Illinois country, and had already had two lives. First, it had been a river town on the banks of a stream that led down into the Mississippi, and now it was a merchandising centre. Later perhaps it would become a factory town. The river life had died, when the railroads came but there still were some remnants of the older place, one or two streets of small log stores and houses standing on a bluff above the river and now used as residences by farm laborers. The old town, left thus off by itself half forgotten by the new town, was picturesque. In the company of my strange new acquaintance and once with his father, an old man who had lived in the river town in the days of its prosperity, I later spent several hours among the old houses. Dogs and pigs wandered through the deep dust of the principal street facing the river or slept in the shade of the old buildings and the old man told me that even in its better days it was a quite terrible place. In the winter, in the early days, the roads were hub deep to the wagons with mud, the houses were small and near each house was an outhouse that smelled horribly in summer and invited millions of flies. Pigs, cows and horses were kept in little sheds near the houses and often diseases, encouraged by the utter lack of sanitation, swept through the town and sometimes carried off whole families.
The town itself was old for that part of Illinois and had already lived through two phases. First, it had been a river town along a stream that flowed into the Mississippi, and now it was a shopping hub. Maybe later it would become a factory town. The river life faded away when the railroads arrived, but there were still some remnants of the older place—one or two streets lined with small log stores and houses perched on a bluff above the river, now serving as homes for farm workers. The old town, somewhat isolated and half-forgotten by the new town, was charming. I spent several hours there with my unusual new friend and once with his father, an elderly man who had experienced life in the river town during its heyday. Dogs and pigs roamed through the thick dust of the main street facing the river or napped in the shade of the old buildings, and the old man told me that even in its prime, it was a pretty terrible place. In the winter, during those early days, the roads were deep with mud, making it hard for wagons, the houses were small, and each one had an outhouse that smelled awful in the summer and attracted millions of flies. Pigs, cows, and horses were kept in tiny sheds near the houses, and diseases, sparked by the complete lack of sanitation, often swept through the town, sometimes wiping out entire families.
The older of the two men, named Jim Berners, was a merchant, owning with his son a large store on the principal street of the newer town and had been brought to the Illinois town when he was a child. His [Pg 237] father, an Englishman, had come to America as a young man and for several years had been a merchant in the city of Philadelphia. Having married there and wanting to establish himself as the head of a landed family in the new country he had come to Illinois when land could be had at a low price and had bought five hundred acres of river bottom land.
The older of the two men, named Jim Berners, was a merchant who owned a large store on the main street of the newer town with his son. He had moved to the Illinois town as a child. His [Pg 237] father, an Englishman, had come to America as a young man and had worked as a merchant in Philadelphia for several years. After marrying there and wanting to establish himself as the head of a landed family in this new country, he moved to Illinois when land was affordable and bought five hundred acres of river bottom land.
With his young wife and his three children he lived in the river town and had cleared and got ready for planting most of his land when misfortune came down upon him. In the crude little towns of that day doctors were for the most part half educated, the houses were stuffy and full of drafts in winter and epidemics of smallpox, followed by scarlet fever, diphtheria and typhus came and could not be checked. Within two years the merchant’s rather delicate wife died and her death was followed by his own and by the death of two of his three children. There was only the babe left alive and he had been put in charge of an old judge with whom the father had formed a friendship.
With his young wife and three kids, he lived in the river town and had prepared most of his land for planting when bad luck struck. In those small towns back then, doctors were mostly only partially trained, the houses were cramped and drafty in the winter, and outbreaks of smallpox, followed by scarlet fever, diphtheria, and typhus, came through and couldn't be controlled. Within two years, the merchant’s rather fragile wife passed away, and shortly after, he and two of his three children died as well. Only the baby survived, and he was placed in the care of an old judge with whom the father had formed a friendship.
The young Berners had grown into manhood in the household of the judge, whose great boast it was that he was a personal friend of Abraham Lincoln. He told me he had never been ill a day in his life. Upon reaching manhood he sold three hundred acres of his land and like his father became a merchant.
The young Berners had come of age in the judge's home, who proudly claimed to be a personal friend of Abraham Lincoln. He told me he had never been sick a day in his life. Once he reached adulthood, he sold three hundred acres of his land and, following in his father's footsteps, became a merchant.
Father and son still owned the Berners merchandising establishment although they seemed to give it little attention.
Father and son still owned the Berners merchandising store, even though they seemed to pay it little attention.
What a place it was! Some ten years before I made his acquaintance the younger Berners, named Alonzo, had gone to Chicago where he had got quite hopelessly drunk. During his whole life the man had been a [Pg 238] sufferer from some obscure nervous disease and was never without pain. The sprees he sometimes went on were but a kind of desperate attempt to free himself for a short time from the presence of pain. After the drunken time he was dreadfully ill and seemed about to die and then there came a time of weakness and a kind of physical peace. The tense nerves of his slender body relaxed, he slept at night and spent the days talking with a few friends, reading books or riding about town in a buggy.
What a place it was! About ten years before I met him, the younger Berners, named Alonzo, had gone to Chicago where he got completely wasted. Throughout his life, the man had struggled with some unclear nerve condition and was always in pain. The drinking binges he sometimes had were just a desperate attempt to escape the pain, even if only for a little while. After his drunken episodes, he would be extremely ill and seemed close to death, but then there would come a period of weakness and a kind of physical calm. The tense nerves in his slender body would relax, he would sleep at night, and spend his days chatting with a few friends, reading books, or driving around town in a buggy.
On the sprees, of ten years before, sprees indulged in twice a year at regular intervals outside his own town, when he had stolen away without warning to his father or to an older sister of the household, young Alonzo had been picked up in the city of Chicago by an English deep-sea sailor. The sailor had been working for a time on a lake steamer but had tired of the place and had left his ship at Chicago and had also gone on a drunk. He rescued Alonzo Berners from the men into whose hands he had fallen and brought him home and later became attached to the Berners establishment, staying in the Illinois town at first as clerk in the store and later as the store’s manager. He was a heavily built man of fifty-five when I saw him and had a white scar, evidently from an old knife wound, on his brown cheek and a peculiar waddling gait. As he hustled about the store one thought of a fat duck trying to make its way rapidly along on land.
On the outings, ten years earlier, which he took twice a year at regular intervals outside his own town, when he had slipped away without telling his father or older sister, young Alonzo was picked up in Chicago by an English deep-sea sailor. The sailor had worked for a while on a lake steamer but got fed up with it, left his ship in Chicago, and then went on a drinking spree. He rescued Alonzo Berners from the men who had taken him and brought him home, eventually becoming part of the Berners family, first as a store clerk and later as the store manager. He was a stocky fifty-five-year-old when I met him, with a white scar, clearly from an old knife wound, on his brown cheek and a distinctive waddling walk. When he hurried around the store, he reminded one of a fat duck trying to move quickly on land.
In the Berners establishment were sold hardware, agricultural implements, house and barn paints, jack-knives and a thousand other things and there was also a harness shop in the main building facing the town’s principal street. Back of the main building there was an [Pg 239] alleyway and across the alleyway half a dozen large frame buildings in which were kept hides bought from the farmers, coal, lumber, bins of corn, wheat and oats in bags and hay in bales.
In the Berners store, they sold tools, farming equipment, house and barn paints, pocket knives, and a thousand other items. There was also a harness shop in the main building facing the town's main street. Behind the main building, there was an alley, and across the alley were about six large frame buildings that stored hides bought from farmers, coal, lumber, bags of corn, wheat, and oats, and bales of hay. [Pg 239]
The whole establishment, an infinitely busy place, was run by the sailor who could neither read or write but who was helped by a stern-looking woman bookkeeper. The sailor was shrewd wise and jolly and had always some tale of life on the deep sea to tell to his farmer customers. He was the most popular man in town and there was another feature that added tremendously to the popularity of the store. In the spring, just before planting time, and in the fall after the crops were harvested, the Berners gave a great feast in one of the sheds. The hay corn and lumber were taken out and long wooden tables erected, while invitations were sent far and wide to the town and country people. Women of the town and country wives came to help prepare the feast, the old sailor waddled about shouting, pigs, turkeys, calves and lambs were killed, bushels of potatoes baked, pies and cakes, baked in advance by the women, were brought and there was a feast lasting sometimes all afternoon and far into the night. Alonzo Berners had provided many barrels of beer and the sailor and his pals among the farmers got half drunk and sang songs and made speeches while the professional men of the town, the lawyers, judges and doctors, all came and made speeches. What a storm of talk! Even the preachers and the rival merchants were there and a prayer was said as each new group sat down to the feast, the ministers shaking their heads over the beer drinking but falling to with a will at the food. The two annual affairs must often have cost [Pg 240] the Berners a good part of the profits made during the year but they did not mind. “It doesn’t matter,” said the elder Berners. “I’m old and nearly ready to die, it isn’t likely Alonzo will live very long and as for Hallie,” meaning the daughter, “I have already given her one of my two farms. The Berners are going to peter out anyway and why should they care about leaving money behind them?”
The whole place was super busy and was run by a sailor who couldn't read or write, but he had a strict-looking woman as a bookkeeper to help him. The sailor was clever, wise, and cheerful, and he always had some story about life at sea to share with his farming customers. He was the most popular guy in town, and another thing that really boosted the store's popularity was the big feast the Berners held in the spring, just before planting season, and in the fall, after the harvest. They would clear out one of the sheds, set up long wooden tables, and send out invitations to people from town and the countryside. Townswomen and farmers' wives came to help prepare the food, while the old sailor bustled around shouting excitedly. They butchered pigs, turkeys, calves, and lambs, baked bushels of potatoes, and brought pies and cakes that the women had made ahead of time. The feast would last sometimes all afternoon and well into the night. Alonzo Berners would provide lots of barrels of beer, and the sailor along with his farmer buddies would get a bit tipsy, singing songs and giving speeches. The professional people from town—lawyers, judges, and doctors—would also attend and speak. What a buzz of chatter! Even the preachers and rival shop owners showed up, and a prayer was said each time a new group sat down for the meal, with the ministers disapproving of the beer drinking but diving into the food with gusto. Those two annual events must have cost the Berners a significant portion of their yearly profits, but they didn't care. “It doesn’t matter,” said the elder Berners. “I’m old and nearly at the end of my life, Alonzo probably won’t have much time left either, and as for Hallie,” referring to their daughter, “I’ve already given her one of my two farms. The Berners are going to fade away anyway, so why should they worry about leaving money behind?”
The elder Berners, a man of seventy, rarely went into town but spent most of his days in his little garden and during my own visit at the house he came every day to sit with me, smoking his pipe and talking until he fell asleep in his chair. When he had been a younger man and before his wife died he had owned several trotting horses of which he loved to talk. One of the horses, named “Peter Point,” had been the pride and joy of his life and he spoke of the horse as of a beloved son.
The older Berners, a seventy-year-old man, hardly ever went into town and spent most of his days in his small garden. During my visit to the house, he came by every day to sit with me, smoking his pipe and chatting until he dozed off in his chair. When he was younger and before his wife passed away, he had owned several trotting horses that he loved to talk about. One of the horses, named “Peter Point,” had been the pride and joy of his life, and he talked about him like he was a beloved son.
Oh, what a great magnificent beast the stallion Peter Point had been and how he could trot! Sometimes when he spoke of him the old man jumped to his feet and climbing on the chair seat touched the limb of an apple tree with his fingers. “Looket here now. He was taller than that. Yes, siree! He was taller than that when he threw up his head,” he declared, jumping down from the chair and hopping about like an excited boy and walking up and down before me rubbing his hands together. He told me a long tale of a trip he had once taken with his stallion and two trotting mares as far east as Pennsylvania and of how Peter Point won every race in which he started, always the trotting free-for-all, and spoke fervently of the moment when he came out with [Pg 241] the others and paraded before the grandstand before the first heat of a race. Jim Berners, then young and strong, sat in the sulky and what a moment it was for him. The memory of it filled him with excitement. “My father used to talk of the English aristocracy to his friend the judge, with whom I was left when all my family died, and the judge told me tales of what he had to say. Sometimes on days like that, when we came out for the first heat and were scoring down for the start or going slowly back for another try after a false start, I used to think of his words. There was me, sitting in the sulky, and there was the man, old Charlie Whaley, who took care of Peter Point, standing over near the grandstand with a blanket over his shoulder. Charlie winked and nodded at me and I winked at him. How swelled up with pride I was. I usually had two or three hundred dollars bet on Peter’s chances and he never once went back on me. I thought we were pretty aristocratic ourselves, Peter and me.”
Oh, what an amazing beast the stallion Peter Point had been, and how he could trot! Sometimes when he talked about him, the old man would jump to his feet, climb onto the chair seat, and touch the limb of an apple tree with his fingers. “Look here now. He was taller than that. Yes, indeed! He was taller than that when he threw up his head,” he declared, jumping down from the chair and bouncing around like an excited boy, walking back and forth in front of me, rubbing his hands together. He shared a long story about a trip he once took with his stallion and two trotting mares all the way to Pennsylvania and how Peter Point won every race he entered, always in the trotting free-for-all. He spoke passionately about the moment when he came out with the others and paraded in front of the grandstand before the first heat of a race. Jim Berners, then young and strong, sat in the sulky, and what an incredible moment it was for him. The memory of it filled him with excitement. “My father used to talk about the English aristocracy to his friend the judge, with whom I was left when all my family died, and the judge told me stories about what he had to say. Sometimes on days like that, when we came out for the first heat and were scoring down for the start or slowly going back for another try after a false start, I would think of his words. There I was, sitting in the sulky, and there was the man, old Charlie Whaley, who took care of Peter Point, standing near the grandstand with a blanket over his shoulder. Charlie winked and nodded at me, and I winked back at him. I was so full of pride. I usually had two or three hundred dollars bet on Peter’s chances, and he never let me down. I thought we were pretty aristocratic ourselves, Peter and me.”
“Well, and so there we were jogging slowly up to the starting place and the people in the grandstand were shouting and down in the betting ring there was a hubbub and I used to look at the people and think about them and about myself and the horse too. ‘Lordy,’ I used to say to myself, ‘what a lot we do think of ourselves and what God-awful things we are, we humans, come right down to it.’ I was raised in the old Judge Willard’s house, right here in this town, you know, and in the old days a lot of what we called our big men used to come to talk their affairs over with the judge. Abe Lincoln used to come and once the editor of the Chicago Tribune and young Logan who afterward got [Pg 242] to be governor, and a lot of others, congressmen, and other such truck. They came and planned and schemed and then they used to make speeches up in front of the town hall that was down by the river in the old town but that later burned to the ground. They talked and talked, and I used to listen.
“Well, there we were, jogging slowly up to the starting line, and the people in the grandstand were cheering, while down in the betting ring, there was a commotion. I’d look at the crowd and think about them, about myself, and about the horse too. ‘Wow,’ I’d tell myself, ‘we really think a lot of ourselves, and we’re just awful, we humans, when it comes down to it.’ I grew up in Judge Willard’s house, right here in this town, you know, and back in the day, many of what we called our big shots would come to discuss their matters with the judge. Abe Lincoln used to come by, and once the editor of the Chicago Tribune, and young Logan, who later became governor, along with a lot of others—congressmen and other folks like that. They came, planned, and schemed, and then they’d give speeches in front of the town hall that was down by the river in the old town but eventually burned to the ground. They talked and talked, and I listened.”
“And such talk! ‘All men are created free and equal,’ ‘Nature’s noblemen,’ ‘Noble pioneers’ and all that kind of stuff about men just like me. Lordy, what a lot of big sounding words I had listened to when I was a kid. It used to make me sick to think of it sometimes later, when I was sitting up there behind Peter and to think that I had sometimes believed such bunk myself, I who had seen and known a lot of them same pioneers pretty intimately and should have known better than to listen.
“And all that talk! ‘All men are created free and equal,’ ‘Nature’s noblemen,’ ‘Noble pioneers’ and all that stuff about guys like me. Wow, what a bunch of impressive words I listened to when I was a kid. It would sometimes make me sick to think of it later when I was sitting up there behind Peter, realizing that I had at times believed that nonsense myself, I who had seen and known many of those same pioneers pretty well and should have known better than to listen.”
“As I say, I used to think about it and a lot of other foolishness I’d heard, when I was up behind Peter, and he with his head up so high and looking—say, he could walk past one of them grandstands and past all of them people like God Almighty himself might have walked! What I mean is, not giving the people or the other horses in the race or the other drivers or the judges up in the stand or me or anyone anything but his darned contempt. It was lovely to see. Sometimes when he’d see a mare he’d throw up his head and snort and sometimes there was a little quiet noise he made just as though he was saying to us ‘You worms, you worms,’ to all of us, all of the people in the world including myself.
“As I said, I used to think about it and a lot of other nonsense I’d heard when I was behind Peter. He held his head so high and looked—he could walk past one of those grandstands and all those people like God Himself might have walked! What I mean is, he didn’t give the spectators, the other horses in the race, the other drivers, the judges in the stand, me, or anyone else anything but his utter contempt. It was beautiful to watch. Sometimes when he spotted a mare, he’d throw up his head and snort, and other times he’d make a quiet noise, almost like he was saying to us, ‘You worms, you worms,’ to all of us, everyone in the world, including me.”
“Why, hell, no one ever knew how fast that Peter could trot. He got sick and died before he ever got to the grand circuit where horses of [Pg 243] his own class usually raced,” the old man declared proudly. Jim Berners had taken his horses over into Ohio and with Peter had won a race at a place called Fostoria and then that night the horse was taken violently ill and lying down in his stall quietly died.
“Why, hell, no one ever knew how fast Peter could run. He got sick and died before he ever made it to the big races where horses of his class usually competed,” the old man said proudly. Jim Berners had taken his horses to Ohio and with Peter had won a race at a place called Fostoria, and then that night the horse became seriously ill and quietly died lying down in his stall.
His owner had been in at the death and after the stallion was dead had walked about the dark race course the rest of the night and had decided to give up racing. “I took a turn about the track,” he said, “and stood a long time at the head of the stretch thinking of the times I had made the turn up there, with Peter leading all the other horses, and not half extending himself at that, and of how proud I had been so many times, sitting behind him and pretending to myself I was doing the job. I wasn’t doing a darned thing but sitting still and riding home in front. It was only after Peter died I ever told myself the truth.”
His owner had been present at the horse's death and, after the stallion passed away, he spent the rest of the night walking around the dark racetrack, deciding to give up racing. “I walked around the track,” he said, “and stood for a long time at the top of the stretch, thinking about the times I made that turn up there, with Peter leading all the other horses effortlessly, and how proud I felt so many times, sitting behind him and convincing myself I was actually contributing. The truth is, I wasn’t doing anything but sitting still and riding home ahead. It was only after Peter died that I admitted the truth to myself.”
“I stood up at the head of the stretch, as I said, and the moon came out and Peter was dead now and I decided to go home. And I had some thoughts that night about most human beings, including myself, that I haven’t ever forgot. I thought a lot of us were swine and the rest a kind of half-baked lot, put us against a horse like Peter had been. ‘And so,’ I said to myself, ‘I’ll quit racing and go home and try to keep my mouth shut a good deal of the time.’ And I haven’t been too much stuck on myself or anyone else ever since.”
“I stood up at the end of the stretch, like I said, and the moon came out and Peter was dead now, so I decided to go home. That night, I had some thoughts about most people, including myself, that I’ve never forgotten. I thought a lot of us were jerks and the rest were a kind of mixed-up group, especially when you compare us to a horse like Peter had been. ‘So,’ I told myself, ‘I’ll stop racing and go home and try to keep my mouth shut most of the time.’ And I haven’t been too focused on myself or anyone else ever since.”
[Pg 244]
[Pg 244]
NOTE X
BERNERS, the merchant and horseman, had for a good many years been disappointed and hurt by the thought that his family was not to carry on after his death but in his old age had grown cheerful about the matter. “We aren’t so much. It doesn’t matter. I dare say the sun will come up mornings and the moon at night when there are no more Berners in Illinois, or anywhere else, for that matter.” As a child the boy Alonzo was always sickly. “We’ve always been thinking he’d die, about twice every year, but you see he hasn’t quite done it yet,” the old man said softly.
BERNERS, the merchant and horseman, had been disappointed and hurt for many years by the thought that his family wouldn’t carry on after he was gone, but in his old age, he had grown more optimistic about it. “We’re not that important. It doesn’t matter. I bet the sun will rise in the morning and the moon will come out at night even when there are no more Berners in Illinois, or anywhere else for that matter.” As a child, Alonzo was often sick. “We’ve thought he’d die about twice every year, but look, he still hasn't,” the old man said softly.
Hallie, the daughter of the house, was five years older than her brother and was devoted to him. After seeing them together one understood that she could never have married. It was just a thing that couldn’t have happened. One thought of her as saying to herself: “Marriage is too intimate. I am not made for intimate relations.” The idea of Hallie Berners held in a man’s arms was for some obscure reason monstrous and yet how affectionate she was! There was a sense in which her brother and father were babes in her charge, babes never touched by her hands or her lips but constantly caressed by her thoughts. She was a tall rather stern-looking woman with graying hair, large strong hands and quiet gray eyes and she was very shy. Her shyness expressed itself [Pg 245] in severity and when she was much touched she grew silent and almost haughty in her bearing. It was as though she were saying to herself: “Look out now! If you are not careful you will let something precious escape you.”
Hallie, the daughter of the house, was five years older than her brother and was completely devoted to him. When you saw them together, it was clear that she could never marry. It simply wouldn’t have happened. You could imagine her thinking, “Marriage is too personal. I’m not cut out for deep relationships.” The thought of Hallie Berners being held by a man seemed strangely wrong, yet she showed so much affection! In a way, her brother and father felt like children in her care, children whom she never physically touched but always held close in her thoughts. She was a tall, rather stern-looking woman with graying hair, large strong hands, and quiet gray eyes, and she was very shy. Her shyness came across as strictness, and when she felt deeply touched, she would become silent and almost aloof. It was as if she were warning herself: “Be careful! If you’re not cautious, you might let something valuable slip away.” [Pg 245]
The son Alonzo was a man of thirty-five with a little black mustache, thin features, small delicate hands and thick, black hair. As a young man he had gone away to an eastern college but a desperate illness had compelled him to come home almost at once and he had not again tried getting out from under his sister’s care, only leaving the family roof when he crept away for the brief periods of drunkenness that gave him a temporary means of escape out of his house of pain. He stayed at home and on fair days sometimes rode about town and the surrounding country behind an old black horse that belonged to the family or sat in the garden under the apple trees talking with friends who came to see him. In a large room in the house where he stayed on dull or cold days there were a couch, a fireplace and many books on shelves built into the walls.
The son Alonzo was thirty-five, had a little black mustache, thin features, small delicate hands, and thick black hair. As a young man, he had gone to an eastern college, but a serious illness forced him to come home almost immediately, and he never tried to escape his sister's care again. He only left the family home when he slipped away for short periods of drinking, which provided him with a temporary escape from his painful life. He stayed at home and on nice days would sometimes ride around town and the nearby countryside on an old black horse that belonged to the family or sit in the garden under the apple trees chatting with friends who came to visit him. In a large room in the house where he stayed on dreary or cold days, there was a couch, a fireplace, and many books on shelves built into the walls.
How many people came up along the hillside road to sit and talk with Alonzo Berners! Were they sorry for him? At first I thought they were and then I saw they came to receive rather than to give. It was Alonzo who did the giving to all. What did he give? Among those I saw at the house was a local judge, son of that judge with whom his father had lived when he was a boy, a man named Marvin Manno, who lived in Chicago but who often came to the town and spent two or three days for the sake of talking with the invalid and who paid him a visit during my time [Pg 246] there, two or three doctors who came, not in a professional way but for something unprofessional they wanted, a cripple of the town who made his living by taking people’s photographs, a man who bought and sold horses, and a tall silent boy who wore glasses and who had large protruding teeth so that he looked something like a horse when on rare occasions he smiled.
How many people came up along the hillside road to sit and chat with Alonzo Berners! Were they feeling sorry for him? At first, I thought they were, but then I realized they came to get something rather than to give. It was Alonzo who gave to everyone. What did he give? Among those I saw at the house was a local judge, the son of the judge his father had known when he was a boy, a guy named Marvin Manno, who lived in Chicago but often visited the town to spend two or three days talking with the invalid, and he came to see him while I was there, along with two or three doctors who visited, not in a professional capacity but for something more personal they wanted, a local photographer who made a living taking people’s pictures, a horse trader, and a tall, quiet boy who wore glasses and had large protruding teeth, making him look a bit like a horse when he smiled on those rare occasions.
Life in the Berners household—in reality presided over by the sick man, in a queer way absolutely controlled by him—was a revelation to me. Like that Judge Turner I had known a few years before, and for that matter like myself too, the man had read a great many books and was still constantly reading—he spent more than half his time with a book in his hands and told me once that but for books he thought he should have gone mad from the gnawing pains that were always eating at him—but in the single fact that we were all readers the similarity between Judge Turner, Alonzo and myself ceased.
Life in the Berners household—actually run by the sick man, who oddly had complete control—was an eye-opener for me. Like that Judge Turner I had met a few years earlier, and like myself as well, the man had read a ton of books and was always reading more—he spent over half his time with a book in his hands and once told me that without books, he thought he might have lost his mind from the constant pain he was in—but aside from the fact that we were all readers, the similarities between Judge Turner, Alonzo, and me ended there.
In this new man whose path I had unexpectedly crossed was a quiet kind of sanity unknown in any other I had seen. He was a giver. What did he give? The question amazed and startled me. He was loved by all who knew him and during the week I spent in his house, seeing him with other men and riding with him about town and out into the country, I was startled by the feeling of love and well-being that came into the eyes of people when he appeared among them. My own mind, always given to asking questions, unable to take anything for granted, raced like the stallion Peter Point carrying old Jim Berners to one of his victories. [Pg 247] Was there a kind of power in pain to remake a man? My own conception of life was profoundly disturbed. The man before me had spent his entire life sitting in the dark house of pain. He sat there now looking out through the windows and into other houses that were alive and cheerful with health. Why had he health and sanity within himself while, almost without exception, the others including myself had not?
In this new guy whose path I had unexpectedly crossed was a quiet kind of sanity I hadn’t seen in anyone else. He was a giver. What did he give? That question amazed and surprised me. Everyone who knew him loved him, and during the week I spent in his house, watching him with other guys and riding with him around town and into the countryside, I was taken aback by the feeling of love and well-being that lit up people's eyes when he was around. My own mind, always asking questions and never taking anything for granted, raced like the stallion Peter Point carrying old Jim Berners to one of his victories. [Pg 247] Was there a kind of power in pain that could transform a man? My own understanding of life was deeply shaken. The man in front of me had spent his entire life in the dark house of pain. He was sitting there now, looking out through the windows at other houses that were vibrant and cheerful with health. Why did he possess health and sanity while, almost without exception, the others, including me, did not?
As I looked at him and at the men who came to visit him a kind of wonder grew within me. The man Marvin Manno, a slender man, rather elegantly clad and with gold-rimmed glasses on his large nose, was talking. He was connected, in an official capacity, with some large commercial establishment of the city, an establishment that sold goods to the Berners store, but he did not come to the town on business. Why had he come? He spoke continually of his own schemes and hopes and balanced oddly back and forth between devotion to the business interests he served and a kind of penchant he had for writing poetry. An odd effect was produced. The man was sincerely devoted to two interests in life that could not by any chance be combined and as one listened to his talk one became more and more puzzled. Only Alonzo Berners was not puzzled. He entered into the man’s thoughts, understood him, gave him what he apparently wanted, sympathetic understanding without sentimentality. We sat in the garden back of the Berners house, the man Manno talked, a doctor came and spoke of his patients, and in particular of an old woman lying in a cabin down by the river, who for two years had been on the point of death but who could not die. Then [Pg 248] the judge spoke of his father and of political affairs in the state, the elder Berners boasted of the speed of the stallion Peter Point and the boy with the large teeth smiled shyly but remained silent.
As I looked at him and the men who came to see him, a sense of wonder grew inside me. Marvin Manno, a slender man dressed quite elegantly and wearing gold-rimmed glasses on his prominent nose, was talking. He was officially connected to a large business in the city that supplied goods to the Berners store, but he wasn't there for business. Why had he come? He kept talking about his own plans and dreams, balancing oddly between his commitment to the business world and a strong inclination toward writing poetry. It created a strange effect. He was genuinely devoted to two pursuits in life that could never possibly overlap, and as I listened to him, I found myself more and more confused. Only Alonzo Berners wasn't confused. He engaged with Manno's thoughts, understood him, and offered him exactly what he seemed to need—empathetic understanding without any sentimentality. We sat in the garden behind the Berners house, Manno spoke, a doctor came and talked about his patients, particularly an elderly woman in a cabin by the river who had been on the brink of death for two years but just wouldn’t pass away. Then, the judge talked about his father and the political situation in the state, the elder Berners bragged about the speed of the stallion Peter Point, and the boy with the big teeth smiled shyly but remained silent. [Pg 248]
Then when evening came and they had all gone away I looked at Alonzo Berners and wondered. In all the talk no mention was ever made of himself or his own affairs. Even the pain always present in his body had been forgotten by the others. Any mention of his suffering would have seemed out of place.
Then when evening came and everyone had left, I looked at Alonzo Berners and pondered. Throughout all the conversation, no one ever brought up him or his own issues. Even the constant pain he felt had been overlooked by the others. Bringing up his suffering would have felt inappropriate.
My own mind was groping about in a new medium for the expression of a life. I was very young then, had not yet come to the age of citizenship, but for a long time I had been building within myself my own consciousness of men. Well, they were a kind of thing, selfish and self-centred, and they were right in being so. One played the game, won if he could and tried not to be a bellyacher if he lost. In me was a kind of contempt for men including myself that Alonzo Berners did not have. Where had I got my contempt and how had he escaped getting it? Was he right and I wrong or was he a sentimentalist? My mind had run into a thicket of new ideas and I could not find my way out. “Tread softly,” I said to myself.
My mind was searching for a new way to express life. I was very young back then, not yet old enough to be a citizen, but I had been building my own understanding of people for a long time. They were a kind of creature, selfish and self-absorbed, and honestly, they were justified in being that way. You played the game, won if you could, and tried not to complain when you lost. I felt a kind of disdain for people, including myself, that Alonzo Berners didn’t seem to feel. Where did my disdain come from, and how did he avoid it? Was he right and I wrong, or was he just overly sentimental? My thoughts had tangled into a mess of new ideas, and I couldn't find a way out. "Tread softly," I told myself.
I sat aside, near the boy with the teeth, looking at my new acquaintance and trying to straighten all these things out in my mind. Hundreds of men, famous and infamous, I had met in the books I had read, went as in a procession across the field of my fancy. How many books I had read and how many stories of the lives of men, so-called great men and rascals, lovely women with gold and jewels in their hands, great killers of men, lawgivers, daring breakers of the law, [Pg 249] devout men, starving in deserts for the glory of God; what men and women, what vast resounding names!
I sat off to the side, next to the boy with the teeth, looking at my new acquaintance and trying to sort everything out in my head. Hundreds of men, both famous and infamous, I had encountered in the books I had read, paraded through my imagination. How many books I had gone through and how many stories of the lives of men—so-called great men and scoundrels, beautiful women adorned with gold and jewels, ruthless killers, lawmakers, bold rule-breakers, [Pg 249] devout individuals starving in deserts for the glory of God; what men and women, what grand, echoing names!
Was there something in the books I had missed? A vagrant thought came. Across the pages of some of the books there had wandered a different kind of man or woman. The writers of books had little to say about such people. There was little enough to be said. In the stories told of the great they appeared always as minor characters. The great strutted. The others walked softly. Clement VII had sent an ambassador to Charles of Spain. What the ambassador, one of the mysterious quiet fellows, said to Charles “Emperor of the Romans and Lord of the whole world” (Romanorum Imperator semper augustus, mundi totius Dominus, universus dominis, Universis Principibus et Populis semper verendus) one did not know, but a peculiar thing happened. The ambassador served faithfully both Charles and the Pope, endeared himself to the two mortal enemies. They were both happier with him about. A thousand conflicting interests swirled about him but he kept himself quite clear. Could it have been that such a one loved men, as men, and that men loved him? There was so little for the writers of books to say of such fellows. They had not sought exalted office and seemed content to play the minor rôle in life. What were they up to? Was there a power greater than obvious power, a power not having in it the disease of obvious power?
Was there something in the books I had overlooked? A fleeting thought crossed my mind. In the pages of some of those books, a different type of man or woman had wandered. The authors didn't say much about these people. There wasn't much to say. In the stories of the great, they always appeared as minor characters. The great made a show of themselves, while the others moved quietly. Clement VII had sent an ambassador to Charles of Spain. What the ambassador, one of those mysterious quiet types, said to Charles “Emperor of the Romans and Lord of the whole world” (Romanorum Imperator semper augustus, mundi totius Dominus, universus dominis, Universis Principibus et Populis semper verendus) remains unknown, but something peculiar happened. The ambassador served faithfully both Charles and the Pope, endearing himself to these two mortal enemies. They were happier with him around. A thousand conflicting interests swirled around him, but he remained completely clear. Could it be that someone like him loved people, just as they were, and that people loved him back? The writers of books had so little to say about such individuals. They didn’t seek high office and seemed content playing a minor role in life. What were they up to? Was there a power greater than overt power, a power free from the complications of obvious authority?
I looked about me and wondered. Before me, sitting among men in an Illinois village, was a pale man with delicate hands who, two or three times a year, became hopelessly drunk and who then had to be brought [Pg 250] back helpless to his home, as I had brought him a few days before. Men gathered about and talked of their own affairs and he sat for the most part in silence, saying only now and then a few words, always in their interests. His mind seemed always to follow the minds of the others. Did he have no life of his own?
I looked around and wondered. In front of me, sitting among men in a village in Illinois, was a pale man with delicate hands who got hopelessly drunk two or three times a year and then had to be brought back to his home, like I had done a few days before. The men gathered around and talked about their own lives while he mostly sat in silence, occasionally saying a few words, always focused on their interests. It seemed like his mind was always following the thoughts of the others. Did he have no life of his own? [Pg 250]
I began to resent the man but as I sat with him the cynicism of Judge Turner I had so much admired lost some of its force in me and the elder Berners, condemning men as less worthy of life than race horses became a half-amusing figure. I was mystified and amazed. Did most men and women remain children and was Alonzo Berners grown up? Was it grown up to come to the realization that oneself did not matter, that nothing mattered but a kind of consciousness of the wonder of life outside oneself?
I started to resent the man, but as I sat with him, the cynicism of Judge Turner that I had admired so much lost some of its impact on me. The older Berners, who judged people as being less deserving of life than racehorses, became somewhat of a comical figure. I was confused and amazed. Did most men and women stay childlike while Alonzo Berners had matured? Was it really mature to realize that you didn't matter, that nothing mattered except for an awareness of the wonder of life beyond yourself?
I sat under the apple trees smiling to myself and wondering why I smiled. Was there possible such a thing as goodness in men, a goodness that was not stuffy and hateful? Like most young men I had a contempt of goodness. Had I been making a mistake? The man before me now did not, like Judge Turner, say wise and witty things that remained fixed in the mind and that could afterward be passed off in conversations as one’s own. Later in New York and in other American cities I was to see a good many men of a sort not unlike Judge Turner but few like Alonzo Berners. The smart fellows of the American Intelligentsia sat about in restaurants in New York and wrote articles for the political and semi-literary weeklies. A smart saying they had heard at dinner or at lunch the day before was passed off as their own in the next article [Pg 251] they wrote. The usual plan was to write of politics or politicians or to slaughter some second-rate artist—in short, to pick out easy game and kill it with their straw shafts and they gained great reputations by pointing out the asininity of men everyone already knew for asses. For a great many years I was filled with admiration of such fellows and vaguely dreamed of becoming such another myself. I wanted then, as a young man, I think, to sit with Alonzo Berners and his friends and suddenly say something to upset them all. Alonzo’s life of physical suffering was forgotten by me as by the others but unlike them there was in me a kind of unpleasant dislike of him, a dislike he saw and understood but let pass as being boyish vanity. The smart-seeming things I thought of to say sounded flat enough when I said them over to myself and I remained silent. Occasionally Alonzo turned to me and smiled. I had done him a kindness, had risked something for him, and I was his guest. Perhaps he thought me not mature enough to understand him and his kind of men. Would I ever become mature?
I sat under the apple trees, smiling to myself and wondering why I was smiling. Could there really be such a thing as goodness in people, a goodness that wasn't pretentious and hateful? Like most young men, I looked down on goodness. Had I been wrong? The man in front of me didn’t, like Judge Turner, say clever and witty things that stuck in your mind and could later be passed off in conversations as your own. Later in New York and in other American cities, I would meet many men somewhat like Judge Turner, but few like Alonzo Berners. The smart guys in the American Intelligentsia hung out in restaurants in New York, writing articles for political and semi-literary weeklies. A clever line they heard at dinner or lunch the day before would be passed off as their own in the next piece they wrote. The usual approach was to write about politics or politicians or to tear apart some mediocre artist—in short, to pick easy targets and take them down with their cheap shots, gaining reputations by pointing out the obvious stupidity of people everyone already knew were fools. For many years, I admired those guys and vaguely dreamed of becoming one myself. Back then, as a young man, I wanted to sit with Alonzo Berners and his friends and suddenly say something that would throw them all off balance. Alonzo’s life of physical suffering slipped my mind, just as it did with the others, but unlike them, I felt a kind of unpleasant dislike for him, a dislike he noticed and understood but chose to dismiss as youthful arrogance. The clever things I came up with to say sounded dull when I repeated them to myself, so I stayed quiet. Occasionally, Alonzo turned to me and smiled. I had done him a kindness, had taken a risk for him, and I was his guest. Maybe he thought I wasn’t mature enough to grasp him and his kind of people. Would I ever grow up?
[Pg 252]
[Pg 252]
NOTE XI
DID I in reality also love the man?
DID I really love the guy?
I had found him, on a Saturday evening, very drunk in a saloon in Chicago. It was about nine o’clock and some time after I had fled from Nora. I was nearly broke and thought I had better be thinking of doing something that would bring me in a little money. What should I do? The devil! It was apparent I would soon have to go to work again with my hands. After some weeks of idleness my hands had become soft and velvety to the touch and I liked them so. Now they were hands to hold a pen or a paint brush. Why was I not a writer or a painter? Well, I fancied one had to be a fellow of the schools before one dared approach the arts. Often I went about cursing the fate that had not permitted me to be born in the fifteenth century instead of the twentieth with its all-pervading smell of burning coal, oil and gasoline, and with its noises and dirt. Mark Twain might declare the twentieth the most glorious of all the centuries but it did not seem so to me. I thought often of the fifteenth century in Italy when the great Borgia was just coming into power, was at that time full of the subject. What glorious children! Why could not I be a glorious child? Aha! the Lord Rodrigo de Lancol y Borgia, Cardinal-Bishop of Porto and Santa Rufina, Dean of the Sacred College, Vice-Chancellor of the Holy Roman Church, etc., had [Pg 253] just been made Pope. Did I not myself have an Italian grandmother? What a place and a time that might have been for me! It was the day of the coronation of the new Pope and all Rome was excited. On the day before four mules, laden with silver, had gone from Cardinal Rodrigo’s house to the house of Cardinal Sforza-Visconti. It was the gentle privilege of the Romans in those fine days to pillage the house of a cardinal when he had been made pope. Was it not said, in the sacred laws, that the vicar of Christ should give his substance to the poor? Fearing he might not do it the poor went and took. Armed bands of desperate fellows, with feathers in their hats, roamed the streets of the old city at such times and a turn of the wheel of fortune might at any moment make any one of them rich and powerful, a patron of the arts, a rich and powerful grandee of Church or State. How I longed to be a richly gowned, soft-handed cunning but scholarly grandee and patron of the arts!
I found him, on a Saturday night, totally wasted in a bar in Chicago. It was about nine o’clock, sometime after I had run away from Nora. I was nearly broke and thought I should probably do something to earn a bit of money. What was I going to do? Damn it! It was clear that I’d soon have to go back to work with my hands. After a few weeks of doing nothing, my hands had become soft and smooth to the touch, and I liked that. They were hands for holding a pen or a paintbrush. Why wasn’t I a writer or a painter? Well, I thought you had to be educated before approaching the arts. I often wandered around cursing my luck for not being born in the fifteenth century instead of the twentieth with its overwhelming smell of burning coal, oil, and gasoline, along with all its noise and dirt. Mark Twain might say the twentieth century was the greatest of all, but it didn’t feel that way to me. I thought a lot about the fifteenth century in Italy when the great Borgia was coming into power, and I was really into that topic. What a glorious time! Why couldn’t I be a glorious child? Aha! Lord Rodrigo de Lancol y Borgia, Cardinal-Bishop of Porto and Santa Rufina, Dean of the Sacred College, Vice-Chancellor of the Holy Roman Church, etc., had just been made Pope. Didn’t I have an Italian grandmother? What an amazing time and place that could have been for me! It was the day of the new Pope’s coronation, and all of Rome was buzzing with excitement. The day before, four mules loaded with silver had gone from Cardinal Rodrigo’s house to Cardinal Sforza-Visconti’s. Back in those days, it was a privilege for the Romans to ransack a cardinal’s home when he became pope. Wasn’t it said in the sacred laws that the vicar of Christ should give his wealth to the poor? Afraid he might not do it, the poor would just take it. Armed groups of desperate guys, feathers in their hats, roamed the old city at times like these, and a twist of fate could make any one of them rich and powerful, a supporter of the arts, a wealthy and influential figure in the Church or State. How I longed to be a richly dressed, soft-handed, clever yet scholarly noble and patron of the arts!
How much better times those than my own for such haphazard fellows as myself, I thought, and cursed the twentieth century and the fate that had thrown me into it. At that time in Chicago I knew a young Jew named Ben Hecht, not yet a well-known writer, and sometimes he and I went forth to do our cursing together. Outwardly he was a more adept curser than myself but inwardly I felt I could outdo him and often we had walked together, he cursing aloud our common fate and declaring dramatically that life was for us an empty cup, a vessel turned upside down, a golden goblet with cracks in the bowl, the largest crack being the fact that we both unfortunately had our livings to make, and [Pg 254] I striving to cap his every curse with a more violent one. We went together into a street and stood under the moon. Before us were many huge ugly warehouses. “I hope they burn,” I said feebly, but he only laughed at the weakness of my fancy. “I hope the builders die slowly of a painful inflammation of the membranes of the bowels,” he said, while I envied.
How much better were those times compared to my own for random guys like me, I thought, and I cursed the twentieth century and the fate that had placed me in it. Back in Chicago, I knew a young Jewish guy named Ben Hecht, who wasn't a famous writer yet, and sometimes we would go out together to vent our frustrations. On the surface, he was a much better curser than I was, but deep down I felt I could outdo him. We often walked together, him vocally cursing our shared fate and dramatically claiming that life was just an empty cup, a vessel turned upside down, a golden goblet with cracks in it, the biggest crack being that we both sadly had to make a living. I would try to top his every curse with an even stronger one. We went out onto a street and stood under the moonlight. In front of us were many huge, ugly warehouses. “I hope they burn,” I said weakly, but he just laughed at how weak my imagination was. “I hope the builders suffer a slow, painful death from inflammation of their intestines,” he said, while I envied his intensity.
I had been walking alone on the streets of Chicago on that Saturday evening when I found the younger Berners and had crossed the river to the west side. I was gloomy and distraught and on a side street, off West Madison Street and near the Chicago River, went into a small, dark saloon. Several men sat at a small table at the back, among whom was Alonzo Berners and there was a red-faced bartender leaning over the bar and watching the group at the table. To all these I at the moment paid no attention.
I had been walking alone on the streets of Chicago that Saturday evening when I encountered the younger Berners and crossed the river to the west side. I felt down and upset, so I went into a small, dark bar on a side street near West Madison Street and the Chicago River. A few men were seated at a small table in the back, one of whom was Alonzo Berners, and there was a red-faced bartender leaning over the bar, keeping an eye on the group at the table. I didn't pay any attention to them at that moment.
I was absorbed in the contemplation of my own difficult position in life and was thinking only of myself. Sitting at a table I called for a glass of brandy and when it was paid for realized that I had but two dollars left in my pocket. I took the two dollars in my hand and looked at them and putting them away continued looking at my empty hands. They had, at the moment, as I have said, grown soft and velvety and I wanted them to remain so. Wild dreams floated through my mind. Why had I not more physical courage? It was all very well to talk with Ben Hecht of the many advantages to be gained by being an Italian desperado of the fifteenth century, but why had I not the courage to be a desperado of the twentieth? Surely Rome or Naples or Florence, in the days of their [Pg 255] glory, never offered any better pickings than the Chicago of my own day. In the older day a man slipped a slender knife delicately between his victim’s neck and spine and made off with a few ducats at the risk of his life but in Chicago men habitually got thousands of dollars by robbery apparently without any risk at all. I looked at my own hands and wondered. Could they hold a pistol steadily to the head of a timid bank clerk or a mail-wagon driver? I decided they could not and was ashamed of myself. Then I decided they might some day be induced to hold a pen or a painter’s brush but reflected that the great patrons of the arts were all long since dead and that my own brother, a painter, had been compelled to make magazine covers for commercial “gents” in order to get the slender amount necessary to educate himself in his craft. “Huh!” I said to myself, not wanting I’m afraid, to work for any commercial “gent” at all. Drinking my brandy I looked about the room into which I had wandered.
I was lost in thought about my tough situation in life and focused only on myself. Sitting at a table, I ordered a glass of brandy, and when I paid for it, I realized I had only two dollars left in my pocket. I held the two dollars in my hand and stared at them before putting them away and continuing to look at my empty hands. At that moment, as I mentioned, they felt soft and velvety, and I wanted them to stay that way. Wild ideas raced through my mind. Why didn’t I have more guts? It was easy to talk to Ben Hecht about the perks of being an Italian outlaw in the fifteenth century, but why didn’t I have the courage to be a modern outlaw? Surely Rome, Naples, or Florence in their prime offered no better opportunities than Chicago did in my time. Back then, a guy would slip a knife between his victim’s neck and spine and run off with a few ducats, risking his life in the process, but in Chicago, people casually made thousands of dollars from robberies with apparently no risk at all. I stared at my hands and wondered. Could they even hold a gun steady to the head of a nervous bank clerk or a mail truck driver? I decided they couldn’t, and I felt ashamed. Then I thought maybe they could eventually be convinced to hold a pen or a paintbrush, but I realized that all the great patrons of the arts were long gone, and my brother, who was a painter, had to create magazine covers for commercial guys just to earn enough to learn his craft. “Huh!” I said to myself, not wanting to work for any commercial guy at all. Sipping my brandy, I looked around the room I had walked into.
It was a desperately dark little hole, lighted by two gaslights and with two beer-stained tables in the semi-darkness at the rear. I looked at the bartender, who had a large flat nose and bloodshot eyes and decided it was just as well I had but two dollars. “I may be robbed before I leave this hole,” I told myself and ordered another glass of brandy, thinking I might as well drink up the little money I had rather than have it taken from me.
It was a really dark little place, lit by two gas lamps and with two beer-stained tables in the dimness at the back. I looked at the bartender, who had a big flat nose and bloodshot eyes, and thought it was probably a good thing I only had two dollars. “I might get robbed before I leave this dump,” I told myself and ordered another glass of brandy, thinking I might as well spend the little cash I had instead of letting it get stolen from me.
And now the men at the other table in the room caught and held my attention. With the exception of Alonzo Berners, whom the others had picked up on the street, they were a hard-looking lot. One did not [Pg 256] think of them as desperate fellows. They were of the sort one saw hanging about the places of Hinky Dink, Bathhouse John or of Conners, the gray wolf, men famous in Chicago at that time, sullen fellows without money, by no means desperate but hangers-on of the desperate, fellows who robbed full of fright at their own temerity but the more dangerous sometimes because of their fears.
And now the guys at the other table in the room caught and held my attention. Except for Alonzo Berners, who the others had picked up on the street, they looked tough. You wouldn’t call them desperate. They were the kind of guys you’d see hanging around the places of Hinky Dink, Bathhouse John, or Conners, the gray wolf, who were well-known in Chicago at that time—gloomy guys without money, not really desperate but just hanging around those who were. They were the type who would rob out of sheer fear of their own audacity, yet sometimes more dangerous because of their anxieties. [Pg 256]
I looked at them and at the man who had fallen into their clutches and who was now spending his money upon them and at the same moment they seemed to have become aware of my presence. Sullen eyes looked at me sullenly. I was not of their world. Was I a fly cop? Their eyes threatened. “If you are a fly cop or are in any way connected with the man we have so fortunately picked up, a man quite apparently helplessly drunk and having money, you had better be minding your business. As a matter of fact it would be well for you to get out of here.”
I looked at them and at the man who had fallen into their grasp, who was now spending his money on them. At that moment, they seemed to notice me. Their sullen eyes glared at me. I didn’t belong to their world. Was I a cop? Their eyes warned me. “If you are a cop or connected to the guy we’ve picked up—a man who’s clearly helplessly drunk and has money—you’d better mind your business. Actually, it would be wise for you to leave.”
I returned the stare directed at me and hesitated a moment. The sick drunken man sitting among the others had a large roll of bills held in his left hand that hung at his side, and his right elbow was on the table.
I met the gaze aimed at me and paused for a moment. The sick, intoxicated man sitting with the others had a thick stack of cash in his left hand, which dangled by his side, while his right elbow rested on the table.
What a look of suffering in his face! From time to time the others ordered drinks brought from the bar and the sick man took a bill from the roll and threw it on the table. When the change was brought by the bartender one of his companions put it in his pocket. They were taking turns, it was apparent, in robbing the man and as I looked an idea came to me. Was it true that the bartender, a more out-and-out fellow than the others, was disgusted at this slow and comparatively painless method of committing robbery? Did I see in his eyes a kind of sympathy [Pg 257] for the man being robbed?
What a look of pain on his face! Occasionally, the others ordered drinks from the bar, and the sick man pulled out a bill from his stack and tossed it on the table. When the bartender brought back the change, one of his friends slipped it into his pocket. They were clearly taking turns robbing him, and as I watched, a thought struck me. Was it true that the bartender, more straightforward than the others, was repulsed by this slow and relatively painless way of stealing? Did I see a hint of sympathy in his eyes for the man being robbed? [Pg 257]
It was a ticklish moment for me. Having been thinking so grandiloquently of Cæsar Borgia, Lorenzo the Magnificent and other grand and courageous personages of my world of books, having just been gazing at my own hands and wondering why they would not or could not do some act of personal courage that would make me think better of myself, having these thoughts, I of a sudden wanted to rescue the man with the roll of bills but I did not want to make a fool of myself. I have always wanted not to be a fool and have been a fool so often!
It was a tense moment for me. After spending so much time admiring figures like Cæsar Borgia, Lorenzo the Magnificent, and other impressive and brave characters from my books, I had just been looking at my own hands and wondering why they wouldn’t or couldn’t perform some brave act that would make me feel better about myself. With those thoughts in mind, I suddenly felt the urge to help the guy with the stack of cash, but I didn’t want to look foolish. I’ve always tried to avoid being a fool, yet I’ve ended up being one so many times!
I had decided to perform a certain act and at the same time began laughing at myself, not thinking I would be foolish enough to attempt it. One of these conflicts between myself, as I live in my fancy, and myself as I exist in fact, that have been going on in me since I was a child had now started. It is the sort of thing that makes autobiography, even of the half-playful sort I am now attempting, so difficult to manage. One wants to treat oneself as a person of more dignity and worth than one has the courage to attempt. Among advertising men with whom I later associated we managed things better. We took turns doing what we called “staging” each other. I was to speak highly of Smith who in turn did the same of me. The trick is not unknown to literary men, but it is difficult to manage in autobiography. The self of the fancy persists in laughing at the self of fact and does it sometimes at unfortunate moments. Also the fancy is a great liar. How often later, when I became a man of business, I did in fancy some shrewd or notable act that was never done in fact at [Pg 258] all, but that seemed so real that it was difficult not to believe in it as a fact. I had been talking with a certain man and later thought of a number of brilliant things I might have said. Then I met a friend and told him of the conversation, putting the brilliant things in. The story several times repeated became a part of the history of my life and nothing would have later so amazed me as to have been compelled to face the facts of the conversation and the figure I had cut in it.
I had decided to do something and at the same time I started laughing at myself, not really believing I would be silly enough to go through with it. This was one of those internal battles between my ideal self, as I imagine it, and my real self, as I actually am, that have been going on inside me since I was a kid. It’s exactly the kind of thing that makes writing an autobiography, even the lighthearted kind I'm attempting now, so tricky. You want to present yourself as more dignified and valuable than you actually have the guts to claim. Among the advertising folks I worked with later, we handled things differently. We took turns “staging” each other. I would praise Smith, who in turn would do the same for me. This trick is known among writers, but it’s hard to pull off in an autobiography. The ideal self can't help but laugh at the real self, and it does so at really inconvenient times. Plus, the ideal self can be quite a deceiver. How often later, when I became a business person, did I imagine myself doing some clever or impressive act that I never actually did, but it felt so real that it was hard not to believe it really happened? I might have talked to someone and later thought of all the brilliant things I could have said. Then I’d meet a friend and tell him about the conversation, including those brilliant lines. Over time, that story was repeated enough that it became part of my life story, and nothing would have shocked me more than being forced to confront the actual details of that conversation and the impression I made. [Pg 258]
Was the thing I now thought myself about to do in the saloon a fact or was it but another of the fanciful acts, created in my own imagination, I might and no doubt would later relate as a fact? Would it not be better not to attempt to rescue the man in the room and later just to say I had and in the end make myself believe I had?
Was what I was about to do in the saloon real, or was it just another one of those made-up things from my imagination that I’d later claim was true? Wouldn't it be easier not to try to save the guy in the room and just say that I did, eventually convincing myself that I actually had?
There was little doubt I could do the thing more gaudily in fancy. The place in which I sat was in a part of the city little frequented at night. Near it were only vacant lots and rows of dark and now empty factory buildings. It was unlikely there were any policemen in the neighborhood and in case of need and if a policeman did appear what sort of fellow was he likely to be—a fellow really appointed to the district to knock aside such interfering fools as myself? As for the men seated at the table, if they were cowards it was unlikely the bartender was one.
There was no doubt I could imagine it in a flashier way. The place I was sitting in was in a part of the city that hardly anyone visited at night. Nearby were just vacant lots and rows of dark, now-empty factory buildings. There probably weren’t any cops around, and if a policeman did show up, what kind of guy would he be—someone actually assigned to the area to deal with annoying people like me? As for the guys at the table, if they were cowards, it was unlikely the bartender was one.
I kept smiling to myself, at my own thoughts, at my trick of always threshing my acts out in advance and in the end doing nothing except to create later the fiction of an act performed. “My book reading and my conversations with such fellows as Judge Turner are making a bigger [Pg 259] fool of me than I need be,” I told myself, still looking at the empty hands lying on the table before me. What really empty things they were, those same hands of mine. They had never grasped anything, never fulfilled any purpose for me. So many fingers, so many pads of flesh in the palms, so many little muscles to grasp things, to lay hold of some situation, to drive a knife into an enemy, to lift a friend, to make love to a woman, hands to become servants of the brain and to make their owner something other than a meaningless thing of words and fancies drifting through life with millions of other meaningless men. I really thought at that time I had a brain. It is an illusion that I believe almost everyone has.
I kept smiling to myself, amused by my own thoughts, by my habit of always overthinking my actions and then doing nothing, only to later fabricate the story of having acted. “My reading and my conversations with people like Judge Turner are making me look like a bigger fool than I need to,” I told myself, still staring at the empty hands resting on the table in front of me. What empty things they were, those hands of mine. They had never held anything, never served a purpose for me. So many fingers, so much flesh in the palms, so many little muscles designed to grasp things, to take control of a situation, to stab an enemy, to lift a friend, to express love to a woman—hands meant to serve the brain and make their owner more than just a meaningless collection of words and dreams drifting through life alongside millions of other meaningless men. At that moment, I really thought I had a brain. It's an illusion I believe almost everyone shares.
In disgust of myself my eyes stopped looking at my empty hands and looked instead about the room. What seemed to me a stream of deliciously romantic notions now came. There was no doubt the man sitting with the crew from the city’s underworld was very ill. One might have said he was about to die. A chalky pallor had spread over his face and except for his eyes everything about his face and figure expressed utter weariness. It was so people looked when they were about to die, when they were through with life, done for, glad to throw life aside.
In my disgust with myself, my eyes stopped focusing on my empty hands and instead scanned the room. What I saw felt like a wave of beautifully romantic ideas washing over me. There was no doubt that the man sitting with the crew from the city's underworld was very sick. You could say he looked like he was about to die. A pale, chalky color covered his face, and aside from his eyes, everything about him showed complete exhaustion. It was the kind of look people had when they were nearing death, when they felt finished with life, done for, and ready to let go of it all.
The face and figure of the man were like that but the eyes were not. They were alive and only seemed curious and puzzled. As they looked at me from out the pale face I had the curious illusion of a voice speaking, speaking as though out of a coffin or a cavern.
The man's face and body were like that, but his eyes were different. They were alive and appeared curious and puzzled. As they looked at me from his pale face, I had the strange feeling of hearing a voice, as if it were coming from a coffin or a cave.
Now the man’s eyes were looking from my eyes to the eyes of the bartender. Was there something commanding in them? Had the sick man, [Pg 260] in his helpless position, the power to command the two men in the room who might conceivably be of use to him? The man had been drunk for several days, and now he was not drinking but the poison from the vile stuff he had taken had permeated his system. The same eyes had looked at the men among whom he sat and his brain had come to a decision concerning them. Men’s eyes could be impersonal sometimes. The other men at the table were of no value, had been thrown aside as useless. One fancied a thin sick body going on for days, eyes not looking about, eyes alive in a corner of the head of a man waiting for a moment of sanity.
Now the man’s eyes moved from my eyes to the eyes of the bartender. Was there something commanding about them? Did the sick man, in his helpless state, have the power to command the two men in the room who might actually help him? He had been drunk for several days, and now he wasn’t drinking anymore, but the poison from the terrible stuff he had consumed had taken over his body. Those same eyes had scanned the men around him, and his mind had made a judgment about them. Sometimes, men’s eyes could feel impersonal. The other men at the table were worthless, cast aside as useless. One could picture a thin, sickly body struggling for days, eyes not wandering, yet alive in a corner of a man’s mind waiting for a moment of clarity.
And now they command. The sick man was not afraid, as in his place I would have been. There was no fear in the eyes that now looked at me so steadily. It might be the man did not mind the fact that he was about to be robbed and perhaps his body had known so much pain that the additional pain of a beating would not too much matter.
And now they’re giving orders. The sick man wasn’t scared, which is how I would have felt in his situation. There was no fear in his eyes as he looked at me so steadily. Maybe he didn’t care that he was about to be robbed, and perhaps his body had experienced so much pain that the extra pain from a beating wouldn’t matter much.
As for myself I was thinking beyond my own depths, thinking of certain things as possible in another that could never have been possible in myself. I was a coward trying to think the thoughts of a brave man. From the very moment when I first became aware of the actuality of the man Alonzo Berners I began doing something I had never done before, I began to live in another, suffer in another, love another perhaps.
As for me, I was thinking beyond my own limits, considering things that could be possible for someone else but would never be for me. I was a coward trying to think like a brave man. From the moment I first realized that Alonzo Berners was real, I started doing something I had never done before: I began to live through someone else, suffer through someone else, and maybe even love someone else.
If the man’s eyes were issuing a command what did he want? I grew resentful. What right had he to command me? Did he think me a fool? Unconsciously I had begun to resist a command. “I won’t. You got [Pg 261] yourself into this pickle, now get yourself out.”
If the man's eyes were giving an order, what did he want? I became resentful. What right did he have to order me around? Did he think I was an idiot? Without even realizing it, I started to push back against the order. “I won’t. You got yourself into this mess, now find a way to get out.” [Pg 261]
What a plague to have an imagination! It seemed to me a kind of wordless conversation, something after the following manner, now began between myself, the bartender and the man at the table.
What a burden it is to have an imagination! It felt like a sort of unspoken dialogue, something like this, had now started between me, the bartender, and the guy at the table.
From the bloodshot eyes of the bartender leaning over his bar words were now coming. I leaned forward to listen.
From the bloodshot eyes of the bartender leaning over his bar, words were now coming. I leaned forward to listen.
“Ah! Bah! I do not like this affair. You have fallen into the hands of these cheap thugs and from the looks of you I should say you are a rather decent sort. To me, situated as I am in life, that would not make any difference if the men robbing you were fellows I could respect. If any one of a dozen men I know chose to hit you over the head and throw your body into the river I would not lift a hand to prevent it. As the matter stands I think I will. I do not fancy these dogs you are with eating so fat a calf. As for myself you are not fair game. Poor chap, you are sick. I cannot leave my job here but the fellow over there at the table will take you away. Speak to him. He will do as you wish.”
“Ugh! I really don't like this situation. You've ended up in the grip of these lowlifes, and from what I can see, you seem like a decent guy. Honestly, it wouldn’t matter to me if the guys robbing you were people I could respect. If any one of a dozen guys I know decided to whack you over the head and dump your body in the river, I wouldn’t lift a finger to stop it. But given the circumstances, I think I will. I really don’t want these scumbags you’re with taking advantage of you. As for me, you’re not an easy target. Poor guy, you look sick. I can’t leave my post here, but the guy over there at the table will help you out. Talk to him. He’ll do what you need.”
What a chattering of unheard voices my imagination had created in the room!
What a buzz of unheard voices my imagination had created in the room!
Words from the living eyes of the sick man.
Words from the living eyes of the sick man.
“It does not matter about being robbed. If these men beat or kill me it does not matter. The point is I am tired now.” The eyes smiled.
“It doesn’t matter if I get robbed. If these guys beat me or even kill me, it doesn’t change anything. The point is, I’m just tired now.” The eyes smiled.
And now the man at the table was looking directly at me and his words, created, you understand in my fancy, were directed at me. “Well, come [Pg 262] on lad. Lift me up in your arms and carry me home. It is only because you are young and inexperienced you are afraid.”
And now the guy at the table was looking right at me, and his words, I imagined, were meant for me. “Well, come on, kid. Pick me up in your arms and take me home. It’s only because you’re young and inexperienced that you’re scared.” [Pg 262]
[Pg 263]
[Pg 263]
NOTE XII
“AFRAID?” It was only because I was so thoroughly afraid I now arose from my seat and went toward the sick man. As for the imagined voices I did not believe in them. Did I not know the tricks of my own fancy and did the man think I was going to be fool enough to risk my hide for a stranger? It is true, had I been a man of physical courage, I might, without too great risk, have gone over to the table and snatched the roll of bills out of the sick man’s hands. When it came right down to it I could at the moment use such a roll of bills very handily. Had I been a man of courage I might have gone blustering and swaggering to the table and bluffed everyone in the place but being, as I knew I was, a coward did the man sitting there think I was going to risk my hide for him?
“AFRAID?” I was so scared that I got up from my seat and walked over to the sick man. I didn't believe in those imagined voices. Didn’t I know the tricks my mind played on me? Did he really think I was foolish enough to put myself in danger for someone I didn’t even know? It’s true, if I had been physically brave, I could have walked over to the table and grabbed the stack of bills from the sick man’s hands without much risk. Honestly, I could really use that stack of cash right now. If I had been courageous, I might have swaggered over there and intimidated everyone in the room. But knowing I was a coward, did he really think I would risk myself for him?
I moved slowly toward the table, all the time laughing at myself and telling myself I was not going to do what I was at the same time obviously doing and the bartender coming from behind the bar with a hammer in his hand fell in behind me. I could see the hammer from a corner of my eye. Well, he was going to hit me with it. In a moment more my head would be crushed and, as would be quite plain to any man of sense, I would only be getting what I deserved. What a confounded fool! I was terribly frightened and at the same time there was a smile [Pg 264] on my lips. My appearance at the moment must have been disconcerting to the men at the table.
I slowly walked toward the table, constantly laughing at myself and convincing myself I wasn’t going to do what I was clearly doing. The bartender came from behind the bar with a hammer in his hand and followed me. I caught a glimpse of the hammer out of the corner of my eye. He was going to hit me with it. In just a moment, my head would be crushed and, as any sensible person would see, I would be getting exactly what I deserved. What a ridiculous fool! I was really scared, yet there was a smile on my face. My expression must have been quite unsettling for the guys at the table. [Pg 264]
They were apparently as great fools as myself. As I approached, the sick man, perhaps to free himself from the others, threw the roll of bills carelessly on the table and one of his companions put a large hairy hand over it. Was he also afraid? All of the men were looking intently at me and at the bartender behind me. Were they but waiting to see my head crushed? One of them got rather hesitatingly to his feet and doubling his fist raised it as though to strike me in the face—I had now got within a foot of the sick man—but the blow did not descend.
They seemed to be just as big of fools as I was. As I got closer, the sick man, maybe wanting to get away from the others, tossed the roll of bills onto the table carelessly, and one of his buddies put a big, hairy hand over it. Was he scared too? All the men were staring intensely at me and the bartender behind me. Were they just waiting to see me get my head smashed? One of them stood up a bit uncertainly, clenched his fist, and raised it like he was about to hit me in the face—I was now just a foot away from the sick man—but the punch never came down.
Reaching down I put my arms about the sick man’s shoulder and half raised him to his feet, the foolish smile still on my face but as I saw he could not stand I prepared to take him in my arms. That would make me quite helpless but I was helpless enough as it was. What did it matter? “If I am going to be slugged I might as well be slugged doing something,” I thought.
Reaching down, I wrapped my arms around the sick man’s shoulders and helped him get up, my silly smile still on my face. But when I saw he couldn't stand, I got ready to lift him into my arms. That would leave me pretty defenseless, but I already felt pretty powerless. What did it matter? “If I’m going to get hit, I might as well be getting hit while doing something,” I thought.
I lifted the man as gently as I could, placing the slender body over my shoulder and waiting for the blows that were to descend upon me but at that very moment the hand of the bartender reached over and snatching the roll of bills from under the hand on the table put it in my pocket.
I lifted the man as gently as I could, placing his slim body over my shoulder and bracing for the hits that were about to come my way. But at that exact moment, the bartender reached over and grabbed the roll of bills from under my hand on the table, slipping it into my pocket.
All was done in silence and in silence, with Alonzo Berners slung over my shoulder, I walked to the door and to West Madison Street where there were lights and people passing up and down. At the corner I put him down and looking back saw the bartender standing at the door of his establishment watching. Was he laughing? I fancied he was. And one [Pg 265] might also fancy he was keeping the others bluffed in the room until I had got safely away. I stood at the corner beside the sick man, who leaned helplessly against my legs, and waited for a cab that would take me to a railroad station. Already I had taken letters from his pocket and knew where he lived. He seemed unable to speak. “He will probably die on the way and then I’ll be in a hell of a mess,” I kept saying to myself after I had got with him into the day coach of a train.
Everything happened in silence. With Alonzo Berners over my shoulder, I walked to the door and to West Madison Street, where there were lights and people moving around. At the corner, I set him down and, looking back, saw the bartender standing at the door of his bar, watching. Was he laughing? I thought he might be. It also seemed like he was keeping the others inside from coming out until I had safely left. I stood at the corner next to the sick man, who was leaning weakly against my legs, waiting for a cab to take me to a train station. I had already taken letters from his pocket and knew where he lived. He seemed unable to speak. “He’s probably going to die on the way, and I’ll be in such a mess,” I kept telling myself after I got him into the day coach of a train. [Pg 265]
[Pg 266]
[Pg 266]
NOTE XIII
MY adventure with Alonzo Berners came to an end after I had been at his house for a week and during the week nothing I can set down as notable happened at all and later I was told he was dead, that he had again got drunk in the city of Chicago and had fallen or had been knocked off a bridge into the Chicago River where he drowned. There was the house on the hillside and the garden. During my visit to the house the elder Berners worked in the garden or sat with me boasting of the horse Peter Point and found in me a sympathetic audience. I have always understood horses better than men. It’s easier.
My adventure with Alonzo Berners came to an end after I had spent a week at his house, and during that week, nothing noteworthy happened at all. Later, I learned he was dead; he had gotten drunk again in the city of Chicago and either fell or was pushed off a bridge into the Chicago River, where he drowned. There was the house on the hillside and the garden. During my visit to the house, the elder Berners worked in the garden or sat with me, bragging about the horse Peter Point, and I was a sympathetic listener. I've always understood horses better than people. It’s simpler.
I sat in the garden listening to the talk of the men who came to see Alonzo Berners, rode with him once in his buggy or went into town to walk by myself or to listen to some tale told by the sailor who managed the store. The sister, who on the night of my arrival had treated me coldly—no doubt strange characters had come to the Berners house on the same mission that had brought me and also no doubt she was in terrible fear when Alonzo was away on one of his helpless debauches—the sister later treated me with the silent kindliness characteristic of her.
I sat in the garden listening to the conversations of the men who came to visit Alonzo Berners, some who had ridden with him in his buggy or had gone to town to walk alone or to hear some story from the sailor who ran the store. The sister, who had treated me coldly on the night I arrived—probably because strange people had come to the Berners' house for the same reason I did, and she was likely terrified when Alonzo was off on one of his wild escapades—eventually treated me with her usual quiet kindness.
Nothing happened at all during my visit and Alonzo Berners did not during the whole time say a notable thing that I could later remember [Pg 267] and that I can now quote to explain my feeling for him.
Nothing happened at all during my visit, and Alonzo Berners didn’t say anything noteworthy the entire time that I could remember later and quote to explain how I feel about him. [Pg 267]
Nothing happened but that I was puzzled as I had never been before. There was something in the very walls of the Berners house that excited and when I had gone to bed at night I did not sleep. Notions came. Odd exciting fancies kept me awake. As I have explained I was then young and had quite made up my mind about men and life. Men and women were divided into two classes containing a few shrewd wise people and many fools. I was trying very hard to place myself among the wise and shrewd ones. The Berners family I could not place in either of these classifications and in particular Alonzo Berners puzzled and disconcerted me.
Nothing happened except that I was more confused than ever. There was something in the very walls of the Berners' house that stirred me, and when I went to bed at night, I couldn't sleep. Ideas flooded in. Strange, exciting thoughts kept me awake. As I mentioned, I was young and had pretty much figured out my views on men and life. I categorized men and women into two groups: a few insightful, wise people and a lot of fools. I was really trying hard to see myself among the wise and shrewd. I couldn't place the Berners family in either of these categories, and especially Alonzo Berners puzzled and unsettled me.
Was there a force in life of which I knew nothing at all and was this force exemplified in the person of the man I had picked up in a Chicago saloon?
Was there a force in life that I had no idea about, and was this force represented in the person I had met in a Chicago bar?
At night as I lay in my bed new ideas, new impulses, came flocking. There was a man in the house with me, a man fairly worshiped by others and for no reason I could understand but wanted to understand. His very living in the house had done something to it, to the very wall of the house, so that anyone coming into the place, sleeping between the walls, was affected. Could it be that the man Alonzo Berners simply loved the people about him and the places in which they lived and had that love become a force in itself affecting the very air people breathed? Sometimes in the afternoons when there was no one about I went through the rooms of the house looking curiously about. There was a chair here and a table there. On the table lay a book. Was there also in the house a kind of fragrance? Why did the sunlight fall with such [Pg 268] a pronounced golden glory on the faded carpet on the floor of Alonzo Berners’ room?
At night, as I lay in bed, new ideas and impulses flooded in. There was a man in the house with me, someone who was greatly admired by others, and for reasons I couldn’t grasp but wanted to understand. His mere presence had changed something about the house itself, about the very walls, so that anyone entering the space, sleeping within those walls, felt the impact. Could it be that Alonzo Berners simply loved the people around him and the places they lived in, and that this love had become a force in itself, affecting the very air everyone breathed? Sometimes, in the afternoons when no one was around, I wandered through the rooms of the house, looking around with curiosity. There was a chair here and a table there. On the table lay a book. Was there a kind of fragrance in the house too? Why did the sunlight stream in with such a vibrant golden glow on the faded carpet in Alonzo Berners’ room? [Pg 268]
Questions invaded my mind and I was young and skeptical, wanting to believe in the power of the mind, wanting to believe in the power of intellectual force, terribly afraid of sentimentality in myself and in others.
Questions flooded my mind, and I was young and doubtful, wanting to believe in the power of the mind, wanting to believe in intellectual strength, but deeply afraid of being sentimental, both in myself and in others.
Was I afraid also of people who had the power of loving, of giving themselves? Was I afraid of the power of unasking love in myself and in others?
Was I also afraid of people who had the ability to love, to open themselves up? Was I afraid of the capability of unasked love within myself and in others?
That I should be afraid of anything in the realm of the spirit, that there should perhaps be a force in the world I did not understand, could not understand, irritated me profoundly.
That I should be afraid of anything in the spiritual realm, that there might be a force in the world that I didn’t understand and couldn’t understand, really irritated me.
As the week advanced my irritation grew and I have never had any doubt at all that Alonzo Berners knew of it. He said nothing and when I went away he had nothing to say. I spent the days of that week in his presence, saw the men who came to visit him and whom I thought I understood well enough and then at night went to my bed and did not sleep. I was like one tortured by a desire for conversion to something like the love of God, by a desire to love and be loved and sometimes in the night I lay in my bed like a very lovelorn maiden and sometimes I grew angry and walked up and down in the moonlight in my room swearing and shaking my fist at the shadows that flitted across the walls in the moonlight.
As the week went on, my frustration increased, and I had no doubt that Alonzo Berners was aware of it. He didn’t say a word, and when I left, he still had nothing to say. I spent those days around him, saw the visitors he had whom I thought I understood well enough, and then at night, I'd go to bed and couldn’t sleep. I felt like someone tormented by a yearning for something like the love of God, wanting to love and be loved. Sometimes, at night, I lay in my bed like a lovesick girl, and other times I got angry and paced back and forth in the moonlight in my room, cursing and shaking my fist at the shadows that danced along the walls in the moonlight.
It was two o’clock of the morning of one of the last nights I spent in the house and I let myself out at the kitchen door and went for a walk, going down along the hillside to the town and through the newer [Pg 269] town to the older place by the river. The moon was shining and all was hushed and silent. What a quiet night! “I will give myself over to these new impulses,” I thought, and so went along thinking thoughts that had never before come into my head.
It was 2 a.m. on one of the last nights I spent in the house. I slipped out the kitchen door and went for a walk, making my way down the hillside to the town, through the newer part, and into the older area by the river. The moon was shining, and everything was calm and quiet. What a peaceful night! “I’m going to embrace these new feelings,” I thought, and so I walked on, contemplating thoughts that had never crossed my mind before.
Could it be that force, all power was disease, that man on his way up from savagery and having discovered the mind and its uses had gone a little off his head in using his new toy? I had always been drawn toward horses dogs and other animals and among people had cared most for simple folk who made no pretense of having an intellect, workmen who in spite of the handicaps put in their way by modern life still loved the materials in which they worked, who loved the play of hands over materials, who followed instinctively a force outside themselves—they felt to be greater and more worthy than themselves—women who gave themselves to physical experiences with grave and fine abandon, all people in fact who lived for something outside themselves, for materials in which they worked, for people other than themselves, things over which they made no claim of ownership.
Could it be that all power was a kind of illness, that as humanity evolved from primitive times and discovered the mind and what it could do, we kind of lost our grip on reality with this new ability? I had always been drawn to horses, dogs, and other animals, and among people, I cared most about simple folks who didn’t pretend to be intellectuals—workers who, despite the challenges posed by modern life, still appreciated the materials they worked with, who loved the tactile experience of their hands on those materials, who instinctively followed a force beyond themselves that they felt was greater and more deserving than they were—women who wholeheartedly embraced physical experiences, and really, all people who lived for something beyond themselves, whether it was the materials they worked with, other individuals, or things they never claimed to own.
Was I, who thought of myself as a young man having no morality now face to face with a new morality? In the fifteenth century man had discovered man. Had man later been lost to man? Was Alonzo Berners simply one who loved his fellows and was he by that token stronger in his weakness, more notable in his obscure Illinois village life than all these great and powerful ones I had been following with my own mind across the pages of history?
Was I, who considered myself a young man without morals, now confronted with a new sense of ethics? In the fifteenth century, humanity had discovered itself. Had people later become estranged from one another? Was Alonzo Berners just someone who cared for his fellow humans and, because of that, was he stronger in his vulnerability, more remarkable in his unnoticed village life in Illinois than all those great and powerful figures I had been tracking with my own thoughts through the pages of history?
There was no doubt I was in a magnificent mood and that I enjoyed it and when I got to the old town I went and stood by a small brick [Pg 270] building that had once been a residence but was now a cowshed. In a near-by house a child cried and a man and a woman awoke from sleep and talked for a time in low hushed voices. Two dogs came and discovered me where I stood in the silence. As I remained unmoved they did not know what to make of their discovery. At first they barked and then they wagged their tails, and then, as I continued to ignore them, they went away looking offended. “You are not treating us fairly,” they seemed to be saying.
There was no doubt I was in a great mood and really enjoying it. When I arrived in the old town, I stood by a small brick building that used to be a house but was now a cowshed. Nearby, a child cried, and a man and a woman woke up from their sleep and talked quietly for a while. Two dogs came over and found me standing there in the silence. Since I didn’t move, they were unsure how to react to their unexpected discovery. At first, they barked, then they wagged their tails, and when I continued to ignore them, they walked away looking offended. "You're not treating us fairly," they seemed to be saying. [Pg 270]
“And they are something like myself,” I thought, looking at the dusty road on which the soft moonlight was falling and smiling at nothingness.
“And they are kind of like me,” I thought, looking at the dusty road bathed in soft moonlight and smiling at emptiness.
I had suddenly an odd, and to my own seeming a ridiculous desire to abase myself before something not human and so stepping into the moonlit road I knelt in the dust. Having no God, the gods having been taken from me by the life about me, as a personal God has been taken from all modern men by a force within that man himself does not understand but that is called the intellect, I kept smiling at the figure I cut in my own eyes as I knelt in the road and as I had smiled at the figure I had cut in the Chicago saloon when I went with such an outward show of indifference to the rescue of Alonzo Berners.
I suddenly felt an odd and, to me, ridiculous urge to lower myself before something non-human. So, stepping into the moonlit road, I knelt in the dust. Without a God—since the gods had been taken from me by the life around me, just as a personal God has been taken from all modern people by a force within themselves that they don't fully understand, which is called intellect—I kept smiling at the figure I presented to my own eyes as I knelt in the road, just like I smiled at my reflection in that Chicago saloon when I acted so indifferent to the rescue of Alonzo Berners.
There was no God in the sky, no God in myself, no conviction in myself that I had the power to believe in a God, and so I merely knelt in the dust in the silence and no words came to my lips.
There was no God in the sky, no God within me, no belief in myself that I had the ability to believe in a God, and so I just knelt in the dirt in silence and no words came to my lips.
Did I worship merely the dust under my knees? There was the coincidence as there is always the coincidence. The symbol flashed into my mind. A child cried again in a near-by house and I presume some traditional [Pg 271] feeling come down from old tellers of tales took possession of me. My fancy played with the figure of myself in the ridiculous position into which I had got and I thought of the wise men of old times who were reputed to have come to worship at the feet of another crying babe in an obscure place. How grand! The wise men of an older time had followed a star to a cowshed. Was I becoming wise? Smiling at myself and with also a kind of contempt of myself and my own sentimentality I half decided I would try to devote myself to something, give my life a purpose. “Why not to another effort at the re-discovery of man by man?” I thought rather grandly, getting up and beating the dust off my knees, the while I continued the trick I had learned of pointing the laughing finger of scorn at myself. I laughed at myself but all the time kept thinking of the occasional flashes of laughter that came from the drawn lips of Alonzo Berners. Why was his laughter freer and more filled with joy than my own?
Did I really just worship the dust under my knees? There was that coincidence, as there always is. The symbol popped into my mind. A child cried again in a nearby house, and I figured some old storytelling tradition took over me. I imagined myself in the silly position I was in and thought about the wise men from ancient times who were said to have come to honor another crying baby in a humble setting. How grand! Those wise men from a bygone era followed a star to a barn. Was I becoming wise? I smiled at myself, feeling a mix of amusement and a bit of contempt for my own sentimentality, and I half-decided to dedicate myself to something, to give my life a purpose. “Why not make another attempt at rediscovering humanity through humanity?” I thought grandiosely, getting up and brushing the dust off my knees, all while managing to keep that habit of mocking myself. I laughed at myself, but I couldn’t stop thinking about the occasional bursts of laughter that came from the tightly closed lips of Alonzo Berners. Why was his laughter so much freer and more joyful than mine?
[Pg 272]
[Pg 272]
NOTE XIV
WAR, leisure and the South!
War, leisure, and the South!
The leisure was not too much cut across by the hours spent in drills and manœuvres and the other duties of a soldier. Here was a life in which everything was physical, the mind on a vacation and the imagination having leisure to play while the body worked. One’s individuality became lost and one became part of something wholly physical, vast, strong, capable of being fine and heroic, capable of being brutal and cruel.
The free time wasn’t too interrupted by the hours spent on drills, maneuvers, and other soldier duties. This was a life where everything was physical, the mind could take a break, and the imagination had the chance to wander while the body was active. Individuality faded away, and a person became part of something completely physical, immense, powerful, able to be noble and heroic, yet also capable of being harsh and cruel.
One’s body was a house in which had lived two, three, perhaps ten or twelve personalities. The fancy became the head of the house and swept the body away into some absurd adventure or the mind took charge and laid down laws. These then were in turn driven out of the house by physical desire, by the lustful self. Dumb nights of walking city streets, wanting women, wanting to touch with the hands lovely things.
One’s body was like a house that housed two, three, maybe ten or twelve different personalities. Imagination took control and led the body into some ridiculous adventure, or the mind took over and imposed rules. These were then pushed out of the house by physical cravings, by the desire for pleasure. Silent nights spent walking city streets, longing for women, wanting to touch beautiful things.
All gone now, that kind of imaginings, for the time anyway. In the distance, beckoning, the women of the southern island, the dark Cuban [Pg 273] women. Would they like us when we came, we American lads, in our brown clothes? Would they take us as lovers, we the land’s deliverers?
All of that kind of thinking is over now, at least for the moment. In the distance, calling to us, are the women of the southern island, the dark Cuban women. Would they welcome us when we arrived, us American guys, in our brown clothes? Would they accept us as lovers, we who are the land's saviors? [Pg 273]
Long days of marching. We were in a forest of the South where once our fathers had fought a great battle. Everywhere camps among the trees and the ground worn hard as bricks by the constant tramping of feet. In the morning one awoke with five other men in a tent. There was morning roll call standing shoulder to shoulder. “Corporal Smith!” “Here!” “Corporal Anderson!” “Here!” Then breakfast out of flat tin dishes and the falling into line for hours of drill.
Long days of marching. We were in a southern forest where our fathers had once fought a great battle. Camps were scattered among the trees, and the ground was worn hard as bricks from the constant stomping of feet. In the morning, you’d wake up with five other men in a tent. There was morning roll call, standing shoulder to shoulder. “Corporal Smith!” “Here!” “Corporal Anderson!” “Here!” Then breakfast served from flat tin dishes and lining up for hours of drill.
Out from under the trees into a wide field we went, the southern sun pouring down on us and presently the back tired, the legs tired. One sank into a half-dead state. This did not signify battles, killing other men. The men with whom one marched were comrades, feeling the same weariness, obeying the same commands, being molded with oneself into something apart from oneself. We were being hardened, whipped into shape. For what? Well, never mind. Take what is before you! You have come out from under the shadow of the factory, the sun shines. The tall boys marching with you were raised in the same town with yourself. Now they are all silent, marching, marching. Times of adventure ahead. You and they will see strange people, hear strange tongues spoken.
Out from under the trees into a wide field we went, the southern sun beating down on us and soon our backs were tired, our legs were worn out. One felt like sinking into a half-dead state. This didn’t mean battles or killing other people. The guys we marched with were friends, sharing the same exhaustion, following the same orders, being shaped together into something bigger than ourselves. We were being toughened up, trained into shape. For what? Well, never mind. Just take what’s in front of you! You've stepped out from the shadow of the factory, and the sun is shining. The tall guys marching with you grew up in the same town as you. Now they’re all quiet, marching, marching. Exciting times lie ahead. You and they will meet strange people and hear unfamiliar languages spoken.
The Spaniards, eh! You know of them from books? Stout Cortez, silent upon his peak in Darien. Dark cruel eyes, dark swaggering men—in one’s fancy. In the fancy picture ships coming suddenly up out of the [Pg 274] western seas, bearing gold, bearing dark, adventurous men.
The Spaniards, huh! You know about them from books? Strong Cortez, quiet on his peak in Darien. Dark, ruthless eyes, dark, swaggering guys—in one’s imagination. In the imagined scene, ships suddenly emerge from the western seas, carrying gold and daring men. [Pg 274]
Is one going to fight such men, with one’s comrades, some thousands of such men? Tall boys from an Ohio town, baseball players, clerks in stores, Eddie Sanger over there who got Nell Brinker into trouble and was made to marry her at the point of a shotgun; Tom Means, who was once sent to the state reform farm; Harry Bacon, who got religion when the evangelist came to preach in the Methodist Church but got over it afterward—are these men to become killers, to try to kill Spaniards, who will try to kill them?
Is anyone really going to fight alongside their buddies against thousands of guys like these? Tall kids from a town in Ohio, baseball players, store clerks, Eddie Sanger over there who got Nell Brinker into trouble and was forced to marry her at gunpoint; Tom Means, who was once sent to a juvenile reform school; Harry Bacon, who found God when the evangelist preached at the Methodist Church but got over it later—are these guys supposed to become killers, trying to kill Spaniards who are trying to kill them?
Now, never mind! There is before you now but the marching for long hours with all these men. Here is something your mind has always been groping about trying to understand, the physical relation of man to man, of man to woman, of woman to woman. The mind is ugly when the flesh does not come in too. The flesh is ugly when the mind is put out of the house that is the body. Is the flesh ugly now? No, this is something special. This is something felt.
Now, never mind! All that’s left for you now is marching for hours with all these guys. Here’s something your mind has always been trying to figure out: the physical relationship between people—between man and man, man and woman, and woman and woman. The mind feels off when the body isn’t involved. The body feels wrong when the mind isn’t present in what makes up the body. Is the body wrong right now? No, this is something unique. This is something you can feel.
Suppose a man spend certain months, not thinking consciously, letting himself be swept along by other men, with other men, feeling the weariness of a thousand other men’s legs in his own legs, desiring with others, fearing with the others, being brave sometimes with the others. By such an experience can one gain knowledge of the others and of oneself too?
Suppose a man spends a few months not thinking consciously, just going along with other people, sharing the exhaustion of countless others in his own legs, wanting what they want, fearing what they fear, occasionally being brave alongside them. Can one gain insight into others and oneself through such an experience?
Comrades loved! Never mind now the thoughts of the hour of killing. One gets little enough. Take what is offered. And the killing may not come. Let the Roosevelts and others of that sort, the men of action, talk and think now of the hour of action, of the drawn sword, the pointed [Pg 275] gun, victory, defeat, glory, bloody fields. You are not a general or a statesman. Take the thing before you, the physical marching fact of an army of which you are a part.
Comrades, listen up! Don’t dwell on thoughts of death right now. We get very little of what we want. Accept what’s available. The killing might not happen. Let the Roosevelts and others like them, the doers, focus on this moment of action, the drawn sword, the loaded gun, victory, defeat, glory, and bloody battlefields. You’re not a general or a politician. Focus on what’s in front of you, the tangible reality of the army you’re part of. [Pg 275]
There is just the possibility that you are yourself a disease and that you may be cured here. This tremendous physical experience may cure you of the disease of yourself. Can one lose oneself utterly, become as nothing, become but a part of something, the state, the army? The army is something physical and actual while the state is nothing. The state exists but in men’s minds and imaginations and you have let your own imagination rule in your house too long. Let this young body of yours, so straight, so fair, so strong, let it have full possession of the house now. The imagination may play now over fields, over mountain tops if it please. “We are coming, Father Abraham, a hundred thousand strong!” You have forced your fancy to grovel in factory dust too long. Let it go now. You are nothing, so many little pounds of flesh and bone, a small unit in a vast thing that is marching, marching—the army. Blossoms on apple trees, sap in the branches of trees, a single head of wheat in a vast wheat field, eh?
There’s a chance that you are your own problem, and you could find a solution here. This intense physical experience might free you from the burden of yourself. Is it possible to completely lose yourself, to become nothing, just part of something bigger, like the state or the army? The army is real and tangible, while the state is an idea. The state exists only in people's minds and imaginations, and you have let your own imagination take control for too long. Let this young body of yours—so strong, so healthy, so vibrant—take charge now. Your imagination can roam freely over fields and mountaintops if it wants. “We are coming, Father Abraham, a hundred thousand strong!” You’ve forced your creativity to wallow in the grime of factories for too long. Let it soar now. You are just a collection of flesh and bones, a small part of a vast movement that is marching on—the army. Blossoms on apple trees, sap in the branches, a single head of wheat in an endless field, right?
All day long the march goes on and dust gathers in little circles about the eyes of weary men. A thin sharp voice is heard, an impersonal voice. It is speaking, not to you, not to one man only, but to a thousand men. “Fours right into line.”
All day long the march continues, and dust collects in small circles around the eyes of exhausted men. A thin, sharp voice is heard—an impersonal voice. It speaks, not to you, not to just one person, but to a thousand men. “Fours right into line.”
“Fours right into line!” You have so wanted that, have so hungered for it. Has not your whole life been filled with a vague indefinite desire to wheel into some vast line with all the others you have known and seen? It is enough! The legs respond. Tears sometimes gather in the [Pg 276] eyes at the thought of being able, without question, to do some one thing with thousands of others, with comrades.
“Four into line!” You’ve wanted that so much, you’ve craved it. Isn’t your entire life just a constant, unclear longing to join a massive line with everyone you’ve known and seen? That is enough! Your legs move. Sometimes, tears fill your eyes at the thought of being able, without a doubt, to do one thing with thousands of others, with friends. [Pg 276]
[Pg 277]
[Pg 277]
NOTE XV
I HAD enlisted for a soldier shortly after my visit to Alonzo Berners and because I was broke and could see no other way to avoid going back into a factory. The voices crying out for war with Spain, for the freeing of Cuba, I had heard not at all but there had been a voice within myself that was plain and clear enough and I did not believe there was danger of many battles being fought. The glory of Spain, read about in the books, was dead. We had old Spain at a disadvantage, poor old woman. The situation was unique. America, the young and swaggering giant of the West had been fortunate. She had not been compelled to face, on the field of battle, the giant of the Old World in the days of her Old World strength. Now the young western giant was going to assert himself and it would be like taking pennies from a child, like robbing an old gypsy woman in a vacant lot at night after a fair. The newspapers might call into service Stephen Crane, Richard Harding Davis, all the writers of battle tales trying to work up the illusion of a great war about to be fought, but no one believed, no one was afraid. In the camps the soldiers laughed. Songs were being sung. To the soldiers the Spaniards were something like performers in a circus to which the American boys had been invited. It was said they had bells on their hats, wore swords and played guitars under the windows of [Pg 278] ladies’ bedrooms at night.
I had signed up to be a soldier shortly after my visit to Alonzo Berners because I was broke and didn’t see any other way to avoid going back to a factory. I didn’t hear the calls for war with Spain or for freeing Cuba, but there was a clear voice inside me, and I didn’t think there would be many battles fought. The glory of Spain, as described in books, was gone. We had old Spain at a disadvantage, poor old thing. The situation was unusual. America, the young and brash giant of the West, had been lucky. She hadn’t had to go up against the giant of the Old World when it was at its peak. Now the young Western giant was ready to prove itself, and it would be like taking candy from a child, like robbing an old gypsy woman in a vacant lot at night after a fair. The newspapers might call in writers like Stephen Crane and Richard Harding Davis, all those battle story authors trying to create the illusion of a big war about to happen, but no one believed it, and no one was scared. In the camps, the soldiers laughed. Songs were being sung. To the soldiers, the Spaniards were like performers at a circus that the American boys had been invited to. It was said they had bells on their hats, wore swords, and played guitars under the windows of ladies’ bedrooms at night. [Pg 278]
America wanted heroes and I thought I would enjoy being a hero and so I did not enlist for a soldier in Chicago, where I was unknown and my rushing to my country’s aid might have passed unnoticed, but sent off a wire to the captain of militia of my home town in Ohio and got on a train to go there. Alonzo Berners had pressed upon me a loan of a hundred dollars but I did not want to spend any of it for railroad fare so beat my way homeward on a freight train and even the hoboes with whom I sat in an empty freight car treated me with respect as though I were already the hero of a hundred hard-fought battles. At a station twenty miles from home I bought a new suit of clothes, a new hat, neckties and even a walking stick. My home town would want to think I had given up a lucrative position in the city to answer my country’s call, they would want a Cincinnatus dropping his plow handles, and why should I not give them the best imitation I could manage? What I achieved was something between a bank clerk and an actor out of work.
America wanted heroes, and I thought being a hero would be great, so instead of signing up as a soldier in Chicago, where nobody knew me and my rush to help my country might go unnoticed, I sent a message to the captain of the militia back in my hometown in Ohio and hopped on a train to get there. Alonzo Berners had lent me a hundred dollars, but I didn’t want to spend any of it on a train ticket, so I took my chances and rode home on a freight train. Even the hoboes I shared an empty freight car with treated me respectfully, as if I were already a hero from a hundred fierce battles. When I was twenty miles from home, I bought a new suit, a new hat, some neckties, and even a walking stick. My hometown would want to believe I had left a good job in the city to answer my country’s call; they would expect a Cincinnatus leaving his plow behind, so why shouldn’t I give them the best version of that I could manage? What I ended up looking like was a mix between a bank clerk and an out-of-work actor.
I was received with acclaim. Never before that time or since have I had a personal triumph and I liked it. When, with the others of my company, I marched away to the railroad station to entrain for war the entire town turned out and cheered. Girls ran out of houses to kiss us and old veterans of the Civil War—they had known that of battles we would never know—stood with tears in their eyes.
I was welcomed with cheers. I've never experienced a personal victory like that before or since, and I loved it. When I, along with my fellow soldiers, headed to the train station to leave for war, the whole town came out to cheer us on. Girls rushed out of their homes to kiss us, and old veterans of the Civil War—who had faced battles we would never know—stood there with tears in their eyes.
To the young factory hand of the cities—that was myself, as I now remember myself at that moment—it was grand and glorious. There has always been a kind of shrewdness and foxiness in me and I could not [Pg 279] convince myself that Spain, clinging to its old traditions, old guns, old ships, could offer much resistance to the strong young nation now about to attack and I could not get over the feeling that I was going off with many others on a kind of glorious national picnic. Very well, if I was to be given credit for being a hero I could not see why I should object.
To the young factory worker in the cities—that was me, as I now remember that moment—it felt grand and amazing. I've always had a bit of cleverness and cunning, and I couldn't convince myself that Spain, holding on to its old traditions, outdated weapons, and ancient ships, could put up much of a fight against the strong, young nation that was about to attack. I couldn’t shake the feeling that I was heading off with many others on some sort of glorious national picnic. Fine, if I was going to be seen as a hero, I couldn't see why I should complain.
And then the camp at the edge of a southern city under forest trees, the physical hardening process that I instinctively liked. I have always enjoyed with a kind of intoxicating gusto any physical use of my body out in the sun and wind. In the army it brought me untroubled sleep at night, physical delight in my own body, the drunkenness of physical well-being and often in my tent at night, after a long day of drilling and when the others slept, I rolled quietly out under the tent flap and lay on my back on the ground, looking at the stars seen through the branches of trees. About me many thousands of men were sleeping and along a guard line, somewhere over there in the darkness, guards were walking up and down. Was it a kind of vast child’s play? The guards were pretending the army was in danger, why should not my own imagination play for a time?
And then there was the camp at the edge of a southern city under the trees, a physical toughening process that I instinctively enjoyed. I've always relished any physical activity under the sun and wind with a sort of intoxicating joy. In the army, it gave me undisturbed sleep at night, pleasure in my own body, and a high from feeling good physically. Often, in my tent at night, after a long day of drills, while the others slept, I quietly rolled out under the tent flap and lay on my back on the ground, gazing at the stars visible through the tree branches. Around me, thousands of men were sleeping, and along a guard line, somewhere out in the darkness, guards were walking back and forth. Was it just a vast game? The guards were pretending the army was in danger, so why shouldn’t my imagination play for a while?
How strong my body felt! I stretched and threw my arms above my head. For a time my fancy played with the notion of becoming a great general. Why might not Napoleon in his boyhood have been just such a fellow as myself? I had read somewhere that he had had an inclination to be a scribbler. I fancied the army, of which I was a part, hemmed in on all sides by untold thousands of fierce Spaniards. No one could think what to do and so I (Corporal Anderson) was sent for. The Americans [Pg 280] were in the same position the French revolutionists had been in when young Napoleon appeared and with “a whiff of grapeshot” took the destinies of a nation in his hands. Oh, I had read my Carlyle and knew something also of Machiavelli and his Prince. Aha! In fancy also I could be a great and cruel conqueror. The American army was surrounded by untold thousands of fierce Spaniards but in the American army was myself. This was my hour. I sat up on the ground outside the tent where my comrades were sleeping and in the darkness gave quick and accurate orders. Certain ones of my soldiers were to make a sortie. I did not quite know what a sortie was but anyway why not have one made? It would create a diversion, give my marvelous mind time to work. And now it was done and I began to fling bunches of troops here and there. My courier sprang upon a swift horse and rode away in the darkness. In his tent the Spanish commander was feasting—and here I, being a true Anglo-Saxon, must needs make out that the imaginary Spaniard was something of a monster. He was half drunk in his tent and was surrounded by concubines. Ah! he is sure to have concubines about and is proud and sure of victory but little does he know of me, the sleepless one. Grand phrases, grand ideas, flocking like birds! Now the Spanish commander has shown his true nature. A young boy comes to bring him wine and trips, spilling a little of the wine on the commander’s uniform. He arises and unsheathing his sword plunges it into the little boy’s breast. All are aghast. The Spaniards all stand aghast, and at that very moment I, like an avenging angel, and followed by thousands [Pg 281] of pure clean-living Americans (Anglo-Saxon Americans, let it be understood), I swoop down upon him.
How strong my body felt! I stretched and raised my arms above my head. For a moment, I entertained the idea of becoming a great general. Why couldn’t Napoleon in his youth have been just like me? I had read somewhere that he had an interest in writing. I imagined the army I was part of, surrounded on all sides by countless fierce Spaniards. No one knew what to do, so I (Corporal Anderson) was called in. The Americans were in the same situation the French revolutionaries faced when young Napoleon emerged and with “a whiff of grapeshot” took control of a nation’s fate. Oh, I had read Carlyle and knew a bit about Machiavelli and his Prince. Aha! In my imagination, I could also be a great and ruthless conqueror. The American army was encircled by numerous fierce Spaniards, but I was among the Americans. This was my moment. I sat up outside the tent where my comrades were sleeping and quickly issued precise orders in the darkness. Some of my soldiers were to make a sortie. I wasn’t entirely sure what a sortie was, but why not try it? It would create a distraction and give my brilliant mind time to strategize. Now it was done, and I began to send groups of troops in different directions. My courier jumped on a fast horse and rode away into the darkness. In his tent, the Spanish commander was indulging himself—and here I, being a true Anglo-Saxon, had to imagine the fictional Spaniard as somewhat of a monster. He was half-drunk in his tent, surrounded by concubines. Ah! He surely had concubines nearby and was confident of victory, but little did he know about me, the relentless one. Grand phrases, grand ideas, flocking like birds! Now the Spanish commander revealed his true character. A young boy brought him wine and stumbled, spilling some on the commander’s uniform. He stood up, drew his sword, and plunged it into the boy’s chest. Everyone was stunned. The Spaniards all stood in shock, and at that very moment, I, like an avenging angel, followed by thousands of pure, clean-living Americans (Anglo-Saxon Americans, I must clarify), swooped down upon him.
At the time of which I am writing America had not learned as it did during the World War that in order to stamp out brutal militarism it is best to adopt brutal militarism, teach it to our sons, do everything possible to brutalize our own people. During the World War I am told boys and young men in the training camps were made to attack with the bayonet dummy figures of men and were even told to grunt as they plunged the bayonet into the figure. Everything possible was done to brutalize the imaginations of the young men, but in our war—“my war” I find myself calling it at times—we had not yet carried our education that far. There was as yet a childish belief in democracy. Men even supposed that the purpose of democracy was to raise free men who could think for themselves, act for themselves in an emergency. The modern idea of the standardization of men had not taken hold and was even thought to be inimical to the very notion of democracy. And we had not learned yet, as we did later, that when an army is to be organized you must split your men up, so that no man knows his fellows, that you must not have officers coming from the same towns as their soldiers, that everything must be made as machine-like and impersonal as possible.
At the time I’m writing about, America hadn’t learned, as it did during World War I, that to eliminate brutal militarism, it was best to adopt it, teach it to our sons, and do everything possible to brutalize our own people. During that war, I’ve heard that boys and young men in training camps were made to attack dummy figures with bayonets and were even told to grunt as they stabbed the figures. Everything possible was done to harden the imaginations of the young men, but in our war—"my war," I sometimes call it—we hadn’t taken that education that far yet. There was still a childish belief in democracy. People even thought that the purpose of democracy was to raise free men who could think for themselves and act in emergencies. The modern concept of standardizing men hadn’t taken root and was even seen as hostile to the very idea of democracy. And we hadn’t learned yet, as we did later, that when organizing an army, you must break up your men so that no one knows their comrades, that you shouldn’t have officers from the same towns as their soldiers, and that everything must be as machine-like and impersonal as possible.
And so there we were, just boys from an Ohio country town with officers from the same town in a wood in the South being made into soldiers and I am much afraid not taking the whole affair too seriously. We were heroes and we accepted the fact. It was enough. In the southern cities [Pg 282] ladies invited us to dine at their houses on our days off in town. The captain of our company had been a janitor of a public building back in Ohio, the first lieutenant was a celery raiser on a small farm near our town and the second lieutenant had been a knife grinder in a cutlery factory.
And so there we were, just kids from an Ohio country town with officers from the same town in a southern woods, being turned into soldiers, and I’m afraid we didn’t take the whole thing too seriously. We were heroes, and we accepted that. It was enough. In the southern cities, [Pg 282] ladies invited us to their homes for dinner on our days off in town. The captain of our company had been a janitor at a public building back in Ohio, the first lieutenant was a celery farmer on a small farm near our town, and the second lieutenant had worked as a knife grinder in a cutlery factory.
In the camp I marched with the others for several hours each day and in the evening went with some other young soldier for a walk in the wood or in the streets of a southern city. There was a kind of drunkenness of comradeship. So many men so like oneself, doing the same thing with oneself. As for the officers—well, it was to be admitted that in military affairs they knew more than ourselves but there their superiority ended. It would be just as well for none of them to attempt to put on too much side when we were not drilling or were not on actual military duty. The war would soon be over and after a time we would all be going back home. An officer might conceivably “get away” with some sort of injustice for the moment—but a year from now, when we were all at home again.... Did the fool want to take the chance of four or five huskies giving him a beating some night in an alleyway?
In the camp, I marched with the others for several hours every day, and in the evenings, I went for walks in the woods or the streets of a southern city with some fellow young soldiers. There was a kind of intoxication from our camaraderie. So many men just like me, doing the same things together. As for the officers—sure, they knew more about military matters than we did, but that’s where their superiority ended. It would be best if none of them tried to act too important when we weren't drilling or on official duty. The war would be over soon, and eventually, we’d all be going back home. An officer might think he could get away with some kind of unfairness for the time being—but a year from now, when we were all back home... Did he really want to risk getting a beatdown from four or five tough guys someday in an alley?
The constant marching and manœuvring was a kind of music in the legs and bodies of men. No man is a single thing, physical or mental. The marching went on and on. The physical ruled. There was a vast slow rhythm, out of the bodies of many thousands of men, always going on and on. It got into one’s body. There was a kind of physical drunkenness produced. He who weakened was laughed at by his comrades and the [Pg 283] weakness went away or he disappeared. One was afloat on a vast sea of men. There was a kind of music on the surface of the sea. The music was a part of oneself. One was oneself a part of the music. One’s body, moving in rhythm with all these other bodies, made the music. What was an officer? What was a man? An officer was but one out of whose throat came a voice.
The constant marching and maneuvering felt like a rhythm in the legs and bodies of the men. No one is just one thing, either physically or mentally. The marching went on endlessly. The physical aspect dominated. There was a vast, slow rhythm generated by the bodies of thousands of men, constantly continuing. It became part of you. It created a sort of physical intoxication. Those who faltered were ridiculed by their peers, and weakness either faded away or they vanished. One felt like they were floating on a vast ocean of men. There was a kind of music on the surface of that ocean. The music became a part of you. You became a part of the music. Your body, moving in harmony with all those other bodies, created the music. What is an officer? What is a man? An officer is just someone from whom a voice emerges.
The army moved across a great open field. One’s body was tired but happy with an odd new kind of happiness. The mind did not torture the body, asking questions. The body was moved by a power outside itself and as for the fancy, it played freely, far, freely and widely, over oceans, over mountain tops too.
The army moved across a vast open field. One's body was tired but felt a strange kind of happiness. The mind wasn't tormenting the body with questions. The body was driven by a force beyond itself, and as for the imagination, it roamed freely, far and wide, over oceans and mountain peaks.
And now the voice and the words, caught up and repeated by other voices, harsh voices, tired voices, thin high pitched voices.
And now the voice and the words, echoed and repeated by other voices, rough voices, weary voices, high-pitched thin voices.
Three young men having run the guard line, together are walking along a dark road toward a southern city. In the city and later when they have stood on street corners and walked through the section of the city where only Negroes live—being Ohio boys and fascinated by the strangeness of the notion of a race thus set aside—they go into a saloon where they sit drinking beer. They discuss their officers, the position of the officer in relation to his men. “I think it’s all [Pg 284] right,” says a doctor’s son. “Ed and Dug are all right. They have to live off by themselves and act as though they were something special, kind of grand and wise and gaudy. It’s a kind of bluff, I guess, that has to be kept up, only I should think it would be kind of tough on them. I should think they might get to feeling they were something special and get themselves into a mess.”
Three young men, having passed the guard line, are walking together along a dark road toward a southern city. Once in the city, they stand on street corners and stroll through the neighborhood where only Black people live—being from Ohio and intrigued by the oddity of a race set apart—they enter a bar where they sit and drink beer. They talk about their officers and the role of an officer in relation to his men. “I think it’s all right,” says a doctor's son. “Ed and Dug are good guys. They have to live separately and act like they’re something special, a bit grand and impressive. It’s a kind of facade, I guess, that they have to maintain, but I think it might be hard on them. They could start to think they’re really something and find themselves in trouble.”
And now Ed, the raiser of celery, comes into the saloon. He is saving all he can of his officer’s pay hoping to buy a few additional acres of land when he gets back home and he doesn’t much like spending money. He sees the three sitting there and wants to join them but hesitates. Then he calls to me and he and I go off together along a street and into another saloon.
And now Ed, the celery farmer, walks into the bar. He's saving as much of his officer's pay as he can, hoping to buy a few more acres of land when he gets back home, and he really doesn't like spending money. He sees the three people sitting there and wants to join them but hesitates. Then he calls out to me, and we head off together down the street and into another bar.
The celery raiser is a devout Catholic and he and I get into a discussion. I have some money and am buying the beer and so it goes on for a long time. I speak of the feeling I have when I have marched for a long time in rhythm with many other men and Ed nods his head. “It’s the same way I feel about the Church,” he says. “That’s just the way we Catholics get to feeling about the Church.”
The celery farmer is a devoted Catholic, and we start a conversation. I have some cash and I'm buying the beer, so it goes on for quite a while. I talk about the feeling I get when I've marched in sync with a lot of other guys, and Ed nods in agreement. “That’s exactly how I feel about the Church,” he responds. “That’s just how we Catholics feel about the Church.”
At the camp Ed, being an officer, can walk boldly in but I, being but a corporal and having gone off to town without leave, must creep along the guard line to where a fellow from my own town is stationed. “Who goes there?” he demands sternly; and “Ah, cut it Will, you big boob. Don’t make such a racket,” I answer as I go past him and creep away in the darkness to my tent.
At the camp, Ed, as an officer, can walk in confidently, but I, as just a corporal who went into town without permission, have to sneak along the guard line to where a guy from my hometown is stationed. “Who’s there?” he asks sternly; and “Oh, come on, Will, you big idiot. Don’t make such a fuss,” I reply as I walk by him and quietly head to my tent in the dark.
And now I am in the tent, awake beside five sleeping men and I am [Pg 285] filled with drinks and thinking of war. What a strange idea that men should need a war to throw many of them for a time into a common mood. Is there unison only in hatred? I do not believe it but the idea fascinates me. Men form a democracy but in the end must throw the democracy aside in order to make the army that shall protect and preserve democracy. The guard and myself creeping past him to my tent are as soldiers a little absurd. Is all feeling of comradeship, of brotherhood between many men, a little absurd?
And now I'm in the tent, awake next to five sleeping men, full of drinks and thinking about war. What a weird thought that guys need a war to bring many of them together for a while into a shared mood. Is unity possible only through hatred? I don’t think so, but the idea intrigues me. Men create a democracy, but ultimately must set it aside to build the army that will protect and uphold democracy. As the guard and I sneak past him to my tent, it feels a bit ridiculous to be soldiers. Is all sense of camaraderie and brotherhood among many men a little silly?
[Pg 287]
[Pg 287]
BOOK THREE
[Pg 289]
[Pg 289]
NOTE I
“There is no lighter burden, nor more agreeable, than a pen. Other pleasures fail us, or wound us while they charm; but the pen we take up with rejoicing and lay down with satisfaction, for it has the power to advantage not only its lord and master, but many others as well, even though they be far away—sometimes, indeed, though they be not born for thousands of years to come. I believe I speak but the strict truth when I claim that as there is none among earthly delights more noble than literature, so there is none so lasting, none gentler, or more faithful; there is none which accompanies its possessor through the vicissitudes of life at so small cost of effort or anxiety.”
“There's no lighter or more enjoyable burden than a pen. Other pleasures can let us down or hurt us while they attract us; but we pick up the pen with joy and put it down with satisfaction, because it has the ability to benefit not just its owner, but many others too, even if they're far away—sometimes, in fact, even those who won't be born for thousands of years. I believe I'm speaking the absolute truth when I say that just as there’s nothing among earthly pleasures more noble than literature, there’s also nothing more lasting, gentler, or more loyal; nothing else accompanies its owner through life's ups and downs with so little effort or worry.”
—Petrarch’s letter to Boccaccio.
—Petrarch’s letter to Boccaccio.
I ONCE knew a devout smoker who went to spend the winter in Havana and when he had got there and was unpacking his trunk he began to laugh, realizing suddenly that he had packed the trunk half full of boxes of cigars, and I have myself on more than one occasion when going from one city to another on some affair of business carried with me thousands of sheets of paper, fearing, I presume, that all the stationers in the new place had died. The fear of finding myself without paper, ink or pencils is a kind of disease with me and it is with a good deal of effort only that I restrain myself from stealing such articles whenever I am left unobserved in a store or in someone’s house. In houses where [Pg 290] I live for some time I cache small stores of paper as a squirrel stores nuts and at one time in my life I had forcibly to be separated, by a considerate friend, from something like half a bushel of lead pencils I had for a long time carted about with me in a bag. There were enough pencils in the bag to have rewritten the history of mankind.
I once knew a devoted smoker who went to spend the winter in Havana, and when he arrived and started unpacking his suitcase, he began to laugh, realizing he had packed it half full of cigar boxes. Personally, I've often traveled from one city to another for business, carrying thousands of sheets of paper with me, probably out of fear that all the stationers in the new place had vanished. The fear of being without paper, ink, or pencils is a kind of obsession for me, and I have to fight hard to keep myself from taking such items whenever I'm alone in a store or someone’s house. In places where I stay for a while, I stash away small supplies of paper like a squirrel stores nuts, and at one point in my life, a thoughtful friend had to physically separate me from about half a bushel of lead pencils I had been hauling around in a bag for ages. There were enough pencils in that bag to rewrite the history of mankind.
To the writer of prose, who loves his craft, there is nothing in the world so satisfying as being in the presence of great stacks of clean white sheets. The feeling is indescribably sweet and cannot be compared with any reaction to be got from sheets on which one has already scribbled. The written sheets are already covered with one’s faults and oh, it is seldom indeed these sentences, scrawled across these sheets, can compare with what was intended! One has been walking in a street and has been much alive. What stories the faces in the streets tell! How significant the faces of the houses! The walls of the houses are brushed away by the force of the imagination and one sees and feels all of the life within. What a universal giving away of secrets! Everything is felt, everything known. Physical life within one’s own body comes to an end of consciousness. The life outside oneself is all, everything.
To a writer who loves their craft, nothing feels more satisfying than being surrounded by stacks of clean white sheets of paper. The feeling is incredibly sweet and can't be compared to how one reacts to paper that’s already been written on. Those written sheets are filled with mistakes, and it's rare that the words scribbled on them match what was originally intended! It’s like walking down a lively street. What stories do the faces in the street tell! How meaningful the faces of the buildings are! The walls of the buildings fade away under the power of imagination, allowing one to see and feel all the life inside. It's a universal sharing of secrets! Everything is felt, everything is known. The physical life within one's own body fades into unconsciousness. The life outside oneself is everything.
Now for the pen or the pencil and paper and I shall make you feel this thing I now feel—ah, just that boy there and what is in his soul as he runs to look in at the window of the neighboring house in the early evening light; just what that woman is thinking as she sits on the porch of that other house holding the babe in her arms; just the dark, brooding thing in the soul of that laborer going homeward under those trees. He is getting old and was born an American. Why did he not rise [Pg 291] in the world and become the owner or at least the superintendent of a factory and own an automobile?
Now, grab a pen or pencil and some paper, and I’ll help you feel what I’m feeling right now—take that boy over there and what’s going on inside him as he peeks through the window of the house next door in the soft evening light; think about what that woman is contemplating as she sits on the porch of that other house, cradling the baby in her arms; and let’s not forget the heavy, contemplative thoughts in the mind of that worker heading home under the trees. He’s getting older and was born an American. Why didn’t he make something of himself and become the owner, or at least the manager, of a factory and have a car of his own? [Pg 291]
Aha! You do not know, but I do. You wait now, I shall tell you. I have felt all, everything. In myself I have no existence. Now I exist only in these others.
Aha! You don’t know, but I do. Just wait, I’m going to tell you. I’ve experienced everything. I don’t exist within myself anymore. Now I only exist in these other people.
I have run home to my room and have lighted a light. Words flow. What has happened? Bah! Such tame, unutterably dull stuff! There was something within me, truth, facility, the color and smell of things. Why, I might have done something here. Words are everything. I swear to you I have not lost my faith in words.
I rushed back to my room and turned on a light. Words are flowing. What just happened? Ugh! Such boring, incredibly dull things! There was something inside me—truth, ease, the color and scent of things. I could have created something here. Words mean everything. I promise I haven’t lost my faith in words.
Do I not know? While I walked in the street there were such words came, in ordered array! I tell you what—words have color, smell; one may sometimes feel them with the fingers as one touches the cheek of a child.
Do I not know? As I walked down the street, words like that came to me, all lined up! I’ll tell you—words have color, they have a scent; sometimes you can almost feel them with your fingers, like when you touch a child's cheek.
There is no reason at all why I should not have been able, by the instrumentality of these little words, why I should not have been able to give you the very smell of the little street wherein I just walked, made you feel just the way the evening light fell over the faces of the houses and the people—the half moon through the branches of that old cherry tree that was all but dead but that had the one branch alive, the branch that touched the window where the boy stood with his foot up, lacing his shoe. And there was the dog sleeping in the dust of the road and making a little whining sound out of his dreams and the girl on a near-by street who was learning to ride a bicycle. She could not [Pg 292] be seen but her two young brothers laughed loudly every time she fell to the pavement.
I have every reason to believe I could have used these simple words to share the exact vibe of the little street I just walked down. I could have made you sense how the evening light wrapped around the faces of the houses and the people—the half moon peeking through the branches of that almost-dead cherry tree that had just one live branch, the one that brushed against the window where a boy stood, foot up, tying his shoe. And there was a dog napping in the dust of the road, making a soft whining sound in his sleep, while a girl on a nearby street was learning to ride a bike. You couldn’t see her, but her two young brothers laughed loudly every time she tumbled onto the pavement. [Pg 292]
These the materials of the story-writer’s craft, these and the little words that must be made to run into sentences and paragraphs; now slow and haltingly, now quickly, swiftly, now singing like a woman’s voice in a dark house in a dark street at midnight, now viciously, threateningly, like wolves running in a winter forest of the North.
These are the tools of a writer’s trade, along with the small words that need to be strung together into sentences and paragraphs; sometimes slowly and hesitantly, other times quickly and smoothly, like a woman’s voice in a dark house on a dark street at midnight, and at times viciously and threateningly, like wolves running through a winter forest in the North.
Oh! This unutterable rot spoken sometimes about writing. One is to consider the morals of the people who read, one is to please or amuse the people with these words and sentences. One lives in an age when there is much talk of service—to automobile owners, to riders on trains, to buyers of packages of food in stores. Is no one to do service to the little words, the words with which we make love, defend ourselves with lies after we have killed the friend who stole the woman we wanted—the words with which we bury our dead, comfort our friend, with which we are in the end to tell each other, if we may, all the secrets of our dreams and hopes?
Oh! The nonsense people sometimes say about writing. They talk about the morals of the readers, about needing to please or entertain with these words and sentences. We live in a time when everyone talks about service—to car owners, to train passengers, to shoppers buying food in stores. Is there really no service for the little words, the ones we use to express love, to protect ourselves with lies after we've harmed a friend who took the person we desired—those words we use to mourn our dead, to comfort a friend, and ultimately, the words we hope to use to share all the secrets of our dreams and aspirations?
I am servant to the words. Are you to tell me what words I shall put aside and not write? Are you to be the master of my mood, caught from yourself perhaps as you walked in the street and I saw you when you did not see me and when you were more sweet and true in all your bearing than you have ever been before, or when alas you were more vicious and cruel. Bah! The words I have put here on this paper!
I am a servant to words. Are you going to tell me which words I should ignore and not use? Are you going to control my mood, maybe because of how you looked walking down the street when I noticed you even though you didn’t see me, and when you were kinder and more genuine than ever, or when, unfortunately, you were more harsh and cruel? Ugh! The words I’ve written on this paper!
But there are the clean sheets, the unwritten sheets. On them I shall [Pg 293] write daringly, boldly and truly—to-morrow.
But there are the clean sheets, the blank pages. On them I shall [Pg 293] write boldly, fearlessly, and honestly—tomorrow.
The writer has just come from the stationer’s, where he has got him a fresh supply of sheets. He had money with him and bought five thousand. Ah, the weight of them on the arm as he walked off along a street to his own house. Four thousand nine hundred and ninety-nine times he may destroy the sheet on which he has been writing and there, lying before him, will be again the fresh white surface.
The writer just came from the stationery store, where he picked up a new supply of paper. He had some money with him and bought five thousand sheets. Oh, the weight of them on his arm as he walked down the street to his house. He might ruin the page he's been writing on four thousand nine hundred ninety-nine times, and there, waiting for him, will be the fresh white surface again.
Makers of paper, I exclude you from all the curses I have heaped upon manufacturers when I have walked in the street breathing coal dust and smoke. I have heard your industry kills fish in rivers. Let them be killed. Fishermen are, in any event, noisy lying brutes. Last night I dreamed I had been made Pope and that I had issued a bull, excommunicating all owners of factories, consigning them to burn everlastingly in hell, but ah, I left you out of my curses, you busy makers of paper. Those who made paper at a low price and in vast quantities somewhere up in the forests of Canada, I sainted. There was one man—I invented him—named Saint John P. Belger, who furnished paper to indigent writers of prose free of charge. For virtue I put him, in my dream, almost on a level with Saint Francis of Assisi.
Makers of paper, I don’t include you in all the complaints I’ve thrown at manufacturers while walking the streets filled with coal dust and smoke. I’ve heard your industry harms fish in rivers. Let them be harmed. Fishermen are, after all, loud, dishonest thugs. Last night, I dreamed I was made Pope and had issued a bull, excommunicating all factory owners, condemning them to burn eternally in hell, but, oh, I left you out of my complaints, you hard-working paper makers. Those who produced paper cheaply and in large amounts somewhere up in the forests of Canada, I celebrated. There was one man—I made him up—named Saint John P. Belger, who provided paper to struggling prose writers for free. For his goodness, I placed him, in my dream, almost on par with Saint Francis of Assisi.
And now the writer has got to his room and has stacked the bundles of paper on the desk where he sits to write. He goes to a window and throws it open and there is a man passing. Who is the man? The writer [Pg 294] does not know but is tempted to throw a dish or a chair at his head, merely to show his contempt of the world. “Take that mankind! Go to Hades! Have I not five thousand sheets?”
And now the writer has made it to his room and stacked the bundles of paper on the desk where he sits to write. He goes to a window and throws it open, and a man walks by. Who is this man? The writer doesn’t know, but he’s tempted to throw a dish or a chair at him, just to express his disdain for the world. “Take that, humanity! Go to hell! Don’t I have five thousand sheets?” [Pg 294]
It is without doubt a moment! In my boyhood I knew an old woodworker who on Sundays went to walk alone in a forest. Once I was lying on my back by a clump of bushes and saw his actions when he thought there was no one about.
It’s definitely a moment! When I was a kid, I knew an old woodworker who would take long walks alone in the forest on Sundays. One time, I was lying on my back by a bunch of bushes and watched him when he thought he was all alone.
What has mankind, in America, not missed because men do not know, or are forgetting, what the old workman knew? There was Sandro Botticelli who knew. He was in danger once of becoming married to a woman but at the critical moment he fled. All night he ran in the streets of Florence wrestling with himself and in the end won the victory. The woman was not to come between him and his surfaces, those cathedral walls, those dumb strips of canvas on which he was to paint—not all his dreams—what he could of his dreams. Nothing was to come between him and his materials.
What has humanity in America overlooked because people don’t know or are forgetting what the old craftsmen understood? There was Sandro Botticelli who knew. He once faced the possibility of marrying a woman but at the last moment, he ran away. All night he roamed the streets of Florence, battling with himself, and ultimately emerged victorious. The woman was not going to stand between him and his work, those cathedral walls, those silent pieces of canvas on which he intended to paint—not all of his dreams—just what he could of his dreams. Nothing was going to get in the way of him and his materials.
The old woodworker in the forest approached a living tree and then walked away. He went close again and let his eye travel up along the tree’s trunk. Then, hesitatingly, lovingly he touched the tree with his fingers. That was all. It was enough.
The old woodworker in the forest walked up to a living tree and then stepped back. He got closer again and let his gaze follow the trunk of the tree. Then, with hesitation and affection, he gently touched the tree with his fingers. That was all. It was enough.
It was the workman en rapport with his materials. Oh, there is a feeling in the breasts of men that will not die. Ages come and go, but always the feeling is alive, haltingly, in the breasts of the few. To the workman his materials are as the face of his God seen over the rim of the world. His materials are the promise of the coming of God to [Pg 295] the workman.
It was the worker in tune with his materials. Oh, there’s a feeling in the hearts of people that won’t fade away. Ages pass, but that feeling lives on, slowly, in the hearts of a few. To the worker, his materials are like the face of his God peeking over the horizon. His materials represent the promise of God's arrival to the worker. [Pg 295]
Ford factories cannot kill the love of materials in the workmen and always and in the end the love of materials and tools in the workmen will kill the Fords. Standardization is a phase. It will pass. The tools and materials of the workmen cannot always remain cheap and foul. Some day the workmen will come back to their materials, out of the sterile land of standardization. If the machine is to survive it will come again under the dominance of the hands of workmen, as it already no doubt is doing, in a hundred, perhaps a thousand unknown places. The day of re-discovery of man by man may not be so far off as we fancy. Has there not been, in our own time, a slackening of the impulse toward purely material ends? Has not the cry for success and material growth become already a bore to the average American?
Ford factories can't extinguish the passion for materials in workers, and ultimately, that passion will overshadow the Fords. Standardization is just a phase. It won’t last forever. The tools and materials used by workers can’t stay cheap and subpar forever. One day, workers will reconnect with their materials, breaking away from the lifeless realm of standardization. If machines are going to thrive, they’ll need to return to being shaped by the hands of laborers, which is likely already happening in countless, perhaps thousands of unknown places. The moment of rediscovering humanity through humanity might be closer than we think. Isn’t there a noticeable decline in the drive for purely materialistic goals in our own time? Hasn’t the obsession with success and material growth become tiresome to the average American?
These the thoughts of a man. To the boy lying in the silent place on the Sunday afternoon long ago and seeing the old workman touching so tenderly the tree that he dreamed might some day become the materials of his craft no such thoughts.
These are the thoughts of a man. To the boy lying in the quiet spot on a Sunday afternoon long ago, watching the old worker gently touch the tree that he hoped might one day become the materials for his craft, there were no such thoughts.
What happened? Just a tightening of the cords of the boy’s body. There was an inclination to be at the same time sad and full of joy. A door had been jerked open by the hand of the workman but the boy could not see within the house. He was, I remember, known as something of a “nut” in our town—a silent old chap—and once he went away to work in a city factory but later came back to his own little shop. He was a wagon-maker and the making of wagons by individual workmen lasted out [Pg 296] his time. But he had no young workman to whom he taught the love of his trade. That died with him.
What happened? Just a tightening of the boy's body. There was a mix of sadness and joy. A door had been flung open by the workman's hand, but the boy couldn't see inside the house. I remember he was known as a bit of a "nut" in our town—a quiet old guy—and once he went to work in a city factory but later returned to his own small shop. He was a wagon maker, and the craft of making wagons by individual artisans lasted through his time. But he had no young apprentice to whom he could pass on his passion for the trade. That passion died with him. [Pg 296]
Not quite, perhaps. The picture of the old workman and just the way his fingers touched the trunk of a tree on a certain Sunday afternoon and of how, as he walked away along a path, he kept stopping to turn back and take another look at his materials, stayed in a boy’s mind through long years of being smart, of trying mightily to be shrewd and capable in a world where materials did not matter, in the company of workmen vulgarized by the fact that the old workman’s love of materials was unknown to them.
Not exactly, maybe. The image of the old craftsman and how his fingers grazed the trunk of a tree on a particular Sunday afternoon, and how, as he walked away along a path, he kept pausing to look back and check out his materials, lingered in a boy’s mind through many years of being clever, of trying hard to be sharp and competent in a world where materials didn’t count, surrounded by workers who were diminished by the fact that the old craftsman’s love for materials was lost on them.
The writer with his sheets in a room. Will he accomplish his purpose? It is sure he will not. And that too is a part of the joy of his fate. Do not pity the workman, you who have succeeded in life. He wants no pity. Before him always there is the unsolved problem, the clean white unwritten sheets, and the workman also knows his moments of surrender, of happiness. There will always be the moments when he is lost in wonder before the possibilities of the materials before him.
The writer sits in a room with his sheets of paper. Will he achieve his goal? It's certain he won't. And that's part of the joy of his journey. Don’t feel sorry for the worker, you who have made it in life. He doesn’t want your pity. In front of him are always the unsolved problems, the blank white pages, and he also experiences moments of giving in, of joy. There will always be times when he’s amazed by the possibilities of the materials in front of him.
As for myself I had been, at the time in my life of which I am now writing, a man of business for many years, had been buying and selling, but had all the time been secretly scribbling in my room at night.
As for me, during the time in my life that I'm writing about, I had been a businessman for many years, buying and selling, but all the while I had been secretly writing in my room at night.
During the day I for years wrote advertisements—of soaps, of plows, house paints, incubators for the hatching of chickens.
During the day, I spent years writing ads—for soaps, for plows, for house paints, and for incubators to hatch chickens.
Was there something hatching in me? With all my scribbling had I something to say? Were there tales I had picked up I might in the end [Pg 297] tell truly and well? I had seen and known men and women, going from their homes to their work, going from their work to their homes, had worked with them in offices and shops. On all sides the untold tales looked out at me like living things.
Was there something developing inside me? With all my writing, did I have something meaningful to share? Were there stories I had gathered that I could eventually tell honestly and well? I had seen and known people, traveling from their homes to their jobs, and then back again, had worked alongside them in offices and shops. All around me, the unwritten stories seemed to be waiting for me like they were alive. [Pg 297]
I had bought and sold but had no real interest in buying and selling. All day I wrote advertisements and perhaps the advertisements helped sell So-and-so many dollars’ worth of goods. As I walked homeward through streets, across bridges, I could not remember what I had been writing about.
I had bought and sold but didn’t really care about buying and selling. All day I wrote ads, and maybe those ads helped sell a certain amount of goods. As I walked home through the streets and over bridges, I couldn’t remember what I had been writing about.
At times too there was a sharp sense of uncleanliness. In my room the white sheets looked up at me. I remembered the workman seen in the forest in the presence of the tree when I was a boy. “I will launch out upon new adventures,” I said to myself.
At times, there was also a strong feeling of uncleanliness. In my room, the white sheets seemed to stare at me. I remembered the worker I saw in the forest by the tree when I was a kid. “I’m going to set off on new adventures,” I told myself.
[Pg 298]
[Pg 298]
NOTE II
ON an evening of the late summer I got off a train at a growing Ohio industrial town where I had once lived. I was rapidly becoming a middle-aged man. Two years before I had left the place in disgrace. There I had tried to be a manufacturer, a moneymaker, and had failed, and I had been trying and failing ever since. In the town some thousands of dollars had been lost for others. An effort to conform to the standard dreams of the men of my times had failed and in the midst of my disgrace and generally hopeless outlook, as regards making a living, I had been filled with joy at coming to the end of it all. One morning I had left the place afoot, leaving my poor little factory, like an illegitimate child, on another man’s doorstep. I had left, merely taking what money was in my pocket, some eight or ten dollars.
ON a late summer evening, I got off a train in an industrial town in Ohio where I had once lived. I was quickly becoming a middle-aged man. Two years earlier, I had left this place in disgrace. There, I had tried to become a manufacturer, a money-maker, and had failed, and I had been trying and failing ever since. In that town, several thousand dollars had been lost by others because of me. My attempt to fit into the typical dreams of my peers had failed, and amid my disgrace and generally bleak outlook on making a living, I felt a sense of joy at the thought of it all coming to an end. One morning, I had walked away from the place, leaving my struggling little factory, like an unwanted child, on someone else's doorstep. I left with just the money in my pocket, about eight or ten dollars.
What a moment that leaving had been! To one of the European artists I afterward came to know the situation would have been unbelievably grotesque. Such a man could not have believed in my earnestness about it all and would have thought my feelings of the moment a worked-up thing. I can in fancy hear one of the Frenchmen, Italians or Russians I later knew laughing at me. “Well, but why get so worked up? A factory is a factory, is it not? Why may not one break it like an empty [Pg 299] bottle? You have lost some money for others? See the light on that field over there. These others, for whom you lost money, were they compelled to beg in the streets, were their children torn by wolves? What is it you Americans get so excited about when a little money is lost?”
What a moment that leaving had been! To one of the European artists I later came to know, the situation would have seemed unbelievably ridiculous. Such a person wouldn’t have believed in my sincerity about it all and would have thought my feelings in that moment were something I’d manufactured. I can almost hear one of the Frenchmen, Italians, or Russians I got to know later laughing at me. “Well, why get so worked up? A factory is just a factory, right? Why can’t you treat it like an empty [Pg 299] bottle? You lost some money for others? Look at the light over that field over there. Those others, for whom you lost money, were they forced to beg in the streets? Were their children torn apart by wolves? What is it about you Americans that gets so worked up over a little lost money?”
A European artist may not understand but an American will understand. The devil! It is not a question of money. No men are so careless and free with money as the Americans. There is another matter involved.
A European artist might not get it, but an American will. Damn it! It's not about money. No one is as careless and generous with cash as Americans. There's something else at play.
It strikes rather deeply at the roots of our beings. Childish as it all may have seemed to an older and more sophisticated world, we Americans, from the beginning, have been up to something, or we have wanted to think we were up to something. We came here, or our fathers or grandfathers came here, from a hundred diverse places—and you may be sure it was not the artists who came. Artists do not want to cut down trees, root stumps out of the ground, build towns and railroads. The artist wants to sit with a strip of canvas before him, face an open space on a wall, carve a bit of wood, make combinations of words and sentences, as I am doing now—and try to express to others some thought or feeling of his own. He wants to dream of color, to lay hold of form, free the sensual in himself, live more fully and freely in his contact with the materials before him than he can possibly live in life. He seeks a kind of controlled ecstasy and is a man with a passion, a “nut,” as we love to say in America. And very often, when he is not in actual contact with his materials, he is a much more vain and disagreeable ass than any man, not an artist, could possibly be. As a [Pg 300] living man he is almost always a pest. It is only when dead he begins to have value.
It digs deep into the essence of who we are. Silly as it may have seemed to a more mature world, we Americans have always been striving for something, or at least hoping we were. We came here, or our parents or grandparents did, from a hundred different places—and you can bet it wasn’t the artists who came. Artists don’t want to chop down trees, dig up stumps, or build towns and railroads. They want to stand in front of a blank canvas, face an empty wall, carve a piece of wood, or play with words and sentences, just like I’m doing now—and try to share their own thoughts or feelings. They dream about colors, want to shape forms, unleash their sensuality, and experience life more fully and freely through their materials than they ever could in real life. They look for a kind of carefully controlled ecstasy and are passionate people, a bit "crazy," as we like to say in America. And often, when they're not actively working with their materials, they can be far more vain and unpleasant than anyone who isn’t an artist could ever be. In everyday life, they're almost always a nuisance. It’s only after they’re gone that they start to gain value.
The simple truth is that in a European country the artist is more freely accepted than he is among us, and only because he has been longer about. They know how harmless he really is—or rather do not know how subtly dangerous he can be—and accept him only as one might accept a hybrid cross between a dog and a cat that went growling mewing barking and spitting about the house. One might want to kill the first of such strange beasts one sees but after one has seen a dozen and has realized that, like the mule, they cannot breed their own kind one laughs and lets them live, paying no more attention to them than modern France for example pays to its artists.
The simple fact is that in a European country, artists are more accepted than they are here, mainly because they've been around longer. People understand how harmless they really are—or, more accurately, they don't see how subtly dangerous they can be—and accept them like one would a mix between a dog and a cat that runs around growling, meowing, barking, and spitting. At first glance, you might want to get rid of such a strange creature, but after seeing a few and realizing that, like mules, they can't reproduce, you end up laughing and letting them be, paying as little attention to them as modern France does to its artists.
But in America things are somewhat different. Here something went wrong in the beginning. We pretended to so much and were going to do such great things here. This vast land was to be a refuge for all the outlawed brave foolish folk of the world. The declaration of the rights of man was to have a new hearing in a new place. The devil! We did get ourselves into a bad hole. We were going to be superhuman and it turned out we were sons of men who were not such devilish fellows after all. You cannot blame us that we are somewhat reluctant about finding out the very human things concerning ourselves. One does so hate to come down off the perch.
But in America, things are a bit different. Something went wrong from the start. We made a lot of grand promises and aimed to achieve great things here. This vast land was meant to be a refuge for all the rejected, brave, and foolish people of the world. The declaration of human rights was supposed to have a new chance in a new place. What a mess! We got ourselves into a tough situation. We wanted to be extraordinary, but it turned out we were just ordinary people who weren't as great as we thought we were. You can't blame us for being a bit hesitant to uncover the very human aspects about ourselves. Nobody likes to come down from their high horse.
We are now losing our former feeling of inherent virtue, are permitting ourselves occasionally to laugh at ourselves for our pretensions, but there was a time here when we were sincerely in earnest about all this [Pg 301] American business, “the land of the free and the home of the brave.” We actually meant it and no one will ever understand present-day America or Americans who does not concede that we meant it and that while we were building all of our big ugly hurriedly—thrown together towns, creating our great industrial system, growing always more huge and prosperous, we were as much in earnest about what we thought we were up to as were the French of the thirteenth century when they built the cathedral of Chartres to the glory of God.
We’re now losing our previous sense of intrinsic goodness and sometimes laugh at ourselves for our pretensions. But there was a time when we were truly serious about all this American business, “the land of the free and the home of the brave.” We genuinely believed it, and anyone who wants to understand modern America or Americans needs to recognize that we truly meant it. While we were building our big, unattractive, hastily constructed towns and developing our massive industrial system, becoming increasingly large and successful, we were just as sincere about what we thought we were doing as the French were in the thirteenth century when they built the cathedral of Chartres to honor God. [Pg 301]
They built the cathedral of Chartres to the glory of God and we really intended building here a land to the glory of Man, and thought we were doing it too. That was our intention and the affair only blew up in the process, or got perverted, because Man, even the brave and the free Man, is somewhat a less worthy object of glorification than God. This we might have found out long ago but that we did not know each other. We came from too many different places to know each other well, had been promised too much, wanted too much. We were afraid to know each other.
They built the Chartres Cathedral to honor God, and we genuinely intended to create a place here to celebrate humanity, and we thought we were succeeding. That was our goal, but things went sideways during the process, or got twisted, because humanity, even the brave and free, is a less worthy subject of admiration than God. We might have realized this long ago if we had known each other better. We came from too many different backgrounds to truly understand one another, were promised too much, and wanted too much. We were scared to really know each other.
Oh, how Americans have wanted heroes, wanted brave simple fine men! And how sincerely and deeply we Americans have been afraid to understand and love one another, fearing to find ourselves at the end no more brave heroic and fine than the people of almost any other part of the world.
Oh, how much Americans have wanted heroes, wanting brave, genuine, good people! And how sincerely and deeply we Americans have been afraid to understand and love each other, fearing that in the end we might find ourselves no braver, more heroic, or finer than people from almost anywhere else in the world.
I however digress. What I am trying to do is to give the processes of my own mind at two distinct moments of my own life. First, the moment when after many years of effort to conform to an unstated and [Pg 302] but dimly understood American dream by making myself a successful man in the material world I threw all overboard and then at another moment when, having come back to the same spot where I passed through the first moment, I attempted to confront myself with myself with a somewhat changed point of view.
I digress, though. What I'm trying to do is share the thought processes of my mind at two different points in my life. First, there's the moment when, after years of trying to fit into an unspoken and vaguely understood American dream by becoming a successful person in the material world, I decided to let it all go. Then, there's another moment when, returning to the same place where I experienced that first moment, I tried to face myself again but from a somewhat different perspective. [Pg 302]
As for the first of these moments, it was melodramatic and even silly enough. The struggle centred itself at the last within the walls of a particular moment and within the walls of a particular room.
As for the first of these moments, it was over-the-top and even a bit ridiculous. The struggle ultimately focused on a specific moment and took place within the confines of a particular room.
I sat in the room with a woman who was my secretary. For several years I had been sitting there, dictating to her regarding the goods I had made in my factory and that I was attempting to sell. The attempt to sell the goods had become a sort of madness in me. There were certain thousands or perhaps hundreds of thousands of men living in towns or on farms in many states of my country who might possibly buy the goods I had made rather than the goods made in another factory by another man. How I had wheedled! How I had schemed! In some years I gave myself quite fully to the matter in hand and the dollars trickled in. Well, I was about to become rich. It was a possibility. After a good day or week, when many dollars had come, I went to walk and when I had got into a quiet place where I was unobserved I threw back my shoulders and strutted. During the year I had made for myself so many dollars. Next year I would make so many more, and the next year so many more. But my thoughts of the matter did not express themselves in the dollars. It [Pg 303] never does to the American man. Who calls the American a dollar-lover is foolish. My factory was of a certain size—it was really a poor haphazardly enough run place—but after a time I would build a great factory and after that a greater and greater. Like a true American, I thought in size.
I sat in a room with a woman who worked as my secretary. For several years, I had been sitting there, dictating to her about the products I had made in my factory that I was trying to sell. The effort to sell those products had turned into a kind of obsession for me. There were thousands, or maybe even hundreds of thousands, of people living in towns or on farms in many states who might choose to buy what I made instead of what someone else produced in another factory. I had begged and schemed! Some years, I fully dedicated myself to this endeavor and watched the money start rolling in. Well, I was on the verge of becoming rich. It was a possibility. After a successful day or week, when a lot of money came in, I would take a walk, and when I found a quiet spot where no one could see me, I would throw back my shoulders and strut. During the past year, I had made a significant amount of money. Next year, I would earn even more, and the year after that, even more again. But my thoughts didn’t really translate into the actual dollars. It never does for the American man. Those who call Americans dollar lovers are mistaken. My factory was a certain size—it was actually pretty poorly managed—but eventually, I would build a larger factory, and then an even bigger one. Like any true American, I thought in terms of size. [Pg 303]
My fancy played with the matter of factories as a child would play with a toy. There would be a great factory with walls going up and up and a little open place for a lawn at the front, shower baths for the workers with perhaps a fountain playing on a lawn, and up before the door of this place I would drive in a large automobile.
My imagination treated factories like a child treats a toy. There would be a huge factory with walls that reach high into the sky and a small lawn area out front, maybe with showers for the workers and a fountain on the grass. I'd pull up in a big car right in front of this place.
Oh, how I would be respected by all, how I would be looked up to by all! I walked in a little dark street, throwing back my shoulders. How grand and glorious I felt!
Oh, how respected I would be by everyone, how admired I would be by all! I strolled down a small, dark street, pulling back my shoulders. I felt so grand and glorious!
The houses along the street in which I walked were small and ugly and dirty-faced children played in the yards. I wondered. Having walked, dreaming my dream for a long time I returned to the neighborhood of my factory and opening my office went in to sit at my desk smoking a cigarette. The night watchman came in. He was an old man who had once been a school-teacher but, as he said, his eyes had gone back on him.
The houses along the street where I walked were small and unattractive, and dirty-faced kids played in the yards. I was lost in thought. After walking and dreaming for a long time, I returned to the area around my factory and opened my office, sitting down at my desk while smoking a cigarette. The night watchman came in. He was an old man who had once been a schoolteacher, but as he said, his eyesight had failed him.
When I had walked alone I had been able to make myself feel somewhat as I fancied a prince might have felt but when anyone came near me something exploded inside. I was a deflated balloon. Well, in fancy, I had a thousand workmen under me. They were children and I was their father and would look out for them. Perhaps I would build them model [Pg 304] houses to live in, a town of model houses built about my great factory, eh? The workmen would be my children and I would look out for my children. “Land of the free—home of the brave.”
When I walked alone, I could almost feel like a prince, but whenever someone got close, it felt like something inside me burst. I was like a deflated balloon. In my imagination, I had a thousand workers under me. They were like children, and I was their father, ready to take care of them. Maybe I would build them model houses to live in, a town of model houses surrounding my big factory, right? The workers would be my kids, and I would look out for my kids. "Land of the free—home of the brave." [Pg 304]
But I was back in my factory now and the night watchman sat smoking with me. Sometimes we talked far into the night. The devil! He was a fellow like myself, having the same problems as myself. How could I be his father? The thought was absurd. Once, when he was a younger man, he had dreamed of being a scholar but his eyes had gone back on him. What had he wanted to do? He spoke of it for a time. He had wanted to be a scholar and I had myself spent those earlier years eagerly reading books. “I would really like to have been a learned monk, one of those fellows such as appeared in the Middle Ages, one of the fellows who went off and lived by himself and gave himself up wholly to learning, one who believed in learning, who spent his life humbly seeking new truths—but I got married and my wife had kids, and then, you see, my eyes went back on me.” He spoke of the matter philosophically. One did not let oneself get too much excited. After a time one got over any feeling of bitterness. The night watchman had a boy, a lad of fifteen, who also loved books. “He is pretty lucky, can get all the books he wants at the public library. In the afternoon after school is out and before I come down here to my job he reads aloud to me.”
But I was back in my factory now, and the night watchman was sitting there smoking with me. Sometimes we talked late into the night. What a character! He was just like me, dealing with the same issues. How could I consider myself his father? It was a ridiculous thought. When he was younger, he had dreamed of becoming a scholar, but his eyesight had betrayed him. What did he want to do? He talked about it for a while. He had wanted to be a scholar, and I had spent my earlier years eagerly reading books. “I would’ve really liked to be a learned monk, one of those guys from the Middle Ages, who went off by himself and dedicated his life entirely to learning, someone who believed in knowledge and spent his life humbly seeking new truths—but then I got married, had kids, and, well, my eyesight went downhill.” He talked about it all philosophically. You can’t let yourself get too worked up. Eventually, you get over any bitterness. The night watchman had a son, a fifteen-year-old who also loved books. “He’s pretty lucky; he can get all the books he wants from the public library. In the afternoons after school and before I come to my job, he reads out loud to me.”
Men and women, many men and many women! There were men and women working in my factory, men and women walking in streets with me, many [Pg 305] men and women scattered far and wide over the country to whom I wanted to sell my goods. I sent men, salesmen, to see them—I wrote letters; how many thousands of letters, all to the same purpose! “Will you buy my goods?” And again, “Will you buy my goods?”
Men and women, lots of them! There were men and women working in my factory, men and women walking the streets with me, many men and women spread all across the country whom I wanted to sell my products to. I sent out salespeople to meet them—I wrote letters; how many thousands of letters, all with the same goal! “Will you buy my products?” And again, “Will you buy my products?”
What were the other men thinking about? What was I myself thinking about? Suppose it were possible to know something of the men and women, to know something of oneself, too. The devil! These were not thoughts that would help me to sell my goods to all the others. What were all the others like? What was I myself like? Did I want a large factory with a little lawn and a fountain in front and with a model town built about it?
What were the other guys thinking? What was I thinking? What if I could understand a bit about the men and women, and even about myself? Damn it! These thoughts wouldn’t help me sell my stuff to everyone else. What were all the others like? What was I like? Did I want a big factory with a small lawn and a fountain out front, surrounded by a model town?
Days of endlessly writing letters to men, nights of walking in strange quiet streets. What had happened to me? “I shall go get drunk,” I said to myself and I did go and get drunk. Taking a train to a near-by city I drank until a kind of joy came to me and with some man I had found and who had joined in my carousal I walked in streets, shouting at other men, singing songs, going sometimes into strange houses to laugh with people, to talk with people I found there.
Days of endlessly writing letters to guys, nights of walking through unfamiliar quiet streets. What had happened to me? “I’m going to get drunk,” I told myself, and I did. I took a train to a nearby city and drank until a sort of joy filled me. With some guy I met who joined me in my festivities, I walked the streets, shouting at other guys, singing songs, sometimes going into random houses to laugh and talk with the people I found there.
Here was something I liked and something the others liked too. When I had come to people in strange houses, half drunk, released, they were not afraid of me. “Well, he wants to talk,” they seemed to be saying to themselves. “That’s fine!” There was something broken down between us, a wall broken down. We talked of outlandish things for Anglo-Saxon [Pg 306] trained people to speak of, of love between men and women, of what children’s coming meant. Food was brought forth. Often in a single evening of this sort I got more from people than I could get from weeks of ordinary intercourse. The people were a little excited by the strangeness of two unknown men in their houses. With my companion I went boldly to the door and knocked. Laughter. “Hello, the house!” It might be the house of a laborer or that of a well-to-do merchant. I had hold of my new-found friend’s arm and explained our presence as well as I could. “We are a little drunk and we are travelers. We just want to sit and visit with you a while.”
Here was something I liked and something the others liked too. When I showed up at people's homes, half-drunk and carefree, they weren’t afraid of me. “Well, he wants to talk,” they seemed to think. “That’s cool!” There was a breakdown between us, a wall that had come down. We chatted about unusual topics for Anglo-Saxon trained folks, about love between men and women, and what it meant for children to come into the world. Food was served. Often, in just one evening like this, I learned more from people than I could in weeks of regular interactions. The people were a bit excited by the oddness of two strangers in their homes. With my companion, I boldly approached the door and knocked. Laughter. “Hello, is anyone home?” It could be the house of a laborer or that of a wealthy merchant. I had my new friend’s arm and explained our situation as best I could. “We’re a little drunk and we’re travelers. We just want to sit and hang out with you for a while.”
There was a kind of terror in people’s eyes, and a kind of gladness too. An old workman showed us a relic he had brought home with him from the Civil War while his wife ran into a bedroom and changed her dress. Then a child awoke in a near-by room and began to cry and was permitted to come in in her nightgown and lie in my arms or in the arms of the new-found friend who had got drunk with me. The talk swept over strange intimate subjects. What were men up to? What were women up to? There was a kind of deep taking of breath, as though we had all been holding something back from one another and had suddenly decided to let go. Once or twice we stayed all night in the house to which we had gone.
There was a mix of fear and happiness in people's eyes. An old worker showed us a keepsake he had brought back from the Civil War while his wife ran into a bedroom to change her dress. Then a child woke up in a nearby room and started to cry; she was allowed to come in wearing her nightgown and curl up in my arms or in the arms of my new friend, who had been drinking with me. The conversation flowed over some strange, personal topics. What were men doing? What were women doing? It felt like we all took a deep breath, as if we had been holding something back from each other and suddenly decided to open up. A couple of times, we stayed overnight at the house we had visited.
And then back to the writing of letters—to sell my goods. In the city to which I had gone to carouse I had seen many women of the streets, standing at corners, looking furtively about. My thoughts got fixed [Pg 307] upon prostitution. Was I a prostitute? Was I prostituting my life?
And then it was back to writing letters to sell my stuff. In the city where I had gone to party, I noticed a lot of women on the streets, standing at corners and glancing around nervously. My mind got stuck on the idea of prostitution. Was I a prostitute? Was I selling out my life? [Pg 307]
What thoughts in the mind! There was a note due and payable at the bank. “Now here, you man, attend to your affairs. You have induced others to put money into your enterprises. If you are to build a great enterprise here you must be up and at it.”
What thoughts in the mind! There was a payment due at the bank. “Now listen up, man, take care of your business. You’ve convinced others to invest in your ventures. If you want to create something big here, you need to get moving.”
How often in after years I have laughed at myself for the thoughts and emotions of that time. There is a thought I have had that is very delicious. It is this, and I dare say it will be an unwelcome thought to many, “I am the American man. I think there is no doubt of it. I am just the mixture, the cold, moral man of the North into whose body has come the warm pagan blood of the South. I love and am afraid to love. Behold in me the American man striving to become an artist, to become conscious of himself, filled with wonder concerning himself and others, trying to have a good time and not fake a good time, I am not English Italian Jew German Frenchman Russian. What am I? I am tremendously serious about it all but at the same time I laugh constantly at myself for my own seriousness. Like all real American men of our day I wander constantly from place to place striving to put down roots into the American soil and not quite doing it. If you say the real American man is not yet born, you lie. I am the type of the fellow.”
How often over the years I’ve laughed at myself for the thoughts and feelings I had back then. There’s a thought I’ve had that is really interesting. It’s this, and I’m sure it won’t be welcomed by many: “I am the American man. I think there’s no doubt about it. I’m just a mix, the cool, moral man from the North who carries the warm, pagan blood of the South. I love and I’m afraid to love. Look at me, the American man trying to be an artist, trying to understand myself, filled with curiosity about myself and others, trying to have a good time and not just pretend to have one. I’m not English, Italian, Jewish, German, French, or Russian. So what am I? I’m really serious about it all, but at the same time, I constantly laugh at myself for being so serious. Like all real American men today, I move from place to place trying to put down roots in American soil but never quite managing it. If you say the real American man hasn’t been born yet, you’re lying. I’m the type of guy.”
This is somewhat of a joke on me but it is a greater joke on the reader. As respectable and conventional a man as Calvin Coolidge has me in him—and I have him in myself? Do not doubt it. I have him in me [Pg 308] and Eugene Debs in me and the crazy political idealists of the Western States and Mr. Gary of the Steel Trust and the whole crew. I accept them all as part of myself. Would to God they would thus accept me!
This is kind of a joke on me, but it's an even bigger joke on the reader. As respectable and conventional a man as Calvin Coolidge is in me—and I in him? Don't doubt it. I have him in me [Pg 308] along with Eugene Debs, the wild political idealists from the Western States, Mr. Gary of the Steel Trust, and the whole gang. I accept them all as a part of who I am. I wish to God they would accept me the same way!
And being this thing I have tried to describe I return now to myself sitting between the walls of a certain room and between the walls of a certain moment too. Just why was that moment so pregnant? I will never quite know.
And being this thing I’ve tried to describe, I return now to myself sitting between the walls of a certain room and the walls of a certain moment as well. Just why was that moment so full of meaning? I’ll never really know.
It came with a rush, the feeling that I must quit buying and selling, the overwhelming feeling of uncleanliness. I was in my whole nature a tale-teller. My father had been one and his not knowing had destroyed him. The tale-teller cannot bother with buying and selling. To do so will destroy him. No class of men I have ever known are so dull and cheerless as the writers of glad sentimental romances, the painters of glad pretty pictures. The corrupt unspeakable thing that had happened to tale-telling in America was all concerned with this matter of buying and selling. The horse cannot sing like a canary bird nor the canary bird pull a plow like a horse and either of them attempting it becomes something ridiculous.
It hit me all at once, the realization that I needed to stop buying and selling, an overwhelming sense of uncleanliness. At my core, I was a storyteller. My dad had been one, and his ignorance had brought him down. A storyteller can’t get caught up in buying and selling; it will ruin them. No group of people I’ve ever known is as dull and miserable as the writers of cheerful sentimental romances and the painters of pretty pictures. The awful, unspeakable thing that happened to storytelling in America was all tied to this issue of buying and selling. A horse can’t sing like a canary, nor can a canary plow a field like a horse, and if either tried, it would just look silly.
[Pg 309]
[Pg 309]
NOTE III
THERE was a door leading out from my office to the street. How many steps to the door? I counted them, “five, six, seven.” “Suppose,” I asked myself, “I could take those five, six, seven steps to the door, pass out at the door, go along that railroad track out there, disappear into the far horizon beyond. Where was I to go? In the town where my factory was located I had still the reputation of being a bright young business man. In my first years there I had been filled with shrewd vast schemes. I had been admired, looked up to. Since that time I had gone down and down as a bright young man but no one yet knew how far I had gone. I was still respected in the town, my word was still good at the bank. I was a respectable man.”
THERE was a door leading from my office to the street. How many steps to the door? I counted them, “five, six, seven.” “What if,” I thought, “I could take those five, six, seven steps to the door, collapse at the door, follow that railroad track out there, and vanish into the distant horizon? Where would I go? In the town where my factory was, I still had the reputation of being a sharp young businessman. In my early years there, I had big, clever plans. I was admired and looked up to. Since then, I had fallen further and further as a once-promising young man, but no one yet knew how far down I'd gone. I was still respected in town; my word was still credible at the bank. I was a respectable man.”
Did I want to do something not respectable, not decent? I am trying to give you the history of a moment and as a tale-teller I have come to think that the true history of life is but a history of moments. It is only at rare moments we live. I wanted to walk out at a door and go away into the distance. The American is still a wanderer, a migrating bird not yet ready to build a nest. All our cities are built temporarily as are the houses in which we live. We are on the way—toward what? There have been other times in the history of the world when many strange peoples came together in a new strange land. [Pg 310] To assume that we have made an America, even materially, seems to me now but telling ourselves fairy tales in the night. We have not even made it materially yet and the American man has only gone in for money-making on a large scale to quiet his own restlessness, as the monk of old days was given the Regula of Augustine to quiet him and still the lusts in himself. For the monk, kept occupied with the saying of prayers and the doing of many little sacred offices, there was no time for the lusts of the world to enter in and for the American to be perpetually busy with his affairs, with his automobiles, with his movies, there is no time for unquiet thoughts.
Did I want to do something disrespectful, something indecent? I'm trying to share the story of a moment, and as a storyteller, I've come to believe that the real story of life is just a series of moments. We only truly live in rare moments. I wanted to walk out a door and disappear into the distance. The American is still a wanderer, a migrating bird not yet ready to settle down. All our cities are built temporarily, just like the houses we live in. We are on our way—toward what? There have been times in history when many different people gathered in a new and unfamiliar land. [Pg 310] To think that we've created an America, even materially, feels to me like telling ourselves fairy tales at night. We haven't even built it materially yet, and the American has only pursued making money on a large scale to calm his own restlessness, just as the monks of old used the Rule of Augustine to quiet their own desires. For the monk, busy with prayers and many little sacred tasks, there was no time for the world's temptations to creep in, and for the American, constantly occupied with his work, his cars, and his movies, there is no time for restless thoughts.
On that day in the office at my factory I looked at myself and laughed. The whole struggle I am trying to describe and that I am confident will be closer to the understanding of most Americans than anything else I have ever written was accompanied by a kind of mocking laughter at myself and my own seriousness about it all.
On that day in the office at my factory, I looked at myself and laughed. The whole struggle I'm trying to describe, and that I believe will resonate more with most Americans than anything else I've ever written, came with a kind of mocking laughter at myself and my own seriousness about it all.
Very well, then, I wanted to go out of the door and never come back. How many Americans want to go—but where do they want to go? I wanted to accept for myself all the little restless thoughts of which myself and the others had been so afraid and you, who are Americans, will understand the necessity of my continually laughing at myself and at all things dear to me. I must laugh at the thing I love the more intensely because of my love. Any American will understand that.
Very well, then, I wanted to walk out the door and never come back. How many Americans want to leave—but where do they want to go? I wanted to embrace all the little restless thoughts that both I and others had been so afraid of, and you, who are Americans, will get why I need to keep laughing at myself and everything I hold dear. I have to laugh at the things I love even more because of that love. Any American will understand that.
It was a trying moment for me. There was the woman, my secretary, now looking at me. What did she represent? What did she not represent? [Pg 311] Would I dare be honest with her? It was quite apparent to me I would not. I had got to my feet and we stood looking at each other. “It is now or never,” I said to myself, and I remember that I kept smiling. I had stopped dictating to her in the midst of a sentence. “The goods about which you have inquired are the best of their kind made in the—”
It was a tough moment for me. There was the woman, my secretary, now looking at me. What did she symbolize? What did she not symbolize? [Pg 311] Would I have the courage to be honest with her? It was clear to me that I wouldn't. I had gotten to my feet, and we stood looking at each other. “It’s now or never,” I told myself, and I remember that I kept smiling. I had stopped dictating to her in the middle of a sentence. “The products you asked about are the best of their kind made in the—”
I stood and she sat and we were looking at each other intently. “What’s the matter?” she asked. She was an intelligent woman, more intelligent I am sure than myself, just because she was a woman and good, while I have never been good, do not know how to be good. Could I explain all to her? The words of a fancied explanation marched through my mind: “My dear young woman, it is all very silly but I have decided to no longer concern myself with this buying and selling. It may be all right for others but for me it is poison. There is this factory. You may have it if it please you. It is of little value I dare say. Perhaps it is money ahead and then again it may well be it is money behind. I am uncertain about it all and now I am going away. Now, at this moment, with the letter I have been dictating, with the very sentence you have been writing left unfinished, I am going out that door and never come back. What am I going to do? Well now, that I don’t know. I am going to wander about. I am going to sit with people, listen to words, tell tales of people, what they are thinking, what they are feeling. The devil! It may even be I am going forth in search of myself.”
I stood while she sat, and we were looking at each other intensely. “What’s wrong?” she asked. She was an intelligent woman, probably smarter than me, just because she was a good person, and I’ve never been good; I don’t even know how to be good. Could I explain everything to her? The words of a possible explanation flitted through my mind: “My dear young woman, it’s all pretty silly, but I’ve decided to stop worrying about buying and selling. It might be fine for others, but for me, it’s poison. There’s this factory. You can have it if you’d like. It’s probably not worth much. Maybe it makes money, but it might also lose money. I’m uncertain about it all, and now I’m leaving. Right now, with the letter I’ve been dictating, the very sentence you’ve been writing that’s still unfinished, I’m walking out that door and never coming back. What am I going to do? Well, I don’t know. I’m going to wander around. I’m going to sit with people, listen to conversations, tell stories about people—what they’re thinking, what they’re feeling. Who knows? I might even be going out to find myself.”
The woman was looking into my eyes the while I looked into hers. Perhaps I had grown a little pale and now she grew pale. “You’re [Pg 312] sick,” she said and her words gave me an idea. There was wanted a justification of myself, not to myself but to the others. A crafty thought came. Was the thought crafty or was I, at the moment, a little insane, a “nut,” as every American so loves to say of every man who does something a little out of the groove.
The woman was looking into my eyes while I looked into hers. Maybe I had turned a bit pale, and now she was growing pale too. “You’re sick,” she said, and her words sparked an idea in me. I needed to justify myself, not to myself but to others. A sneaky thought crossed my mind. Was the thought sneaky, or was I, at that moment, a little out of my mind, a “nut,” as every American loves to say about anyone who does something a little unusual? [Pg 312]
I had grown pale and it may be I was ill but nevertheless I was laughing—the American laugh. Had I suddenly become a little insane? What a comfort that thought would be, not to myself but to the others. My leaving the place I was then in would tear up roots that had gone down a little into the ground. The ground I did not think would support the tree that was myself and that I thought wanted to grow.
I had become pale, and I might have been sick, but I was still laughing—the typical American laugh. Had I suddenly lost my mind a bit? That thought would be comforting, not to me, but to others. Leaving where I was would rip out roots that had settled a bit into the ground. I didn’t think the ground could support the tree that was me, which I believed wanted to grow.
My mind dwelt on the matter of roots and I looked at my feet. The whole question with which I was at the moment concerned became a matter of feet. I had two feet that could take me out of the life I was then in and that, to do so, would need but take three or four steps to a door. When I had reached the door and had stepped out of my little factory office everything would be quite simplified, I was sure. I had to lift myself out. Others would have to tackle the job of getting me back, once I had stepped over that threshold.
My thoughts were on the idea of roots as I looked down at my feet. The whole issue I was focused on at that moment revolved around my feet. I had two feet that could lead me away from the life I was living, and it would only take a few steps to reach the door. Once I reached the door and stepped out of my small office, everything would become much clearer, I was certain. I needed to pull myself out. It would be up to others to figure out how to bring me back once I crossed that threshold.
Whether at the moment I merely became shrewd and crafty or whether I really became temporarily insane I shall never quite know. What I did was to step very close to the woman and looking directly into her eyes I laughed gayly. Others besides herself would, I knew, hear the words I was now speaking. I looked at my feet. “I have been wading in a long [Pg 313] river and my feet are wet,” I said.
Whether I just became clever and cunning at that moment or if I actually went a bit insane, I’ll never really know. What I did was step right up to the woman and, looking directly into her eyes, I laughed cheerfully. I knew others besides her would hear the words I was saying. I looked down at my feet. “I’ve been wading through a long river, and my feet are wet,” I said.
Again I laughed as I walked lightly toward the door and out of a long and tangled phase of my life, out of the door of buying and selling, out of the door of affairs.
Again I laughed as I walked casually toward the door and out of a long and complicated chapter of my life, out of the world of buying and selling, out of the world of relationships.
“They want me to be a ‘nut,’ will love to think of me as a ‘nut,’ and why not? It may just be that’s what I am,” I thought gayly and at the same time turned and said a final confusing sentence to the woman who now stared at me in speechless amazement. “My feet are cold wet and heavy from long wading in a river. Now I shall go walk on dry land,” I said, and as I passed out at the door a delicious thought came. “Oh, you little tricky words, you are my brothers. It is you, not myself, have lifted me over this threshold. It is you who have dared give me a hand. For the rest of my life I will be a servant to you,” I whispered to myself as I went along a spur of railroad track, over a bridge, out of a town and out of that phase of my life.
“They want me to be a ‘weirdo,’ they’ll love to think of me as a ‘weirdo,’ and why not? Maybe that’s exactly what I am,” I thought cheerfully and then turned to say one last confusing sentence to the woman who was now staring at me in stunned silence. “My feet are cold, wet, and heavy from wading in a river for so long. Now I'm going to walk on dry land,” I said, and as I walked out the door, a delightful thought crossed my mind. “Oh, you little tricky words, you are my friends. It’s you, not me, who have helped me cross this threshold. It’s you who have dared to lend me a hand. For the rest of my life, I will be a servant to you,” I whispered to myself as I made my way along a stretch of railroad track, over a bridge, out of a town, and out of that phase of my life.
[Pg 314]
[Pg 314]
NOTE IV
ON the evening when I returned to the town my mood was quite another one. I was on my way from Chicago to the city of New York. Why had I wanted to stop? The impulse had come suddenly, as I stood at the railroad ticket window in Chicago.
ON the evening when I got back to town, I felt completely different. I was traveling from Chicago to New York City. Why did I want to stop? The urge hit me out of nowhere while I was at the train ticket window in Chicago.
It rained when I got off the train and the night promised to be dark but half an hour later the rain ceased and the stars came out. At the station I escaped notice. Already in the town I and my struggles had been forgotten. At the moment when I had so dramatically walked away from my factory there had been some little local newspaper furore—“Well-known business man mysteriously disappears. Not known to have had any troubles,” etc. I went into a baggage check room and left my bag and then to a ticket window where I bought a ticket to New York on a later train. Both the check room boy and the ticket-seller were strangers to me. It was evident the town had grown, suddenly and furiously, as industrial towns do grow. Had it become a centre for the manufacture of automobiles shoes rubber tires or chewing gum? I did not know. In the station waiting room ten or twelve people stood or sat about and several taxi drivers were shouting at the door.
It rained when I got off the train, and the night was set to be dark, but half an hour later the rain stopped and the stars came out. At the station, I went unnoticed. By the time I reached the town, my struggles had been forgotten. When I had dramatically left my factory, there had been a little buzz in the local newspaper—“Well-known businessman mysteriously disappears. No known troubles,” etc. I went into a baggage check room and left my bag there, then went to the ticket counter where I bought a ticket to New York on a later train. Both the bag check guy and the ticket seller were strangers to me. It was clear the town had grown suddenly and rapidly, as industrial towns often do. Had it become a center for making cars, shoes, rubber tires, or chewing gum? I didn’t know. In the station waiting room, ten or twelve people were standing or sitting around, and several taxi drivers were yelling at the door.
I walked away in the drizzling rain and stood on a bridge until the night cleared. Now it was plain to me that I had wanted to spend an [Pg 315] evening alone with myself in the midst of the shadows of a former life. Since I had left the town much had happened. All during the last years of my life as a manufacturer and later as a Chicago advertising man I had secretly been writing tales and now they were beginning to be published. In some places they had been praised, in others blamed. I had loved the praise. It had made me feel very much as I had felt as a manufacturer when I had made a little money and had begun to dream of building a great factory and being father to workmen—that is to say, rather grand and noble. When my tales displeased people and when some critic wrote condemning me and calling me a dull or an unclean man I got furiously angry but always tried quickly to conceal my anger. I was really so angry that I did not want, on any account, to let the other fellow know how angry and hurt I was. Often the critic seemed merely to want to hurt. I had had a moment of exaltation, of joy in thinking I had penetrated a little into the life story of some man or woman. The person about whom I had been writing had been swept by some passion, of the flesh or spirit and I had been swept along with him. At such times I, as an individual, had no existence. Sometimes I had been seated writing all night at my desk and could not have told whether I had been there two hours or ten. Then the morning light streamed in at my window and my hands trembled so that I could no longer hold the pen. What a sweet clean feeling! During those hours there had been no life of my own at all. I had lived but in the characters I was trying to bring to life in my story and in the early morning light I felt as one [Pg 316] shriven of all grossness, of all vanity, of all cheapness in himself. The process of writing had been for me purifying and fine. It had been curative and later I was filled with unholy wrath when someone said that, during that period of work, I had been unclean or vile.
I walked away in the light rain and stood on a bridge until the night cleared up. It became clear to me that I wanted to spend an evening alone with my thoughts amid the shadows of my past. Since I left the town, a lot had happened. Throughout the last years of my life as a manufacturer and later as an advertising guy in Chicago, I had secretly been writing stories, and now they were starting to get published. In some places, they received praise; in others, criticism. I loved the praise. It made me feel a lot like when I made some money as a manufacturer and started dreaming of building a big factory and being a father figure to my workers—that is, feeling kind of grand and noble. When people didn’t like my stories and a critic called me dull or unclean, I got really angry but always tried to hide it quickly. I was so angry that I didn’t want anyone to know how hurt I was. Often it seemed like the critic just wanted to hurt me. I had moments of exhilaration, feeling joy in believing I had touched a bit of the life story of some man or woman. The person I was writing about had been caught up in some passion, whether physical or spiritual, and I had been drawn into it too. During those times, I felt like I didn’t exist as an individual. Sometimes I would be writing all night at my desk and couldn’t tell if I had been there for two hours or ten. Then the morning light would pour in through my window, and my hands would tremble so much that I could no longer hold the pen. What a sweet, clean feeling! During those hours, I didn’t have any life of my own at all. I lived only through the characters I was trying to bring to life in my story, and in the early morning light, I felt purified, rid of all grossness, vanity, and cheapness within myself. The process of writing had been cleansing and uplifting for me. It was healing, and later, I was filled with unholy anger when someone said that during that time of work, I had been unclean or vile.
And most of all I was furiously angry when someone said that the people of whom I wrote, being only such people as I myself had known, were of a lower, more immoral, less healthy order of beings. They were not respectable, were queer and did unaccountable things. I had myself been a respectable man and at one time in my life all of my friends had been respectable men and women and had I not known what was underneath the coats of many such, what they were too? I was furious for the men and women about whom I had written and furious for myself too but actually, on the outside, in the face of scurrilous criticism, had always assumed a sort of heavy bucolic genial manner, something in the manner of a certain type of benevolent old gentleman I had always detested. “They may be right,” I said aloud generously when inside myself I thought the critics often enough only dogs and fools.
And more than anything, I was really angry when someone said that the people I wrote about, who were just people I had known, were from a lower, more immoral, and less healthy group. They weren’t respectable, they were odd, and they did strange things. I had been a respectable man myself, and at one point in my life, all my friends were respectable men and women. Had I not seen what was under the surface of many of them, what they truly were? I was furious for the men and women I had written about and furious for myself too. But on the outside, in the face of harsh criticism, I always put on a sort of heavy, rural-friendly attitude, much like a certain type of kindly old gentleman I had always disliked. “They might be right,” I said out loud generously, even though deep down I often thought the critics were just dogs and fools.
I was thinking of myself and my critics as I walked that evening in the rain and I presume that what I had wanted in coming back thus to the Ohio town was to try to arrive at some sort of basis for self-criticism.
I was thinking about myself and my critics as I walked that evening in the rain, and I suppose that what I wanted in coming back to the Ohio town was to find some kind of foundation for self-reflection.
It was going to be a somewhat difficult undertaking, finding such a basis, of that I was sure. When I had been doing my writing, unknown and unseen, there was a sort of freedom. One worked, more or less in secret, as one might indulge in some forbidden vice. There were the [Pg 317] bankers and others who had put money into my enterprises. They had expected I would be giving myself wholly to the matter in hand and I had been cheating and did not want them to know. One wrote tales, played with them. One did not think of publication, of a public that was to read. In the evening one came home to one’s house and going upstairs closed the door to a room. There was before one the desk and paper.
It was going to be a bit of a challenge to find such a foundation, and I was sure of that. When I was writing, invisible and unnoticed, there was a kind of freedom. You worked, more or less in secret, like indulging in some hidden vice. There were the bankers and others who had invested in my projects. They expected me to be fully dedicated to the task at hand, and I was deceiving them without wanting them to find out. One wrote stories, played with them. One didn’t think about publishing or a public that would read. In the evening, you returned home and went upstairs, closing the door to a room. There was the desk and paper waiting for you. [Pg 317]
In a neighboring garden a man was picking potato bugs off potato vines. His wife came to the kitchen door and began to scold. He had forgotten to bring home five pounds of sugar from the store and now she was angry about it. There came one of those strangely vital little domestic flare-ups, the man with a tin can in which were the captured bugs, looking ridiculous as he stood listening to his wife, and she in turn looking unnecessarily angry about the small matter of the sugar.
In a nearby garden, a man was picking potato bugs off the potato plants. His wife appeared at the kitchen door and started to scold him. He had forgotten to bring home five pounds of sugar from the store, and now she was upset about it. This led to one of those oddly intense little domestic arguments, with the man holding a tin can filled with the captured bugs, looking silly as he listened to his wife, while she seemed overly angry about the minor issue of the sugar.
They were in their garden unconscious of me and I was unconscious of a dinner being put on a table downstairs in my house, unconscious of any need of food I would ever feel again, unconscious of the regime of my own household, of the affairs of my factory. A man and a woman in a garden had become the centre of a universe about which it seemed to me I might think and feel in joy and wonder forever. People had outer motives that seemed to control their lives. Under certain circumstances they said certain words. Stealthily I went to lock the door of my room. A domestic regime would be upset by my determination, the affairs of a certain factory might be ruined by my inattention but what did all that, at the moment, matter to me? I became cruelly impersonal [Pg 318] and could not avoid becoming so. Had a god been in my way or intent on disturbing me just then I would have at least tried to brush him aside. “You Jove, sit in that chair over there and keep your mouth shut! You Minerva, get down that stairway, go into the front room of my house and sit in a rocking-chair with your hands folded until I have attended to the business before me! At the moment I am concerned with a man standing in a potato patch with a can of potato bugs held in his hand and with a certain perplexed baffled look in his eyes and in the eyes of the wife in a gingham apron who is unnecessarily angry about a trifling matter of sugar not brought home from a store. You must see that I am a swimmer and have stripped myself of the clothes which are my ordinary life. You, my dear Minerva, should not stay in the presence of a naked man. People will say things about you. Get down the stairway at once. I am a swimmer and am about to leap off into the sea of lives, into the sea of present-day American lives. Will I be able to swim there? Will I be able to keep my head above water? That is a matter for greater gods than yourself to decide. Get out of here!”
They were in their garden, completely unaware of me, and I was oblivious to the dinner being set on the table downstairs in my house, ignoring any hunger I might ever feel again, and unconcerned about the routines of my own household or the issues at my factory. A man and a woman in a garden had become the center of a universe that I felt I could think about and feel joy and wonder over forever. People had external motives that seemed to dictate their lives. Under certain circumstances, they would say specific words. Quietly, I went to lock the door of my room. A domestic routine would be disrupted by my determination, the matters of a certain factory might fall apart because of my distraction, but at that moment, none of that mattered to me. I became cruelly detached and couldn’t help it. If a god had stood in my way or tried to disturb me then, I would have at least attempted to push him aside. “Hey, Jove, sit in that chair over there and be quiet! You, Minerva, go down that stairway, enter the front room of my house, and sit in a rocking chair with your hands folded until I’m done with what I need to handle! Right now, I’m focused on a man standing in a potato patch, holding a can of potato bugs, looking confused and baffled, and the wife in a gingham apron is unnecessarily upset about a small matter of sugar not brought home from the store. You need to understand that I’m a swimmer, and I’ve stripped off the clothes of my ordinary life. You, my dear Minerva, shouldn’t stay in the presence of a naked man. People will talk about you. Go down the stairs right now. I’m a swimmer ready to leap into the sea of lives, into the sea of present-day American lives. Will I be able to swim there? Will I be able to stay afloat? That’s something for greater gods than you to decide. Get out of here!” [Pg 318]
Utter obscurity, the joy of obscurity. Why could not one cling to that? Why the later vanity that made one want to be proclaimed? I remember an evening alone in my room. I was not always writing. Sometimes I read the work of other men. There was a scene being depicted by an old master of prose. Three men were in a little room talking. What was attempted was that there should be actual words said while the reader [Pg 319] should be given the sense of things felt for which there were no words. One of the men kept talking in the most affable and genial manner while at the same time there was murder in his heart. The three had been eating and now the man who wanted to kill was fingering the handle of a knife.
Complete obscurity, the pleasure of being unknown. Why couldn’t one just hold onto that? What’s with the later desire for recognition? I remember one evening alone in my room. I wasn’t always writing. Sometimes I read the works of others. There was a scene created by an old master of prose. Three men were in a small room chatting. The goal was to use actual dialogue while also conveying feelings that couldn’t be expressed with words. One of the men kept talking in the friendliest way, yet he was filled with murderous intent. The three had just eaten, and now the man who wanted to kill was toying with the handle of a knife. [Pg 319]
I remember that I sat in my room with tears streaming out of my own eyes. Oh, so delicately and well was the scene being handled! There was everything in just the way the man’s hands played with that knife. That told the whole story. The writer had not said too much about it. He had just, by a stroke of his pen, centred your attention there, upon the fingers of a hand fiddling with the handle of a knife at the edge of the table.
I remember sitting in my room with tears streaming down my face. Oh, the scene was handled so delicately and beautifully! Everything was captured perfectly in the way the man's hands played with that knife. That conveyed the entire story. The writer hadn’t overexplained it; with just a stroke of his pen, he directed your attention to the fingers of a hand fiddling with the handle of a knife at the edge of the table.
How easy to say too much! How easy to say too little! I remember that I half read through the scene and then put the book down and ran nervously up and down in my room. “He can’t do it! He can’t do it! No man can do a thing so beautifully restrained and sure!” Do you think, dear reader, I cared a hang about the social standing of the three men in that room, what kind of morals they had, their influence for good or evil on the characters of others, what they were up to? Indeed I did not. It is a long time at least since I have been such a child as that. A master had started to do a scene and I was in mortal terror lest he fail to draw his line sharp and true. I had never yet drawn my own line sharp and true, was not man enough to do so, was too timid, too weak vain and fearful.
How easy it is to say too much! How easy it is to say too little! I remember that I skimmed through the scene, then put the book down and paced nervously in my room. “He can’t do it! He can’t do it! No one can do something so beautifully controlled and confident!” Do you think, dear reader, that I cared at all about the social status of the three men in that room, what kind of morals they had, their influence for good or evil on the character of others, or what they were up to? I really didn’t. It’s been a long time since I’ve been that naive. A master was starting to perform a scene, and I was in a panic that he might fail to make his line sharp and true. I had never been able to draw my own line sharp and true, wasn’t strong enough to do so, too timid, too weak, vain, and scared.
But ah, that master, that man who had written the scene I was reading! Faith came back and I ran to pick up the book and read on and on. Oh, [Pg 320] the delicate wonder of it, the joy of it! At the moment I could have crawled across the floor of my room and bathed with my happy tears the feet of the man who in another room long before had held his pen firmly, had spread upon a sheet of white paper, with such true and vital an economy of ink, the complete sense of his scene.
But wow, that master, that guy who wrote the scene I was reading! Inspiration returned, and I rushed to grab the book and kept reading. Oh, the delicate wonder of it, the joy of it! In that moment, I could have crawled across my room's floor and washed the feet of the man who, in another room long ago, had confidently held his pen and captured the entire essence of his scene on a blank sheet of paper with such a perfect economy of ink. [Pg 320]
Utter obscurity, the joy of obscurity. Why had I not been content with it? In the nights alone in my room I had realized fully the danger of coming out of my obscurity and yet never did I write a tale, at all approaching good handling, but that I must need run down out of my room and go eagerly from one person to another asking praise. Time and again I said to myself: “You are an ignorant man. Every artist who goes to pieces and takes the joy of complete abandonment from his task, and the joy from his own life too, does so because he lets some outside impulse, want of fame, want of money, want of praise, come between him and his materials. The white surfaces before him become muddy and dirty, the scene before his mind’s eye fades or becomes dim and blurred.”
Utter obscurity, the joy of being unknown. Why wasn’t I satisfied with it? Alone in my room at night, I fully realized the risk of stepping out of my obscurity, yet every time I wrote a story that was even close to decent, I felt the urge to rush out of my room and ask someone for validation. Time and again, I told myself: “You are an ignorant person. Every artist who falls apart and loses the joy of complete freedom in their work, along with the joy in their own life, does so because they allow external factors—like the need for fame, money, or recognition—to get in the way of their craft. The clean canvases in front of them become muddy and unclear, and the vision in their mind fades, becoming dim and blurred.”
These things I had a thousand times said to myself and had made a dream of a life I was to live. I was to keep in obscurity, work in obscurity. When I had left the life of a manufacturer I would get, in Chicago or some other city, a clerkship or some other minor job that would just provide me with a living and would give me as much leisure as possible. Well, I would live somewhere in a cheap room on a street of laborers’ houses. Clothes would not matter to me. I would live wholly for [Pg 321] something outside myself, for the white clean surfaces on which, if the gods were good, I might some day have the joy of writing at least one finely drawn and delicately wrought tale.
These are the thoughts I've told myself a thousand times, and I've envisioned a life I plan to live. I would stay in the background, working quietly. After leaving my job in manufacturing, I would find a clerk position or some minor job in Chicago or another city, just enough to get by and give me as much free time as possible. I’d live in a cheap room on a street full of working-class homes. My clothes wouldn’t matter. I would dedicate myself entirely to something greater than myself, striving for those clean, white surfaces where, if luck were on my side, I might one day have the pleasure of writing at least one beautifully crafted story. [Pg 321]
As I had walked away from my factory on a certain day these had been the thoughts in my mind and now, after two years and after a few of my tales had been printed and I had been a little praised I was going to New York for the obvious purpose of doing everything possible to make myself better known, to strut before the very people I was trying to understand so that I could write of them fully and truly. What a tangle!
As I walked away from my factory one day, these were the thoughts in my head. Now, after two years and having a few of my stories published and receiving some praise, I was heading to New York with the clear goal of doing everything I could to get myself more recognized, to show off in front of the very people I was trying to understand so I could write about them accurately and completely. What a mess!
It was a dramatic moment in my own life and if, on that particular evening as I walked alone in the streets of the Ohio town, I achieved a certain victory over myself, it was not to be a lasting one. The kind of workman I had wanted to be I could not be but I did not know it at the moment. It was not until long afterward I came to the conclusion that I, at least, could only give myself with complete abandonment to the surfaces and materials before me at rare moments, sandwiched in between long periods of failure. It was only at the rare moment I could give myself, my thoughts and emotions, to work and sometimes, at rarer moments, to the love of a friend or a woman.
It was a pivotal moment in my life, and while I felt I had overcome a part of myself that evening as I walked alone through the streets of that Ohio town, it wasn’t a victory that would last. I couldn’t become the kind of worker I wanted to be, though I didn’t realize it then. It wasn’t until much later that I recognized I could only fully immerse myself in the surfaces and materials in front of me at rare moments, squeezed between long stretches of failure. Those rare moments were when I could invest my thoughts and feelings into my work, and sometimes, even rarer moments, into the love of a friend or a woman.
I went from the railroad station along a street and onto a bridge where I stood leaning over and looking at the water below. How black the water in the dim light! From where I stood I could look along the river bottom to the factory district where my own factory had stood. The bridge led into a street that was in the fashionable residence district of the town and presently a fat gray-haired old man, accompanied by [Pg 322] a friend, walked past. They were smoking expensive cigars and the fragrance hung heavy on the air so that I also wanted tobacco and lit a cigarette. The fat man had formerly been my banker and no doubt had he recognized me might have told me a tale of money lost through me, of promises unfulfilled. The deuce! I smiled at the thought of how glad I was he had not recognized me. Would he have been nasty about the matter or would he and I have laughed together over the thought of the foolish impulse in himself that had led him to conclude I was a man to be trusted and one likely to succeed in affairs—a good banker’s risk?
I walked from the train station down a street and onto a bridge where I leaned over and looked at the water below. How dark the water was in the dim light! From where I was, I could see along the riverbed to the factory area where my own factory had been. The bridge led into a street in the upscale residential part of town, and soon a plump, gray-haired old man, accompanied by a friend, walked by. They were smoking pricey cigars, and the scent hung thick in the air, making me want some tobacco as well, so I lit a cigarette. The chubby man had once been my banker, and if he had recognized me, he might have told me about the money I lost him and the promises I didn't keep. Goodness! I smiled at how relieved I was that he didn’t recognize me. Would he have brought it up in a bad way, or would we have laughed together at the silly impulse that made him think I was someone to be trusted and likely to succeed—a good risk for a banker?
“Hello,” I said to myself, “I’d better get out of here.” Some of the men of the town I had succeeded in getting worked up to the point of investing in the wild business scheme I had formerly had in my head might at any moment pass along the bridge and recognize me. That might bring on an embarrassing moment. They might want their money back and I had no money to give. In fancy I began to see myself as a desperado revisiting the scene of some former crime. What had I done? Had I robbed a bank, held up a train, or killed someone? It might well be that at some time in the future I would want to write a tale of some desperate fellow’s having got into a tight hole. Now he had to pass, say in a park, the wife of a man he had murdered. I slunk away off the bridge, throwing my cigarette into the river and pulling my hat down over my eyes, becoming in fancy as I passed a man accompanied by a woman and a child the murderer my own fancy had created. When I had [Pg 323] got to them my heart stopped beating and quite automatically I put my hand to my hip pocket as though there had been a pistol there. “Well, I was an enemy to society and if the worst came to the worst would sell my life as dearly as possible.”
“Hey,” I thought to myself, “I should get out of here.” Some of the guys in town who I had convinced to invest in the wild scheme I used to have might walk across the bridge and recognize me. That could lead to an awkward situation. They might want their money back, and I had no cash to give them. In my imagination, I started to picture myself as some kind of outlaw revisiting the scene of a past crime. What had I done? Had I robbed a bank, held up a train, or killed someone? It was possible that someday I’d want to write a story about some desperate guy who found himself in a tough spot. Picture him running into the wife of a man he’d murdered in a park. I quietly slipped off the bridge, tossing my cigarette into the river and pulling my hat down over my eyes, imagining as I walked past a man with a woman and a child that I was the murderer my mind had created. When I got close to them, my heart stopped, and I instinctively reached for my hip pocket as if there had been a gun there. “Well, I was an enemy to society, and if it came down to it, I’d sell my life as dearly as I could.”
More absurdity in myself, endless absurdities. My own childishness sometimes amused me. Would it amuse others? Were others like myself, hopelessly childish? Many men and women seemed, in outward appearance at least, to comport themselves in life with a certain dignity. All history was filled with the stories of men who had managed to get through life with at least an outward dignity. Was all history a lie? There was a man who owned a bank or an automobile factory or who was a college professor or a judge. He rode about through the streets of a city in an automobile, was called a great man. How did that affect him inside, how did it make him feel? I began now wondering about myself. Suppose someone were suddenly to call me a great man. I imagined a tall serious-looking man with whiskers saying it. “He writes novels and tales. He is a great man.”
More absurdity within me, endless absurdities. My own childishness sometimes made me laugh. Would it amuse others? Were others like me, hopelessly childish? Many men and women seemed, at least on the surface, to carry themselves in life with a certain dignity. All of history is filled with stories of people who managed to navigate life while maintaining at least an outward dignity. Was all of history a lie? There’s a guy who owns a bank or an auto factory, or who is a college professor or a judge. He drives around the city in a car, called a great man. How does that affect him inside, how does it make him feel? Now I started to wonder about myself. What if someone suddenly called me a great man? I pictured a tall, serious-looking guy with a beard saying it. “He writes novels and stories. He is a great man.”
And now as there was no one else to say the words set down above I said them myself and at first I liked the sound of them and then a desire to laugh took possession of me and I not only wanted to laugh at myself but I wanted everyone in America to laugh with me, at myself and at themselves too.
And now that there was no one else to say the words written above, I said them myself. At first, I liked how they sounded, but then I felt this urge to laugh. I not only wanted to laugh at myself, but I wanted everyone in America to laugh with me—at me and at themselves, too.
Oh, glorious moment! No more great men again ever, no more bad men or good men, everyone on to everyone else. Was there a sense of something, I at that moment felt, in all American people everywhere? In the [Pg 324] old days we Americans had been proud of what we thought of as our distinctive American humor but lately our humor had pretty much settled itself down into the universal dullness of the newspaper funny strip. A really great humorist like Mr. Ring Lardner had come to that. Would it not be a joke on us all if we were all, already, and in reality, pretty far beyond any outward expression of ourselves we were getting?
Oh, what a glorious moment! No more great men, no more bad men or good men, just everyone against everyone else. Was there a feeling, that I sensed at that moment, among all Americans everywhere? Back in the day, we Americans were proud of what we considered our unique American humor, but recently our humor had pretty much settled into the universal blandness of newspaper comic strips. Even a truly great humorist like Mr. Ring Lardner ended up there. Wouldn’t it be ironic if we were all, already, and in reality, way past any outward expression of who we really are? [Pg 324]
And now I was stumbling about in the dark streets of an Ohio manufacturing town poking sharp sticks into the tender flesh of myself and others. There was no one to refute any smart thing I thought and so I had a good time. Like everyone else I would so love to go through life criticizing everyone else and withholding from others any right to criticize me. Oh, the joy of being a king a pope or an emperor!
And now I was wandering through the dark streets of an Ohio manufacturing town, poking sharp sticks into my own skin and that of others. There was no one to dispute any clever thoughts I had, so I was having a good time. Like everyone else, I really wanted to go through life criticizing everyone else while keeping them from criticizing me. Oh, the joy of being a king, a pope, or an emperor!
“Suppose,” I now thought, “everyone in America really hungers for a more direct and subtle expression of our common lives than we have ever yet had and that we are all only terribly afraid we won’t get it.”
“Suppose,” I thought now, “everyone in America really craves a more direct and nuanced expression of our shared experiences than we’ve ever had, and that we’re all just really afraid we won’t get it.”
The notion seemed good. It would explain so much. For one thing it would explain the common boredom with life and with work characteristic of so many so-called successful men I had met. Whether he was a successful railroad-builder or a successful writer of magazine short stories, the brighter man always seemed bored. Also it would explain beautifully our American fear of the highbrow. Suppose the brighter men were really having a good time—on the sly as it were—well, laughing up their sleeves. And suppose some fellow were to come along who was [Pg 325] really on to the entire emptiness of the whole success theory of life, the whole absurd business of building bigger and bigger towns, bigger and bigger factories, bigger and bigger houses, but had decided not to be a reformer and scold about it. I fancied such a one going blandly about and really laughing, not fake laughing as in the newspaper funny strips, made by poor driven slaves who think they must be rich or silly to get fun out of life, getting the old American laugh back again, the laugh that came from far down inside, an American Falstaff kind of a laugh.
The idea seemed promising. It would clarify so much. For one thing, it would explain the common boredom with life and work that so many so-called successful men I've met seem to feel. Whether he was a successful railroad builder or a successful writer of magazine short stories, the smarter guy always seemed bored. It would also nicely explain our American fear of intellectuals. Imagine if the smarter men were genuinely enjoying themselves—secretly, so to speak—laughing to themselves. And what if someone came along who truly understood the emptiness of the entire success theory of life, the absurd idea of building bigger and bigger towns, factories, and houses, but chose not to be a reformer or criticize it? I envisioned such a person going around calmly, genuinely laughing, not the fake laughter you see in comic strips created by overworked people who think they need to be rich or foolish to enjoy life, but bringing back the authentic American laugh, the kind that comes from deep within, like an American Falstaff kind of laugh.
Well, now I had got myself into deep water. I had fancied into existence a man I had not nerve or brains enough to be myself and one never likes that. The figure my fancy had made annoyed me as I am sure he would everyone else.
Well, now I had gotten myself into deep trouble. I had imagined a man into existence who I didn't have the courage or intelligence to be myself, and nobody likes that. The person my imagination created frustrated me, just as I'm sure he would annoy everyone else.
I had gone in the darkness down along a spur of a railroad track to where my factory had formerly stood and there it was, much as I had left it except that my name had been taken off the front. There was a wall of the building that looked up toward the railroad station and there I had once put a big sign on which was my name in letters three feet high. How proud I had been when the sign was first put up. “Oh, glorious day! I a manufacturer!” To be sure I did not own the building but strangers would think I did.
I had walked in the dark along a side of the railroad track to where my factory used to be, and there it was, just as I had left it, except my name was gone from the front. There was a wall of the building facing the railroad station, where I had once put up a huge sign with my name in three-foot-high letters. I had felt so proud when the sign was first installed. “Oh, what a glorious day! I’m a manufacturer!” Of course, I didn’t own the building, but strangers would think I did.
And now my name was gone and another man’s name, in letters as large as I had once used, was in its place. I went near the building trying to spell out the new name in the darkness, hating the name with instinctive jealousy, and a man came out at a door of the factory and walked toward me. Oh Lord, it was the former school-teacher, the man [Pg 326] who had once been my night watchman and who was now evidently night watchman for my successor. Would he recognize me, lurking about the place of my former grandeur?
And now my name was gone, replaced by another man’s name in letters as big as the ones I used to use. I walked closer to the building, trying to make out the new name in the dark, feeling a deep jealousy towards it. Then a man came out from the factory door and started walking toward me. Oh no, it was my former schoolteacher, the guy who used to be my night watchman and was now clearly the night watchman for my replacement. Would he recognize me, hanging around the place where I once had so much prestige? [Pg 326]
I started walking away along the tracks singing the words of an old ditty my father had been fond of singing in his liquor when I was a boy and that had at that moment popped into my head, and at the same time staggering about as though I were drunk. It was my purpose to make the night watchman think me a drunken workman homeward bound and I succeeded. As I went away from him, staggering along the track, singing and not answering when he demanded to know who I was and what I was doing there, he grew angry, ran quickly up behind and kicked at me. Fortunately he missed and fortunately I remembered that his eyes had gone back on him long since. He now grabbed at me but I eluded his grasp, singing my ditty as I half ran, half staggered away:
I started to walk away along the tracks, singing the words of an old song my dad used to sing when he was drinking, and it suddenly popped into my head. At the same time, I was staggering around like I was drunk. My goal was to make the night watchman think I was a tipsy worker heading home, and I pulled it off. As I moved away from him, swaying along the track, singing and ignoring his questions about who I was and what I was doing there, he got angry, rushed up behind me, and tried to kick me. Luckily, he missed, and thankfully I recalled that he had lost his temper a long time ago. He lunged for me, but I slipped out of his reach, still singing my song as I half-ran, half-staggered away:
[Pg 327]
[Pg 327]
NOTE V
I HAD become a writer, a word fellow. That was my craft. Flinging aside the fake devotion that must always be characteristic of all such jobs as the advertising writing I had been doing for several years I had accepted my passion for scribbling as one accepts the fact that the central interest of one’s whole being lies in carving stone, spreading paint upon canvas, digging in the earth for gold, working the soil, working in wood or in iron. The arts are after all but the old crafts intensified, followed with religious fervor and determination by men who love them and deep down within him perhaps every man wants more than anything else to be a good craftsman. Surely nothing in the modern world has been more destructive than the idea that man can live without the joy of hands and mind combined in craftsmanship, that men can live by the accumulation of monies, by trickery. In the crafts only one may exercise all one’s functions. The body comes in, the mind comes in, all the sensual faculties become alive. When one writes one deals with a thousand influences that motivate his own and other lives. There is, first of all, the respect for what has gone before, for the work of the older craftsmen. One who has written as much as I have written—and for every word printed there are hundreds I have scrawled experimentally that will never be printed—has also read much and often with great [Pg 328] joy.
I had become a writer, a wordsmith. That was my craft. Putting aside the insincere dedication that always comes with jobs like the advertising writing I had been doing for several years, I embraced my passion for writing just like one accepts that their main interest in life lies in sculpting stone, painting on canvas, digging for gold, farming, or working with wood or metal. The arts are essentially just the old crafts taken to a higher level, pursued with a deep commitment and passion by those who love them. Deep down, perhaps every person wants more than anything to be a skilled craftsman. Nothing in the modern world has been more damaging than the belief that people can thrive without the joy of combining labor with intellect, that they can survive by accumulating wealth through deception. In the crafts, one can fully engage both body and mind—every sense comes alive. When you write, you engage with countless influences that shape your own life and the lives of others. First and foremost, there's a respect for what has come before, for the work of earlier craftsmen. Someone who has written as much as I have—and for every published word, there are hundreds I've written in drafts that will never see the light of day—has also read extensively, often with great pleasure. [Pg 328]
In Russia England France Germany a writer sat writing. Oh, how well he did his job, and how close I feel to him as I read! What a sharp sense he gives of the life about him! With him one enters into that life, feels the hidden passions of peoples, their little household traits, their loves and hates. There are sentences written by all writers of note in all countries that have their roots deep down in the life about them. The sentences are like windows looking into houses. Something is suddenly torn aside, all lies, all trickery about life gone for the moment. It is what one wants, what one seeks constantly in one’s own craftsmanship, and how seldom it comes. The little faky tricks are always so ready to help over the hard places and when one has used them there is the little flush of triumph followed by—bah! followed always by the sick awakening.
In Russia, England, France, and Germany, a writer sat down to write. Oh, how well he did his job, and how connected I feel to him as I read! He gives such a vivid sense of the life around him! With him, you dive into that life, feeling the hidden passions of people, their little quirks, their loves and hates. There are sentences written by all notable writers from different countries that are deeply rooted in the life around them. These sentences are like windows into their homes. Suddenly, the curtain is pulled back, and all the lies and tricks about life fade away for a moment. This is what we want, what we constantly seek in our own work, and how rarely it actually happens. The little fake tricks are always ready to help through tough spots, and when we use them, there's that brief thrill followed by—ugh!—always followed by the sickening reality check.
One need not go too far afield to find sentences and paragraphs that stir deeply. No doubt they were in the Indian language before white men came and the first whites on our shores brought the sense of them. There was that Fredis, sister of that Norseman Eric, who had come to America long before Columbus came and had built him a house in Vinland. The sister was a strong-willed woman who bullied her husband and was avaricious for wealth. Came sailing to Greenland the brothers, Helgi and Finnbogi, with a strong ship, and she induces them to go adventuring with her to Vinland but at the very beginning tricks them. She in her ship is to have thirty men and they are to have thirty but unknown to them she conceals an extra five in her own vessel so [Pg 329] that in the far land, where are no white men and white men’s laws are unknown, she shall have the upper hand. They get to Vinland and she will not let them stay in the house, built there by her brother Eric, and they go patiently away and build a hut of their own.
One doesn't have to look far to find sentences and paragraphs that resonate deeply. They probably existed in the Indian language long before white men arrived, and the first Europeans on our shores recognized their significance. There's that Fredis, sister of the Norseman Eric, who came to America long before Columbus and built a house in Vinland. She was a strong-willed woman who bossed her husband around and was greedy for wealth. The brothers, Helgi and Finnbogi, set sail to Greenland with a sturdy ship, and she convinces them to join her on an adventure to Vinland, but right from the start, she deceives them. She brings thirty men on her ship, and they bring thirty too, but unbeknownst to them, she hides an extra five in her own vessel so that once they reach the new land, where there are no white men and no European laws, she will have the upper hand. They arrive in Vinland, and she won't let them stay in the house built by her brother Eric, so they patiently leave and construct their own hut.
Still she schemes. See now with what truth, what fidelity and clearness some old writer tells of what happened. Well, the brothers had the larger and better ship and she wanted that too.
Still she plots. Look at how accurately and clearly an old writer describes what occurred. Well, the brothers had the bigger and better ship, and she wanted that too.
One morning early Fredis arose from her bed and dressed herself, but did not put on her shoes and stockings. A heavy dew had fallen, and she took her husband’s cloak, and wrapped it about her, and then walked to the brothers’ house and up to the door, which had been only partly closed by one of the men, who had gone out but a short time before. She pushed the door open and stood silently in the doorway for a time. Finnbogi, who was lying on the innermost side of the room, awoke. “What dost thou wish here, Fredis?” She answers: “I wish thee to rise and go out with me, for I would speak with thee.” He did so; and they walked to a tree, which lay close by the wall of the house, and seated themselves upon it. “How art thou pleased here?” says she. He answers “I am well pleased with the fruitfulness of the land, but I am ill content with the breach that has come between us, for methinks there has been no cause for it.” “It is even as thou sayest,” says she, “and so it seems to me; but my errand to thee is that I wish to exchange ships with you brothers, for ye have a larger ship than I, and I wish to depart from here.” “To this I must accede,” says he, “if it is thy pleasure.” Therewith they parted, and she returned home and Finnbogi to his bed. She climbed up into the bed and awakened Thorvard (her husband) with her cold feet; and he asked her why she was so cold and wet. She answered with great passion. “I have been [Pg 330] to the brothers’,” says she, “to try to buy their ship, for I wish to have a larger vessel; but they received my overtures so ill that they struck me and handled me very roughly; that time thou, poor wretch, will neither avenge my shame nor thy own; and I find, perforce, that I am no longer in Greenland. Moreover I shall part from thee unless thou makest vengeance for this.” And now he could stand her taunts no longer, and ordered the men to rise at once and take their weapons; and they then proceeded directly to the house of the brothers, and entered it while the folk were asleep, and seized and bound them, and led each one out when he was bound; and, as they came out, Fredis caused each to be slain.
One morning, Fredis got out of bed and got dressed, but she didn’t put on her shoes or stockings. A heavy dew had fallen, so she took her husband’s cloak, wrapped it around herself, and walked to her brothers’ house. The door was only partly closed by one of the men who had left a short time before. She pushed the door open and stood silently in the doorway for a while. Finnbogi, who was lying at the back of the room, woke up. “What do you want here, Fredis?” he asked. She replied, “I want you to get up and come outside with me because I need to talk to you.” He agreed, and they walked to a tree near the wall of the house and sat on it. “How do you like it here?” she asked. He replied, “I’m happy with the land’s fertility, but I’m unhappy with the rift that’s developed between us, as it seems to me there was no reason for it.” “You’re right,” she said, “and I feel the same; but my reason for coming is that I want to trade ships with you brothers because you have a bigger ship than I do, and I want to leave here.” “I can agree to that,” he said, “if that’s what you want.” They parted ways, and she went home while Finnbogi went back to bed. She climbed into bed and woke her husband Thorvard with her cold feet. He asked her why she was so cold and wet. She responded passionately, “I went to the brothers’ house,” she said, “to try to buy their ship because I want a bigger vessel; but they treated me so poorly that they hit me and treated me very roughly; and this time, poor wretch, you haven’t avenged my shame or your own; and I’ve realized that I am no longer in Greenland. Besides, I’ll leave you unless you take revenge for this.” At that, he could no longer tolerate her insults, so he ordered the men to get up immediately and grab their weapons. They went straight to the brothers’ house, entered while everyone was asleep, seized and bound them, and led each one out as they were tied up; and as they came out, Fredis had each one killed.
Since I had been a boy it had been such passages as the one above that had moved me most strangely. There was a man, perhaps one of Fredis’ men, who had seen a part of what had happened on that dreadful morning in the far western world and had sensed the rest. For such a one there would perhaps have been no thought of interference. One can think of him, the unknown writer of the memorable passage above, as even helping in the dreadful slaying there in the field at the edge of the wood and near the sea, not because he wanted to but because he would have been afraid. He would have done that and later perhaps have gone off alone into the woods and cried a little and prayed a little, as I can imagine myself doing after such an affair. The woman Fredis, after she had got what she wanted, swore all her men to secrecy. “I will devise the means of your death if there is any word of this when we have returned to Greenland,” she said, and after she had gone home with the two vessels loaded and had made up her own lie to tell her brother Eric of what had happened to the brothers and their men in the far place, she made all [Pg 331] of her own men handsome presents.
Since I was a boy, it had been moments like the one above that affected me the most deeply. There was a man, maybe one of Fredis' followers, who had witnessed part of what happened on that terrible morning in the distant western world and had sensed the rest. For someone like him, there probably would have been no thought of getting involved. You can picture him, the anonymous writer of the memorable passage above, even helping with the horrific killing there in the field at the edge of the woods and near the sea, not because he wanted to but because he would have been scared. He would have done that and later perhaps wandered alone into the woods, crying a bit and praying a bit, just as I can imagine myself doing after such a tragedy. Once Fredis got what she wanted, she swore all her men to secrecy. “I will find a way to kill you if anyone hears about this once we return to Greenland,” she said. After she returned home with the two ships loaded and created her own story to tell her brother Eric about what happened to the brothers and their men in that far-off place, she gave all her men nice gifts. [Pg 331]
But there was that scribbler. He would put it down. Fear might have made him take part in the murder but no fear could now keep his hand from the pen. Do I not know the wretch? Have I not got his own blood in me? He would have walked about for days, re-living all of that dreadful morning scene in Vinland and then when he was one day walking he would have thought of something. Well, he would have thought suddenly of just that bit about Fredis crawling back into her husband’s bed, after the talk with Finnbogi, and how her cold wet feet awoke the man. He would have been alone in the wood, back there in Greenland, when that bit came to him, but at once he hurried to his own house. Perhaps his wife was getting dinner and wanted him to go to the store but he would have brushed her aside, and sitting down with ink and paper—perhaps in her angry presence—he wrote all out, just as it is put down above. Not only did he write, but he read his piece to others. “You will get yourself into trouble,” said his wife, and he knew what she said was true but that could not stop him. Do I not know the soul of him? He would have gone about boasting a little, strutting a little. “I say now, Leif, that bit, where Fredis gets into the bed and with her cold feet awakens Thorvard—not bad, eh? I rather nailed her there, now didn’t I old man?” “But you yourself helped to do the murder, you know.” “Oh, the deuce now! Never mind that. But I say now, you’ll have to admit it, I did rather put a spike into my scene. I nailed it down, now didn’t I, Leify old chap?”
But then there was that writer. He would put it down. Fear may have made him participate in the murder, but no fear could now prevent him from picking up the pen. Don’t I know that scoundrel? Don’t I have his own blood in me? He would have wandered around for days, re-living that terrible morning scene in Vinland, and then one day while walking, he would have thought of something. Well, he suddenly remembered that part about Fredis crawling back into her husband’s bed after the talk with Finnbogi, and how her cold, wet feet woke the man up. He would have been alone in the woods, back there in Greenland, when that idea hit him, but right away, he hurried home. Maybe his wife was making dinner and wanted him to run to the store, but he would have brushed her off, and sitting down with ink and paper—perhaps in the heat of her anger—he wrote it all out, just like it's written above. Not only did he write, but he also read his piece to others. “You’re going to get yourself in trouble,” his wife said, and he knew she was right, but that couldn’t stop him. Don’t I know his soul? He would go around bragging a little, strutting a bit. “I tell you, Leif, that part where Fredis gets into bed and wakes Thorvard with her cold feet—not bad, right? I really hit the mark there, didn’t I, old man?” “But you yourself helped commit the murder, you know.” “Oh, come on! Forget that. But I tell you, you have to admit it, I did really add some punch to my scene. I nailed it down, didn’t I, old buddy?”
[Pg 332]
[Pg 332]
NOTE VI
WELL, there was my father, there was myself. If people did not want their stories told, it would be better for them to keep away from me. I would tell if I could get at the heart of it—as the fellow who went off to Vinland with Fredis told—and for just the reasons that made him tell. And like that fellow, after he returned to Greenland, I would have to walk alone in the woods or in city streets thinking, trying to think, trying to get all in accord, seeking always just that illuminating touch the Norse story-teller had found when he thought up the bit about Fredis—that about her getting into bed and touching the back of her sleeping husband with the cold feet. The foxy devil! Do I not know what happened after that? First he thought of the two in the warm bed—the determined woman and the startled weak man—with a little jump of delight and then he went back over his story and put that in about her having got up in the first place without putting on shoes and stockings and the cold wet dew on the grass and the log against the wall of the house on which they sat. Now he had got going just right and he knew he had got going just right. What a splendid feeling! It was like a dance. How neatly everything fitted in! Words came—ah—just the right words.
WELL, there was my father, and there was me. If people didn’t want their stories shared, they should probably stay away from me. I would share if I could get to the heart of it—just like the guy who went off to Vinland with Fredis did—and for the same reasons that made him tell his story. And like that guy, once he got back to Greenland, I'd have to roam alone in the woods or on city streets, thinking, trying to think, trying to get everything aligned, always looking for that illuminating detail the Norse storyteller found when he came up with the part about Fredis—when she got into bed and touched the back of her sleeping husband with her cold feet. That clever trickster! Don't I know what happened next? First, he imagined the two in the warm bed—the determined woman and the surprised weak man—with just a little jump of delight, and then he went back over his story and added that she had gotten up in the first place without putting on shoes and stockings, with the cold, wet dew on the grass and the log against the wall of the house where they sat. Now he was really onto something, and he knew he was onto something great. What a fantastic feeling! It was like a dance. Everything fit together perfectly! The words flowed—ah—just the right words.
How many times, in these modern days when I have seen how [Pg 333] story-tellers and painters have got themselves so often all balled-up with the question of style I have wondered whether the story-tellers among the old Norse and those most marvelous story-tellers of the older Testaments, whether they also did not have their periods of escaping out into words because they had grown weary of seeking after the heart of their stories.
How many times, in today’s world, when I've seen how [Pg 333] storytellers and artists often get tangled up in style, I’ve wondered if the storytellers from the old Norse and those incredible storytellers from the earlier Testaments also had moments where they escaped into words because they were tired of searching for the essence of their stories.
I dare say they stole when they could without being detected as I have so often done. Well, there was the heart of the tale itself. That had first to be got at and then one had to find the words wherewith to clothe it. One got a bit feverish at times and used feverish words, made his telling too turgid or too wordy. One was like a runner who has a long race to run but who is feverishly forcing the pace. How many times I have sat writing, hoping I had got at the heart of the tale I was trying to put down on the paper when inside myself I knew I had not. I have tried to bluff myself. Often I have gone to others, hoping they would say words that would quiet the voices within. “You have not got it and you know you have not got it. Tear all up. Well, then, be a fool and go on trying to bluff yourself. Perhaps you can get some critic to say you have got what you know well enough you have not got, the very heart, the very music of your tale.”
I think they took what they could without getting caught, just like I have many times. That was the essence of the story itself. First, you had to get to it, and then you needed to find the right words to express it. Sometimes you'd get a bit anxious and use overly intense words, making your storytelling too heavy or too wordy. It was like being a runner in a long race, pushing too hard. How many times have I sat down to write, hoping I found the core of the story I was trying to capture, when deep down I knew I hadn't? I’ve tried to convince myself otherwise. Many times, I’ve turned to others, hoping they'd say something that would soothe the doubts inside me. “You haven’t captured it, and you know you haven't. Tear it all up. Well, go ahead and be foolish, keep trying to deceive yourself. Maybe you can get some critic to say you’ve done something you know you haven't—captured the true essence and rhythm of your story.”
[Pg 334]
[Pg 334]
NOTE VII
IN Chicago I had ruined my chances of becoming a successful man of affairs because I could not take affairs seriously but that had not bothered me. Often enough, to be sure, I dodged the fact that, after having started on the scent of some tale I turned aside because I could not follow the scent and consoled myself by saying that the need of money had been the cause of my defeat or that the need of leisure had upset me but it was always a lie.
IN Chicago I had messed up my chances of becoming a successful businessman because I couldn't take things seriously, but that didn't really bother me. Sure, I often avoided the truth that, after starting on the trail of some story, I'd veer off because I couldn't stick with it and then told myself it was because I needed money that I failed or that I was thrown off by wanting some downtime, but that was always a lie.
I was an advertising man in Chicago and sat in a room with some half a dozen others. We had met to discuss some matter of grave importance to say a maker of plows or automobile tires. The matter was really of no importance to me. The man had come to Chicago with three or four others and we were to discuss methods of increasing his sales. So many thousands of tires made, so many thousands of plows. There were other makers of tires, other makers of plows too. Could we be more persuasive than they, more bold and daring in statement, more foxy and clever perhaps?
I was an advertising guy in Chicago, sitting in a room with about six others. We had gathered to talk about something really important for a manufacturer of plows or tires. Honestly, it didn’t matter much to me. The guy came to Chicago with three or four others, and we were supposed to discuss ways to boost his sales. Thousands of tires produced, thousands of plows made. There were other tire makers and plow makers too. Could we be more convincing than they were, bolder and more daring in our statements, maybe even a bit smarter and trickier?
We sat in a room to talk it over and near me sat a large man with a beard. Someone had told me that he was the treasurer of the plow company but that had meant little. Now, as he sat there smoking a cigarette and gazing out at a window I saw, just when his head was [Pg 335] slightly turned, that he had a long scar on his cheek, that he had grown the beard to conceal the scar. The talk went on but I sat fascinated. “We must develop the trade in the southwest, that’s what we must do,” said a voice from some far-distant place. Pictures had begun to form in my fancy. Beside the voices in the room, other voices were making themselves heard. Old memories had begun to stir.
We sat in a room to discuss things, and next to me was a big guy with a beard. Someone had mentioned he was the treasurer of the plow company, but that didn't mean much to me. Now, as he sat there smoking a cigarette and looking out the window, I noticed, just when his head was slightly turned, that he had a long scar on his cheek and had grown the beard to hide it. The conversation continued, but I was mesmerized. “We need to grow the trade in the southwest, that’s what we need to do,” said a voice from somewhere far away. Images started forming in my mind. Alongside the voices in the room, other voices began to emerge. Old memories were starting to resurface.
There was something, a story within me that had been there a long time but had never been told and that the scar under the beard had brought to life. What an unfortunate time for the story to begin asserting itself at just that moment. Now I was to think of the promotion of the sale of plows in the newly opened State of Oklahoma and in Texas.
There was a story inside me that had been there for a long time but had never been shared, and the scar under my beard had brought it to the surface. What a bad time for the story to start demanding to be told right at that moment. Now I had to focus on promoting the sale of plows in the newly opened State of Oklahoma and in Texas.
I sat with some six or eight men by a large table in a room and some man was talking. He had been to Texas and knew things I would later have to know when I wrote advertisements for the plow company. I tried to appear attentive. There was a trick I had cultivated for just such occasions. I leaned a little forward and put my head in my hands, as though lost in deep thought. Some of the men in the room had heard that I wrote stories and had therefore concluded that I had a good brain. Americans have always a kind of tenderness for such cheats as I was being at the moment. Now they gave me credit for thinking deeply on the subject of plows, which was what I wanted. One of my employers—he was president of our company and his name was Barton—tried to cover up my obvious inattention. Already he had decided I would have to write the plow company’s advertisements but later he would tell me of all that [Pg 336] had been said in the room. He would take me into his office and scold me gently, like a mother speaking to a badly behaved child. “Of course you didn’t hear a blamed word they said but here is the gist of it. I had to tell that big man with a beard that you were a genius. My God, what lies do I not tell on your account? When the little man with the glasses was speaking of agricultural conditions in Texas I was afraid that at any moment you might begin to whistle or sing.”
I sat with six or eight guys around a big table in a room while one of them was talking. He had been to Texas and knew things I'd later need to know when I wrote advertisements for the plow company. I tried to look interested. I had a trick I'd developed for occasions like this. I leaned a little forward and rested my head in my hands, as if I were deep in thought. Some of the guys in the room knew I wrote stories and figured I must have a good brain. Americans have always had a soft spot for people like me, pretending to be something I'm not. So they believed I was thinking hard about plows, which was exactly what I wanted. One of my bosses—Barton, the president of our company—tried to cover up my obvious lack of attention. He had already decided I would have to write the advertisements for the plow company, but later he'd fill me in on everything said in the room. He would take me into his office and gently scold me, like a mother talking to a misbehaving child. “Of course you didn’t catch a single word they said, but here’s the main point. I had to tell that big guy with a beard that you were a genius. My God, what lies do I not tell for your sake? When the little guy with glasses was talking about agricultural conditions in Texas, I was worried that any moment you might start whistling or singing.”
Voices inside the room and voices inside myself too. Was something coming a bit clear at last?
Voices in the room and voices inside me too. Was something finally starting to make sense?
Now my fancy had taken me quite out of the room where the others talked of plows. One night, years before, when I was a young laborer and was beating my way westward on a freight train, a brakeman had succeeded in throwing me off the train in an Indiana town. I had remembered the place long afterward because of my embarrassment—walking about among people in my dirty torn clothes and with my dirty hands and face. However, I had a little money and after I had walked through the town to a country road I found a creek and bathed. Then I went back to town to a restaurant and bought food.
Now my thoughts had completely taken me away from the room where the others were discussing plows. One night, years ago, when I was a young worker making my way west on a freight train, a railroad worker managed to throw me off the train in a town in Indiana. I remembered that place for a long time because of how embarrassed I felt—wandering around among people in my dirty, torn clothes and with my grimy hands and face. However, I had a little bit of money, and after I walked through the town to a country road, I found a creek and washed up. Then I went back to town to a restaurant and bought some food.
It was a Saturday evening and the streets were filled with people. After it grew dark my torn clothes were not so much in evidence and by a street light near a church on a side street a girl smiled at me. Half undecided as to whether or not I had better try to follow and pick up an acquaintance, I stood for some moments by a tree staring after her. Then I bethought me that when she had seen me more closely and had [Pg 337] seen the condition of my clothes she would in any event have nothing to do with me.
It was a Saturday evening, and the streets were bustling with people. Once it got dark, my ripped clothes weren't as noticeable, and by a streetlight near a church on a side street, a girl smiled at me. Unsure whether I should go after her and try to make a connection, I stood for a few moments by a tree, watching her. Then I realized that once she got a better look at me and saw the state of my clothes, she wouldn't want anything to do with me anyway. [Pg 337]
As is natural to man, under such circumstances, I told myself I did not want her anyway and went off down another street.
As is typical for people in situations like this, I convinced myself that I didn't want her after all and walked down a different street.
I came to a bridge and stood for a time looking down into the water and then went on across the bridge along a road and into a field where long grass grew. It was a summer night and I was sleepy but after I had slept, perhaps for several hours, I was awakened by something going on in the field and within a few feet of me.
I reached a bridge and paused for a bit, gazing down at the water. Then, I walked across the bridge, followed a road, and entered a field with tall grass. It was a summer night, and I felt drowsy, but after I slept for what seemed like several hours, something in the field close to me woke me up.
The field was small and two houses stood facing it, the one near where I lay in a fence corner and the other a few hundred yards away. When I had come into the field lights were lighted in both houses but now they were both dark and before me—some ten paces away—three men were struggling silently while near them stood a woman who held her hands over her face and who sobbed, not loudly but with a kind of low wailing cry. There was something, dimly seen, something white, lying on the ground near the woman and suddenly by a kind of flash of intuition I understood what had happened. The white thing on the ground was a woman’s garment.
The field was small, and two houses faced it—one close to where I lay in the corner of a fence, and the other a few hundred yards away. When I entered the field, lights were on in both houses, but now they were dark. About ten paces in front of me, three men were struggling silently, while a woman stood nearby, covering her face with her hands and sobbing quietly, making a low wailing sound. There was something white, barely visible, lying on the ground near the woman, and suddenly, I had a flash of realization about what had happened. The white thing on the ground was a woman’s clothing.
The three men were struggling desperately and even in the dim light it was evident that two of them were trying to overcome the third. He was the woman’s lover and lived in the house at the end of the path that crossed the field and the two others were her brothers. They had gone into the town for the evening and had come home late and as they were walking silently across the grass in the field they had stumbled upon [Pg 338] the love-makers and in a flash there was the impulse to kill their sister’s lover. Perhaps they felt the honor of their house had been destroyed.
The three men were struggling fiercely, and even in the dim light, it was clear that two of them were trying to overpower the third. He was the woman's boyfriend and lived in the house at the end of the path that crossed the field, while the other two were her brothers. They had gone into town for the evening and returned home late. As they quietly walked across the grass in the field, they stumbled upon the lovers, and in an instant, they felt the urge to kill their sister's boyfriend. Maybe they thought their family's honor had been tarnished.
And now one of them had got a knife out of his pocket and had slashed at the lover, laying his cheek open, and they might have killed the man as the woman and I watched trembling but at that moment he got away and ran across the field toward his own house followed by the others.
And now one of them had pulled a knife from his pocket and slashed at the lover, cutting open his cheek, and they might have killed him as the woman and I watched in fear, but just then he escaped and ran across the field toward his house, followed by the others.
I was left alone in the field with the woman—we were within a few feet of each other—and for a long time she did not move. “After all I am not a man of action. I am a recorder of things, a teller of tales.” It was somewhat thus I excused myself for not coming to the lover’s aid, as I lay perfectly still in the fence corner, looking and listening. The woman continued to sob and now, from across the dark field, there was a shout. The lover had not succeeded in getting into his own house, was really but a step ahead of his pursuers, and perhaps did not dare risk trying to open a door. He ran back across the field, dodging here and there, and passing near us crossed the bridge into the road that led to town. The woman in the field began calling, evidently to her two brothers, but they paid no attention. “John. Fred!” she called between her sobs. “Stop! Stop!”
I was left alone in the field with the woman—we were just a few feet apart—and for a long time, she didn’t move. “After all, I’m not a man of action. I’m a recorder of things, a storyteller.” That’s pretty much how I justified not helping the lover, as I lay perfectly still in the corner of the fence, watching and listening. The woman kept sobbing, and then, from across the dark field, there was a shout. The lover hadn’t managed to get into his own house; he was really just a step ahead of his pursuers and maybe didn’t want to risk trying to open a door. He ran back across the field, dodging back and forth, and as he passed near us, he crossed the bridge onto the road that led to town. The woman in the field started calling, obviously to her two brothers, but they ignored her. “John. Fred!” she cried between her sobs. “Stop! Stop!”
And now again all was silent in the field and I could hear the rapid steps of the three running men in the dusty road in the distance.
And now everything was quiet in the field again, and I could hear the fast footsteps of the three men running down the dusty road in the distance.
Then lights appeared in both the houses facing the field and the woman went into the house near me, still sobbing bitterly, and presently there were voices to be heard. Then the woman—now fully clad—came [Pg 339] out and went across the field to the second house and presently came back with another woman. Their skirts almost brushed my face as they passed me.
Then lights turned on in both houses facing the field, and the woman went into the house next to me, still crying hard. Soon, I could hear voices. Then the woman—now fully dressed—came out and walked across the field to the second house and came back with another woman. Their skirts almost brushed against my face as they passed by. [Pg 339]
The three sat on the steps of the house on my side of the field, all crying, and above the sound of their crying I could still hear, far off, the sound of running feet. The lover had got into the town, which was but half a mile away, and was evidently dodging through streets. Was the town aroused? Now and then shouts came from the distance. I had no watch and did not know how long I had slept in the field.
The three of them sat on the steps of the house on my side of the field, all crying, and above their sobs, I could still hear, faintly, the sound of running feet. The lover had made it into town, which was only half a mile away, and was clearly weaving through the streets. Was the town stirred up? Every so often, shouts echoed from a distance. I didn’t have a watch and had no idea how long I had been asleep in the field.
Now all became silent again and there were just the four people, myself lying trembling in the grass and the three women on the steps of the house near me, and all three crying softly. Time passed. What had happened? What would happen? In fancy I saw the running man caught and perhaps killed in some dark little side street of an Indiana farming town into which I had been thrown by the accident that a railroad brakeman had seen me standing on the bumpers between two cars of his train and had ordered me off. “Well, get off or give me a dollar,” he had said, and I had not wanted to give him a dollar. I had only had three dollars in my pocket. Why should I give one to him? “There will be other freight trains,” I had said to myself, “and perhaps I shall see something of interest here in this town.”
Now everything was quiet again, and it was just the four of us: me lying there trembling in the grass and the three women on the steps of the house nearby, all three quietly crying. Time passed. What had just happened? What was going to happen? In my mind, I imagined the running man getting caught and maybe even killed in some dark little side street of an Indiana farming town, thrown there because a railroad brakeman had seen me standing between the cars of his train and told me to get off. “Get off or give me a dollar,” he had said, and I didn't want to hand him a dollar. I had only three dollars in my pocket. Why should I give him one? “There will be other freight trains,” I thought to myself, “and maybe I’ll see something interesting in this town.”
Interest indeed! Now I lay in the grass trembling with fear. In fancy I had become the lover of the younger of the three women sitting on the steps of the house and my sweetheart’s brothers with open knives in their hands were pursuing me in a dark street. I felt the knives slashing my body and knew that what I felt the three women also felt. [Pg 340] Every few minutes the younger of the three cried out. It was as though a knife had gone into her body. All four of us trembled with fear.
Interest indeed! Now I lay in the grass shaking with fear. In my imagination, I had become the lover of the younger of the three women sitting on the steps of the house, and my sweetheart’s brothers, with open knives in their hands, were chasing me down a dark street. I felt the knives cutting into my body and knew that what I felt, the three women also felt. [Pg 340] Every few minutes, the younger of the three cried out. It was as if a knife had pierced her body. All four of us trembled with fear.
And then, as we waited and shook with dread, there was a stir in the silence. Feet, not running but walking steadily, were heard on the bridge that led into the road that passed the field and four men appeared. Somewhere in the town, in the dark night streets of the town, the two brothers had caught the lover but it was evident there had been an explanation. The three had gone together to a doctor, the cut cheek had been patched, they had got a marriage license and a preacher and were now coming home for a marriage.
And then, as we waited and trembled with fear, there was a movement in the silence. We heard footsteps, not running but walking steadily, on the bridge that led to the road that passed the field, and four men appeared. Somewhere in the town, in the dark streets of the night, the two brothers had caught the lover, but it was clear there had been an explanation. The three of them had gone to a doctor together, the cut on the cheek had been treated, they had gotten a marriage license and a preacher, and were now coming home to get married.
The marriage took place at once, there before me on the steps of the house, and after the marriage, and after some sort of heavy joke on the part of the preacher, a joke at which no one laughed, the lover with his sweetheart, accompanied by the third woman, the one from the house across the field and who was evidently the lover’s mother, went off across the field. Presently the field where I lay was all dark and silent again.
The wedding happened right there on the steps of the house, and after the ceremony, there was some awkward joke from the preacher that nobody found funny. The couple, along with the third woman—who was clearly the lover’s mother from the house across the field—walked away across the field. Before long, the field where I was lying became dark and quiet again.
And that had been the scene playing itself out in my fancy as I sat in the advertising office in Chicago, pretending to listen to the man who spoke of agricultural conditions in Texas and looking at the man with the scar on his cheek, the scar that had been partly hidden from the sight of others by growing the beard. I remembered that the plow company, now wanting to sell its plows in greater numbers in the southwest, was located in an Indiana town. How fine it would be if I [Pg 341] could speak to the man of the beard and ask him if by any chance he was the lover of the field. In fancy I saw all the men in the room suddenly talking with the greatest intimacy. Experiences in life were exchanged, everyone laughed. There had been something in the air of the room. The men who had come to us were from a small city in Indiana while we all lived in the great city. They were somewhat suspicious of us while we were compelled to try to allay their suspicions. After the conference there would be a dinner, perhaps at some club, and afterward drinks—but there would still be suspicion. I fancied a scene in which no man suspected another. What tales might then be told! How much we might find out of each other!
And that had been the scene playing out in my mind as I sat in the advertising office in Chicago, pretending to listen to the guy talking about agricultural conditions in Texas while glancing at the man with the scar on his cheek, partly hidden by his beard. I remembered that the plow company, now eager to sell more plows in the southwest, was based in an Indiana town. How great would it be if I could actually talk to the bearded man and ask him if he was, by any chance, a lover of the field. In my imagination, I saw all the men in the room suddenly chatting with a deep familiarity. Life experiences were shared, and everyone laughed. There was something in the air of the room. The men who had come to us were from a small city in Indiana while we all lived in the big city. They were a bit wary of us, and we had to work to ease their suspicions. After the meeting, there would be a dinner, maybe at some club, and then drinks—but there would still be that underlying suspicion. I pictured a scene where no man suspected another. What stories might then be shared! How much we could learn about each other!
And now in fancy the bearded man and I were walking and talking together and I was telling him of the scene in the field and of what I had seen and he had told me of what I had not seen. He told me of how during the running he had become exhausted and had stopped in a dark little alleyway behind stores in the town and of how the brothers had found him there. One of them came toward him threateningly but he began to talk and an explanation followed. Then they had gone to arouse a doctor and a small official who gave them the marriage license.
And now I imagine the bearded man and I were walking and talking together, and I was telling him about the scene in the field and what I had witnessed, while he shared what I hadn’t seen. He told me how, during the chase, he had gotten tired and had stopped in a dark little alley behind the stores in town, and how the brothers had found him there. One of them approached him menacingly, but he started to talk, and an explanation followed. Then they had gone to get a doctor and a minor official who issued them the marriage license.
“Do you know,” he said, “neither her mother nor my own knew just what had happened and didn’t dare ask. Her mother never asked her and my mother never asked me. We went along later as though nothing had happened at all except that with all of us, her brothers and myself, and even our two mothers, there was a kind of formality. They did not come to our house without being invited and we did not go freely to [Pg 342] their house as we always had done before the brothers saw us together in the field that night.”
“Do you know,” he said, “neither her mom nor my own had any idea what happened and didn’t want to ask. Her mom never asked her, and my mom never asked me. We just carried on later as if nothing had happened at all, except that there was this sort of formality among all of us—her brothers, me, and even our two moms. They didn’t come to our house unless we invited them, and we didn’t go over to their house freely like we used to before the brothers saw us together in the field that night.”
“It was all a little strange and as soon as I could I grew the beard to hide the scar on my face that I thought embarrassed all the others.
“It was all a bit weird, and as soon as I could, I grew the beard to cover the scar on my face that I thought embarrassed everyone else.”
“As for Molly and myself—well, you see it was somewhat strange to find ourselves suddenly man and wife but she has been a good wife to me. After the ceremony that night on the porch of the house and after the preacher went away we all stood for a little time together, saying nothing, then my mother started for our house across the field and I took my wife’s arm and followed. When we got to our house I took my Molly into my bedroom and we sat on the edge of the bed. There was a window that looked over across the field to the house where she had always lived and after a while the lights went out over there. My own mother kept moving about in our house and, although she made no noise, I knew she was crying. Was she crying because she was glad or sad? Had Molly and I married in the regular way I suppose there would have been rejoicing in both houses and I think there is no doubt we would inevitably have married. Anyway, my mother did things about the house she had already done once that night, opened the door to let out the cat that was already out, tried to wind the clock that was already wound. Then she went off upstairs and our house was dark and silent too.
“As for Molly and me—well, it was kind of strange to suddenly find ourselves husband and wife, but she has been a good partner to me. After the ceremony that night on the porch of the house and after the preacher left, we all stood together for a moment, not saying anything. Then my mom started for our house across the field, and I took my wife's arm and followed her. When we got to our house, I took Molly into our bedroom and we sat on the edge of the bed. There was a window that overlooked the field to the house where she had always lived, and after a while, the lights went out over there. My mom kept moving around in our house and, although she made no noise, I knew she was crying. Was she crying because she was happy or sad? If Molly and I had married in the usual way, I guess there would have been celebrations in both homes, and I have no doubt we would have ended up married anyway. Anyway, my mom did things around the house that she had already done once that night, like opened the door to let the cat out, even though it was already out, and tried to wind the clock that was already wound. Then she went upstairs, and our house was dark and silent too.”
“We just sat like that, on the edge of the bed, Molly and me, I don’t know for how long. Then she did something. The doctor in town had sewed up the wound in my cheek and had covered the place with a soft cloth [Pg 343] held in place by pieces of tape. What she did was to reach up and touch the end of the wound, timidly, with the tips of her fingers. She did it several times, and each time a soft little moan came from her lips.
“We just sat there, on the edge of the bed, Molly and I, I don’t know for how long. Then she did something. The doctor in town had stitched up the cut on my cheek and covered it with a soft cloth [Pg 343] held in place by pieces of tape. What she did was reach up and gently touch the end of the cut, hesitantly, with the tips of her fingers. She did it several times, and each time a soft little moan escaped her lips.
“She did that, as I say six or eight times and then we both lay down on the bed and took each other’s hands. We didn’t undress. What we did was to lie there, all night, just as I have described, with our clothes on and holding fast to each other’s hands.”
“She did that, like I said, six or eight times, and then we both lay down on the bed and held each other's hands. We didn't undress. What we did was lie there all night, just as I've described, with our clothes on and gripping each other's hands tightly.”
[Pg 345]
[Pg 345]
BOOK IV
[Pg 347]
[Pg 347]
NOTE I
I WALKED about the city of New York looking at people. I was not too young any more and could not make myself over to fit a new city. No doubt certain characteristics of my own nature had become fixed. I was a man of the mid-western towns who had gone from his town to the mid-western cities and there had gone through the adventures common to such fellows as myself. Was there some salt in me? To the end of my life I would talk with the half slovenly drawl of the middle-westerner, would walk like such a middle-westerner, have the air of something between a laborer, a man of business, a gambler, a race horse owner, an actor. If I was, as I then fully intended, to spend the rest of my life trying to tell such tales as I could think and feel my way through, I would have to tell the tales of my own people. Would I gain new power and insight for the telling by having come East, by consorting with other story-tellers? Would I understand better my own people and what had made the tragedies, the comedies and the wonders of their lives?
I strolled around New York City, observing people. I wasn't so young anymore and couldn't reshape myself to fit into a new city. Certain traits of my personality had definitely solidified. I was a guy from the Midwest who had moved from his hometown to the cities and experienced the typical adventures that come with it. Was there something unique about me? For the rest of my life, I would speak with the slightly rough drawl of someone from the Midwest, walk like a Midwesterner, and carry an air that blended the vibe of a laborer, a business person, a gambler, a racehorse owner, and an actor. If I was, as I fully intended, going to spend the rest of my life trying to share the stories I could think of and feel my way through, then I would have to tell the stories of my own people. Would I gain new strength and understanding in my storytelling by coming East and mingling with other storytellers? Would I gain greater insight into my own people and what shaped the tragedies, comedies, and wonders of their lives?
I was in New York as a guest, as an onlooker, wondering about the city and the men of the city and what they were thinking and feeling. There were certain men I wanted to see, who had written things I thought had given me new lights on my own people, the subjects of my tales.
I was in New York as a visitor, as a spectator, curious about the city and its people, and what they were thinking and feeling. There were certain guys I wanted to meet, who had written things that I felt gave me fresh insights into my own people, the subjects of my stories.
[Pg 348]
[Pg 348]
I dare say there was a good deal of a certain half-rural timidity in me.
I have to admit that I had a bit of a rural shyness about me.
There was Mr. Van Wyck Brooks, whose book “America’s Coming-of-Age,” had moved me deeply. He with Mr. Waldo Frank, Paul Rosenfeld, James Oppenheim and others had just started a magazine, The Seven Arts (that after its death was to be replaced by The Dial, published by a quite different group), and the magazine had not only offered to publish some of my things but its editors had asked me to come to see them.
There was Mr. Van Wyck Brooks, whose book “America’s Coming-of-Age” had really touched me. He, along with Mr. Waldo Frank, Paul Rosenfeld, James Oppenheim, and others, had just launched a magazine, The Seven Arts (which after it ended was replaced by The Dial, published by a completely different group), and the magazine not only offered to publish some of my work but its editors also invited me to come meet with them.
I wanted to go and was at the same time a little afraid. At that time there was a good deal of talk abroad as to a new artistic awakening in America. Mr. Waldo Frank’s “Our America” must have been in preparation at just about that time and it could not have been much later that Mr. William Allen White wrote in The New Republic, an article the import of which was that “The King is dead! Long live the King!” If there were new kings in the land, I wanted to see and consort with them if I could.
I wanted to go, but I was also a bit scared. At that time, there was a lot of buzz about a new artistic revival in America. Mr. Waldo Frank’s “Our America” must have been in the works around then, and it couldn't have been much later that Mr. William Allen White wrote in The New Republic an article that basically said, “The King is dead! Long live the King!” If there were new leaders emerging, I wanted to see them and hang out with them if I could.
As for The Seven Arts magazine, there had been rumors of its coming birth, even in Chicago. Miss Edna Kenton had come from New York to Chicago at about that time and a meeting was held. There was a large party in a large house and upstairs somewhere the new day was under discussion. We, downstairs, did not just know what was being discussed but there was a kind of tingling sensation in the air. Little groups of us gathered in the rooms below. “What’s up?” It is to be remembered this was in Chicago and we were all young and no doubt naïve. “What they whispering about upstairs?” “Don’t you know?” Not to know was, [Pg 349] we all felt, a kind of cultural blight. I had run from one group to another trying to find out and at just that moment a young doctor, who in his spare moments wrote poetry, came into the house and went hurriedly upstairs. A rather ribald fellow among the guests—Ben Hecht perhaps—who like the rest of us was angry that he had not been let into the secret, made an announcement. “I know what it is. Someone’s having a baby,” he said.
As for The Seven Arts magazine, there had been rumors about its upcoming launch, even in Chicago. Miss Edna Kenton had come from New York to Chicago around that time, and a meeting was held. There was a big party in a large house, and somewhere upstairs, the new era was being discussed. We, downstairs, didn’t know exactly what was being talked about, but there was an electric excitement in the air. Small groups of us gathered in the rooms below. “What’s going on?” It’s important to remember this was in Chicago, and we were all young and likely naïve. “What are they whispering about upstairs?” “Don’t you know?” Not knowing felt like a cultural shortcoming to us all. I had been darting from one group to another trying to figure it out, and just at that moment, a young doctor who wrote poetry in his free time came into the house and rushed upstairs. A rather cheeky guest—maybe Ben Hecht—who, like the rest of us, was frustrated about being left out of the loop, made an announcement. “I know what it is. Someone’s having a baby,” he said.
What about the men of New York, the writers whose work I admired, the painters whose work I admired? I had always wanted to be a painter myself, was always having sensations and seeing forms that could perhaps have been expressed in paint and in no other way but the materials of the painter’s craft seemed to me to lie far outside my way of life. One had to know drawing, to know what green did to yellow and yellow to brown. When one talked to painters they spoke of things that lay far outside one’s pathway. There had been one painter I had known quite well. He had lived in a room near my own in Chicago and painted landscapes. Rather he painted one landscape over and over. There was an old stone building that looked like pictures one had seen of peasants’ cottages. It was evening and two cows were coming home along a road, to a barn one fancied, but the barn could not be seen for the deep shadows that had gathered behind the house. Then there were some trees, the tops of which could be but faintly seen on the horizon. The last rays of the sun had splashed the sky with red. Often in the evening the painter, a large man with red hair, came into my room and spoke to me. [Pg 350] He also had been touched with the new day and had read Paul Gauguin’s notebook and a work by Mr. Clive Bell. “The new fellows have nothing on me,” he declared and taking me into his room he showed me half a dozen of his canvases and how that in one the tops of the trees could just be seen above the roof of the house and in another that there were really no trees at all. “What you think is trees is only clouds,” he declared, “and what you think is the sun going down is really the moon coming up.”
What about the guys in New York, the writers I looked up to, and the painters I admired? I had always wanted to be a painter myself, constantly feeling sensations and seeing shapes that could maybe only be captured in paint. But the tools of a painter's trade felt totally out of reach for me. You had to know how to draw, to understand how green interacts with yellow and how yellow changes into brown. When I talked to painters, they discussed things that were way beyond my experience. There was one painter I had known pretty well. He lived in a room close to mine in Chicago and painted landscapes. Actually, he painted one landscape over and over again. There was an old stone building that resembled pictures you’d seen of peasant cottages. It was evening, and two cows were walking home along a road, presumably to a barn, although the barn wasn’t visible because of the dark shadows behind the house. Then there were some trees, barely discernible at the horizon. The last rays of the sun had filled the sky with red. Often in the evenings, the painter, a big guy with red hair, would come into my room and chat with me. [Pg 350] He too had been inspired by the new movement and had read Paul Gauguin’s notebook and a piece by Mr. Clive Bell. “The new guys don’t have anything on me,” he claimed, and took me into his room to show me several of his canvases, pointing out how in one, the tops of the trees were just visible above the roof of the house, while in another, there were actually no trees at all. “What you think are trees is really just clouds,” he insisted, “and what you think is the sun going down is actually the moon coming up.”
Returning with me to my room he had talked so long and well of the effect of light on color, of form and its significance, of the new cubistic and post-impressionistic movements, the import and significance of which he declared scornfully he had measured and for the most part discarded, that I became frightened and did not for years afterwards try to paint. Once in Chicago I went into a store, intending to buy some colors with which to play at idle moments in my room but a certain air of the clerk had frightened me. My own father, when he was alive, had often received from manufacturers certain cards on which the house-painter’s colors were shown and the trade name of each color printed below and I had thought I might find such a card lying on a counter in the art store but saw none and was ashamed to ask. Perhaps I wanted the clerk to think me a painter who knew his craft. How glibly the red-haired man had reeled off the names of colors. I was like one who has wandered into a church where people are kneeling in prayer. I began walking on tiptoes. “I only wanted to buy a pencil eraser,” I said.
Returning to my room with me, he talked at length about how light affects color, the meaning of form, and the new cubism and post-impressionism movements, which he scornfully claimed he had mostly dismissed after measuring their significance. This made me nervous and I didn’t attempt to paint for years afterward. Once in Chicago, I went into a store with the intention of buying some colors to play with during my free time in my room, but the clerk's demeanor unsettled me. My dad, when he was alive, often received cards from manufacturers showing house-painter colors with the trade name of each color underneath, and I thought I might find one lying on a counter in the art store but didn’t see any and felt embarrassed to ask. Maybe I wanted the clerk to think I was a painter who understood his craft. The red-haired man had effortlessly rattled off color names. I felt like someone who had walked into a church where people were kneeling in prayer. I started walking on tiptoes. “I just wanted to buy a pencil eraser,” I said.
[Pg 351]
[Pg 351]
And so now there I was in the city of New York and there were certain men in the city to whom I would have liked to go, to talk with them of my craft, but when I thought of doing so I was afraid.
And so here I was in New York City, and there were certain men in the city I wanted to meet to talk about my work, but when I thought about it, I felt scared.
My own position was something like this: there were in my head certain tales I knew but could not yet tell and certain others I had told but felt I had told badly or haltingly. Was there a certain formula one could learn that might help one out of the difficulty? There was a sense in which I thought of myself as an ignorant man. The tales I had already put down on paper had been as a sort of growth in me. There was The Little Review, run by two Chicago women who had preceded me to New York. They had published tales of mine and might publish more. When I went to see them we had much fun together and Miss Anderson and myself had in common a fondness for rather striking clothes and for strutting a bit upon the stage of life that drew us closely together but being at bottom fellow Chicagoans we were bound not to take each other too seriously—at least not under the rose.
My own situation was something like this: I had certain stories in my head that I knew but couldn't yet tell, and others I had shared but felt I had done a poor job of it. Was there a specific method I could learn that might help me with this struggle? I had this feeling that I was an inexperienced person. The stories I had already written down felt like a kind of growth for me. There was The Little Review, run by two women from Chicago who had come to New York before me. They had published some of my stories and might publish more. When I visited them, we had a lot of fun together, and Miss Anderson and I shared a love for bold fashion and showing off a bit on the stage of life, which brought us closer. But since we were fellow Chicagoans at heart, we were also careful not to take each other too seriously—at least not openly.
Did I want, above everything else, to be taken seriously? No doubt I did. That may have been the notion I had in coming to the city. And I suppose I wanted also to find superior craftsmen at whose feet I could sit. I already had my own notions concerning American story-tellers in general.
Did I want, more than anything, to be taken seriously? No question I did. That might have been what drove me to the city. And I guess I also wanted to find skilled artisans I could learn from. I already had my own thoughts about American storytellers in general.
I was walking in the street or sitting in a train and overheard a remark dropped from the lips of some man or woman. Out of a thousand such remarks, heard almost every day, one stayed in my head. I could [Pg 352] not shake it out. And then people constantly told me tales and in the telling of them there was a sentence used that intoxicated. “I was lying on my back on the porch and the street lamp shone on my mother’s face. What was the use? I could not say to her what was in my mind. She would not have understood. There was a man lived next door who kept going past the house and smiling at me. I got it into my head that he knew all that I could not tell mother.”
I was walking down the street or sitting on a train when I overheard something a man or woman said. Out of thousands of these comments I hear almost every day, one stuck with me. I couldn’t shake it off. Plus, people kept telling me stories, and in one of them, there was a line that fascinated me. “I was lying on my back on the porch, and the street lamp lit up my mother’s face. What was the point? I couldn’t say what I was thinking to her. She wouldn’t have understood. There was a guy next door who kept walking by the house and smiling at me. I convinced myself that he knew everything I couldn't tell my mom.”
A few such sentences in the midst of a conversation overheard or dropped into a tale someone told. These were the seeds of stories. How could one make them grow?
A few sentences like these, heard during a conversation or slipped into a story someone shared. These were the seeds of stories. How could you make them grow?
In telling tales of themselves people constantly spoiled the tale in telling. They had some notion of how a story should be told got from reading. Little lies crept in. They had done something mean and tried to justify some action that for the tale’s sake did not need justification.
In sharing stories about themselves, people often ruined the narrative in the process. They had a particular idea of how a story should be told, influenced by what they had read. Small lies slipped in. They had done something unkind and sought to justify actions that didn’t need justification for the sake of the story.
There was a notion that ran through all story-telling in America, that stories must be built about a plot and that absurd Anglo-Saxon notion that they must point a moral, uplift the people, make better citizens, etc. The magazines were filled with these plot stories and most of the plays on our stage were plot plays. “The Poison Plot,” I called it in conversation with my friends as the plot notion did seem to me to poison all story-telling. What was wanted I thought was form, not plot, an altogether more elusive and difficult thing to come at.
There was an idea that influenced all storytelling in America: that stories should be centered around a plot and that silly Anglo-Saxon belief that they must convey a moral, uplift people, create better citizens, and so on. Magazines were packed with these plot-driven stories, and most of the plays we saw on stage were also focused on plot. I referred to it as "The Poison Plot" when talking with my friends because the emphasis on plot felt like it was ruining storytelling. What I thought was needed was structure, not just plot—something much more elusive and challenging to achieve.
The plots were frameworks about which the stories were to be constructed and editors were inordinately fond of them. One got [Pg 353] “an idea for a story.” What was meant was that a new trick had been thought out. Nearly all the adventure stories and the well-known American western stories were so constructed. A man went into the redwood forests or into the deserts and took up land. He has been a rather mean, second-rate chap in civilization but in the new place a great change comes over him. Well, the writer had got him out where there was no one looking and could do as he pleased with the fellow. Never mind what he had been. The forests or the deserts had changed him completely. The writer could make a regular angel of him, have him rescue downtrodden women, catch horse thieves, exhibit any kind of bravery required to keep the reader excited and happy.
The plots were frameworks for the stories that would be built around them, and editors loved them. One would get [Pg 353] “an idea for a story,” which meant a new concept had been developed. Almost all adventure stories and popular American westerns followed this pattern. A man would venture into the redwood forests or the deserts and claim land. He had been a rather petty, second-rate guy back in civilization, but in this new setting, he undergoes a significant transformation. Well, the writer had placed him where no one was watching, allowing him to do whatever he wanted. It didn’t matter who he had been before; the forests or deserts changed him completely. The writer could turn him into a complete hero, have him save oppressed women, catch horse thieves, and display any bravery necessary to keep the reader engaged and entertained.
A word of good sense dropped in anywhere would have blown the whole thing to pieces but there was no danger. In all such writing all consideration for human beings was thrown aside. No one lived in such tales. Let such a writer begin to think of human beings, care a little for human beings, and his pasteboard world would melt before his eyes. The man in the desert or in the redwood forests was of course the same man he had been before he went there. He had the same problems to face. God knows we would all flee to the forests or the deserts at once if going there could so transform anyone. At least I know I should waste no time in getting there.
A straightforward thought thrown in at any point would have shattered the whole thing, but there was no real risk. In all this kind of writing, any regard for people was completely ignored. Nobody existed in those stories. If such a writer starts thinking about people, cares a little about them, his artificial world would dissolve right in front of him. The man in the desert or in the redwood forests was, of course, the same man he was before he arrived there. He faced the same challenges. God knows we would all run to the forests or the deserts immediately if going there could actually change anyone. I know I wouldn’t hesitate to make that journey.
In the construction of these stories there was endless variation but in all of them human beings, the lives of human beings, were altogether disregarded. An Alabama Negro was given the shrewdness of a Connecticut Yankee, a trick that made some writer temporarily famous and brought [Pg 354] him wealth. Having made his Negro think like a Yankee, having made him practice all the smart cute tricks of the Yankee, there was nothing to stop the writer producing a thousand tales with the hybrid Negro as the hero of them all. Only the giving out of the patience of the editors or of the public could stop him, and both seemed inexhaustible.
In these stories, there was endless variation, but in all of them, the lives of human beings were completely ignored. An Alabama Black man was given the cleverness of a Connecticut Yankee—a trick that made some writer temporarily famous and brought him wealth. After making his Black character think like a Yankee and having him use all the clever tricks of the Yankee, there was nothing to stop the writer from creating a thousand tales with this hybrid Black character as the hero of them all. Only the patience of the editors or the public could put an end to it, and both seemed limitless. [Pg 354]
As to what the writer himself suffered under these circumstances, that was a different matter. One supposed that any man who attempted the writer’s craft had, at the beginning, some real interest in the people about him but this was quickly lost. The imaginative life of the romancer must be lived entirely in a queer pasteboard world.
As for what the writer himself went through in these circumstances, that’s a different story. One would think that anyone who tried their hand at writing had, to start with, some genuine interest in the people around them, but that interest faded fast. The creative life of a storyteller has to be lived completely in a strange, artificial world.
It was a peculiarity of the writer’s craft that one must of necessity give oneself to the people about whom one wrote, must in a quite special way believe in the existence of these people, and a peculiar childlike credulousness must result to the writer who so completely separated himself from actual life. Having acquired sudden fame and wealth such a writer woke up some morning to find himself irrevocably dead. The actuality of life could not reach him. On all sides of him people suffered, were touched with moments of nameless joy, loved and died, and the manufacturer of society detectives, desert heroes and daring adventures by sea and land could no longer see life at all. With unseeing eyes, deaf ears and benumbed senses he must walk through life—a movie hero, a stage star or a rich and successful manufacturer of romances—no longer a human being at all. One had no notion of giving oneself to that kind of death in life but to find out what one [Pg 355] did not want to do was but half the battle.
It was a quirk of being a writer that you had to fully invest yourself in the people you wrote about, to genuinely believe in their existence. This led to a unique kind of childlike gullibility for a writer who had distanced themselves from real life. After suddenly gaining fame and wealth, such a writer might wake up one morning feeling completely lost. The reality of life could no longer reach them. All around, people experienced suffering, had moments of unexplainable joy, loved, and died, while the creator of cop stories, desert heroes, and thrilling adventures by sea and land became blind to life itself. With unseeing eyes, deaf ears, and numb senses, they had to navigate life as if they were a movie hero, a stage star, or a wealthy, successful storyteller—no longer a human being at all. One wouldn't want to surrender to that kind of death-in-life, but discovering what you didn’t want to do was only half the struggle. [Pg 355]
After all the tales themselves came quickly. In certain moods one became impregnated with the seeds of a hundred new tales in one day. The telling of the tales, to get them into form, to clothe them, find just the words and the arrangement of words that would clothe them—that was a quite different matter. I wanted to find, if I could, the men who would help me toward the solution of that problem.
After all, the stories came fast. In certain moods, a person could be filled with the ideas for a hundred new stories in just one day. Sharing those stories, shaping them, finding the right words and the right way to express them—that was a whole different challenge. I wanted to find, if I could, the people who would help me solve that problem.
For even an unknown and unsuccessful scribbler in America the situation is difficult enough. Even the very sweetness of our people in their attitude toward our writers is destructive. You have seen how I myself was allowed to play like a reckless child among advertising men, constantly forgiven for my impudence, often paid an absurd figure for writing an unimportant advertisement—that any one of forty men, not authors, would have gladly written with more care at half my price—simply because I was an author.
For even an unknown and unsuccessful writer in America, the situation is tough enough. The overly sweet attitude of our people towards writers can be damaging. You've seen how I was allowed to act like a careless kid among advertisers, constantly forgiven for my boldness, often paid a ridiculous amount for writing an unimportant ad—that any one of forty non-writers would have happily crafted with more care for half my price—just because I was a writer.
Well, I had published certain tales over my own name and my fate was sealed. That the tales were not liked by many of the critics did not matter too much. To be sure, my books did not sell, but I was discussed in the newspapers and literary magazines and my picture was occasionally printed and finally a very second-rate English writer of romances, very popular in our country, spoke well of me and Mr. Frank Harris spoke ill of me.
Well, I had published some stories under my own name, and my fate was set. The fact that many critics didn't like the stories didn't bother me too much. Sure, my books didn't sell, but I was mentioned in newspapers and literary magazines, and my picture was occasionally featured. Eventually, a pretty mediocre English romance writer, who was quite popular in our country, said nice things about me, while Mr. Frank Harris had some negative comments.
Ye gods, I was lost and must flee. The very grocer at the corner, with whom I was wont to sit on the steps by the back door of the store on summer evenings while he talked of his life as a young sailor on a [Pg 356] lake steamer looked at me with new eyes. He began speaking like a very movie hero. His tales, that had been so naturally and humanly told, became grotesques of tales. The fellow had some idea I might make him the hero of some improbable romance of our inland seas, one always holding the helm in some desperate storm or jumping overboard to rescue some broker’s daughter, and tried heroically to supply me with materials. He had in his youth read some novel of the seas and now he began to lie valiantly, telling me all the desperate escapades of which he had heard or read as having happened to himself. Shades of Defoe and Melville, such a sea and such a sailor’s life as he manufactured! I remembered almost with tears in my eyes the little homely real stories he had formerly been in the habit of telling of himself, and left him never to return. I was even vicious enough to rob him, for his defection, of my grocery trade.
Oh my gosh, I was completely lost and had to escape. The grocer at the corner, who I used to sit with on the steps by the back door of his store during summer evenings while he shared stories of his life as a young sailor on a lake steamer, looked at me like I was someone new. Suddenly, he started talking like a movie hero. His stories, which used to feel so genuine and relatable, transformed into strange tales. He thought I might turn him into the hero of some unlikely adventure in our inland seas, always bravely steering through storms or diving in to save some broker’s daughter, and he tried really hard to give me ideas. In his youth, he’d read some sea novels, and now he began to exaggerate, claiming all sorts of wild escapades that had supposedly happened to him. Shades of Defoe and Melville, what a sea and sailor’s life he conjured up! I remembered with almost tearful nostalgia the simple, real stories he used to tell about himself, and I left him for good. I was even mean enough to cut him out of my grocery shopping.
How utterly all my life had been changed by a little public attention! Even some of my friends went the road of the grocer. I remember that I had, at just that time, done a deed affecting my personal life that had lost me the respect of some of my acquaintances. One of them saw my picture, printed I think in the Literary Digest, and immediately afterward wrote me a letter. “You are a great artist and may do anything you please. I forgive you everything,” he wrote and as I read the letter my heart went sick within me. “At any rate why do they want to dehumanize us?” I asked myself. Violently then I cursed the romancers. They were in reality at the bottom of it all. Not satisfied with the cowboys the sailors and the detectives they had descended [Pg 357] upon their brothers of the pen and the brush. A poet was a certain kind of man with long hair and no food who went about muttering to himself. There was no escape for him. That he was and his fate was fixed. To be sure I had myself known some American poets and had found them in their everyday life much like all the other people I knew except that they were a trifle more sensitive to life and its beauties and, before they became widely known as poets, sometimes wrote beautiful bits describing their inner reaction to some flash of beauty that had come to them. They were that before they became widely known as poets and then later they were usually goners.
How completely my life had changed due to a little public attention! Even some of my friends took the path of the grocer. I remember that around that time, I had done something that affected my personal life and caused me to lose the respect of some acquaintances. One of them saw my picture, printed I think in the Literary Digest, and shortly afterward sent me a letter. “You are a great artist and can do whatever you want. I forgive you for everything,” he wrote, and as I read the letter, my heart sank. “Why do they want to dehumanize us?” I questioned myself. In a fit of anger, I cursed the storytellers. They were truly the cause of it all. Not content with cowboys, sailors, and detectives, they had turned on their fellow writers and artists. A poet was seen as a certain kind of person with long hair and no food, wandering around mumbling to himself. There was no escape for him. That was who he was, and his fate was set. Of course, I had met some American poets and found them in their daily lives just like everyone else I knew, except they were a bit more in tune with life and its beauty, and before they became well-known as poets, they sometimes wrote beautiful pieces reflecting their inner feelings about moments of beauty they experienced. They were that way before they gained fame as poets, and later, they usually fell apart.
That was how it was with the poet. The painter usually starved in a garret and went about his small room pale and emaciated, with a palette stuck on his thumb, and then one day a lovely lady came along the street, saw how that he was a genius and married him. I’ll say this for us scribblers and the actors. We got off better. We usually, in the romances, sat on a park bench with the tramps and had a dirty newspaper blown to us by a cold wind. On the front page of the newspaper was a large picture of ourselves and an announcement that fame had come. Then we went and bought the tramps a breakfast with our last dollar before we went to live in a great house with servants. We scribblers and the actors got off the least shamefully in the romances but then, it is to be remembered, fellows of our own craft got up these yarns that had so stuck in the public mind and that they had for that reason perhaps a little pity for us.
That’s how it was with the poet. The painter usually struggled to get by in a run-down apartment and wandered around his small space looking pale and skinny, with a paint palette stuck to his thumb, until one day a beautiful woman strolled down the street, recognized his genius, and married him. I’ll give credit to us writers and actors. We had it a bit better. We often sat on a park bench with the drifters in the stories, and a tattered newspaper would be blown to us by the chilly wind. On the front page of that newspaper was a big picture of us and an announcement that we had found fame. Then we would use our last dollar to buy the drifters breakfast before moving into a big house with servants. We writers and actors fared the least embarrassingly in the stories, but it’s worth noting that our fellow creators spun these tales that really stuck in people’s minds, and maybe because of that, they felt a little sympathy for us.
All of this however concerned the materials for tales. One had to do one’s own winnowing in any event. I was in New York and was after [Pg 358] something other than stories. Would I find what I wanted? I was somewhat afraid of the writers, particularly of the ones whose work I most admired because I thought they must be a special kind of being, quite different from the men I had known. (No doubt I was myself the victim of the same romancers I have just been cursing.) There were certain men I thought had written of America and American writing with an understanding that had been a help to me. I was what I was, a rough and tumble participant in life. As yet there had been little time for study, for quiet thought.
All of this, however, was about the materials for stories. You had to do your own sorting anyway. I was in New York and was looking for something beyond just stories. Would I find what I was looking for? I was a bit scared of the writers, especially the ones whose work I admired most, because I thought they must be a special kind of person, completely different from the men I had known. (No doubt I was also falling for the same illusions I had just been criticizing.) There were certain guys whose writing about America and American literature had helped me understand things better. I was just who I was, a rough and tumble part of life. So far, there hadn't been much time for studying or quiet reflection.
As for these other men, the fellows of the East, what of them? I fancied in them an erudition the contemplation of which made me afraid. Now I understood how Mark Twain felt when he went up to Boston. Did he, like myself, want something without knowing just what he wanted?
As for these other guys, the people from the East, what about them? I imagined that they had a knowledge that intimidated me. Now I got how Mark Twain felt when he went to Boston. Did he, like me, want something without really knowing what it was?
For such men as myself you must understand there is always a great difficulty about telling the tale after the scent has been picked up. The tales that continually came to me in the way indicated above could of course not become tales until I had clothed them. Having, from a conversation overheard or in some other way, got the tone of a tale, I was like a woman who has just become impregnated. Something was growing inside me. At night when I lay in my bed I could feel the heels of the tale kicking against the walls of my body. Often as I lay thus every word of the tale came to me quite clearly but when I got out of bed to write it down the words would not come.
For guys like me, you have to understand that there's always a big challenge in telling a story after the clue has been found. The stories that kept coming to me like this couldn’t really become stories until I fleshed them out. After picking up the vibe of a story from an overheard conversation or some other way, I felt like a woman who has just become pregnant. Something was growing inside me. At night, when I lay in my bed, I could feel the story kicking against the walls of my body. Often, as I lay there, every word of the tale was crystal clear in my mind, but when I got out of bed to write it down, the words just wouldn’t come.
I had constantly to seek in roads new to me. Other men had felt what I had felt, had seen what I had seen—how had they met the difficulties [Pg 359] I faced? My father when he told his tales walked up and down the room before his audience. He pushed out little experimental sentences and watched his audience narrowly. There was a dull-eyed old farmer sitting in a corner of the room. Father had his eyes on the fellow. “I’ll get him,” he said to himself. He watched the farmer’s eyes. When the experimental sentence he had tried did not get anywhere he tried another and kept trying. Beside words he had—to help the telling of his tales—the advantage of being able to act out those parts for which he could find no words. He could frown, shake his fists, smile, let a look of pain or annoyance drift over his face.
I constantly had to explore new paths. Other people had experienced what I had experienced, had witnessed what I had witnessed—how did they handle the challenges I faced? My father, when he shared his stories, would pace up and down the room in front of his audience. He would throw out little trial sentences and closely observe his listeners. There was a dull-eyed old farmer sitting in a corner of the room. Dad had his eye on him. “I’ll win him over,” he thought to himself. He watched the farmer's eyes. When the trial sentence he had tried didn’t land, he tried another and kept going. In addition to his words— to enhance his storytelling—he had the advantage of being able to act out the parts for which he had no words. He could frown, shake his fists, smile, and let expressions of pain or annoyance cross his face.
These were his advantages that I had to give up if I was to write my tales rather than tell them and how often I had cursed my fate.
These were the benefits I had to let go of if I wanted to write my stories instead of just telling them, and how often I had cursed my luck.
How significant words had become to me! At about this time an American woman living in Paris, Miss Gertrude Stein, had published a book called “Tender Buttons” and it had come into my hands. How it had excited me! Here was something purely experimental and dealing in words separated from sense—in the ordinary meaning of the word sense—an approach I was sure the poets must often be compelled to make. Was it an approach that would help me? I decided to try it.
How important words had become to me! Around this time, an American woman living in Paris, Miss Gertrude Stein, published a book called "Tender Buttons," which I got my hands on. It really excited me! Here was something entirely experimental, dealing with words disconnected from meaning—in the usual sense of the word meaning—an approach I was sure poets must often be forced to take. Would this approach help me? I decided to give it a try.
A year or two before the time of which I am now writing an American painter, Mr. Felix Russman, had taken me one day into his workshop to show me his colors. He laid them out on a table before me and then his wife called him out of the room and he stayed for half an hour. It had been one of the most exciting moments of my life. I shifted the [Pg 360] little pans of color about, laid one color against another. I walked away and came near. Suddenly there had flashed into my consciousness, for perhaps the first time in my life, the secret inner world of the painters. Before that time I had wondered often enough why certain paintings, done by the old masters, and hung in our Chicago Art Institute, had so strange an effect upon me. Now I thought I knew. The true painter revealed all of himself in every stroke of his brush. Titian made one feel so utterly the splendor of himself; from Fra Angelico and Sandro Botticelli there came such a deep human tenderness that on some days it fairly brought tears to the eyes; in a most dreadful way and in spite of all his skill Bouguereau gave away his own inner nastiness while Leonardo made one feel all of the grandeur of his mind just as Balzac had made his readers feel the universality and wonder of his mind.
A year or two before the time I am currently writing about, an American painter, Mr. Felix Russman, took me into his studio one day to show me his colors. He spread them out on a table in front of me and then his wife called him out of the room, leaving him gone for half an hour. It was one of the most thrilling moments of my life. I moved the little pans of color around, comparing one color to another. I walked away and came back again. Suddenly, it hit me, perhaps for the first time, the secret inner world of painters. Before this, I often wondered why certain paintings by the old masters, displayed in our Chicago Art Institute, affected me so deeply. Now I thought I understood. The true painter reveals all of himself in every brushstroke. Titian made you feel his complete splendor; from Fra Angelico and Sandro Botticelli, there came such deep human tenderness that it sometimes brought tears to my eyes; in a horrifying way, despite all his skill, Bouguereau exposed his own inner ugliness while Leonardo conveyed the grandeur of his intellect just as Balzac made his readers sense the universality and wonder of his mind.
Very well then, the words used by the tale-teller were as the colors used by the painter. Form was another matter. It grew out of the materials of the tale and the teller’s reaction to them. It was the tale trying to take form that kicked about inside the tale-teller at night when he wanted to sleep.
Very well then, the words used by the storyteller were like the colors used by the painter. Form was something different. It developed from the elements of the story and the storyteller’s response to them. It was the story trying to take shape that stirred within the storyteller at night when he wanted to sleep.
And words were something else. Words were the surfaces, the clothes of the tale. I thought I had begun to get something a little clearer now. I had smiled to myself a little at the sudden realization of how little native American words had been used by American story-writers. When most American writers wanted to be very American they went in for slang. Surely we American scribblers had paid long and hard for the English blood in our veins. The English had got their books into our [Pg 361] schools, their ideas of correct forms of expression were firmly fixed in our minds. Words as commonly used in our writing were in reality an army that marched in a certain array and the generals in command of the army were still English. One saw the words as marching, always just so—in books—and came to think of them so—in books.
And words were something different. Words were the surface, the clothing of the story. I thought I was starting to see something clearer now. I smiled to myself a bit at the sudden realization of how little native American words had been used by American writers. When most American authors wanted to feel very American, they turned to slang. Surely we American writers had paid long and hard for the English blood in our veins. The English had gotten their books into our schools, and their ideas of proper expression were firmly impressed in our minds. Words that were commonly used in our writing were really an army marching in a certain formation, and the generals in command of that army were still English. You could see the words as marching, always just so—in books—and came to think of them that way—in books. [Pg 361]
But when one told a tale to a group of advertising men sitting in a barroom in Chicago or to a group of laborers by a factory door in Indiana one instinctively disbanded the army. There were moments then for what have always been called by our correct writers “unprintable words.” One got now and then a certain effect by a bit of profanity. One dropped instinctively into the vocabulary of the men about, was compelled to do so to get the full effect sought for the tale. Was the tale he was telling not just the tale of a man named Smoky Pete and how he caught his foot in the trap set for himself?—or perhaps one was giving them the Mama Geigans story. The devil. What had the words of such a tale to do with Thackeray or Fielding? Did the men to whom one told the tale not know a dozen Smoky Petes and Mama Geigans? Had one ventured into the classic English models for tale-telling at that moment there would have been a roar. “What the devil! Don’t you go high-toning us!”
But when you told a story to a group of advertising guys hanging out in a bar in Chicago or to some workers by a factory entrance in Indiana, you instinctively relaxed around them. There were times for what the more refined writers would call “unprintable words.” Sometimes, you could create a certain impact with a bit of profanity. You naturally adapted to the language of the people around you; you had to if you wanted to make the story hit home. Wasn’t the story you were sharing just about a guy named Smoky Pete and how he got his foot stuck in his own trap?—or maybe you were telling the Mama Geigans story. Seriously. What did the words in that story have to do with Thackeray or Fielding? Didn’t the people you were telling it to know a dozen Smoky Petes and Mama Geigans? If you had tried to stick to classic English storytelling at that moment, there would have been an uproar. “What the heck! Don’t try to act all fancy with us!”
And it was sure one did not always seek a laugh from his audience. Sometimes one wanted to move the audience, make them squirm with sympathy. Perhaps one wanted to throw an altogether new light on a tale the audience already knew.
And it was true that not everyone always aimed to get a laugh from their audience. Sometimes, you wanted to touch the audience, make them feel uncomfortable with sympathy. Maybe you wanted to shine an entirely new light on a story the audience was already familiar with.
Would the common words of our daily speech in shops and offices do [Pg 362] the trick? Surely the Americans among whom one sat talking had felt everything the Greeks had felt, everything the English felt? Deaths came to them, the tricks of fate assailed their lives. I was certain none of them lived felt or talked as the average American novel made them live feel and talk and as for the plot short stories of the magazines—those bastard children of De Maupassant, Poe and O. Henry—it was certain there were no plot short stories ever lived in any life I had known anything about.
Would the everyday words we use in shops and offices be enough? Surely the Americans we talked to experienced everything the Greeks and the English did, right? They faced death, and fate played tricks on their lives. I was convinced that none of them lived, felt, or talked the way the average American novel suggested they did. And as for the plot-driven short stories in magazines—those awkward offspring of De Maupassant, Poe, and O. Henry—it was clear that no plot-driven short stories had ever existed in any life I had ever known. [Pg 362]
Did it come to this, that Americans worked, made love, settled new western states, arranged their personal affairs, drove their fords, using one language while they read books, wanted perhaps to read books, in quite another language?
Did it really come to this, that Americans worked, made love, settled in new western states, managed their personal lives, drove their Fords, using one language while they read books, and maybe even wanted to read books, in a completely different language?
I had come to Gertrude Stein’s book about which everyone laughed but about which I did not laugh. It excited me as one might grow excited in going into a new and wonderful country where everything is strange—a sort of Lewis and Clark expedition for me. Here were words laid before me as the painter had laid the color pans on the table in my presence. My mind did a kind of jerking flop and after Miss Stein’s book had come into my hands I spent days going about with a tablet of paper in my pocket and making new and strange combinations of words. The result was I thought a new familiarity with the words of my own vocabulary. I became a little conscious where before I had been unconscious. Perhaps it was then I really fell in love with words, wanted to give each word I used every chance to show itself at its best.
I had picked up Gertrude Stein’s book, which everyone laughed at, but I didn’t find it funny. It thrilled me like stepping into a new and amazing country where everything feels unfamiliar—a sort of personal Lewis and Clark adventure. Here were words laid out for me just like a painter lays out their color palette in front of me. My mind did a sort of jolt, and after I got my hands on Miss Stein’s book, I spent days wandering around with a notepad in my pocket, creating new and unusual word combinations. As a result, I felt a new level of familiarity with the words in my vocabulary. I became a bit more aware where I had been oblivious before. Maybe that was when I truly fell in love with words, wanting to give each one I used every opportunity to shine at its best.
It had then not occurred to me that the men I had really come to New [Pg 363] York hoping to see and know, fellows of the schools, men who knew their Europe, knew the history of the arts, who knew a thousand things I could not know, it had never occurred to me that in the end I would find them as frankly puzzled as myself. When I found that out there was a new adjustment to make. It was then only the trick men, the men who worked from the little patent formula they had learned, the critics who could never get English literature out of their heads, who thought they were sure of their grounds? That knowledge was a relief when I found it out but I was a long long time finding it out. It takes a long time to find out one’s own limitations and perhaps a longer time to find out the limitations of one’s critics.
It never occurred to me that the guys I had really come to New [Pg 363] York to see and get to know—those school buddies, men who understood Europe, knew the history of the arts, and were aware of a thousand things I didn't know—would end up being just as confused as I was. When I realized this, I had to adjust my perspective. It seemed like only the tricksters, those who operated on the little formulas they had learned, and the critics who were stuck in their views of English literature actually felt confident in their knowledge. Discovering that was a relief, but it took me a really long time to get there. Figuring out one’s own limitations takes time, and maybe it takes even longer to understand the limitations of one’s critics.
Was there really something new in the air of America? I remember that at about this time someone told me that I was myself something new and how thankful I was to hear it. “Very well,” I said to myself, “if there are certain men launching a new ship from the harbor of New York and if they are willing to take me aboard I’ll sure go.” I was just as willing to be a modern as anything else, was glad to be. It was very sure I was not going to be a successful author and well enough I knew that, not being successful, there would be a great deal of consolation to me in being at least a modern.
Was there really something fresh in the air of America? I remember that around this time, someone told me that I was something new myself, and I was so grateful to hear it. “Alright,” I said to myself, “if some guys are launching a new ship from the harbor of New York and they’re willing to take me along, I’m definitely going.” I was just as eager to be modern as anything else, and I was happy about it. It was clear I wasn’t going to be a successful author, and I knew well enough that, since I wasn’t successful, it would still be quite a comfort to at least be modern.
What I at the moment felt toward all the more deeply cultured men whose acquaintanceship I sought and still in a sense feel toward them was something like what a young mechanic might feel when his boss comes into the shop accompanied by his daughter. The young mechanic is [Pg 364] standing at his lathe and there is grease on his face and hands. The boss’s daughter has never been shown over the shop before and is a little excited by the presence of so many strange men and as she and her father approach the lathe where the young workman stands he does not know whether to appear surly and uncommunicative or bold and a bit impudent. (In his place I, being an American, should probably have winked at the girl and been terribly embarrassed and ashamed later.)
What I felt at that moment toward all the more cultured men I wanted to get to know—and still somewhat feel that way—was similar to what a young mechanic might feel when his boss walks into the shop with his daughter. The young mechanic is [Pg 364] standing at his lathe with grease on his face and hands. The boss’s daughter has never been in the shop before and is a bit excited to be around so many unfamiliar men. As she and her father approach the lathe where the young worker is, he doesn’t know if he should act grumpy and unapproachable or confident and a bit cheeky. (If I were in his shoes, being an American, I probably would have winked at the girl and felt really embarrassed and ashamed later.)
There he stands fumbling about with his fingers and pretending to look out of the window and—the devil!—now the boss has stopped behind his lathe and is attempting to explain something to the daughter, “This is a sprocket post, is it not?” he says to the workman, who is compelled to turn around. “Yes, sir,” he mutters, in embarrassment but his eyes, in just that fraction of a second, have taken a sweeping glance at the daughter.
There he is, awkwardly playing with his fingers and pretending to look out the window, and—oh no!—now the boss has stopped by his lathe and is trying to explain something to the daughter. “This is a sprocket post, right?” he says to the worker, who has to turn around. “Yes, sir,” he mumbles, feeling embarrassed, but in that brief moment, his eyes take a quick look at the daughter.
And now she is gone and the workman is asking himself questions. “If I was a swell now I suppose maybe I’d be invited to their house.” He imagines himself in a dress suit going up a long driveway to the front of a grand house. He is swinging a cane and there on the front steps is the boss’s daughter waiting to receive him. What will he talk to her about? Dare a man speak in such company of the only things he knows? What does he know?
And now she’s gone, and the worker is questioning himself. “If I were wealthy, I guess I’d be invited to their house.” He pictures himself in a tuxedo walking up a long driveway to a fancy house. He’s swinging a cane, and there on the front steps is the boss’s daughter waiting to greet him. What will he talk to her about? Can a man in that situation really talk about the only things he knows? What does he even know?
He knows that Jack Johnson could probably have whipped Jess Willard if he had really tried. There is a woman lives in his rooming house who is unfaithful to her husband. He knows who with. She is going to have a child but the chances are it is not her husband’s child. Often he has [Pg 365] asked himself how she will feel on the night when the child is born and when her husband is so excited and proud.
He knows that Jack Johnson could have probably beaten Jess Willard if he had really tried. There’s a woman living in his rooming house who is cheating on her husband. He knows who she’s with. She’s going to have a baby, but chances are it’s not her husband’s child. Often he has [Pg 365] wondered how she will feel on the night when the baby is born and her husband is so excited and proud.
After all, the young workman knows a good many things of his own sort, but of how many of them can he, dare he, speak with the boss’s daughter whose voice was so soft and whose skin looked so delicate that day when she came into the shop with her father? “Dare I ask her what she thinks the unfaithful wife will be thinking and feeling when the child is born?”
After all, the young worker knows a lot about his own kind of things, but how many of them can he, or would he even dare to, talk about with the boss's daughter whose voice was so gentle and whose skin looked so fragile the day she came into the shop with her father? “Should I ask her what she thinks the unfaithful wife will be feeling and thinking when the baby is born?”
Young workmen have a kind of fear of the thing called culture. Most middle-westerners think of it—in spite of their protestations to the contrary—as in some vague way to be breathed in the air of New York. New Yorkers seem to think of it as to be found in London or Paris. Bankers and manufacturers of the Middle-West hope to get it for their sons by sending them to Yale or Harvard and as there are a good many bankers and manufacturers Yale and Harvard are inclined to be crowded. Mark Twain thought he would find it in Boston—a whole generation of Americans thought that.
Young workers have a kind of fear of what’s called culture. Most people from the Midwest believe it—despite their claims otherwise—can somehow be absorbed from the atmosphere of New York. New Yorkers seem to think it can be found in London or Paris. Bankers and manufacturers from the Midwest hope to secure it for their sons by sending them to Yale or Harvard, and since there are quite a few bankers and manufacturers, Yale and Harvard tend to be pretty crowded. Mark Twain thought he would find it in Boston—a whole generation of Americans believed that.
To the young workman culture is somewhat like a new suit of clothes that does not fit too well. It binds under the arms when one first puts it on.
To the young worker, culture feels a bit like a new suit that doesn't quite fit right. It feels tight under the arms when you first wear it.
[Pg 366]
[Pg 366]
NOTE II
WHEN I lived in Chicago and had first begun to write stories an American critic who had seen some of my work had been very kind about securing the publication of the stories but once, when he was annoyed with me for writing a story he did not like, he wrote me a scolding letter. “You are, after all, nothing but an advertising writer who would like to be something else and can’t make it,” he said and after I had got to New York and had walked about a little looking at the tall arrogant buildings and at the smart alert-looking people in the streets I thought I had better, for the time at least, stay away from the people whose work and whose minds I admired. “They might find out how really little I know,” I said to myself shrewdly.
WHEN I lived in Chicago and had just started writing stories, an American critic who had seen some of my work was very supportive in getting my stories published. However, when he got upset with me for writing a story he didn’t like, he sent me a harsh letter. “You are, after all, nothing but an advertising writer who wishes to be something more and can’t quite achieve it,” he said. Once I got to New York and walked around, looking at the tall, proud buildings and the sharp, active people on the streets, I thought it would be better, at least for a while, to avoid the people whose work and intellect I admired. “They might discover how little I actually know,” I said to myself cleverly.
I was however not too lonely, having plenty of people at whom I could look, to whom I could listen. My brother, who lived in New York, took me to the Salmagundi Club where I saw any number of successful painters and my boyhood friend Mr. John Emerson took me to the Players and Lambs and also, with other men and women I knew, I penetrated into the life of Greenwich Village.
I wasn't too lonely, though, because I had plenty of people to look at and listen to. My brother, who lived in New York, took me to the Salmagundi Club, where I saw a lot of successful painters. My childhood friend, John Emerson, took me to the Players and Lambs, and with other friends I knew, I got to explore the life of Greenwich Village.
How many strings to grasp! How many things I wanted of the city that was, I had no doubt, the artistic and intellectual capital of the country! The city’s wealth did not impress me too much, as I had been [Pg 367] in other wealthy places. One could make money as fast in Chicago as in New York, although it could probably not be spent with quite as much style. What I wanted most was the men who would help me solve certain problems connected with the craft to which I was devoted. Could I find such fellows? Would they do it?
How many opportunities were out there! I can't help but think of all the things I wanted from the city that, without a doubt, was the artistic and intellectual hub of the country! The city's wealth didn’t impress me much, as I had been in other affluent places. You could make money just as quickly in Chicago as in New York, even if it might not be spent quite as stylishly. What I really wanted were the people who could help me tackle some issues related to the craft I was passionate about. Could I find those kinds of people? Would they be willing to assist? [Pg 367]
The bitter truth was that of the actors I saw and heard talk none seemed much interested in the craft of the actor and of the painters the same lack of interest in what seemed to me so essential was apparent, and surely we scribblers were no better. The successful men of the arts talked of the market and little else. Writers even went into bookstores to see what kind of books were selling well in order to know what kind of books to write, actors talked of salaries paid and of getting some part that would bring them into prominence and the painters followed the same bent.
The harsh reality was that none of the actors I saw or heard seemed genuinely interested in the art of acting, and the same lack of passion was obvious among the painters, which I found essential. We writers weren’t any better. The successful people in the arts mostly focused on market trends and not much else. Writers would even visit bookstores to check which books were selling well so they could decide what to write next. Actors discussed salary and how to land a role that would make them famous, and painters followed the same pattern.
Were the successful practitioners of the arts much less decent fellows than the laborers and business men of the Middle West among whom my life had been spent? I was forced to ask myself that question too.
Were the successful artists really any less decent than the hardworking men and women in the Midwest where I’d spent my life? I had to question that too.
[Pg 368]
[Pg 368]
NOTE III
I SAT in a restaurant in New York thinking of my friends George and Marco in Chicago. We had been lads together and I remembered an evening of our young manhood when we all went out to walk together. We had stopped at a bridge and stood leaning over and I remembered that Marco had said something, expressive at the moment of what we had all felt. “The time’ll come, I’ll bet you what you please the time’ll come when I’ll be making my hundred and twenty-five every month,” he had said.
I was sitting in a restaurant in New York, thinking about my friends George and Marco in Chicago. We had grown up together, and I remembered one evening from our youth when we all went out for a walk. We stopped at a bridge and leaned over it, and I recalled that Marco had said something that captured how we were all feeling at that moment. “I bet you anything that the time will come when I’ll be making $125 every month,” he had said.
Well, Marco’s remark had expressed something more than a desire to make money. Later all of us had made money and then when youth was gone we had all tried something else. Marco wrote poetry and George and I wrote stories. None of us knew much of our crafts but we had struggled together with them and in the evenings had sat about talking. What we had all wanted was the leisure money might bring. We had all wanted to go to New York and live among men who knew more of the crafts we were trying to practice than we felt we would ever know.
Well, Marco’s comment signified more than just a desire to make money. Eventually, we all made money, and when our youth faded, we all sought something different. Marco wrote poetry, while George and I wrote stories. We didn’t know much about our crafts, but we struggled together with them and spent evenings talking. What we all wanted was the freedom that money could provide. We all wanted to go to New York and live among people who understood the crafts we were trying to master far more than we felt we ever would.
And now I had come to New York and was sitting I in a restaurant where the more successful of the practitioners of the arts congregated. What did I want? I wanted to hear men of my own craft, who loved the craft, [Pg 369] speak of it. I remembered how as a boy in mid-western towns before the factories came in so thick the carpenters, wheelwrights, harness-makers and other craftsmen often gathered about to speak of their work and how I loved to be among them at such times. The factories had brushed such fellows aside. Had the same thing happened in the more delicate crafts? Were the great publishing houses of the city and the magazines but factories and were the writers and picture makers who worked for them but factory hands now?
And now I was in New York, sitting in a restaurant where the more successful artists gathered. What did I want? I wanted to hear fellow creators who were passionate about their craft talk about it. I recalled how, as a kid in small Midwestern towns before factories took over, carpenters, wheelwrights, harness-makers, and other craftsmen would often gather to discuss their work, and I loved being around them during those times. The factories had pushed those guys aside. Had the same thing happened to the more delicate crafts? Were the big publishing houses in the city and the magazines just factories now, with the writers and artists who worked for them being nothing more than factory workers? [Pg 369]
If that had happened I thought I understood the men among whom I had now come. The older craftsmen had thought little on the subject of wages and had never talked on the subject when they gathered in groups in the evenings but the factory hands among whom I later worked had talked of little else. They had talked of how much money might be made and had boasted interminably of their potency in sex. Were the practitioners of the more delicate crafts becoming like them?
If that had happened, I thought I understood the men I had just come around. The older craftsmen didn’t think much about wages and never discussed it when they gathered in groups at night, but the factory workers I worked with later talked about nothing else. They went on and on about how much money they could make and bragged endlessly about their sexual prowess. Were the people in the more delicate crafts starting to act like them?
In the New York restaurant was a room filled with people, all in some way practitioners of the arts. Near me at a table sat three men and two women. They were talking in rather loud tones and seemed conscious that everything they said was of importance. One had a queer sense of their separateness from each other. Why, when one of them spoke, did he not look at his fellows? Instead he glanced about the room, as though saying to himself, “Is anyone looking at me?”
In the New York restaurant, there was a room full of people, all of whom were some kind of artists. At a nearby table sat three men and two women. They were talking loudly and seemed aware that everything they said mattered. There was an odd feeling of distance among them. Why, when one of them spoke, did he not make eye contact with the others? Instead, he looked around the room as if asking himself, “Is anyone watching me?”
And now one of these men arose and walked across the room. There was something strange about his walk. I was puzzled and then the truth [Pg 370] came to me. All the men and women in the room were obviously aware of what they thought of as their own importance. No man spoke naturally, walked naturally.
And now one of these guys stood up and walked across the room. There was something odd about his walk. I was confused, and then the truth hit me. Everyone in the room, both men and women, clearly recognized what they thought was their own significance. No one spoke or walked in a natural way.
The man who had got up from the table to go speak to someone at another table did not want really to speak to him. He wanted to walk across the room for the same reason that I am told, nowadays, it is almost impossible to do anything with actors as they all want to get into one spot on the stage—upstage where the light is the clearest.
The man who got up from the table to talk to someone at another table didn't actually want to talk to him. He just wanted to walk across the room for the same reason that nowadays, it's almost impossible to do anything with actors because they all want to be in one spot on stage—upstage where the light is brightest.
What a ghastly separation from life! I sat in the New York restaurant fully aware that what was true of the men and women about me was true also of myself. The people in the restaurant, the actors, painters and writers, had made themselves what the public thought it wanted from its artists, and had been well paid for doing so. What I felt in New York I might have felt with even more terrible certainty in Hollywood.
What a terrible separation from life! I sat in the New York restaurant fully aware that what was true for the men and women around me was also true for myself. The people in the restaurant—actors, painters, and writers—had become what the public thought it wanted from its artists, and they had been well compensated for doing so. What I felt in New York I might have felt with even stronger certainty in Hollywood.
I fled from the restaurant and at a street corner stopped and laughed at myself. I remembered that at the moment I had on a pair of socks and a neck-scarf, either of which might have been seen for a mile. “At any rate you’re not such a blushing violet yourself,” I said, grinning with myself at myself.
I ran out of the restaurant and stopped at a street corner to laugh at myself. I realized that I was wearing a pair of socks and a neck scarf, both of which could be spotted from a distance. "Anyway, you’re not exactly a shy flower either," I said, grinning at myself.
[Pg 371]
[Pg 371]
NOTE IV
IT was time surely for me to review myself. I wanted to know just what I was doing in New York, what I was up to—if I could find out. I had time now to ask myself a lot of questions and I enjoyed doing so. Mornings to walk about, afternoons to go to the parks, sit with people or go to see paintings, evenings of my own. No advertisements to write, for a time anyway. “Crescent Soap Lightens the Day’s Work. Tangletoes Catches the Flies,” etc. For a man living as I lived a few hundred dollars would go far. For the American there are always plenty of books to be had without cost and one may see what the more successful painters are doing by simply walking in at the door of a museum or a gallery. The work of the more unsuccessful ones worth seeing Alfred Stieglitz will show you or tell you about. Cigarettes do not cost very much and there are happy hours to be spent sitting by the window of a room in a side street hearing what people have to say as they walk past. All the women of my street spent the time at the same thing. There was a fat old woman across the way who never left the window from morning till night. I wondered if she was planning to write a novel and was thinking about the characters, dreaming of them, making up scenes and situations in which they were to play a part.
It was definitely time for me to reflect on myself. I wanted to understand what I was doing in New York, what my purpose was—if I could figure it out. I had time now to ask myself a lot of questions, and I enjoyed it. Mornings to stroll around, afternoons to visit parks, hang out with people or check out some art, and evenings to myself. No ads to write for a while, at least. “Crescent Soap Lightens the Day’s Work. Tangletoes Catches the Flies,” and so on. For someone living my way, a few hundred bucks would go a long way. In America, there are always plenty of free books available, and you can see what the more successful artists are up to just by walking into a museum or gallery. The works of the less successful artists worth seeing can be shown or talked about by Alfred Stieglitz. Cigarettes aren't too expensive, and there are enjoyable hours to be spent sitting by the window of a room on a side street, eavesdropping on what people say as they pass by. All the women on my street spent their time doing the same thing. There was a plump old woman across the way who never left her window from morning till night. I wondered if she was planning to write a novel and was thinking about the characters, dreaming about them, creating scenes and situations for them to be in.
[Pg 372]
[Pg 372]
If my life in the past had been split into two parts it need be that no longer. I have taken a resolution. In the future I would write no more advertisements. If I became broke I would become a beggar and sit with a beggar bowl in Fifth Avenue. Even the police are sentimental enough not to kick an author out. I would not sit swearing at the book publishers, the magazine editors or the public, that I was not rich. I had not tried to accommodate myself to them—why should they bother about me? I sat dreaming of what might be the takings of an author with a beggar bowl in his lap sitting in front of the Public Library on Fifth Avenue. The press of people would prevent the literarily inclined ladies from stopping to discuss books or to tell the author that his philosophy of life was all wrong. Also they could not accuse him of personal immorality. A beggar could not be immoral. He was at once above and below immorality. And the takings! There would be much good silver and I loved silver. If I should become blind my fortune would be made at last. A blind author sitting begging before the Public Library in the city of New York! Who dare say there was not glorious opportunity left in our country?
If my life in the past had been divided into two parts, that doesn't need to be the case anymore. I've made a decision. From now on, I won't write any more ads. If I end up broke, I’ll just become a beggar and sit with a begging bowl on Fifth Avenue. Even the cops are sentimental enough not to kick out an author. I won’t sit there complaining about book publishers, magazine editors, or the public for not making me rich. I hadn’t tried to fit in with them—so why should they care about me? I found myself daydreaming about how much an author with a begging bowl on his lap might make sitting in front of the Public Library on Fifth Avenue. The crowd would keep the book-loving ladies from stopping to chat about books or tell the author that his view on life was totally wrong. Plus, they couldn’t accuse him of being morally corrupt. A beggar can’t be immoral. He exists above and below morality at the same time. And the earnings! There would be plenty of good silver, and I love silver. If I became blind, I’d finally strike it rich. A blind author begging in front of the Public Library in New York City! Who would dare say there aren’t amazing opportunities left in our country?
Had I less courage than my father? Perhaps I had. He also might have thought of so noble a plan but in my place he might also have put it into execution at once. Ladies often came to the Public Library to meet their lovers. Quarrels started there. One would learn much of life by sitting as I have suggested. No man or woman would hesitate to speak boldly before a beggar. The stones would be cold but perhaps one could have a cushion.
Had I less courage than my dad? Maybe I did. He might have thought of such a noble plan, but he probably would have put it into action right away if he were in my shoes. Women often visited the Public Library to meet their lovers. Fights broke out there. You could learn a lot about life by sitting as I suggested. No one would think twice about speaking openly in front of a beggar. The stones might be cold, but maybe there’d be a cushion.
[Pg 373]
[Pg 373]
NOTE V
WHEN I went on my pilgrimage to New York I was not a young man any more. The gray had begun to show in my hair. On the very day after my arrival I chanced to pick up a novel of Turgenev’s, “A House of Gentlefolk,” and saw how that he had made his hero Levretsky an old man, through with life, at forty-five.
WHEN I went on my journey to New York, I wasn't young anymore. The gray was starting to show in my hair. The very day after I arrived, I happened to pick up a novel by Turgenev, “A House of Gentlefolk,” and saw how he had made his main character Levretsky an old man, worn out by life, at forty-five.
Pretty rough on an American who had not dared think of trying to do what he wanted until he was approaching that age. No American dared think of doing anything he enjoyed until youth was gone. Youth must be given to money making among us and leisure was a sin. A short time after the period of which I am now writing I was given the Dial prize for literature, the intent of which was that it was to be given to encourage some young man just starting out on the hard road of literary effort. It had been offered to me and I wanted it but thought seriously of investing in hair dye before going to call on the editors.
Pretty tough on an American who had never dared to think about doing what he wanted until he was getting older. No American dared to think about enjoying anything until youth was behind them. In our society, youth had to be spent on making money, while leisure was considered a sin. Shortly after the time I’m writing about, I received the Dial prize for literature, which was meant to encourage a young man just starting out on the challenging path of writing. It had been offered to me, and I wanted it, but I seriously considered buying hair dye before going to meet the editors.
So little work of any account done! Mornings coming, noons, nights! Many nights of lying awake in my bed in some rooming house in the city thinking!
So little meaningful work gets done! Mornings come and go, then it’s noon, and then night! Many nights spent lying awake in my bed in some apartment in the city, just thinking!
I had a penchant for taking my own life rather seriously. Americans in general pretended their own lives did not matter. They were continually talking of devoting their lives to business, to some reform, to their [Pg 374] children, to the public. I had been called a modern and perhaps only deserved the title inasmuch as I was a born questioner. I did not take such words people were always saying too seriously. Often enough I used to lie on my bed in my room and on moonlight nights I lit a cigarette and spent some time looking at myself. I lifted up my legs, one after the other, and rejoiced at the thought that they might yet take me into many strange places. Then I lifted my arms and looked long and earnestly at my hands. Why had they not served me better? Why would they not serve me better? It was easy enough to put a pen into the fingers. I myself was perfectly willing to be a great author. Why would not the pen slide more easily and gracefully over the paper? What sentences I wanted to write, what paragraphs, what pages! If reading Miss Stein had given me a new sense of my own limited vocabulary, had made me feel words as more living things, if seeing the work of many of the modern painters had given me a new feeling for form and color, why would my own hands not become better servants to me?
I took the idea of my own life very seriously. Most Americans acted like their lives didn’t really matter. They constantly talked about dedicating themselves to their jobs, some cause, their kids, or society. I had been labeled a modern thinker, and maybe that was true since I was constantly questioning things. I didn’t take the things people said too seriously. Often, I’d lie on my bed in my room, and on nights with a full moon, I’d light a cigarette and spend some time reflecting on myself. I would lift my legs, one at a time, and feel happy thinking they might take me to many exciting places. Then I’d raise my arms and examine my hands carefully. Why hadn’t they done better for me? Why wouldn’t they? It was easy enough to grip a pen. I would love to be a great author. So why didn’t the pen glide more smoothly and beautifully across the page? I had so many sentences to write, so many paragraphs, so many pages! If reading Miss Stein had opened my eyes to my own limited vocabulary and made me feel words as living things, and if seeing the works of many modern artists had given me a fresh appreciation for form and color, then why couldn’t my own hands become better at serving me?
On some nights, as I lay thus, the noise of the great city to which I had come growing fainter as the night wore on, I had many strange thoughts, brought into my head by reading the works of such men as Mr. Van Wyck Brooks or by talking with such men as my friends Alfred Stieglitz and Paul Rosenfeld. My own hands had not served me very well. Nothing they had done with words had satisfied me. There was not finesse enough in my fingers. All sorts of thoughts and emotions came to me that would not creep down my arms and out through my fingers [Pg 375] upon the paper. How much was I to blame for that? How much could fairly be blamed to the civilization in which I had lived? I presume I wanted very much to blame something other than myself if I could.
On some nights, as I lay there, the noise of the big city I had come to grew fainter as the night went on, and I had many strange thoughts inspired by reading the works of people like Mr. Van Wyck Brooks or by talking with friends like Alfred Stieglitz and Paul Rosenfeld. My own hands hadn’t served me very well. Nothing I had done with words had satisfied me. There wasn't enough skill in my fingers. All sorts of thoughts and feelings came to me that wouldn’t flow down my arms and out through my fingers [Pg 375] onto the paper. How much was I to blame for that? How much could reasonably be blamed on the civilization I had lived in? I suppose I really wanted to blame something other than myself if I could.
The thoughts that came were something like this: “Suppose,” I suggested to myself, “that the giving of itself by an entire generation to mechanical things were really making all men impotent. There was a passion for size among almost all the men I had known. Almost every man I had known had wanted a bigger house, a bigger factory, a faster automobile than his fellows. I had myself run an automobile and doing so had given me a strange sense of vicarious power, mingled with a kind of shame too. I pressed my foot upon a little button on the floor of the car and it shot forward. There was a feeling that did not really belong to me, that I had in some way stolen. I was rushing along a road or through a street and carrying five or six other people with me and, in spite of myself, felt rather grand doing it. Was that because I was in reality so ineffectual in myself? Did so many of my fellow writers want great sales for their books because, feeling as I did then the ineffectually of their own hands to do good work, they wanted to be convinced from the outside? Was the desire all modern peoples had for a greater navy, a greater army, taller public buildings, but a sign of growing impotence? Was there a growing race of people in the world who had no use for their hands and were the hands paying them back by becoming ineffectual? Was the Modern after all but the man who had begun faintly to realize what I was then realizing and were all his [Pg 376] efforts but at bottom the attempt to get his hands back on the ends of his arms? ‘It may be that all the men of our age can at best but act as fertilizer,’ Paul Rosenfeld had said to me. Was what I was then thinking in reality what he had meant?”
The thoughts that came were something like this: “What if,” I thought to myself, “the way an entire generation is focused on mechanical things is really making everyone powerless? There was a desire for size among almost every man I had known. Nearly every man I met wanted a bigger house, a bigger factory, a faster car than his peers. I had driven a car myself, and doing so gave me a strange feeling of borrowed power, mixed with a bit of shame. I pressed a little button on the floor of the car and it shot forward. There was a sensation that didn’t actually belong to me, that I had somehow taken. I was speeding down a road or through a street with five or six other people in tow and, despite myself, felt rather impressive doing it. Was it because I actually felt so ineffective on my own? Did many of my fellow writers seek huge sales for their books because, feeling as I did then about their own inability to produce good work, they wanted outside validation? Was the desire shared by modern societies for a stronger navy, a larger army, and taller public buildings just a sign of growing powerlessness? Was there a rising group of people in the world who had no real use for their hands, and were those hands retaliating by becoming ineffective? Was the Modern simply someone who had begun to realize, albeit faintly, what I was realizing then, and were all his efforts essentially an attempt to regain control over his own hands? 'It may be that all the men of our age can at best act as fertilizer,' Paul Rosenfeld had said to me. Was what I was thinking at that moment actually what he meant?”
I am trying to give as closely as I can a transcript of some of my own thoughts as I lay on my bed in a rooming house in the city of New York and after I had walked about and had talked a little with some of the men I admired. I was thinking of old workers in the time of the crafts and of the new workers I had personally known in the time of the factories. I was thinking of myself and my own ineffectualness. Perhaps I was but trying to make excuses for myself. Most artists spend a large part of their time doing that. In the factories so many of the workers spent so large a part of their time boasting of their sexual effectiveness. Was that because they felt themselves every year growing more and more ineffectual as men? Were modern women going more and more toward man’s life and man’s attitude toward life because they were becoming all the time less and less able to be women? For two or three hundred years the western peoples had been in the grip of a thing called Puritanism. Mr. Brooks and Mr. Waldo Frank, in two books published at about that time, had declared that industrialism was a natural outgrowth of Puritanism, that having renounced life for themselves the Puritans were determined to kill life in others.
I’m trying to capture a transcript of some of my thoughts as I lay on my bed in a boarding house in New York City, after I had walked around and chatted a bit with some of the men I looked up to. I was thinking about the old workers from the days of craftsmanship and the new workers I had known during the factory era. I was reflecting on myself and my own lack of effectiveness. Maybe I was just making excuses for myself. Most artists spend a good chunk of their time doing that. In the factories, many workers spent a lot of their time bragging about their sexual prowess. Was that because they felt themselves becoming more and more ineffective as men every year? Were modern women moving increasingly toward men’s lives and attitudes because they were becoming less and less able to embrace being women? For two or three hundred years, Western societies had been under the influence of something called Puritanism. Mr. Brooks and Mr. Waldo Frank, in two books published around that time, claimed that industrialism was a natural result of Puritanism, suggesting that after renouncing life for themselves, the Puritans were determined to stifle life in others.
I had definite reasons for asking myself many of the questions that came to me as I lay in my bed at night. I had already published several stories and, for some reason I had not clearly understood, many people [Pg 377] in reading my stories had been made angry by them. Many abusive letters had been written me. I had been called a pervert, a thoroughly nasty man.
I had clear reasons for questioning myself about the thoughts that came to me as I lay in bed at night. I had already published several stories, and for reasons I didn't quite understand, many people who read them were angered by them. I received a lot of harsh letters. I was labeled a pervert, a truly awful person.
Was I that? I thought if I was I had better find out. My own hands looked all right to me as I lay on my bed looking at them in the moonlight. Were they unclean hands? There had been a few times, for brief periods only, when they had seemed to me to serve my purpose. I had felt something deeply, been quite impersonally absorbed in something in the life about me and my hands had of a sudden come to life. They had arranged words on paper I thought very skillfully. How clean I had felt during just those moments! It was the feeling I had always been seeking. At last, in a crippled way to be sure but after a fashion, my whole being had become a quite impersonal thing, expressing itself on paper through written words. The life about me seemed to have become my life. I sang as I worked, as in my boyhood I had often seen old craftsmen sing and as I had never heard men sing in the factories.
Was I really that person? I thought if I was, I better find out. My hands looked fine to me as I lay on my bed, looking at them in the moonlight. Were they dirty hands? There had been a few times, only briefly, when they seemed to serve my purpose. I felt something deeply; I was completely absorbed in something about the life around me, and suddenly my hands came to life. They had arranged words on paper in a way I thought was very skillful. How clean I felt during those moments! It was the feeling I had always been searching for. Finally, in a somewhat limited way, my entire being became a completely impersonal thing, expressing itself on paper through written words. The life around me seemed to have become my life. I sang as I worked, just like I often saw old craftsmen do in my childhood, and unlike anything I had ever heard from men singing in the factories.
And for what I had written at such times I had been called unclean by men and women who had never known me, could have had no personal reasons for thinking me unclean. Was I unclean? Were the hands that, for such brief periods of my life, had really served me, had they been unclean at such moments of service?
And for what I had written during those times, I was called unclean by people who didn’t know me and had no personal reasons to think that way. Was I unclean? Were the hands that, for such short periods of my life, had truly helped me, really unclean during those moments of service?
Other thoughts came. Even my friend Paul Rosenfeld had called me “the Phallic Chekhov.” Had I a sex obsession? Was I a goner?
Other thoughts came. Even my friend Paul Rosenfeld had called me “the Phallic Chekhov.” Did I have a sex obsession? Was I doomed?
Another American, Mr. Henry Adams, had evidently been as puzzled as [Pg 378] I was at that moment although I am sure he would never have been so undignified as to have written, as I am doing here, of himself as lying on a bed in a New York rooming house and putting his own hands up into the moonlight to stare at them.
Another American, Mr. Henry Adams, seemed to be just as confused as I was at that moment, although I’m sure he would never have been so undignified as to write, as I am doing here, about himself lying on a bed in a New York rooming house, looking at his hands in the moonlight. [Pg 378]
However he had been equally puzzled. “Singularly enough,” he had said in his book, “The Education of Henry Adams,” “singularly enough, not one of Adams’ many schools of education has ever drawn his attention to the opening lines of Lucretius, though they were perhaps the finest in all Latin literature, where the poet invoked Venus exactly as Dante invoked the Virgin:”
However, he had been just as confused. “Interestingly enough,” he wrote in his book, “The Education of Henry Adams,” “interestingly enough, not one of Adams' many educational institutions ever focused on the opening lines of Lucretius, even though they might be the finest in all of Latin literature, where the poet called upon Venus just like Dante called upon the Virgin:”
‘Quae, quoniam rerum naturam Sola gubernas.’
‘You, who alone govern the nature of things.’
“The Venus of Epicurean philosophy survived in the Virgin of the Schools.”
“The Venus of Epicurean philosophy lived on in the Virgin of the Schools.”
“All this was to American thought as though it had never existed. The true American knew something of the facts, but nothing of the feelings; he read the letter, but he never felt the law. Before this historic chasm, a mind like that of Adams felt itself helpless; he turned from the Virgin to the dynamo as though he were a Branly coherer. On one side, at the Louvre and at Chartres, as he knew by the record of work actually done and still before his eyes, was the highest energy ever known to men, the creator of four-fifths of his noblest art, [Pg 379] exercising vastly more attraction over the human mind than all the steam engines and dynamos ever dreamed of; and yet this energy was unknown to the American mind. An American Virgin would never dare command; an American Venus would never dare exist.”
“All of this was to American thought as if it had never existed. The true American knew some of the facts, but nothing of the feelings; he read the letter, but he never felt the law. Before this historic gap, a mind like Adams’s felt helpless; he turned from the Virgin to the dynamo as if he were a Branly coherer. On one side, at the Louvre and at Chartres, as he understood from the record of work that had been done and still lay before him, was the highest energy ever known to humankind, the creator of four-fifths of his best art, exercising far more attraction over the human mind than all the steam engines and dynamos ever imagined; and yet this energy was unknown to the American mind. An American Virgin would never dare command; an American Venus would never dare exist.”
[Pg 380]
[Pg 380]
NOTE VI
IF Mr. Adams had not spent his time as I was doing, lying on a bed and looking at his own hands, he had at least spent his time looking about. “An American Virgin would never dare command; an American Venus would never dare exist,” he had said and it was an accusation that an American could neither love nor worship.
IF Mr. Adams hadn’t spent his time like I was, lying on a bed and examining his own hands, he at least occupied himself by observing his surroundings. “An American Virgin would never dare to command; an American Venus would never dare to exist,” he had said, and it was an accusation that an American could neither love nor worship.
At any rate I was a man of the Middle West. I was not a New Englander. For my own people, as I had known them, it was absurd to say they had neither love nor reverence. Never a boy or man I had known at all intimately but that had both in him. We had simply been cheated. Our Virgins and Venuses had to be worshiped under the bush. What nights I had spent mooning about with middle-western boys, with hungry girls too. Were we but trying to refute the older men of New England who had got such a grip on our American intellectual life, the Emersons, Hawthornes and Longfellows? It was perhaps true to say of the intellectual sons of these men that a Virgin would never dare command, that a Venus would never dare exist. I knew little of New England men in the flesh but it was not necessarily true of us, out in my country. Of that I was pretty sure.
At any rate, I was a man from the Midwest. I wasn't from New England. For my people, as I had known them, it was ridiculous to say they had no love or respect. Every boy or man I had really known had both qualities. We had just been deceived. Our Virgins and Venuses had to be honored in secret. I spent countless nights daydreaming with Midwest boys and eager girls too. Were we just trying to prove the older New England men wrong, like Emerson, Hawthorne, and Longfellow, who had such a strong hold on American intellectual life? It might be fair to say that the intellectual descendants of these men would never dare command a Virgin or let a Venus exist. I didn’t know much about New England men personally, but that wasn't necessarily true for us out in my part of the country. I felt pretty confident about that.
As for my own hands I continued looking at them. Questions kept coming. I was myself no longer young. Having made a few bicycles in factories, [Pg 381] having written some thousands of rather senseless advertisements, having rubbed affectionately the legs of a few race horses, having tried blunderingly to love a few women and having written a few novels that did not satisfy me or anyone else, having done these few things, could I begin now to think of myself as tired out and done for? Because my own hands had for the most part served me so badly could I let them lie beside me in idleness?
As I kept looking at my own hands, more questions kept coming to me. I was no longer young. I had made a few bicycles in factories, written thousands of pretty meaningless ads, affectionately rubbed the legs of a few racehorses, awkwardly tried to love a few women, and written a few novels that didn’t satisfy me or anyone else. After doing all these things, could I really start to think of myself as tired and finished? Just because my hands had mostly let me down, could I let them rest idly beside me? [Pg 381]
I did not dare make such a surrender, nor did I dare dodge the issue with myself by going off into that phase of New York life I had already come to dislike, that phase of life which allows a man to employ his hands merely in writing smart and self-satisfying words regarding the failures of other men. In reality I was not trying to look at other men’s lives just then and as for other men’s work—it meant something to me when it taught me something. I was a middle-westerner who had come East to school if I could find the school.
I couldn't bring myself to give in like that, nor could I avoid the issue within myself by diving back into that part of New York life that I had already grown to dislike, the part that lets a man just use his hands to write clever, self-satisfying words about other people's failures. Honestly, I wasn't focused on other people's lives at that moment, and when it came to their work, it only mattered to me if it taught me something. I was a Midwesterner who had come East looking for education if I could find it.
I wanted back the hands that had been taken from me if I could get them back. Mr. Stark Young had talked to me one day of what thinking might be and his words kept ringing in my ears. Such words as he had said to me always excited like music or painting. He was a man who had been a professor in colleges and knew what was conventionally called thinking and he had said that thinking meant nothing at all unless it was done with the whole body—not merely with the head. I remember that one night I got out of bed and went to my window. I had a room far over on Twenty-second Street, near the Hudson River, and often, late at [Pg 382] night, sailors from the ships lying in the river came along my street. They had been drinking, seeing the girls, having a time, and were now going back to the ships to sail away over the world. One of them, a very drunken sailor who had to stop every few steps and lean against a building, sang in a hoarse throaty voice:
I wanted to get back the hands that had been taken from me if that was possible. Mr. Stark Young had talked to me one day about what thinking could be, and his words kept echoing in my mind. The things he said always stirred something in me like music or art. He had been a professor at colleges and understood what people typically referred to as thinking, and he stated that thinking didn’t mean anything unless it involved the whole body—not just the mind. I remember one night getting out of bed and going to my window. I had a room way over on Twenty-second Street, near the Hudson River, and often, late at night, sailors from the ships anchored in the river walked down my street. They had been drinking, enjoying the company of women, and were now heading back to their ships to set sail around the world. One of them, a very drunk sailor who had to pause every few steps to lean against a building, sang out in a rough, raspy voice:
I looked at my own hands lying on the window sill in the moonlight and I dare say had anyone seen me at that moment he might have decided I had gone quite insane. I talked to my own hands, made them promises, pleaded with them, “I shall cover you with golden rings. You shall be bathed in perfumes.”
I stared at my hands resting on the windowsill in the moonlight, and I bet if anyone had seen me at that moment, they would think I had lost my mind. I spoke to my hands, made them promises, and begged them, “I’ll adorn you with golden rings. You’ll be soaked in perfumes.”
Perhaps there was an effort to be made I had not the courage or strength to make. When it came to tale-telling there were certain tales that fairly told themselves, but there were others, more fascinating, that needed a great deal of understanding, of myself first and then of others.
Perhaps there was an effort to be made that I didn’t have the courage or strength to attempt. When it came to storytelling, some tales told themselves easily, but there were others, more intriguing, that required a lot of understanding—first of myself and then of others.
[Pg 383]
[Pg 383]
NOTE VII
AND so there I was, an American rapidly approaching middle life, sitting in my room over in west Twenty-second Street at night after a day spent listening to the talk of the new men and trying with all my might to be one of the new men myself. Below me in the street the common life of people went on but I tried to put it away from me for the time, was having too good a time thinking of myself to think much of ordinary people. It is a mood that has appeared and reappeared in me at various times and I am trying to clear it out of my system by writing this book. When I have done that I hope to shut up on the subject for keeps. In my book I have had something to say of my father, emphasizing the showman side of his nature. I have perhaps lied now and then regarding the facts of his life but have not lied about the essence of it.
AND so there I was, an American quickly nearing middle age, sitting in my room on West Twenty-second Street at night after spending the day listening to the talk of the new guys and trying my hardest to be one of them myself. Below me, the everyday life of people continued on, but I tried to push that away for the moment, having too much fun thinking about myself to focus much on ordinary people. This is a mood that has come and gone in me at different times, and I'm trying to rid myself of it by writing this book. Once I've done that, I hope to finally put the topic to rest. In my book, I’ve shared some thoughts about my father, highlighting the showman side of his character. I might have stretched the truth a bit here and there regarding the facts of his life, but I haven't lied about the essence of it.
He was a man who loved a parade, bands playing in streets and himself in a gaudy uniform somewhere up near the head of the procession and I have myself had a pretty hard time not making a parade out of my own life.
He was a guy who loved a parade, with bands playing in the streets and himself in a flashy uniform somewhere near the front of the procession, and I have had a pretty tough time not turning my own life into a parade.
Some time after the period of which I am now writing, my friend Mr. Paul Rosenfeld was with me in London stopping at the same hotel and one day I got away from him and when he wasn’t watching wandered into a [Pg 384] gents’ furnishing store. When he came into the hotel later I took him to my room and displayed before him the things I had bought. He almost wept but there was little he could do. “Don’t,” he said. “Come out of the room. Promise me you won’t wear these things until you get out again to Chicago.”
Some time after the period I'm writing about, my friend Mr. Paul Rosenfeld was with me in London at the same hotel. One day, I managed to slip away from him without him noticing and wandered into a [Pg 384] men's clothing store. Later, when he came back to the hotel, I took him to my room and showed him what I had bought. He was almost in tears, but there wasn't much he could do. "Don't," he said. "Come out of the room. Promise me you won’t wear these things until you’re back in Chicago."
I was in New York and was the son of my father. The New Movement in the Arts was under way. If it was going to be a parade I wanted, ached, to be in it. Was I but trying to put myself over to the literary world as formerly I had been employed to put over automobile tires to the public?
I was in New York and was my father's son. The New Movement in the Arts was happening. If there was going to be a parade, I wanted, no, I craved to be a part of it. Was I just trying to promote myself to the literary world like I used to promote automobile tires to the public?
It was a question I was compelled to keep asking myself as it had something to do with the ineffectualness of my own hands lying before me on the window sill. I kept thinking of middle-western men like Dreiser, Masters, Sandburg and the others. There was something sincere and fine about them. Perhaps they had not worried, as I seemed to be doing, about the whole question of whether they belonged to the New Movement or not. I thought of them as somewhere out in the Middle West quietly at work, trying to understand the life about them, trying to express it in their work as best they could. How many other men were there in towns and cities of that great middle-western empire—my own land—younger men coming along. I had been unable to make my own beginning until most of the stronger years of my own life had passed. Perhaps I could not have begun at all but for them and perhaps, because of them, other men could now begin ten years younger than myself.
It was a question I kept asking myself because it had to do with the uselessness of my own hands resting on the windowsill. I kept thinking about midwestern men like Dreiser, Masters, Sandburg, and the others. There was something genuine and admirable about them. Maybe they didn’t worry, as I seemed to, about whether they belonged to the New Movement or not. I pictured them somewhere in the Midwest, quietly working, trying to understand the life around them and express it in their art as best as they could. How many other men were there in the towns and cities of that vast midwestern region—my own homeland—young men coming up? I hadn’t been able to start my own journey until most of the stronger years of my life had passed. Maybe I couldn’t have started at all if it weren’t for them, and perhaps because of them, other men could now begin ten years younger than me.
[Pg 385]
[Pg 385]
“The eastern men, among whom I had now come, were perhaps right in demanding something more than courage from American artists,” I began telling myself. It was apparent there were two steps necessary and it might well be that we middle-western men had taken but one step. One had first of all to face one’s materials, accept fully the life about, quit running off in fancy to India, to England, to the South Seas. We Americans had to begin to stay, in spirit at least, at home. We had to accept our materials, face our materials.
“The eastern men, among whom I had now arrived, were probably justified in expecting more than just courage from American artists,” I started telling myself. It was clear that two steps were needed, and it might be that we midwesterners had only taken one. First, we needed to confront our materials, fully accept the life around us, and stop escaping in our imaginations to India, England, or the South Seas. We Americans had to start to remain, at least in spirit, at home. We had to embrace our materials and confront them.
There was one thing, but there was something else too. We had to begin to face the possibilities of the surfaces of our pages.
There was one thing, but there was also something else. We had to start to confront the possibilities of the surfaces of our pages.
Ah, here was something very difficult and delicate indeed! Was I right after all in sitting in the darkness of my room and looking at my own hands, pleading with my own hands? Had I really come to New York—not to find out and digest abstract thoughts about American life but to find there the men who would direct me more truly to the training of my own hands for my task?
Ah, this was something really challenging and sensitive! Was I correct after all to sit in the dark of my room, staring at my own hands, begging them for guidance? Had I truly come to New York—not to explore and understand abstract ideas about American life but to find the people who would better guide me in training my hands for my work?
In the days of the old crafts men became apprenticed craftsmen at fifteen. Had the men of the new day to live nearly three times that long before they found out they need go looking for the masters?
In the past, men started their apprenticeships as craftsmen at fifteen. Do the men of today really have to wait almost three times as long before they realize they need to seek out the masters?
[Pg 386]
[Pg 386]
NOTE VIII
I WAS living in a rooming house in a side street in New York and had spent more years of my life than I cared to think about in just such places. When I first began writing I used to read a great deal, in George Moore and others, of writers, painters, poets and the like sitting in cafés. That however happened in Paris, not in New York or Chicago. Everyone has read about it. You know how they do. In the evening one by one they come in at the door of the café. On the arm of the painter there may chance to be a beautiful grisette. The writers are less fortunate with the ladies and are glad to sit in silence listening to the talk. And how brilliant the talk! Such things are said! There is always an old wit, someone in the manner of Whistler or Degas. The old dog sits at a table keeping everything in order. I remember that two or three men I knew in New York tried something of the sort but did not quite pull it off. Let someone get a little “hifalutin’”—some scribbler, let us say. Suppose he sighs and says “The beautiful must remain the unattainable,” or something like that. Or let some other scribbler go off on a long solemn pronouncement about government, “All government should be done away with. It’s nonsense.” Bang! The Jimmy Whistler or the Degas of the café has shot him right [Pg 387] between the eyes. There was a sense in which Miss Jane Heap of The Little Review supplied the need of such a one in New York, but she and Miss Margaret Anderson could not cover the whole field. That was impossible.
I was living in a rooming house on a side street in New York and had spent more years of my life than I wanted to think about in places like that. When I first started writing, I used to read a lot about writers, painters, and poets hanging out in cafés, mostly from George Moore and others. But that happened in Paris, not in New York or Chicago. Everyone has heard about it. You know how it goes. In the evenings, they come in one by one through the café door. The painter might have a beautiful young woman on his arm. The writers aren’t as lucky with the ladies and are happy to sit quietly, listening to the conversation. And what brilliant conversation! They say such amazing things! There’s usually an old witty guy, someone like Whistler or Degas. The old man sits at a table, keeping everything organized. I remember that a couple of guys I knew in New York tried to do something similar, but it didn’t quite work. Let someone get a little too “highfalutin”—some writer, for instance. Imagine he sighs and says, “The beautiful must remain the unattainable,” or something like that. Or let another writer go off on a serious rant about government, saying, “All government should be abolished. It’s nonsense.” Bang! The café’s version of Jimmy Whistler or Degas has shot him down right between the eyes. There was a time when Miss Jane Heap from The Little Review filled that gap for some people in New York, but she and Miss Margaret Anderson couldn’t cover everything. That was just impossible.
And, in any event, neither New York nor Chicago has any cafés. When I first went to New York drinking was still publicly going on but one stood up at a bar with the foot on a rail and shot the drink into oneself. There might be a moment of conversation with the bartender. “What chance you think the Giants got?” etc. Nothing specially helpful in that and anyway what one secretly hoped was that the White Sox of Chicago would win.
And, anyway, neither New York nor Chicago has any cafés. When I first went to New York, people were still drinking in public, but you would stand at a bar with your foot on the rail and quickly down your drink. There might be a brief conversation with the bartender. "What do you think the Giants' chances are?" etc. Not particularly helpful, and what I secretly hoped for was that the Chicago White Sox would win.
Everyone lived in rooms, except those who had rich parents and most young American artists gathered in the city, ate at cafeterias. In Chicago, before I left, they had begun taking the chairs out of the restaurants and one fancied that, in a few years, all Chicagoans would eat as they drank, standing. It would save time.
Everyone lived in rooms, except for those with wealthy parents, and most young American artists gathered in the city, eating at cafeterias. In Chicago, before I left, they had started removing the chairs from restaurants, and it seemed likely that, in a few years, all Chicago residents would eat standing up, just like they drank. It would save time.
We more solemn and serious American scribblers, painters, etc., for the most part lived in rooms and I have myself a memory of rooms in which I have lived, that is like a desert trail. I can no longer recall all of them. In a sense they haunt my whole life. At a little distance they become gray, little gray holes into which I have crept.
We more serious American writers, artists, etc., mostly lived in rooms, and I have a memory of the rooms I've lived in that feels like a deserted path. I can't remember all of them now. In a way, they haunt my entire life. From a distance, they turn into gray, little holes that I've crawled into.
And we Americans have enough of the blood of the northern races in us that we must have our holes into which to creep, to contemplate ourselves, to say our prayers. In Paris, during a summer when I loitered there, I found myself able to sit all afternoon in a café, [Pg 388] watching the people pass up and down a little street. At another café across a small square a young student made love to a girl. He kept touching her body with his hands and laughing and occasionally he kissed her. That happened and carts passed. One side of my mind made little delightful mental notes. The French teamsters did not make geldings of their horses. Magnificent stallions passed drawing dust carts. Why did Americans unman stallions while the French did not? The teamster walked in the road with his hat cocked to the side of his head and a bit of color in the hat. The stallion threw back his head and trumpeted. The teamster made some sort of sarcastic comment to the student with the girl, who answered in kind but did not quit kissing her. There was a small church on the west side of the square and old women were going in and coming out. All these things happened and I was alive to them all and still I sat in a café writing a tale of life in my own Ohio towns. How natural it seemed, in Paris, to lead one’s secret inner life quite openly in the streets and how unnatural the same sort of thing would have seemed in an American city.
And we Americans have enough of the blood of northern races in us that we need our spaces to retreat, to reflect, to pray. In Paris, during a summer when I was hanging out there, I could spend all afternoon in a café, watching people stroll up and down a small street. At another café across a tiny square, a young student was flirting with a girl. He kept touching her and laughing, and now and then, he kissed her. That was happening while carts went by. Part of my mind was making little delightful notes. The French teamsters didn’t geld their horses. Beautiful stallions passed by pulling dust carts. Why did Americans castrate stallions while the French didn’t? The teamster walked in the road with his hat tipped to the side and a bit of color in it. The stallion tossed its head back and neighed. The teamster made some sarcastic remark to the student with the girl, who replied in kind but didn’t stop kissing her. There was a small church on the west side of the square, and old women were coming in and out. All these things were happening, and I was fully aware of them as I sat in a café writing a story about life in my own Ohio towns. It felt so natural in Paris to openly live one’s secret inner life on the streets, while it would have seemed so unnatural to do the same in an American city.
In Chicago alone there had been enough rooms, in which I myself had lived, had hidden myself away, to have made a long street of houses. How much had my own outlook on life been made by the rooms? How much were the lives of all Americans made by the places in which they lived? When Americans grew tired of their houses—or rooms—and went into the street there was no place to sit unless one went into a movie or went to eat expensive and unnecessary food in a crowded restaurant. In the [Pg 389] movies signs were put up: “Best place in town to kill time.”
In Chicago alone, there were enough rooms where I had lived and hidden away to create a long street of houses. How much had my perspective on life been shaped by those rooms? How much are the lives of all Americans influenced by the places they live? When Americans got tired of their houses—or rooms—and stepped out onto the street, there was no place to sit unless they went into a movie theater or spent money on overpriced food in a crowded restaurant. In the [Pg 389] movies, signs were posted: “Best place in town to kill time.”
Time then was a thing to be killed. It would seem an odd notion, I fancy, to a Frenchman or an Italian.
Time back then was something to be wasted. It might sound strange, I guess, to a Frenchman or an Italian.
[Pg 390]
[Pg 390]
NOTE IX
ONE goes from Chicago to New York on a modern train very quickly but in the short time while the train is tearing along, while one sleeps and awakens once, one cuts the distance between oneself and Europe immeasurably. To the American, and in spite of the later disillusionment brought by the World War Europe remained the old home of the crafts. Even as the train goes eastward in one’s own country, there is an inner ferment of excitement. Turgenev, Gogol, Fielding, Cervantes, De Foe, Balzac—what mighty names marched through the mind with the click of the car wheels. To the man of the American West how much the East means. How deeply buried the great European craftsmen had been in the soil out of which they had come. How intimately they had known their own peoples and with what infinite delicacy and understanding they had spoken out of them. As one sat in the train one found oneself bitterly condemning many of our own older craftsmen for selling out their inheritances, for selling out the younger men, too. Why were they not more consciously aware of what they, as craftsmen, were at? What had they got—a few automobiles, suburban homes, a little cheap acclaim.
ONE travels from Chicago to New York on a modern train very quickly, but during the brief time the train speeds along, while one sleeps and wakes up once, one closes the gap between themselves and Europe tremendously. For Americans, despite the disillusionment that came with World War I, Europe has always remained the old home of craftsmanship. Even as the train heads east across one’s own country, there’s an inner excitement bubbling up. Turgenev, Gogol, Fielding, Cervantes, Defoe, Balzac—what powerful names flash through the mind with the rhythm of the train wheels. To someone from the American West, the East means so much. How deeply rooted the great European craftsmen were in the soil they emerged from. How intimately they understood their own people and with what incredible sensitivity and insight they expressed that. While sitting on the train, one finds themselves harshly criticizing many of our own older craftsmen for abandoning their heritage, for letting down the younger generation too. Why were they not more aware of what they, as craftsmen, were doing? What had they achieved—a few cars, suburban homes, a little bit of shallow praise?
Moments of wrath and then a smile too. “My boy, my boy, keep your shirt on!”
Moments of anger and then a smile too. “My son, my son, just stay calm!”
[Pg 391]
[Pg 391]
In the next seat a Detroit man talking loudly. “Advertising pays. What you got to do is put it across in a hurry.”
In the next seat, a man from Detroit was speaking loudly. “Advertising works. All you have to do is get your message out quickly.”
Only yesterday there was myself too, talking so, pounding tables in offices, crying the gospel of size, of hustle.
Only yesterday, I was also there, saying things like that, banging on tables in offices, preaching the message of size and hustle.
“Keep your shirt on! Listen! You are starting rather late to do much. Perhaps if you are patient, if you listen work and learn you shall yet tell delicately a few tales.”
“Calm down! Listen! You're starting pretty late to accomplish much. Maybe if you're patient, if you listen, work, and learn, you'll still be able to tell a few stories delicately.”
As one approaches the Atlantic Coast there is a feeling comes that one, not born, not having lived, through youth and young manhood in the Middle or Far West will never quite understand. Near my own room in the city, lying in the Hudson River, were vessels that to-morrow would set sail for Europe, other vessels that had arrived from Europe but the day before. As I lay on my cot in my room at night I could hear the steamboats crying in the river. At night when there was a fog they were like cows lost in a forest, somewhere out in the Middle West, lost and bawling for the warm barns.
As you approach the Atlantic Coast, you get a sense that someone who hasn't grown up in the Middle or Far West won't really get it. Close to my room in the city, in the Hudson River, there were ships that would set sail for Europe tomorrow and others that had just arrived from Europe the day before. As I lay on my cot in my room at night, I could hear the steamboats calling in the river. At night, when there was fog, they sounded like cows lost in a forest somewhere in the Middle West, wandering and mooing for the comforting barns.
One went down to walk in the street facing the river. People were arriving on boats, departing on boats. They took the whole matter calmly, as one living in Chicago would entrain for Indianapolis. Out in my own country, when I was a boy, going to Europe meant something tremendous, like going to war for example. It was of infinitely more importance than, let us say, getting married. One got married or even went to war without writing a book about it but no man went to Europe from Ohio at least, without later writing a book about his travels. [Pg 392] Men and women of the Middle West became famous by way of European trips. Such and such a one had been to Europe three times. He was consulted upon all occasions, was allowed to sit on the platform at political meetings, might even claim the privilege of carrying a cane. Even the men of the barrooms were impressed. The bartender settled a quarrel between two men by referring the matter to Ed Swarts, who had been home to Germany twice. “Well, he’s traveled. He has an education. He knows what he’s talking about,” the bartender said.
One went out for a walk on the street by the river. People were arriving and departing on boats. They took it all in stride, just like someone living in Chicago would head to Indianapolis. Back in my hometown, when I was a kid, going to Europe was a big deal, like going to war. It was way more significant than, say, getting married. People got married or even went to war without writing a book about it, but no guy from Ohio went to Europe without eventually writing about his trip. [Pg 392] Men and women from the Midwest became famous for their trips to Europe. So-and-so had been to Europe three times. He was consulted on all kinds of things, allowed to sit on the platform at political events, and even had the right to carry a cane. Even the guys in the bars were impressed. The bartender settled a dispute between two men by asking Ed Swarts, who had been back to Germany twice. “Well, he’s traveled. He has an education. He knows what he’s talking about,” the bartender said.
Had I myself come to New York, half wanting to go on to Europe and not quite daring? At least there was not in me the naïve faith in Europe my father must have had. I found myself able to go into the presence of men who had spent years in Europe without trembling, visibly at least, but something pulled. It was so difficult to understand life and the impulses of life here. There was so much phrase-making to cover up the reality of feelings, of hungers. Would one learn something by going to the sources of all this vast river of mixed bloods, mixed traditions, mixed passions and impulses?
Had I come to New York, half wanting to go to Europe but not quite daring enough? At least I didn’t have the naïve belief in Europe that my father must have had. I found I could face men who had spent years in Europe without visibly trembling, but something was pulling me. It was so hard to grasp life and the motivations behind it here. There was so much talk to mask the reality of feelings and desires. Would I learn something by visiting the roots of this vast river of mixed bloodlines, diverse traditions, and tangled passions and impulses?
Perhaps I thought that in New York I should find men, Americans in spirit and in fact, who had digested what Europe had to give America and who would pass it on to me. I was middle-western enough to think it a bit presumptuous of me to strike out as a man of letters, set myself up as a man of letters. I wanted to, but didn’t quite dare.
Perhaps I thought that in New York I would find men, Americans in spirit and in reality, who had absorbed what Europe offered America and would share it with me. I was midwestern enough to feel it was a bit arrogant of me to take the leap to become a writer, to position myself as a man of letters. I wanted to, but I wasn’t entirely brave enough.
However I took a long breath and plunged. All about me were men talking and talking. There was, at just that time, a distinct effort to awaken in New York something like the group life among artists [Pg 393] and intellectuals for which Paris had long been famous. There was the extreme radical political and intellectual group, gathered about The Masses; the Little Review with its sledgehammer pronouncements and a kind of flaunting joy of life, of which the others were both scornful and afraid; The Seven Arts group, inclined to make itself small and exclusive; the liberals, always apparently trembling on the edge of a real feeling for the crafts and never quite making it, that gathered about The New Republic and The Nation, and besides these Mencken and Nathan, knights errant at large, with pistols always loaded, ready at any moment to shoot anyone if the shooting would make a bit of stir in the town.
However, I took a deep breath and dove in. Around me were men chatting away. At that moment, there was a clear effort to spark in New York something like the collective life among artists and intellectuals that Paris had long been known for. There was the extremely radical political and intellectual group surrounding The Masses; the Little Review with its bold statements and a kind of joyful celebration of life, which others regarded with both disdain and fear; the The Seven Arts group, which tended to be small and exclusive; the liberals, who always seemed to be on the brink of genuinely appreciating the arts but never quite got there, meeting around The New Republic and The Nation; and besides them, Mencken and Nathan, wandering knights ready for anything, with their guns always loaded, prepared to shoot at a moment’s notice if it would stir things up in the town. [Pg 393]
Among these men I walked and after walking went back to my room to lie on my cot. I began checking off names. As for myself I had no serious intention of becoming a New Yorker. I was a middle-westerner born and bred. All the rest of my days I might drift here and there about America but at heart I would be, to the New Yorker, a man from beyond the mountains, an Ohio man to the end.
Among these men I walked, and after walking, I returned to my room to lie on my cot. I started checking off names. As for me, I had no real intention of becoming a New Yorker. I was a Midwesterner, born and raised. For the rest of my life, I might drift around America, but deep down, to a New Yorker, I would always be a guy from beyond the mountains, an Ohioan to the end.
I was a middle-westerner trying to pick up cultural scraps in New York, trying to go to school there.
I was a Midwesterner trying to gather cultural tidbits in New York, attempting to go to school there.
I made little lists of names on the walls of my mind. There was Van Wyck Brooks, the man who never wrote a line that did not give me joy, but his mind seemed altogether occupied with what had happened to Twain, Howells, Whitman, Poe and the New Englanders, men for the most part dead before I was born. I was sorry they had the rotten luck to be born in a new land but could not stay permanently sorry. I had to [Pg 394] live myself in the moment, in America as it was, as it was becoming. Often I thought of Brooks. “He has a theme. It is that a man cannot be an artist in America. The theme absorbs all his time and energy. He has little or no time to give to such fellows as myself and our problems.” I did not put Brooks aside. He put me aside.
I made little lists of names in my mind. There was Van Wyck Brooks, a guy whose writing always brought me joy, but he seemed completely focused on what happened to Twain, Howells, Whitman, Poe, and the New Englanders—mostly men who were dead before I was even born. I felt bad they got stuck in a new land, but I couldn’t stay upset about it. I had to focus on living in the present, in America as it was and as it was changing. I often thought about Brooks. “He has a theme. It’s that a person can’t be an artist in America. That theme takes up all his time and energy. He has little or no time to think about guys like me and our issues.” I didn’t push Brooks away; he pushed me away. [Pg 394]
There were however others. Alfred Stieglitz, Waldo Frank, Henry Canby, Paul Rosenfeld, Leo Ornstein, Ben Huebsch, Alfred Kreymborg, Mary and Padraic Colum, Julius Friend, Ferdinand Schevill, Stark Young when I came to him later, Lawrence Gilman, Gilbert Seldes, Jane Heap, Gertrude Stein. Not all of them New Yorkers, but none of them, except Miss Heap and Ferdinand Schevill middle-westerners like myself.
There were, however, others. Alfred Stieglitz, Waldo Frank, Henry Canby, Paul Rosenfeld, Leo Ornstein, Ben Huebsch, Alfred Kreymborg, Mary and Padraic Colum, Julius Friend, Ferdinand Schevill, Stark Young when I met him later, Lawrence Gilman, Gilbert Seldes, Jane Heap, Gertrude Stein. Not all of them were New Yorkers, but none of them, except for Miss Heap and Ferdinand Schevill, were midwesterners like me.
There were in New York and Chicago no end of people who were willing to talk to me, listen to my talk, cry out for any good thing I did, condemn with quick intelligence what I did that was cheap or second-rate. Not one among them but had thought further than myself, that could tell me a hundred things I did not know. What a debt of gratitude I owe to men like Paul Rosenfeld, Stark Young, Alfred Stieglitz, Waldo Frank and others, men who have willingly taken long hours out of their busy lives to walk and talk with me of my craft.
There were countless people in New York and Chicago who were eager to chat with me, listen to what I had to say, cheer for any good things I did, and quickly point out when I fell short or produced something that wasn't up to par. Not one of them hadn't thought deeper than I had, and each could share a hundred things I didn't know. I owe a huge debt of gratitude to people like Paul Rosenfeld, Stark Young, Alfred Stieglitz, Waldo Frank, and others—men who generously spent long hours out of their busy lives to walk and talk with me about my craft.
I used to lie in my room thinking of them, in relation to myself, in relation to other writers who were coming out of the Middle West and who would come. It was rather odd how many of them had Jewish blood in their veins. I did not believe I was too much prejudiced because the people I have named liked certain work of my own. Often enough [Pg 395] they did not like it and I had opportunity to realize their reactions to other men’s work, had seen how Stieglitz had labored for Marin, Hartley, O’Keefe, Dove and others, how Waldo Frank had given Sandburg the intelligent appreciation he must have so wanted, had watched with glowing pleasure the subtle workings of the minds of men like Rosenfeld and Young.
I used to lie in my room thinking about them, in relation to myself, and in relation to other writers from the Midwest who were emerging and would eventually emerge. It was quite strange how many of them had Jewish heritage. I didn’t think I was overly biased because the people I mentioned appreciated certain pieces of my work. Often enough, they didn’t like it, and I had the chance to see their reactions to the work of others. I saw how Stieglitz supported Marin, Hartley, O’Keefe, Dove, and others, how Waldo Frank gave Sandburg the thoughtful appreciation he surely wanted, and I watched with great pleasure the subtle thinking of men like Rosenfeld and Young.
I tried to feel and think my way into the matter because it had I thought some relation to my own problem which as you will remember was to try to find footing for myself, a basis of self-criticism.
I tried to feel and think my way into the issue because I believed it had some connection to my own problem, which, as you might remember, was to establish a foundation for myself, a basis for self-criticism.
I wanted, as all men do, to belong.
I wanted, like everyone else, to fit in.
To what? To an America alive, an America that was no longer a despised cultural foster child of Europe, with unpleasant questions always being asked about its parentage, to an America that had begun to be conscious of itself as a living home-making folk, to an America that had at last given up the notion that anything worth while could ever be got by being in a hurry, by being dollar rich, by being merely big and able to lick some smaller nation with one hand tied behind its broad national back.
To what? To an America that was vibrant, an America that was no longer seen as a rejected cultural offshoot of Europe, constantly facing uncomfortable questions about its origins, to an America that had started to recognize itself as a community focused on building a home, to an America that had finally abandoned the idea that anything valuable could ever be achieved through haste, through being wealthy, through merely being big and capable of overpowering a smaller nation with one hand tied behind its back.
As for the men of Jewish blood, so many of whom I found quick and eager to meet me half way, my heart went out to them in gratitude. They were wanting love and understanding, had in their natures many impulses that were destructive. Was there a sense of being outlaws? They did not want their own secret sense of separateness from the life about them commented upon but it existed. They themselves kept it alive and I thought they were not unwise in doing so. I watched them eagerly. Did [Pg 396] they have, in their very race feeling, the bit of ground under their feet it was so hard for an Ohio man to get in Cleveland Cincinnati or Chicago or New York? The man of Jewish blood, in an American city, could at any rate feel no more separateness from the life about him than the advertising writer in a Chicago advertising agency who had within him a love of the craft of words. The Jewish race had made itself felt in the arts for ages and even our later middle-western anti-Jewish crusader Henry Ford had no doubt as a child been taught to read the Bible written by old Jewish word-fellows.
As for the Jewish men I met, many of whom were quick and eager to connect with me, I felt a deep gratitude towards them. They were seeking love and understanding, but their nature also carried some destructive impulses. Was there a feeling of being outcasts? They didn’t want anyone to point out their hidden sense of separateness from the world around them, yet it was there. They maintained that separation, and I thought they weren’t wrong to do so. I watched them intently. Did they possess, through their shared cultural identity, the stability that was so elusive for an Ohio man in Cleveland, Cincinnati, Chicago, or New York? A Jewish person in an American city could feel no more isolated from the life around them than an advertising writer in a Chicago agency who had a passion for the art of words. The Jewish community had made its mark in the arts for centuries, and even the later anti-Jewish crusader Henry Ford had likely been taught to read the Bible written by old Jewish authors as a child.
As far as I myself could understand, the feeling of separateness from the life about was common to all Americans. It explained the everlasting get-together movements always going on among business men and as for race prejudices, they also were common. There was the South with its concern about the Negroes, the Far West and its orientals, the whole country a little later with its sudden hatred of the Germans and in the Middle West all sorts of little cross-currents of race hatreds as the factory hands came into the towns from all over Europe. No American ever met another American without drawing a little back. There was a question in the soul. “What are your people? Where did they come from?” “What kind of blood flows in your veins?”
As far as I could tell, the feeling of being separate from the life around us was something all Americans shared. It explained the continuous networking events among businesspeople. And when it came to racial prejudices, those were widespread too. There was the South with its worries about Black people, the Far West with its concerns about Asians, and soon enough the entire country faced a sudden backlash against Germans. In the Midwest, various racial tensions arose as factory workers moved into towns from all parts of Europe. No American ever met another American without feeling a bit cautious. There was a question in the air: “What’s your background? Where do you come from?” “What kind of blood runs through your veins?”
Could it not very well be that the men of Jewish blood who had given themselves to the crafts in America could look at life a bit more impersonally, go out more quickly and warmly to individuals, throw up out of the body of the race more individuals who could give themselves [Pg 397] wholeheartedly to the cultural life because of the very fact of a race history behind them?
Could it be that Jewish men who have dedicated themselves to their trades in America can view life a bit more objectively, connect more readily and warmly with individuals, and emerge from their cultural background with more people willing to fully engage in the cultural life due to their rich racial history? [Pg 397]
One had always to remember that we Americans were in the process of trying to make a race. The Jews had been a part of the life of almost every race that had come to us and were for perhaps that very reason in a better position than the rest of us to help make our own race.
One always had to keep in mind that we Americans were in the process of trying to create a race. The Jews had been a part of the lives of nearly every race that had come to us and were, perhaps for that reason, in a better position than the rest of us to help shape our own race.
[Pg 398]
[Pg 398]
NOTE X
A GRAY morning and myself, no longer young, sitting on a bench before the little open space that faces the cathedral of Chartres. Thoughts flitting across a background of years. Had I finally accepted myself, in part at least, as a tale-teller, had I come that far on the road toward manhood?
A gray morning and I, no longer young, sitting on a bench in front of the small open space facing the Chartres cathedral. Thoughts drifting against a backdrop of years. Had I finally accepted myself, at least in part, as a storyteller? Had I made it this far on the journey to manhood?
It was sure I had been traveling, wandering from place to place, trying to look and listen. At that moment I was very far away from that land, the background of my tales, the Middle West of America. I was perhaps even farther away spiritually than physically. In my day men covered huge physical distances in a short time. As I sat there nearly all the reality of me was still living in the Middle West of America, in mining towns, factory towns, in sweet stretches of Ohio and Illinois countryside, in great smoke-hung cities, in the midst of that strange, still-forming muddle of peoples that is America.
I was definitely on a journey, moving from place to place, trying to observe and take in everything. At that moment, I felt really far away from the land that inspired my stories, the Midwest of America. I might have been even further away emotionally than I was physically. In my time, people could cover vast distances quickly. As I sat there, most of my reality still felt rooted in the Midwest, in mining towns, factory towns, in the beautiful stretches of Ohio and Illinois, in the big, smoky cities, surrounded by that odd, ever-evolving mix of people that makes up America.
I had drawn myself out of that for the time, had been in New York among the other writer folk, among the painters, among the talkers too. That after the years of active participation in life, in modern American life, cheating some, lying a good deal, scheming, being hurt by others, hurting others.
I had pulled myself away from that for a while, spending time in New York with other writers, with artists, and with talkative people too. After years of actively being part of life, of modern American life, bending the truth a bit, lying a lot, scheming, getting hurt by others, and hurting others.
The younger years of being a business schemer, trying to grow rich—I have said little enough of those years in my book. However the book is [Pg 399] long enough, perhaps far too long.
The early years of being a business planner, aiming to get rich—I haven’t talked much about those years in my book. But the book is [Pg 399] long enough, maybe even too long.
Had I ever really wanted to be rich? Perhaps I had only wanted to live, in my craft, in the practice of my craft. It was certain I had not, for many years of my life, known what I wanted. After years of striving to get money, to get power, to be successful, I had found in the end well-nigh perfect contentment in looking and listening, in sitting lost in some little corner, writing, trying to write all down. “A little worm in the fair apple of progress,” I had called myself laughing—the American laugh.
Had I ever really wanted to be rich? Maybe I just wanted to live, to engage in my craft, to practice what I love. It’s clear I didn't know what I wanted for many years. After years of trying to earn money, gain power, and achieve success, I discovered an almost perfect happiness in observing and reflecting, in sitting quietly in a small corner, writing, trying to capture it all. I called myself “a little worm in the fair apple of progress,” laughing—the American laugh.
Now, for a few years, I had been looking abroad. I think it was Joseph Conrad who said that a writer only began to live after he began to write. It pleased me to think I was, after all, but ten years old.
Now, for a few years, I had been looking overseas. I think it was Joseph Conrad who said that a writer only really starts to live once they begin to write. It made me happy to think I was, in the end, still just ten years old.
Plenty of time ahead for such a one. Time to look about, plenty of time to look about.
Plenty of time ahead for someone like that. Time to look around, lots of time to look around.
Well, I had been looking about. I an American middle-westerner, ten years old, had been looking at old London, at strong arrogant young New York, at old France too.
Well, I had been looking around. I, an American from the Midwest, ten years old, had been exploring old London, the bold and confident young New York, and old France as well.
It was apparent that although in France, in the eleventh twelfth and thirteenth centuries, there had been many men alive who had cared greatly for the work of their hands, present-day Frenchmen obviously did not. The cathedral before me was faced on one side by ugly sheds, such as some railroad company might have put up on the shores of a lake facing a city of mid-America. I had taken a second leap from New York to Paris, had been brought there by a friend who now sat on the bench beside me. The man was a friend dear to my heart. We had been sitting [Pg 400] for days on just that bench, wandering about the cathedral. Visitors came and went, mostly Americans, middle-western Americans like myself no doubt. Some of them looked at the cathedral without stopping the motors of theirs cars. They were in a hurry, had got the hurry habit. One day a little drama played itself out in the open space before the cathedral door. An American came with two women, one French the other American, his wife or his sweetheart. He was flirting with the French woman and the American woman was pretending she did not see. My friend and I watched the drama flit back and forth for two or three hours. There before us was a woman losing her man, and she did not want to admit it to herself. Once when they had all three gone inside the cathedral, the American woman came out and stood for a moment by the massively beautiful door, the old eleventh-century door facing us. She did not see us and went to lean against the door itself, crying softly. Then she wiped her eyes and went inside again to join the others. They were all presumably getting culture there, in the presence of the work of the old workmen. The stooped figures of old Frenchwomen with shawls about their shoulders kept hurrying across the open space, going into the cathedral to worship. My friend and I were also worshiping at the cathedral, had been doing that for days.
It was clear that even though in France during the eleventh, twelfth, and thirteenth centuries, many people had cared deeply about their craftsmanship, modern-day French people did not seem to share that sentiment. The cathedral in front of me was marred on one side by ugly sheds, similar to those a railroad company might set up by a lake in a Midwest American city. I had made the second jump from New York to Paris, brought there by a friend who now sat next to me on the bench. He was someone I cared for deeply. We had spent days on that bench, exploring the cathedral. Visitors came and went, mostly Americans, likely middle-westerners like me. Some of them glanced at the cathedral without stopping their car engines. They were in a rush, caught in the habit of hurry. One day, a little drama unfolded in the open space in front of the cathedral door. An American man came with two women, one French and the other American, perhaps his wife or girlfriend. He was flirting with the French woman while the American woman pretended not to notice. My friend and I observed the scene for two to three hours. There was a woman losing her partner, struggling to admit it to herself. Once, when all three had gone inside the cathedral, the American woman stepped out and stood by the incredibly beautiful eleventh-century door facing us. She didn’t see us as she leaned against the door, crying softly. After a moment, she wiped her eyes and re-entered to join the others. They were all likely seeking culture in the presence of the work of ancient craftsmen. Stooped figures of old French women with shawls around their shoulders hurried across the open space, heading into the cathedral to worship. My friend and I were also experiencing our own sense of worship at the cathedral, a ritual we had been engaged in for days.
Life went on then, ever in the same tragic comic sweet way. In the presence of the beautiful old church one was only more aware, all art could do no more than that—make people, like my friend and myself, more aware. An American girl put her face against the beautiful door [Pg 401] of Chartres Cathedral and wept for her lost lover. What had been in the hearts of the workmen who once leaned over the same door carving it? They were fellows who had imaginations that flamed up. “Always wood for carvers to carve, always little flashing things to stir the souls of painters, always the tangle of human lives for the tale-tellers to mull over, dream over,” I told myself. I remembered what an excited young man had once said to me in Chicago. We had stood together in Lake Street, that most noisy and terrible of all Chicago’s downtown streets. “There are as many tales to be found here as in any street of any city in the world,” he had said a little defiantly. Then he looked at me and smiled. “But they will be different tales than would be found in any street of any of the old world cities,” he added.
Life carried on, always in that same bittersweet way. In front of the beautiful old church, one felt even more aware; art could do nothing more than that—make people, like my friend and me, more conscious. An American girl pressed her face against the stunning door of Chartres Cathedral and cried for her lost lover. What must have filled the hearts of the workers who once leaned over that same door carving it? They were guys with imaginations that burned bright. “There’s always wood for carvers to shape, always little shining things to inspire the souls of painters, always the tangle of human lives for storytellers to ponder and dream about,” I told myself. I remembered what an enthusiastic young man once said to me in Chicago. We were standing together on Lake Street, the loudest and most chaotic of all Chicago’s downtown streets. “There are as many stories to discover here as in any street of any city in the world,” he said, a little defiantly. Then he looked at me and smiled. “But they’ll be different stories than those found in any street of any of the old world cities,” he added.
I wondered.
I was curious.
My own mind was in a ferment, thoughts scurrying across a background of fancies as shadows play across the walls of a room when night comes on. My friend sat in silence. He had got hold of Huysmann’s “Cathedral” and was reading. Now and then he put the book down and sat for a long time in silence looking at the gray lovely old building in that gray light. It was one of the best moments of my own life. I felt free and glad. Did the friend who was with me love me? It was sure I loved him. How good his silent presence.
My mind was in turmoil, with thoughts racing around like shadows dancing on the walls when night falls. My friend sat quietly, absorbed in Huysmann’s “Cathedral.” Occasionally, he would set the book down and spend what seemed like an eternity just gazing at the beautiful old building in the muted light. It was one of the best moments of my life. I felt liberated and content. Did my friend love me? One thing was certain: I loved him. His quiet presence was comforting.
How good the presence of my own thoughts too! There was my friend, the Cathedral, the presence of the little drama in the lives of the three strange people who would presently come out of the church and [Pg 402] go away, the packed storehouse of my own fancy too. The end of the story immediately before me I would never know but some day, when I was alone, in Chicago perhaps, my fancy would take it up and play with it. Too bad I was not a Turgenev or someone equally skillful. Were I such a one I might make of what I had seen some such a tale as, say Turgenev’s “Smoke.” There was just the material for a tale, a novel perhaps. One might fancy the man a young American who had come to Paris to study painting and before he came had engaged himself to an American girl at home. He had learned French, had made progress with his work. Then the American girl had set sail for Paris to join him and, at just that moment, while she was at sea, he had fallen desperately in love with a French woman. The deuce, the French woman was skillful with men and she imagined the young American to be rich. With what uncertain thoughts was the breast of the young American torn at that moment.
How amazing it is to have my own thoughts! There was my friend, the Cathedral, and the unfolding drama in the lives of the three unusual people who would soon come out of the church and leave, all mingling with my own imagination. I would never know how the story ended right in front of me, but someday, when I was alone—maybe in Chicago—my mind would pick it up and play with it. It’s a shame I wasn’t a Turgenev or someone equally talented. If I were, I might turn what I saw into a story like Turgenev’s “Smoke.” There was definitely enough material for a story, perhaps even a novel. One could imagine the man as a young American who came to Paris to study painting and had gotten engaged to an American girl back home before he left. He had learned French and made progress with his work. Then, just as the American girl was setting sail for Paris to join him, he fell hopelessly in love with a French woman. The trouble was, this French woman was good with men and thought the young American was wealthy. What conflicted feelings must have been tearing at the young American’s heart in that moment.
The three of them just suddenly came out of the church together and walked away together in silence. That was all. All tales presented themselves to the fancy in just that way. There was a suggestion, a hint given. In a crowd of faces in a crowded street one face suddenly jumped out. It had a tale to tell, was crying its tale to the streets but at best one got only a fragment of it. Once, long after the time of which I am now writing, I tried to paint in an American desert. There was something about the light. My eyes were not accustomed to it. There was a wide desert and beyond the desert hills floating away into the distance. I could lie on my back on the sands of the desert [Pg 403] and watch the evening light fade away over the hills and such forms come! I thought all I had ever felt could be expressed in one painting of those hills but when later I took a brush into my hands I was only dumb and stupid. What appeared on the canvas was dull and meaningless. I walked about swearing at myself and then at the desert light and the very hills that so short a time before had so filled me with peace and happiness. I kept blaming the light. “Nothing stands still in this light,” I said to myself.
The three of them suddenly walked out of the church together and left in silence. That was it. All stories presented themselves to the imagination just that way. There was a suggestion, a hint given. In a crowd of faces on a busy street, one face suddenly stood out. It had a story to tell, crying out its story to the streets, but at best, you only got a piece of it. Once, long after the time I'm writing about, I tried to paint in an American desert. There was something about the light. My eyes weren't used to it. There was a vast desert, and beyond it, hills floating away into the distance. I could lie on my back on the sands of the desert and watch the evening light fade over the hills, and such forms would come! I thought everything I had ever felt could be expressed in one painting of those hills, but when I later took a brush in my hand, I just felt dumb and stupid. What ended up on the canvas was dull and meaningless. I walked around cursing myself and then the desert light and even the hills that just a short time before had filled me with peace and happiness. I kept blaming the light. “Nothing stays still in this light,” I said to myself. [Pg 403]
As though anything ever stood still anywhere. It was the artist’s business to make it stand still—well, just to fix the moment, in a painting, in a tale, in a poem.
As if anything ever stayed the same anywhere. It was the artist's job to make it stay still—just to capture the moment, in a painting, in a story, in a poem.
Sitting there with my friend, facing the cathedral, I remembered something. On my desk, somewhere back in America, was a book in which I had once written certain lines. Well, I had made a poem and had called it, “One who would not grow old.” Now it came sharply back:
Sitting there with my friend, facing the cathedral, I remembered something. On my desk, back in America, was a book where I had once written some lines. I had created a poem and called it, “One who would not grow old.” Now it came back to me clearly:
I have wished that the wind would stop blowing, that birds would stop dead still in their flight, without falling into the sea, that waves would stand ready to break upon shores without breaking, that all time, all impulse, all movement, mood, hungers, everything would stop and stand hushed and still for a moment.
I have wished for the wind to stop blowing, for birds to freeze in their flight without falling into the sea, for waves to be poised to crash onto the shore without actually breaking, for all time, all urges, all movement, emotions, desires, everything to pause and be quiet for a moment.
It would be wonderful to be sitting on a log in a forest when it happened.
It would be great to be sitting on a log in a forest when it happened.
When all was still and hushed, just as I have described, we would get off the log and walk a little way.
When everything was quiet and calm, just as I described, we would get off the log and walk a short distance.
The insects would all lie still on the ground or float, fixed and silent in the air. An old frog, that lived under a stone and that had [Pg 404] opened his mouth to snap at a fly, would sit gaping.
The insects would all lie still on the ground or hover, motionless and quiet in the air. An old frog, who lived under a stone and had opened his mouth to catch a fly, would sit there with his mouth wide open. [Pg 404]
There would be no movement, in New York, in Detroit, in Chicago down by the stock exchange, in towns, in factories, on farms.
There would be no activity, in New York, in Detroit, in Chicago near the stock exchange, in small towns, in factories, on farms.
Out in Colorado, where a man was riding a horse furiously, striving to catch a steer to be sent to Chicago and butchered—
Out in Colorado, a man was riding a horse at full speed, trying to catch a steer that was going to be sent to Chicago for slaughter—
He would stop, too, and the steer would stop.
He would stop, and the steer would stop.
You and I would walk a little way, in the forest, or on a prairie, or on the streets of a town, and then we would stop. We would be the only moving things in the world and then one of us would start a thought rolling and rolling, down time, down space, down mind, down life too.
You and I would walk a bit, in the forest, on a prairie, or through the streets of a town, and then we’d stop. We’d be the only moving things in the world, and then one of us would kick off a thought that would just keep rolling, rolling down time, down space, down mind, and down life too.
I am sure I would let you do it if later you would keep all of the voices of your mind hushed while I did it in my turn. I would wait ten lives while others did it for my turn.
I’m sure I’d let you do it if later you kept all the voices in your head quiet while it was my turn. I’d wait ten lifetimes while others did it for me.
That impulse gone long since as I sat that day before the cathedral of Chartres! It was an impulse that had come time and again to every artist but my own moments had come often enough. I had no cause to quarrel with my own life.
That feeling had faded away long ago as I sat that day in front of the Chartres Cathedral! It was a feeling that had hit every artist time and again, but I had experienced those moments often enough myself. I had no reason to be upset with my own life.
Such moments as I had already had in it. “Life owes me nothing,” I kept saying over and over to myself. It was true enough. For all one might say about American life it had been good to me. On that afternoon I thought that if I were suddenly to be confronted with death in the form of the old man with a sickle in his hand, I would be compelled to say, “Well, it’s your turn now, old fellow. I’ve had my chance. If I had done little enough, it’s my fault, not yours.”
Such moments as I had already experienced in it. “Life owes me nothing,” I kept telling myself repeatedly. This was true enough. Despite what anyone might say about American life, it had treated me well. That afternoon, I thought that if I were suddenly faced with death in the shape of an old man with a sickle in his hand, I would have to say, “Well, it’s your turn now, old man. I’ve had my chance. If I haven’t done enough, that’s on me, not you.”
At any rate life in America had poured itself out richly enough. It was doing that still. As I sat on the bench before Chartres on that gray [Pg 405] day I remembered such moments.
At any rate, life in America had overflowed with richness. It was still doing that. As I sat on the bench in front of Chartres on that gray [Pg 405] day, I remembered those moments.
A hot afternoon at Saratoga. I had gone to the races with two men from Kentucky, one a professional gambler and the other a business man who could never succeed because he was always running off to the horse races or some such place with such no-accounts as the little gambler and myself. We were smoking big black cigars and all of us were clad in rather garish clothes. All about us were men just like us but with big diamonds on their fingers or in their neckties. On a stretch of green lawn beneath trees a horse was being saddled. Such a beauty! What a buzz of colorful words! The professional gambler, a small man with crooked legs, had once been a jockey and later a trainer of race horses. It was said he had done something crooked, had got himself into disgrace with other horsemen but of that I knew little. At the sight of such a horse as we were now watching as the saddle was put on something strange happened to him. A soft light came into his eyes. The devil! I had once or twice seen just such a light in the eyes of painters at work, I had seen such a light in the eyes of Alfred Stieglitz in the presence of a painting. Well, it was such a light as might have come into the eyes of a Stark Young holding in his hands some piece of old Italian craftsmanship.
A hot afternoon at Saratoga. I had gone to the races with two guys from Kentucky, one a pro gambler and the other a businessman who could never make it because he was always off to the horse races or some place similar with losers like the little gambler and me. We were smoking big black cigars and all of us were dressed in pretty flashy clothes. All around us were men just like us but with big diamonds on their fingers or in their neckties. On a patch of green lawn beneath some trees, a horse was getting saddled. What a beauty! What a buzz of colorful words! The professional gambler, a short guy with crooked legs, had once been a jockey and later a racehorse trainer. It was said he had done something shady and had fallen out of favor with other horsemen, but I knew little about that. At the sight of the horse we were now watching as they put on the saddle, something strange happened to him. A soft light came into his eyes. The devil! I had seen that same light in the eyes of painters at work, and I had seen it in Alfred Stieglitz's eyes when he was near a painting. It was a light that might have appeared in Stark Young's eyes holding some piece of old Italian craftsmanship.
I remember that as the little old gambler and I stood near the horse I spoke to him of a painting I had once seen in New York, that painting of Albert Ryder’s of the ghostly white horse running beneath a [Pg 406] mysteriously encircled moon on an old race track at night.
I remember that as the old gambler and I stood by the horse, I talked to him about a painting I had once seen in New York, the one by Albert Ryder featuring a ghostly white horse running under a mysteriously surrounded moon on an old racetrack at night. [Pg 406]
The gambler and I talked of the painting. “I know,” he said, “I like to hang around race tracks at night myself.”
The gambler and I talked about the painting. “I know,” he said, “I like to hang out at racetracks at night myself.”
That was all he said and we stood watching the horse. In a few minutes now that tense trembling body would be at ease, fallen into the ease of its long, swinging stride, out there on the track.
That was all he said, and we stood there watching the horse. In a few minutes, that tense, trembling body would relax, settling into the comfort of its long, smooth stride out on the track.
The gambler and I went away to stand by a fence. Were men less fortunate than horses? Did men also seek but to express themselves beautifully as in a few minutes now the horse would do? The gambler’s body trembled as did my own. When the horse ran (he broke the record for the mile, that day) he and I did not speak to each other. We had together seen something we together loved. Was it enough? “At least,” I told myself, “we men have a kind of consciousness that perhaps the horses haven’t. We have this consciousness of one another. That is what love is, perhaps.”
The gambler and I walked over to stand by a fence. Were men less fortunate than horses? Did men also just want to express themselves beautifully, like the horse soon would? The gambler's body shook, just like mine did. When the horse ran (he broke the record for the mile that day), we didn’t say a word to each other. We had both witnessed something we loved together. Was that enough? “At least,” I told myself, “we men have a kind of awareness that horses might not have. We have this awareness of each other. Maybe that’s what love is.”
There was a child, a young boy of fourteen walking beside his mother in a park at Cleveland, Ohio. I sat on a bench there and saw him go by and after that one moment of his passing never saw him again but I’ll never forget while I live. The moment was like the moment of the running of the horse. Could it be that it was the boy’s most beautiful moment? Well, I had seen it. Why was I not made to be a painter? The boy’s head was thrown a little back, he had black curly hair and carried his hat in his hand. In just that moment of his passing the bench on which I [Pg 407] sat his young body was all alive, all of the senses fully alive. Whose son was he? Such a living thing as that, to be thrown into the life of Cleveland, Ohio or of Paris or Venice either for that matter.
There was a child, a young boy of fourteen walking next to his mother in a park in Cleveland, Ohio. I sat on a bench there and watched him pass by, and after that one moment of him going by, I never saw him again, but I’ll never forget it as long as I live. The moment felt like the rush of a horse running. Could it be that it was the boy’s most beautiful moment? Well, I had witnessed it. Why wasn't I made to be a painter? The boy had his head slightly tilted back, with black curly hair, and he was holding his hat in his hand. In that moment as he passed, the bench on which I sat felt his young body was full of life, all of his senses awake. Whose son was he? Such a vibrant being, to be part of the life in Cleveland, Ohio, or in Paris or Venice for that matter. [Pg 407]
I am always having those moments of checking up like a miser closing the shutters of his house at night to count his gold before he goes to bed and although there are many notes on which I might close this book on my own imaginative life in America, it seems to me good enough to close it just there as I sat that day before Chartres Cathedral beside a man I had come to love and in the presence of that cathedral that had made me more deeply happy than any other work of art I had ever seen.
I always find myself in moments of reflection, like a miser shutting the blinds of his house at night to count his gold before heading to bed. Even though I have many notes on which I could end this narrative of my creative life in America, I think it’s fitting to conclude it right there, as I sat that day in front of Chartres Cathedral next to a man I had come to love, in the presence of that cathedral which had brought me more genuine happiness than any other work of art I’d ever encountered.
My friend kept pretending to read his book but from time to time I saw how his eyes followed the old tower of the church and the gladness that came into him too.
My friend kept pretending to read his book, but every now and then I noticed his eyes wandering to the old church tower, and he looked happy about it too.
We would both soon be going back to America to our separate places there. We wanted to go, wanted to take our chances of getting what we could out of our own lives in our own places. We did not want to spend our lives living in the past, dreaming over the dead past of a Europe from which we were separated by a wide ocean. Americans with cultural impulses had done too much of that sort of thing in the past. The game was worn out and even a ladies’ literary society in an Iowa city was coming to know that a European artist of the present day was not necessarily of importance just because he was a European.
We would both soon head back to America to our separate homes there. We wanted to go, eager to take our chances at getting what we could out of our own lives in our own places. We didn't want to spend our lives dwelling on the past, reminiscing about a Europe that was separated from us by a wide ocean. Americans with artistic aspirations had done too much of that in the past. That approach was outdated, and even a women’s literary group in an Iowa city was starting to realize that a contemporary European artist wasn’t automatically significant just because they were from Europe.
The future of the western world lay with America. Everyone knew that. [Pg 408] In Europe they knew it better than they did in America.
The future of the western world was with America. Everyone was aware of that. [Pg 408] In Europe, they understood it better than they did in America.
It was for me a morning of such thoughts, such memories—just there before Chartres with my friend.
It was a morning filled with thoughts and memories for me—right there before Chartres with my friend.
Once, in one of my novels, “Poor White,” I made my hero at the very end of the book go on a trip alone. He was feeling the futility of his own life pretty fully, as I myself have so often done, and so after his business was attended to be went to walk on a beach. That was in the town of Sandusky, in the state of Ohio, my own state.
Once, in one of my novels, “Poor White,” I had my hero take a solo trip at the very end of the book. He was deeply feeling the emptiness of his own life, just as I have often experienced, and after taking care of his business, he went for a walk on a beach. That was in the town of Sandusky, in the state of Ohio, my home state.
He gathered up a little handful of shining stones like a child, and later carried them about with him. They were a comfort to him. Life, his own efforts at life, had seemed so futile and ineffectual but the little stones were something glistening and clear. To the child man, the American who was hero of my book and, I thought, to myself and to many other American men I had seen, they were something a little permanent. They were beautiful and strange at the moment and would be still beautiful and strange after a week, a month, a year.
He picked up a handful of shiny stones like a kid and later carried them around with him. They brought him comfort. Life, and his attempts at it, felt so pointless and ineffective, but the little stones were something bright and clear. To the childlike man, the American who was the hero of my book and, I believed, to myself and many other American men I had encountered, they represented something a bit lasting. They were beautiful and unusual in the moment and would still be beautiful and unusual after a week, a month, or a year.
I had ended my novel on that note and a good many of my friends had told me they did not know what I was talking about. Was it because, to most Americans, the desire for something, for even little colored stones to hold in the hand now and then to glisten and shine outside the muddle of life, was it because to most Americans that desire had not become as yet conscious?
I had finished my novel like that, and many of my friends told me they didn’t understand what I was talking about. Was it because, for most Americans, the desire for something—like even small colored stones to hold in their hands now and then for a little sparkle amid the chaos of life—hadn't yet become clear?
Perhaps it had not but that was not my story. At least in me it had become conscious, if not as yet well directed or very intelligent. It [Pg 409] had made me a restless man all my life, had set me wandering from place to place, had driven me from the towns to the cities and from one city to another.
Perhaps it hadn't, but that wasn't my story. At least in me, it had become aware, if not yet well-directed or very smart. It [Pg 409] had made me a restless person my whole life, had caused me to wander from place to place, had pushed me from towns to cities and from one city to another.
In the end I had become a teller of tales. I liked my job. Sometimes I did it fairly well and sometimes I blundered horribly. I had found out that trying to do my job was fun and that doing it well and finely was a task for the most part beyond me.
In the end, I had become a storyteller. I enjoyed my job. Sometimes I did it pretty well, and other times I messed up badly. I discovered that trying to do my job was fun, but doing it really well was mostly beyond my ability.
Often enough I sat thinking of my wasted years, making excuses for myself, but in my happier moments and when I was not at work on my job I was happiest when I was in the mood into which I had fallen on the day when I sat before the cathedral—that is to say, when I sat rolling over and over the little colored stones I had managed to gather up. The man with the two women had just dropped another into my hands. How full my hands were! How many flashes of beauty had come to me out of American life.
Often, I found myself thinking about my wasted years, making excuses for myself. But in my happier moments, especially when I wasn't working, I felt the most joy when I got into the mood that had overtaken me the day I sat in front of the cathedral—specifically, when I was rolling the little colored stones I had collected. The man with the two women had just handed me another one. My hands were so full! So many glimpses of beauty had come to me from American life.
It was up to me to carve the stones, to make them more beautiful if I could but often enough my hands trembled. I wasn’t young any more, but I had sought teachers and had found a few. One of them was with me at that moment sitting on the bench before the cathedral and pretending to read a book about it. He grew tired of the pretense and taking out a package of cigarettes offered me one, but then found he hadn’t any match. To such confirmed smokers as my friend and myself the French notion of making a government monopoly of matches is a pest. It is like so much that is European nowadays. It is like the penuriousness of an [Pg 410] old age of which at least there is none in America. “The devil!” said my friend. “Let’s go for a walk.”
It was up to me to shape the stones, to make them more beautiful if I could, but often my hands shook. I wasn’t young anymore, but I had searched for teachers and found a few. One of them was with me at that moment, sitting on the bench in front of the cathedral and pretending to read a book about it. He grew tired of pretending and took out a pack of cigarettes, offering me one, but then realized he didn’t have a match. For dedicated smokers like my friend and me, the French idea of making matches a government monopoly is a hassle. It’s like so much of what’s European these days. It’s like the stinginess of old age, which at least doesn’t exist in America. “The devil!” my friend said. “Let’s go for a walk.”
We did walk, down through the lovely old town, the town made lovely not by the men who live there now but by men of another age, long since fast asleep. If we were neither of us so young in years any more, there was a way in which we were both young enough. We were young with that America of which we both at that moment felt ourselves very much a part, and of which, for many other reasons aside from the French monopoly in matches, we were glad in our hearts to be a part.
We walked through the beautiful old town, a place that was made charming not by the people living there now but by those from a bygone era, long gone. Even though we were no longer young in terms of age, there was a sense in which we still felt youthful. We were young with that America, which we both felt very connected to at that moment, and for many reasons beyond just the French monopoly on matches, we were genuinely happy to be a part of it.
[Pg 411]
[Pg 411]
EPILOGUE
EPILOGUE
[Pg 413]
[Pg 413]
EPILOGUE
IT seems but yesterday although a year has passed since that afternoon when Edward and I sat talking in a restaurant. I was staying at a small hotel in a side street in the city of New York. It had been an uncertain day with us, such days as come in any relationship. One asks something of a friend and finds him empty-handed or something is asked and a vacant look comes into one’s own eyes. Two men, or a man and woman, were but yesterday very close and now they are far apart.
IT seems like just yesterday, even though a year has gone by since that afternoon when Edward and I sat chatting in a restaurant. I was staying at a small hotel on a side street in New York City. It had been a day of uncertainty for us, those days that happen in any relationship. One person asks something of a friend and finds them empty-handed, or something is asked and a blank look appears in one’s own eyes. Two people, whether it’s a man and a woman or two men, were very close just yesterday, and now they feel miles apart.
Edward came to lunch with me and we went to a restaurant in the neighborhood. It was of the cheap hurried highly-sanitary sort, shiny and white. After eating we sat on and on, looking at each other, trying to say to each other something for which we could find no words. In a day or two I would be going away to the South. Each of us felt the need of something from the other, an expression of regard perhaps. We were both engaged in the practice of the same craft—story-tellers both of us. And what fumblers! Each man fumbling often and often in materials not well enough understood—that is to say in the lives and the drama in the lives of the people about whom the tales were told.
Edward joined me for lunch, and we went to a restaurant in the neighborhood. It was the kind of place that was cheap, fast, and super clean, all shiny and white. After we ate, we sat there for a while, looking at each other, trying to express something for which we couldn’t find the right words. In a day or two, I would be heading down South. We both felt the need for something from one another, maybe a sign of appreciation. We were both in the same line of work—storytellers. And what a couple of clumsy ones we were! Each of us often stumbling through stories that weren’t fully understood—that is, diving into the lives and drama of the people we were writing about.
We sat looking at each other and as it was now nearly three o’clock in the afternoon we were the only people in the restaurant. Then a third man came in and sat as far away from us as possible. For some time [Pg 414] the women waiters in the place had been looking at Edward and myself somewhat belligerently. It may have been they were employed only for the noon rush and now wanted to go home. A somewhat large woman with her arms crossed stood glaring at us.
We sat looking at each other, and since it was almost 3 o’clock in the afternoon, we were the only ones in the restaurant. Then a third man came in and sat as far away from us as he could. For a while, the women waiters in the place had been eyeing Edward and me a bit aggressively. They might have been there just for the lunch rush and were now ready to go home. A rather large woman with her arms crossed was staring at us. [Pg 414]
As for the third man in the place, the fellow who had just come in, he had been in prison for some crime he had committed and had but recently been let out. I do not mean to suggest that he came to Edward and myself and told his story. Indeed he was afraid of us and when he saw us loitering there went to sit as far away as possible. He watched us furtively with frightened eyes. Then he ordered some food and after eating hurriedly went away leaving the flavor of himself behind. He had been trying to get a job but on all sides had been defeated by his own timidity. Now like ourselves he wanted some place to rest, to sit with a friend, to talk, and by an odd chance I, and Edward as well, knew the fellow’s thoughts while he was in the room. The devil!—he was tired and discouraged and had thought he would go into the restaurant, eat slowly, gather himself together. Perhaps Edward and myself—and the waitress with her arms crossed who wanted to get our tip and cut out to some movie show—perhaps all of us had chilled the heart of the man from prison. “Well, things are so and so. One’s own heart has been chilled. You are going away to the South, eh? Well, good-by; I must be getting along.”
As for the third guy in the place, the one who had just come in, he had recently gotten out of prison for some crime he committed. I’m not saying he approached Edward and me to share his story. In fact, he was scared of us, and when he saw us hanging around, he chose to sit as far away as possible. He watched us nervously with frightened eyes. Then he ordered some food and after eating quickly, he left, taking a bit of his presence with him. He had been trying to find a job, but his own shyness had held him back. Like us, he just wanted somewhere to relax, to sit with a friend, to talk. Oddly enough, both Edward and I could sense what was going through his mind while he was there. Poor guy!—he was tired and discouraged and thought he’d go into the restaurant, eat slowly, and collect himself. Maybe Edward and I—and the waitress with her arms crossed, eager for our tip so she could head out to a movie—maybe we all had made the guy from prison feel unwelcome. “Well, that’s how it is. My own heart feels heavy. You’re heading south, right? Alright, goodbye; I need to be on my way.”
II
II
I was walking in the streets of the city that evening of November. [Pg 415] There was snow on the roofs of buildings, but it had all been scraped off the roadways. There is a thing happens to American men. It is pitiful. One walks along, going slowly along in the streets, and when one looks sharply at one’s fellows something dreadful comes into the mind. There is a thing happens to the backs of the necks of American men. There is this sense of something drying, getting old without having ripened. The skin does something. One becomes conscious of the back of one’s own neck and is worried. “Might not all our lives ripen like fruit—drop at the end, full-skinned and rich with color, from the tree of life, eh?” When one is in the country one looks at a tree. “Can a tree be a dead dried-up thing while it is still young? Can a tree be a neurotic?” one asks.
I was walking through the city streets that evening in November. [Pg 415] There was snow on the rooftops, but it had all been cleared off the roads. There's something that happens to American men. It's sad. You walk slowly along the streets, and when you look closely at the people around you, something awful comes to mind. There's this feeling that happens at the back of American men's necks. It feels like something is drying up, growing old without ever maturing. The skin does something. You become aware of the back of your own neck and feel anxious. "Could our lives not ripen like fruit—falling off the tree of life at the end, fully formed and rich in color, right?" When you're in the countryside, you look at a tree. "Can a tree be a dead, dried-out thing while still being young? Can a tree be neurotic?" you wonder.
I had worked myself into a state of mind, as so often happens with me, and so I went out of the streets, out of the presence of all the American people hurrying along; the warmly dressed, unnecessarily weary, hurrying, hustling, half-frightened city people.
I had worked myself into a state of mind, as often happens with me, so I stepped out into the streets, away from all the American people rushing by; the warmly dressed, unnecessarily tired, hustling, half-frightened city dwellers.
In my room I sat reading a book of the tales of Balzac. Then I had got up to prepare for dinner when there came a knock at the door and in answer to my call a man entered.
In my room, I was reading a book of Balzac's stories. I had just gotten up to get ready for dinner when there was a knock at the door, and in response to my call, a man came in.
He was a fellow of perhaps forty-five, a short strongly-built broad-shouldered man with graying hair. There was in his face something of the rugged simplicity of a European peasant. One felt he might live a long time, do hard work and keep to the end the vigor of that body of his.
He was about forty-five, a short, sturdy man with broad shoulders and graying hair. His face had a rugged simplicity reminiscent of a European farmer. You got the impression he could live a long time, work hard, and maintain the strength of his body until the end.
For some time I had been expecting the man to come to see me and was curious concerning him. He was an American writer like Edward and [Pg 416] myself and two or three weeks before he had gone to Edward pleading.... Well, he had wanted to see and talk with me. Another fellow with a soul, eh?
For a while, I had been waiting for the man to come see me and was curious about him. He was an American writer just like Edward and me, and a couple of weeks before, he had reached out to Edward asking to meet.... Well, he wanted to see and talk with me. Another guy with a soul, huh? [Pg 416]
And now there the man stood, with his queer old boyish face. He stood in the doorway, smiling anxiously. “Were you going out? Will I be disturbing you?” I had been standing before a glass adjusting a necktie.
And now the man stood there, with his strange old boyish face. He stood in the doorway, smiling nervously. “Were you going out? Am I interrupting you?” I had been standing in front of a mirror fixing my necktie.
“Come on in,” I said, perhaps a little pompously. Before sensitive people I am likely to become a bit bovine. I do not wag my tail like a dog. What I do is to moo like a cow. “Come into the warm stall and eat hay with me,” I seem to myself to be saying at such times. I would really like to be a jolly friendly sort of a cuss ... you will understand.... “It’s always fair weather, when good fellows get together” ... that is the sort of thing I mean.
“Come on in,” I said, maybe a bit too proudly. In front of sensitive people, I tend to act a little thick. I don’t wag my tail like a dog. What I do is moo like a cow. “Come into the warm stall and eat hay with me,” I feel like I'm saying at those times. I really want to be a cheerful, friendly kind of guy ... you get what I mean.... “It’s always a good time when friends gather” ... that’s what I’m getting at.
That is what I want and I can’t achieve it, nor can I achieve a kind of quiet dignity that I often envy in others.
That’s what I want, but I can’t get it, nor can I attain the kind of quiet dignity that I often admire in others.
I stood with my hands fingering my tie and looked at the man in the doorway. I had thrown the book I had been reading on a small table by the bed. “The devil!—he is one of our everlastingly distraught Americans. He is too much like myself.” I was tired and wanted to talk of my craft to some man who was sure of himself. Queer disconnected ideas are always popping into one’s mind. Perhaps they are not so disconnected. At that moment—as I stood looking at the man in the doorway—the figure of another man came sharply to my mind. The man was a carpenter who for a time lived next door to my father’s house when [Pg 417] I was a boy in an Ohio town. He was a workman of the old sort, one who would build a house out of timber just as it is cut into boards by a sawmill. He could make the door frames and the window frames, knew how to cut cunningly all the various joints necessary to building a house tightly in a wet cold country.
I stood there fiddling with my tie, looking at the man in the doorway. I had tossed the book I was reading onto a small table by the bed. “The devil!—he’s one of our endlessly troubled Americans. He’s too much like me.” I was tired and wanted to discuss my craft with someone who was confident. Odd, random thoughts always pop into your head. Maybe they’re not so random after all. At that moment—as I stood there looking at the man in the doorway—a picture of another man suddenly came to mind. He was a carpenter who lived next door to my father’s house for a while when I was a kid in an Ohio town. He was an old-school workman, one who would build a house from timber just like it’s cut into boards by a sawmill. He could make the door frames and window frames and knew how to skillfully cut all the various joints needed to build a house tightly in a damp, cold area.
And on Summer evenings the carpenter used to come sometimes and stand by the door of our house and talk with mother as she was doing an ironing. He had a flair for mother, I fancy, and was always coming when father was not at home but he never came into the house. He stood at the door speaking of his work. He always talked of his work. If he had a flair for mother and she had one for him it was kept hidden away but one fancied that, when we children were not about, mother spoke to him of us. Our own father was not one with whom one spoke of children. Children existed but vaguely for him.
And on summer evenings, the carpenter would sometimes come and stand by our front door, chatting with Mom while she did the ironing. He had a thing for her, I think, and would always show up when Dad wasn't around, but he never came inside. He stayed by the door, always talking about his work. If he had feelings for Mom and she had feelings for him, they kept it under wraps, but you could imagine that when we kids weren’t around, Mom talked to him about us. Our dad wasn’t the type to discuss children. To him, kids were just a vague concept.
As for the carpenter, what I remembered of him on the evening in the hotel in the city of New York was just a kind of quiet assurance in his figure remembered from boyhood. The old workman had spoken to mother of young workmen in his employ. “They aren’t learning their trade properly,” he said. “Everything is cut in the factories now and the young fellows get no chance. They can stand looking at a tree and they do not know what can be done with it ... while I ... well, I hope it don’t sound like bragging too much ... I know my trade.”
As for the carpenter, what I remembered about him that evening in the hotel in New York City was just a sense of quiet confidence in his presence that I recalled from my childhood. The old worker had mentioned to my mother the young craftsmen working for him. “They’re not really learning their trade,” he said. “Everything is made in factories now, and the young guys don’t get any real experience. They can stare at a tree, but they have no clue what can be done with it... while I... well, I hope it doesn’t come off as boasting too much... I know my trade.”
III
III
You see what a confusion! Something was happening to me that is always [Pg 418] happening. Try as much as I may I cannot become a man of culture. At my door stood a man waiting to be admitted and there stood I—thinking of a carpenter in a town of my boyhood. I was making the man at the door feel embarrassed by my silent scrutiny of him and that I did not want. He was in a nervous distraught condition and I was making him every moment more distraught. His fingers played with his hat nervously.
You can see the confusion! Something was happening to me that always happens. No matter how hard I try, I can't become a cultured man. At my door stood a man waiting to be let in, and there I was—thinking about a carpenter from my childhood town. I was making the man at the door feel uncomfortable with my silent stare, which I didn't want to do. He seemed nervous and overwhelmed, and I was only making him more anxious with each passing moment. His fingers fiddled nervously with his hat. [Pg 418]
And then he broke the silence by plunging into an apology. “I’ve been very anxious to see you. There are things I have been wanting to ask you about. There is something important to me perhaps you can tell me. Well, you see, I thought—sometime when you are not very busy, when you are unoccupied.... I dare say you are a very busy man. To tell the truth now I did not hope to find you unoccupied when I came in thus, at this hour. You may be going out to dine. You are fixing your tie. It’s a nice tie.... I like it. What I thought was that I could perhaps be so fortunate as to make an appointment with you. Oh, I know well enough you must be a busy man.”
And then he broke the silence by diving into an apology. “I’ve been really eager to see you. There are things I’ve wanted to ask you about. There’s something important to me that maybe you can help with. Well, you see, I thought—sometime when you’re not too busy, when you’re free.... I bet you’re a really busy guy. To be honest, I didn’t expect to find you free when I walked in at this hour. You might be going out to dinner. You’re adjusting your tie. It’s a nice tie.... I like it. What I was hoping was that I could maybe be lucky enough to set up an appointment with you. Oh, I know you must be a busy person.”
The deuce! I did not like all this fussiness. I wanted to shout at the man standing at my door and say ... “to the devil with you!” You see, I wanted to be more rude than I had already been—leaving him standing there in that way. He was nervous and distraught and already he had made me nervous and distraught.
The hell! I really didn't like all this fuss. I wanted to yell at the guy standing at my door and say ... “screw you!” You see, I wanted to be even ruder than I had already been—leaving him standing there like that. He was anxious and upset, and he'd already made me anxious and upset.
“Do come in. Sit there on the edge of the bed. It’s the most comfortable place. You see I have but one chair,” I said, making a motion with my hand. As a matter of fact there were other chairs in the room but they were covered with clothing. I had taken off one suit and [Pg 419] put on another.
“Please come in. You can sit on the edge of the bed; it's the most comfortable spot. I only have one chair,” I said, gesturing with my hand. Actually, there were other chairs in the room, but they were piled with clothes. I had taken off one suit and put on another. [Pg 419]
We began at once to talk, or rather he talked, sitting on the edge of the bed and facing me. How nervous he was! His fingers twitched.
We immediately started talking, or rather he did, sitting on the edge of the bed and looking at me. He was so nervous! His fingers were twitching.
“Well now, I really did not expect I would find you unoccupied when I came in here at this hour. I am living, for the time being in this very hotel—on the floor below. What I thought was that I would try to make an appointment with you. ‘We’ll have a talk’—that’s what I thought.”
“Well, I honestly didn’t expect to find you free when I came in here at this time. I’m currently staying in this hotel—on the floor below. I thought I’d see if I could set up a meeting with you. ‘Let’s have a conversation’—that’s what I had in mind.”
I stood looking at him and then, like a flash, the figure of the man seen that afternoon in the restaurant came into my mind—the furtive fellow who had been a thief, had been sent to prison and who, after he was freed, did not know what to do with himself.
I stood there looking at him and then, suddenly, the image of that guy I saw that afternoon in the restaurant popped into my head—the sneaky guy who was a thief, went to prison, and after getting out, didn’t know what to do with his life.
What I mean is that my mind again did a thing it is always doing. It leaped away from the man sitting before me, confused him with the figures of other men. After I had left Edward I had walked about thinking my own thoughts. Shall I be able to explain what happened at that moment? In one instant I was thinking of the man now sitting before me and who had wanted to pay me this visit, of the ex-thief seen in the restaurant, of myself and my friend Edward, and of the old workman who used to come and stand at the kitchen door to talk with mother when I was a boy.
What I mean is that my mind did that thing it always does. It jumped away from the guy sitting in front of me and mixed him up with other people. After I left Edward, I walked around lost in my own thoughts. Can I even explain what happened in that moment? In an instant, I was thinking about the guy sitting in front of me who wanted to visit, the ex-thief I saw in the restaurant, myself and my friend Edward, and the old worker who used to come by and chat with my mom at the kitchen door when I was a kid.
Thoughts went through my mind like voices talking.
Thoughts raced through my mind like voices chattering.
“Something within a man is betrayed. There is but the shell of a man walking about. What a man wants is to be able to justify himself to himself. What I as a man want is to be able, some time in my life, to [Pg 420] do something well—to do some piece of work finely just for the sake of doing it—to know the feel of a thing growing into a life of its own under my fingers, eh?”
“Something inside a man is revealed. There’s just the outer shell of a man going through life. What a man wants is to be able to justify his existence to himself. What I want, as a man, is to have the chance, at some point in my life, to create something well—to do a piece of work beautifully just for the sake of it—to feel something coming to life under my hands, right?” [Pg 420]
IV
IV
What I am trying to convey to you, the reader, is a sense of the man in the bedroom, and myself looking at each other and thinking each his own thoughts and that these thoughts were a compound of our own and other people’s thoughts too. In the restaurant Edward and myself, while wanting to do so very much, had yet been unable to come close to each other. The man from prison, wanting us also, had been frightened by our presence and now here was this new man, a writer like myself and Edward, trying to thrust himself into the circle of my consciousness.
What I’m trying to share with you, the reader, is a glimpse of the man in the bedroom, and me looking at each other, each lost in our own thoughts, which were a mix of our own and those of others. In the restaurant, Edward and I, despite our strong desire, hadn't managed to connect. The man from prison, wanting our attention too, was intimidated by us, and now here was this new guy, a writer like Edward and me, trying to insert himself into my thoughts.
We continued looking at each other. The man was a popular American short story writer. He wrote each year ten, twelve, fifteen magazine stories which sold for from five hundred to fifteen hundred dollars each.
We kept staring at each other. The man was a well-known American short story writer. He published ten, twelve, or fifteen magazine stories each year, selling them for anywhere from five hundred to fifteen hundred dollars each.
Was he tired of writing his stories? What did he want of me? I began to grow more and more belligerent in my attitude toward him. It is, with me, a common effect of feeling my own limitations. When I feel inadequate I look about at once for someone with whom I may become irritated.
Was he tired of writing his stories? What did he want from me? I started to become more and more hostile toward him. It’s a typical reaction for me when I sense my own limitations. When I feel inadequate, I immediately look for someone to take my irritation out on.
The book I had been reading a half hour before, the book of “The Tales of Balzac,” lay on a table near where the man sat and his fingers now reached out and took hold of it. It was bound in soft brown leather. [Pg 421] One who loves me and who knew of my love for the book had taken it from my room in a house in Chicago and had carried it off to an old workman who had put it in this new suit of soft brown leather.
The book I had been reading half an hour ago, "The Tales of Balzac," was on a table near where the man sat, and he reached out and picked it up. It was covered in soft brown leather. [Pg 421] Someone who cares about me and knew I loved the book had taken it from my room in a house in Chicago and given it to an old craftsman, who dressed it in this new, soft brown leather cover.
The fingers of the man on the bed were playing with the pages of the book. One got the notion that the fingers wanted to begin tearing pages from the book.
The man's fingers on the bed were messing around with the pages of the book. It felt like the fingers were itching to start ripping pages out.
I had been trying to reassure him. “Do stay, I have nothing to do,” I had said and he smiled at my words as a child might smile. “I am such an egotist,” he explained. “You see, I want to talk of myself. I write stories, you see, but they aren’t any good. Really they aren’t any good at all but they do bring me in money. I’m in a tight hole, I tell you. I own an automobile and I live on a certain scale that is fixed—that’s what I mean—that’s what’s the trouble with me. I am no longer young, as you’ll see if you look at my hair. It’s getting gray. I’m married and now I have a daughter in college. She goes to Vassar. Her name is Elsie. Things are fixed with me. I live on a certain scale—that’s what I mean—that’s what’s the trouble with me.”
I had been trying to reassure him. “Please stay, I have nothing to do,” I said, and he smiled at my words like a child might. “I’m such an egotist," he explained. “You see, I want to talk about myself. I write stories, but they’re not any good. Really, they’re not any good at all, but they do make me some money. I’m in a tough spot, I tell you. I own a car and I live a certain lifestyle that’s fixed—that’s what I mean—that’s the issue for me. I’m no longer young, as you can see if you look at my hair. It’s getting gray. I’m married and now I have a daughter in college. She goes to Vassar. Her name is Elsie. Things are set for me. I live a certain lifestyle—that’s what I mean—that’s the issue for me.”
It was apparent the man had something of importance to himself he wanted to say and that he did not know how to begin.
It was clear that the man had something important to say, but he didn't know how to start.
I tried to help. My friend Edward had told me a little of his story. (For the sake of convenience and really to better conceal his identity we will call him Arthur Hobson—although that is not his name.) Although he was born in America he is of Italian descent and there is in his nature, no doubt, something of the Italian spirit of violence, strangely mingled, as it so often is in the Latins, with gentleness [Pg 422] and subtlety.
I tried to help. My friend Edward had shared some of his story with me. (To keep things simple and to better protect his identity, we’ll refer to him as Arthur Hobson—even though that’s not his real name.) Even though he was born in America, he comes from Italian heritage, and there’s definitely a bit of that Italian spirit of intensity in him, strangely mixed, as it often is with Latins, with gentleness and nuance. [Pg 422]
However, he was like myself in one thing. He was an American and was trying to understand himself—not as an Italian but as an American.
However, he was like me in one way. He was an American and was trying to understand himself—not as an Italian but as an American.
And so there was this Hobson—born in America of an Italian father—a father who had changed his name after coming to America and had prospered here. He, the father, had come to America to make money and had been successful. Then he had sent his son to an American college, wanting to make a real American of him.
And so there was this Hobson—born in America to an Italian father—a father who had changed his name after arriving in America and had become successful. The father came to America to make money and he achieved that goal. Then he sent his son to an American college, hoping to make a true American out of him.
The son had been ambitious to become a well-known football player and to have, during his college days, the joy of seeing his name and picture in the newspapers. As it turned out however, he could not become one of the great players and to the end of his college career remained what is called a substitute—getting into but one or two comparatively unimportant games to win his college letter.
The son had always dreamed of being a famous football player and hoped that during his college years, he'd get the thrill of seeing his name and picture in the newspapers. However, it turned out that he couldn't become one of the great players and by the end of his college experience, he stayed what is known as a substitute—playing in just one or two relatively unimportant games to earn his college letter.
He did not have it in him to be a great football player and so, in a world created in his fancy, he did what he could not do in life. He wrote a story concerning a man who, like himself, was of Italian descent and who also remained through most of his college career a substitute on a football team—but in the story the man did have, just at the end of his days in college, an opportunity of which he took brilliant advantage.
He didn't have what it took to be a great football player, so in a world of his imagination, he did what he couldn't in real life. He wrote a story about a man who, like him, was of Italian descent and who spent most of his college years as a substitute on a football team—but in the story, the man got a chance at the end of his college days and seized it brilliantly.
There was this Hobson in his room writing on an afternoon of the late Fall. It was the birth of a Story-teller. He moved restlessly about the room, sat a long time writing and then got up and moved about again.
There was this Hobson in his room writing on a late fall afternoon. It was the beginning of a storyteller. He paced restlessly around the room, sat for a long time writing, and then got up to move around again.
[Pg 423]
[Pg 423]
In the story he wrote that day in his room long ago he did what he could not do in the flesh. The hero of his story was a rather small square-shouldered man like himself and there was an important game on, the most important of the year. All the other players were Anglo-Saxons and they could not win the game. They held their opponents even but could make no progress toward scoring.
In the story he wrote that day in his room long ago, he accomplished what he couldn't do in real life. The main character in his story was a fairly short, broad-shouldered man, just like him, and there was a crucial game happening, the most important one of the year. All the other players were Anglo-Saxons, and they couldn't win the game. They held their opponents off, but they couldn't make any progress toward scoring.
And now came the last ten minutes of play and the team began to weaken a little and that heartened the other side. “Hold ’em! ... hold ’em! ... hold ’em!” shouted the crowd. At last, at the very last, the young Italian boy was given his chance. “Let the Wop go in! We are going to lose anyway. Let the Wop go in!”
And now the final ten minutes of the game arrived, and the team started to falter a bit, which encouraged the opposing side. “Hold them! ... hold them! ... hold them!” yelled the crowd. Finally, at the very end, the young Italian boy was given his chance. “Let the kid in! We’re going to lose anyway. Let the kid in!”
Who has not read such stories? There are infinite variations of the theme. There he was, the little dark-skinned Italian-American and who ever thought he could do anything special! Such games as football are for the nations of the North. “Well, it will have to be done. One of the halfbacks has injured himself. Go in there, you Wop!”
Who hasn't read stories like this? There are endless variations on the theme. There he was, the little dark-skinned Italian-American, and who would have thought he could do anything special! Sports like football are meant for the Northern nations. “Well, it has to be done. One of the halfbacks is hurt. Get in there, you Wop!”
So in he goes and the story football game, the most important one of the year for his school, is won. It is almost lost but he saves the day. Aha, the other side has the ball and fumbles, just as they are nearing the goal line. Forward springs the little alert dark figure. Now he has the ball and has darted away. He stumbles and almost falls but ... see ... he has made a little twisting movement with his body [Pg 424] just as that big fellow, the fullback of the opposing team, is about to pounce upon him. “See him run!” When he stumbles something happens to his leg. His ankle is sprained but still he runs like a streak. Now every step brings pain but he runs on and on. The game is won for the old school. “The little Wop did it! Hurrah! Hurrah!”
So he goes in, and the football game, the most important one of the year for his school, is won. It almost gets lost, but he saves the day. Aha, the other team has the ball and fumbles just as they’re nearing the goal line. The little quick dark figure springs forward. Now he has the ball and darts away. He stumbles and nearly falls but... look... he makes a quick twist with his body just as that big guy, the opposing team's fullback, is about to tackle him. “Look at him run!” When he stumbles, something happens to his leg. His ankle gets sprained, but he still runs like lightning. Now every step brings pain, but he keeps going and going. The game is won for the old school. “The little guy did it! Hooray! Hooray!” [Pg 424]
The devil and all! These Italian fellows have a cruel streak in them, even in their dreams. The young Italian-American writer, writing his first story, had left his hero with a slight limp that went with him all through life and had justified it by the notion that the limp was in some way a badge of honor, a kind of proof of his thorough-going Americanism.
The devil and all! These Italian guys have a harsh side to them, even in their dreams. The young Italian-American writer, working on his first story, had given his hero a slight limp that stuck with him throughout his life and thought of it as a badge of honor, some sort of proof of his deep-rooted American identity.
Anyway, he wrote the story and sent it to one of our American magazines and it was paid for and published. He did, after all, achieve a kind of distinction during his days in college. In an American college a football star is something but an author is something, too. “Look, there goes Hobson. He’s an author! He had a story in the National Whiz and got three hundred and fifty dollars for it. A smart fellow, I tell you! He’ll make his way in the world. All the fraternities are after the fellow.”
Anyway, he wrote the story and submitted it to one of our American magazines, and it got paid for and published. He did manage to gain a bit of recognition during his college days. In an American college, a football star is important, but an author holds value too. “Look, there goes Hobson. He’s an author! He had a story in the National Whiz and earned three hundred and fifty dollars for it. A smart guy, I tell you! He’s going to make it big. All the fraternities are after him.”
And so there was Hobson and his father was proud of him and his college was proud of him and his future was assured. He wrote another football story and another and another. Things began to come his way and by the time he left college he was engaged to be married to one of the most popular girls of his class. She wasn’t very enthusiastic about his people but one did not need to live in the same city with them. An author can live where he pleases. The young couple came from the [Pg 425] Middle-West and went to live in New England, in a town facing the sea. It was a good place for him. In New England there are many colleges and Hobson could go to football games all Fall and get new ideas for stories without traveling too far.
And so there was Hobson, and his father was proud of him, and his college was proud of him, and his future was secure. He wrote another football story and another, and another. Good things started happening for him, and by the time he graduated, he was engaged to one of the most popular girls in his class. She wasn’t too keen on his family, but living in different cities made that manageable. An author can live wherever he wants. The young couple came from the Midwest and moved to a town in New England facing the sea. It was a good fit for him. In New England, there are plenty of colleges, and Hobson could attend football games all fall and gather new story ideas without having to travel far. [Pg 425]
The Italian-American has become what he is, an American artist. He has a daughter in college now and owns an automobile. He is a success. He writes football stories.
The Italian-American has become what he is, an American artist. He has a daughter in college now and owns a car. He is successful. He writes football stories.
V
V
He sat in my room in the hotel in New York, fingering the book he had picked up from the table. The deuce! Did he want to tear the leaves? The fellow who came into the restaurant where Edward and I sat was in my mind perhaps—that is to say, the man who had been in prison. I kept thinking of the story writer as a man trying to tear away the bars of a prison. “Before he leaves this room my treasured book will be destroyed,” a corner of my brain was whispering to me.
He sat in my hotel room in New York, fiddling with the book he had picked up from the table. What the heck! Did he want to rip the pages? The guy who walked into the restaurant where Edward and I were sitting was in my mind, probably—that is to say, the man who had been in prison. I kept imagining the storyteller as someone trying to break free from the bars of a prison. “Before he leaves this room, my prized book is going to be ruined,” a part of my brain kept whispering to me.
He wanted to talk about writing. That was his purpose. As with Edward and myself, there was now something between Hobson and myself that wanted saying. We were both story-tellers, fumbling about in materials we too often did not understand.
He wanted to talk about writing. That was his goal. Just like with Edward and me, there was now something between Hobson and me that needed to be said. We were both storytellers, stumbling through materials we too often didn’t understand.
“You see now,” he urged upon me, leaning forward and now actually tearing a page of my book, “You see now, I write of youth ... youth out in the sun and wind, eh? I am supposed to represent young America, healthy young America. You wouldn’t believe how many times people have [Pg 426] spoken to me saying that my stories are always clean and healthy and the editors of magazines are always saying it too. ‘Keep on the track,’ they say. ‘Don’t fly off the handle! We want lots of just such clean healthy stuff.’”
“You see now,” he pressed, leaning in and actually tearing a page from my book, “You see now, I write about youth... youth out in the sun and wind, right? I’m supposed to represent young America, healthy young America. You wouldn’t believe how many times people have [Pg 426] told me that my stories are always clean and wholesome, and the magazine editors say the same thing. ‘Stay on track,’ they say. ‘Don’t lose your cool! We want plenty more of this clean, healthy stuff.’”
He had grown too nervous to sit still and getting up began to walk back and forth in the narrow space before the bed, still clinging to my book. He tried to give me a picture of his life.
He had become too anxious to stay still and, getting up, started pacing back and forth in the tight space before the bed, still holding onto my book. He attempted to share a glimpse of his life with me.
He lived he said, during most of the year, in a Connecticut village by the sea and for a large part of the year did not try to write at all. The writing of football stories was a special thing. One had always to get hold of the subject from a new angle and so, in the Fall, one went to many games and took notes. Little things happened on the field that could be built up and elaborated. Above all, one must get punch into the stories. There must be a little unexpected turn of events. “You understand. You are a writer yourself.”
He said he spent most of the year living in a Connecticut village by the sea and didn't really write for a large part of it. Writing football stories was something special. You always had to find a new angle on the subject, so in the fall, you would go to many games and take notes. Small things would happen on the field that could be expanded upon. Most importantly, you needed to add some excitement to the stories. There had to be a surprising twist. “You get it. You’re a writer too.”
My visitor’s mind slipped off into a new channel and he told me the story of his life in the New England town during the long months of the Spring, Summer and early Fall when, as I understood the matter, he did no writing.
My visitor’s mind wandered into a different direction, and he shared the story of his life in the New England town during the long months of Spring, Summer, and early Fall when, as I gathered, he did no writing.
Well, he played golf, he went to swim in the sea, he ran his automobile. In the New England town he owned a large white frame house where he lived with his wife, with his daughter when she was at home from school, and with two or three servants. He told me of his life there, of his working through the Summer months in a garden, of his going sometimes in the afternoons for long walks about the town and out along the country roads. He grew quieter and putting my book back [Pg 427] on the table sat down again on the edge of the bed.
Well, he played golf, swam in the ocean, and drove his car. In the New England town, he owned a big white house where he lived with his wife, his daughter when she was home from school, and a couple of servants. He shared stories about his life there, about working in the garden during the summer months, and how he sometimes went for long walks around the town and along the country roads in the afternoons. He grew quieter and, after putting my book back on the table, sat down again on the edge of the bed. [Pg 427]
“It’s odd,” he said. “You see, I have lived in that one town now for a good many years. There are people there I would like to know better. I would like really to know them, I mean. Men and women go along the road past my place. There is a man of about my own age whose wife has left him. He lives alone in a little house and cooks his own food. Sometimes he also goes for a walk and comes past my place and we are supposed to be friends. Something of the kind is in the wind. He stops sometimes by my garden and stands looking over and we talk but do not say much to each other. The devil, that’s the way it goes you see—there he is by the fence and there am I with a hoe in my hand. I walk to where he stands and also lean on the fence. We speak of the vegetables growing in my garden. Would you believe it we never speak of anything but the vegetables or the flowers perhaps? It’s a fact. There he stands. Did I tell you his wife has left him? He wants to speak of that—I’m sure of it. To tell the truth when he set out from his own house he was quite determined to come up to my place and tell me all about everything, how he feels, why his wife has left him and all about it. The man who went away with his wife was his best friend. It’s quite a story, you see. Everyone in our town knows about it but they do not know how the man himself feels as he sits up there in his house all alone.”
“It’s strange,” he said. “You see, I’ve lived in that one town for quite a few years now. There are people there I’d like to get to know better. I really mean it. Men and women walk past my place on the road. There’s a guy about my age whose wife left him. He lives alone in a small house and cooks his own meals. Sometimes he goes for a walk and comes by my place, and we’re supposed to be friends. Something's brewing, you know? He occasionally stops by my garden, looks over, and we chat, but we don’t say much to each other. It’s funny, that’s how it is—we’re both standing by the fence, and I’ve got a hoe in my hand. I walk over to where he is and lean on the fence too. We talk about the vegetables growing in my garden. Can you believe it? We only ever talk about the vegetables or maybe the flowers. It’s true. There he is. Did I mention his wife left him? I know he wants to talk about it—I’m sure of it. Honestly, when he left his house, he was determined to come over to my place and tell me everything, how he feels, why his wife left him, and all that. The guy who ran off with his wife was his best friend. It’s quite a story, you see. Everyone in our town knows about it, but they don’t know how he feels sitting up there in his house all alone.”
“That’s what he has made up his mind to talk to me about but he can’t do it, you see. All he does is to stand by my fence and speak of [Pg 428] growing vegetables. ‘Your lettuce is doing very well. The weeds do grow like the deuce, don’t they though? That’s a nice bed of flowers you have over there near the house.’”
“That’s what he wants to talk to me about, but he can’t do it, you know. All he does is stand by my fence and chat about growing vegetables. ‘Your lettuce is looking great. The weeds sure grow like crazy, don’t they? That’s a lovely flower bed you have over there by the house.’”
The writer of the football stories threw up his hands in disgust. It was evident he also felt something I had often felt. One learns to write a little and then comes this temptation to do tricks with words. The people who should catch us at our tricks are of no avail. Bill Hart, the two-gun man of the movies, who goes creeping through forests, riding pell-mell down hillsides, shooting his guns bang-bang, would be arrested and put out of the way if he did that at Billings, Montana, but do you suppose the people of Billings laugh at his pranks? Not at all. Eagerly they go to see him. Cowboys from distant towns ride to where they may see his pictures. For the cowboy also the past has become a flaming thing. Forgotten are the long dull days of following foolish cows across an empty desert place. Aha, the cowboy also wants to believe. Do you not suppose Bill Hart also wants to believe?
The writer of the football stories raised his hands in frustration. It was clear he also felt something I had often experienced. You learn to write a bit, and then the temptation arises to play around with words. The people who should catch us out on our antics don't always step up. Bill Hart, the two-gun man from the movies, sneaks through forests, rides wildly down hillsides, and shoots his guns with a bang-bang. If he did that in Billings, Montana, he’d be arrested and taken away, but do you think the people of Billings laugh at his antics? Not at all. They eagerly go to see him. Cowboys from far-off towns travel to watch his movies. For the cowboy, the past has become something vibrant. The long, boring days of trailing useless cattle across a barren desert are forgotten. Aha, the cowboy also wants to believe. Don't you think Bill Hart wants to believe too?
The deuce of it all is that, wanting to believe the lie, one shuts out the truth, too. The man by the fence, looking at the New England garden, could not become brother to the writer of football stories.
The crazy thing is that, wanting to believe the lie, you shut out the truth, too. The man by the fence, looking at the New England garden, couldn’t bond with the writer of football stories.
“They tell themselves so many little lies, my beloved.”
“They tell themselves so many small lies, my love.”
VI
VI
I was sliding across the room now, thinking of the man whose wife had run away with his friend. I was thinking of him and of something else [Pg 429] at the same time. I wanted to save my Balzac if I could. Already the football-story man had torn a page of the book. Were he to get excited again he might tear out more pages. When he had first come into my room I had been discourteous, standing and staring at him, and now I did not want to speak of the book, to warn him. I wanted to pick it up casually when he wasn’t looking. “I’ll walk across the room with it and put it out of his reach,” I thought but just as I was about to put out my hand he put out his hand and took it again.
I was sliding across the room now, thinking about the guy whose wife had left him for his friend. I was focused on him and on something else at the same time. I wanted to save my Balzac if I could. The football-story guy had already torn a page out of the book. If he got worked up again, he might rip out more pages. When he first came into my room, I had been rude, just standing there and staring at him, and now I didn’t want to mention the book, or warn him. I wanted to pick it up casually when he wasn’t paying attention. “I’ll walk across the room with it and put it out of his reach,” I thought, but just as I was about to reach for it, he reached out and took it again.
And now as he fingered the book nervously his mind jumped off in a new direction. He told me that during the Summer before he had got hold of a book of verses by an American poet, Carl Sandburg.
And now as he nervously flipped through the book, his mind took a new turn. He told me that during the previous summer, he had gotten a hold of a collection of poems by an American poet, Carl Sandburg.
“There’s a fellow,” he cried, waving my Balzac about. “He feels common things as I would like to be able to feel them and sometimes as I work in my garden I think of him. As I walk about in my town or go swimming or fishing in the Summer afternoons I think of him.” He quoted:
“There's a guy,” he shouted, waving my Balzac around. “He experiences ordinary things the way I wish I could, and sometimes while I'm working in my garden, I think of him. When I'm walking around my town or swimming or fishing on summer afternoons, I think of him.” He quoted:
“Such a beautiful pail of fish, such a beautiful peck of apples, I cannot bring you now. It is too early and I am not footloose yet.”
Such a beautiful bucket of fish, such a beautiful bag of apples, I can’t bring you right now. It’s too early and I’m not free yet.
It was pretty evident the man’s mind was jerking about, flying from place to place. Now he had forgotten the man who on Summer days came to lean over his fence and was speaking of other people of his New England town.
It was clear that the man's mind was racing, jumping from thought to thought. Now he had forgotten the guy who, on summer days, would lean over his fence and talk about other people from his New England town.
On Summer mornings he sometimes went to loiter about on the main [Pg 430] street of the town of his adoption, and there were things always going on that caught his fancy, as flies are caught in molasses.
On summer mornings, he would sometimes hang out on the main street of the town he had adopted, and there were always things happening that caught his interest, like flies getting stuck in molasses. [Pg 430]
Life bestirred itself in the bright sunlight in the streets. First there was a surface life and then another and more subtle life going on below the surface and the football-story writer felt both very keenly—he was one made to feel all life keenly—but all the time he kept trying to think only of the outside of things. That would be better for him, he thought. A story writer who had written football stories for ten or fifteen years might very well get himself into a bad way by letting his fancy play too much over the life immediately about him. It was just possible—well you see it might turn out that he would come in the end to hate a football game more than anything else in the world—he might come to hate a football game as that furtive fellow I had seen in the restaurant that afternoon no doubt hated a prison. There were his wife and child and his automobile to be thought about. He did not drive the automobile much himself—in fact driving it made him nervous—but his wife and the daughter from Vassar loved driving it.
Life stirred to life under the bright sunlight in the streets. First, there was a surface level of life, and then there was a deeper, more subtle life happening beneath that surface. The football story writer felt both intensely—he was the kind of person who experienced all of life acutely—but he constantly tried to focus only on the outside of things. He thought that would be better for him. A writer who had been crafting football stories for ten or fifteen years could easily get himself into trouble by letting his imagination wander too much into the life immediately around him. It was possible—well, you could see that he might eventually come to dislike a football game more than anything else in the world—he could end up hating a football game just like that sneaky guy I saw in the restaurant that afternoon probably hated a prison. He had his wife and child and his car to think about. He didn’t drive the car much himself—in fact, driving it made him anxious—but his wife and daughter from Vassar loved taking it out.
And so there he was in the town—on the main street of the town. It was, let us say, a bright early Fall morning and the sun was shining and the air filled with the tang of the sea. Why did he find it so difficult to speak with anyone regarding the half-formed thoughts and feelings inside himself? He had always found it difficult to speak of such things, he explained, and that was the reason he had come to see me. I was a fellow writer and no doubt I also was often caught in the same trap. “I thought I would speak to you about it. I thought maybe [Pg 431] you and I could talk it over,” he said.
And so there he was in town—on the main street. It was a bright early fall morning, the sun was shining, and the air was filled with the scent of the sea. Why was it so hard for him to talk to anyone about the half-formed thoughts and feelings inside him? He had always struggled to discuss such things, he explained, and that was why he came to see me. I was a fellow writer, and I probably found myself trapped in the same way. “I thought I would talk to you about it. I thought maybe [Pg 431] you and I could discuss it,” he said.
He went, on such a morning as I have described, into the town’s main street and for a time stood about before the postoffice. Then he went to stand before the door of a cigar store.
He went out on a morning like I described, into the town’s main street and stood around in front of the post office for a while. Then he went to stand in front of the door of a cigar store.
A favorite trick of his was to get his shoes shined.
A favorite trick of his was to get his shoes polished.
“You see,” he exclaimed, eagerly leaning forward on the bed and fingering my Balzac, “you see there is a small fish stand right near the shoe-shining stand and across the street there is a grocery where they set baskets of fruit out on the sidewalk. There are baskets of apples, baskets of peaches, baskets of pears, a bunch of yellow bananas hanging up. The fellow who runs the grocery is a Greek and the man who shines my shoes is an Italian. Lord, he’s a Wop like myself.
“You see,” he said, leaning forward on the bed and fiddling with my Balzac, “there's a small fish stand right next to the shoe-shining stand, and across the street, there's a grocery store where they put baskets of fruit out on the sidewalk. They have baskets of apples, baskets of peaches, baskets of pears, and a bunch of yellow bananas hanging up. The guy who runs the grocery is Greek, and the man who shines my shoes is Italian. Man, he’s a Wop like me.
“As for the man who sells fish, he’s a Yank.
“As for the guy who sells fish, he’s an American.”
“How nice the fish look in the morning sun!”
“How beautiful the fish look in the morning sun!”
The story-teller’s hand caressed the back of my book and there was something sensual in the touch of his fingers as he tried to describe something to me, a sense he had got of an inner life growing up between the men of such oddly assorted nationalities selling their merchandise on the streets of a New England town.
The storyteller's hand gently stroked the back of my book, and there was something intimate about the way his fingers moved as he attempted to describe something to me—a feeling he had of a hidden life developing among the men of such diverse nationalities selling their goods on the streets of a New England town.
Before coming to that he spoke at length of the fish lying amid cracked ice in a little box-like stand the fish merchant had built. One might have fancied my visitor also dreamed of some day becoming a fish merchant. The fish, he explained, were brought in from the sea in the evening by fishermen and the fish merchant came at daybreak to arrange his stock and all morning whenever he sold a fish he re-arranged the [Pg 432] stock, bringing more fish from a deep box at the back of his little coop. Sometimes he stood back of his sales counter but when there were no customers about he came out and walked up and down the sidewalk and looked with pride at the fish lying amid the pieces of cracked ice.
Before getting to that, he talked a lot about the fish lying on cracked ice in a small stand that the fishmonger had built. One might have thought my visitor also dreamed of becoming a fishmonger someday. He explained that the fish were brought in from the sea in the evening by fishermen, and the fishmonger arrived at dawn to arrange his stock. All morning, whenever he sold a fish, he would rearrange the display, bringing more fish from a deep box at the back of his little booth. Sometimes he stood behind his sales counter, but when there were no customers, he would step out and stroll along the sidewalk, admiring the fish lying on the cracked ice. [Pg 432]
The Italian shoe-shiner and the Greek grocer stood on the sidewalk laughing at their neighbor. He was never satisfied with the display made by his wares but was always at work changing it, trying to improve it.
The Italian shoe-shiner and the Greek grocer stood on the sidewalk laughing at their neighbor. He was never happy with how his goods were displayed but was always busy rearranging them, trying to make them better.
On the shoe-shining stand sat the writer of football stories and when another customer did not come to take his place at once he lingered a moment. There was a soft smile on his lips.
On the shoe-shining stand sat the writer of football stories, and when another customer didn't come to take his place right away, he stuck around for a moment. There was a gentle smile on his lips.
Sometimes when the story writer was there, sitting quietly on the shoe-shining stand, something happened at the fish-stand of which he tried to tell me. The fat old Yankee fish merchant did something—he allowed himself to be humiliated in a way that made the Greek and the Italian furious—although they never said anything about the matter.
Sometimes when the storyteller was around, sitting quietly on the shoe-shining stand, something happened at the fish stand that he tried to tell me about. The heavyset old Yankee fish vendor let himself be embarrassed in a way that made the Greek and the Italian really mad—though they never mentioned it.
“It is like this,” the story writer began, smiling shyly at me. “You see now—well, you see the fish merchant has a daughter. She is his daughter but the American, the Yank, does not have a daughter in the same way as a Greek or an Italian. I am an American myself but I have enough memory of life in my father’s house to know that.”
“It’s like this,” the writer started, smiling at me shyly. “You see—well, the fish merchant has a daughter. She’s his daughter, but the American, the Yank, doesn’t have a daughter in the same way a Greek or an Italian does. I’m an American too, but I remember enough from my life in my father’s house to understand that.”
“In the house of an Italian or a Greek the father is king. He says—‘do this or that,’ and this or that is done. There may be grumbling behind the door. All right, let it pass! There is no grumbling in his [Pg 433] presence. I’m talking now of the lower classes, the peasants. That’s the kind of blood I have in my veins. Oh, I admit there is a kind of brutality in it all but there is kindness and good sense in it, too. Well, the father goes out of his house to his work in the morning and for the woman in the house there is work too. She has her kids to look after. And the father—he works hard all day, he makes the living for all, he buys the food and clothes.
“In an Italian or Greek home, the father is the boss. He says, ‘do this or that,’ and it gets done. There might be some complaints behind closed doors, but that’s fine! In his presence, there’s no complaining. I’m referring to the working class, the peasants. That’s the kind of background I come from. Sure, there’s a bit of roughness in it all, but there’s also kindness and common sense. So, the father leaves home for work in the morning, and the woman has her own tasks to manage. She has the kids to take care of. And the father—he works hard all day, providing for everyone, buying food and clothes.”
“Does he want to come home and hear talk of the rights of women and children, all that sort of bosh? Does he want to find an American or an English feminist perhaps, enshrined in his house?”
“Does he want to come home and listen to discussions about the rights of women and children, all that nonsense? Does he want to discover an American or an English feminist maybe, living in his house?”
“Ha!” The story writer jumped off the bed and began again walking restlessly back and forth.
“Ha!” The writer jumped off the bed and started pacing back and forth anxiously.
“The devil!” he cried. “I am neither the one thing nor the other. And I also am bullied by my wife—not openly but in secret. It is all done in the name of keeping up appearances. Oh, it is all done very quietly and gently. I should have been an artist but I have become, you see, a man of business. It is my business to write football stories, eh! Among my people, the Italians, there have been artists. If they have money—very well and if they have no money—very well. Let us suppose one of them living poorly, eating his crust of bread. Aha! With his hands he does what he pleases. With his hands he works in stone—he works in colors, eh! Within himself he feels certain things and then with his hands he makes what he feels. He goes about laughing, puts his hat on the side of his head. Does he worry about running an automobile? ‘Go to the devil,’ he says. Does he lie awake nights thinking of how to maintain a large house and a daughter in college? The devil! Is there talk of [Pg 434] keeping up appearances for the sake of the woman? For an artist, you see,—well, what he has to say to his fellows is in his work. If he is an Italian his woman is a woman or out she goes. My Italians know how to be men.”
“Damn it!” he exclaimed. “I’m neither one thing nor the other. And I’m also pushed around by my wife—not openly but behind the scenes. It’s all done under the guise of keeping up appearances. Oh, it’s all very quiet and gentle. I should have been an artist, but here I am, you see, a businessman. My job is to write football stories, right? Among my people, the Italians, there have been artists. If they have money—great! And if they don’t—still great. Imagine one of them living frugally, eating his crust of bread. Aha! With his hands, he does whatever he wants. With his hands, he carves stone—he works with colors, right! Inside, he feels certain things, and then with his hands, he creates what he feels. He walks around laughing, tilting his hat to the side. Does he worry about driving a fancy car? ‘To hell with that,’ he says. Does he lie awake at night thinking about how to keep a big house and a daughter in college? No way! Is there talk of maintaining appearances for the sake of a woman? For an artist, you see, what he has to say to his peers is in his work. If he’s Italian, his woman is a woman, or she’s out. My Italians know how to be real men.”
“Such a beautiful pail of fish, such a beautiful peck of apples, I cannot bring you now. It is too early and I am not footloose yet.”
What a gorgeous bucket of fish, what a lovely bunch of apples, I can't bring them to you right now. It's too early, and I'm not free yet.
VII
VII
The story writer again sat down on the edge of the bed. There was something feverish in his eyes. Again he smiled softly but his fingers continued to play nervously with the pages of my book and now he tore several of the pages. Again he spoke of the three men of his New England town.
The storyteller sat down on the edge of the bed again. There was a certain intensity in his eyes. He smiled gently once more, but his fingers anxiously fiddled with the pages of my book, and now he ended up tearing several of the pages. He talked again about the three men from his New England town.
The fish-seller, it seemed, was not like the Yank of the comic papers. He was fat and in the comic papers a Yank is long and thin.
The fish seller looked nothing like the Yank from the comic books. He was overweight, while the Yank in the comics is tall and slim.
“He is short and fat,” my visitor said, “and he smokes a corncob pipe. What hands he has! His hands are like fish. They are covered with fish scales and the backs are white like the bellies of fish.”
“He's short and chubby,” my visitor said, “and he smokes a corncob pipe. What hands he has! His hands are like fish. They're covered in fish scales, and the backs are white like the bellies of fish.”
“And the Italian shoe-shiner is a fat man too. He has a mustache. When he is shining my shoes sometimes—well, sometimes he looks up from his job and laughs and then he calls the fat Yankee fish-seller—what do you think—a mermaid.”
“And the Italian shoe-shiner is a heavy guy too. He has a mustache. When he’s shining my shoes sometimes—well, sometimes he looks up from his work and laughs and then he calls the chubby Yankee fish-seller—guess what—a mermaid.”
In the life of the Yankee there was something that exasperated my visitor as it did the Greek grocer and the Italian who shined shoes [Pg 435] and as he told the story my treasured book, still held in his hand, suffered more and more. I kept going toward him, intending to take the book from his hand (he was quite unconscious of the damage he was doing) but each time as I reached out I lost courage. The name Balzac was stamped in gold on the back and the name seemed to be grinning at me.
In the life of the Yankee, there was something that frustrated my visitor just as it did the Greek grocer and the Italian who polished shoes. [Pg 435] As he told the story, my treasured book, still in his grip, suffered more and more. I kept moving closer, planning to take the book from him (he was completely unaware of the damage he was causing), but each time I reached out, I lost my nerve. The name Balzac was embossed in gold on the spine, and it felt like it was mocking me.
My visitor grinned at me too, in an excited nervous way. The seller of fish, the old fat man with the fish scales on his hands, had a daughter who was ashamed of her father and of his occupation in life. The daughter, an only child lived during most of the year in Boston where she was a student at the Boston Conservatory of Music. She was ambitious to become a pianist and had begun to take on the airs of a lady—had a little mincing step and a little mincing voice and wore mincing clothes too, my visitor said.
My visitor smiled at me as well, looking excited and a bit nervous. The fish seller, an old chubby guy with fish scales on his hands, had a daughter who was embarrassed by him and his job. The daughter, an only child, spent most of the year in Boston, where she studied at the Boston Conservatory of Music. She was eager to become a pianist and had started to act like a lady—she had a delicate little walk, a soft little voice, and wore fussy clothes too, my visitor said.
And in the Summer, like the writer’s daughter, she came home to live in her father’s house and, like the writer himself, sometimes went to walk about.
And in the summer, like the writer’s daughter, she moved back into her father's house and, like the writer himself, occasionally went for walks.
To the New England town during the Summer months there came a great many city people—from Boston and New York—and the pianist did not want them to know she was the daughter of the seller of fish. Sometimes she came to her father’s booth to get money from him or to speak with him concerning some affair of the family and it was understood between them that—when there were city visitors about—the father would not recognize his daughter as being in any way connected with himself. When they stood talking together and when one of the city visitors came along the street the daughter became a customer intent upon buying [Pg 436] fish. “Are your fish fresh?” she asked, assuming a casual lady-like air.
In the summer months, a lot of city people from Boston and New York came to the New England town, and the pianist didn’t want them to know she was the daughter of the fishmonger. Sometimes, she visited her father’s booth to get money from him or to discuss family matters, and it was understood between them that—when there were city visitors around—her father wouldn’t acknowledge her as his daughter. When they talked and a city visitor walked by, she acted like a customer focused on buying fish. “Are your fish fresh?” she asked, putting on a casual, lady-like demeanor. [Pg 436]
The Greek, standing at the door of his store across the street and the Italian shoe-shiner were both furious and took the humiliation of their fellow merchant as in some way a reflection on themselves, an assault upon their own dignity, and the story writer having his shoes shined felt the same way. All three men scowled and avoided looking at each other. The shoe-shiner rubbed furiously at the writer’s shoes and the Greek merchant began swearing at a boy employed in his store.
The Greek man stood at the door of his store across the street, and the Italian shoe-shiner were both furious, feeling that the humiliation of their fellow merchant somehow reflected on them, an attack on their own dignity. The writer, getting his shoes shined, felt the same way. All three men frowned and avoided making eye contact. The shoe-shiner angrily rubbed the writer’s shoes while the Greek merchant began cursing at a boy who worked in his store.
As for the fish merchant, he played his part to perfection. Picking up one of the fish he held it before his daughter’s eyes. “It’s perfectly fresh and a beauty, Madam,” he said. He avoided looking at his fellow merchants and did not speak to them for a long time after his daughter had gone.
As for the fish merchant, he performed his role flawlessly. Holding up one of the fish in front of his daughter, he said, “It’s fresh and beautiful, Madam.” He deliberately didn’t glance at his fellow merchants and didn’t talk to them for a long time after his daughter had left.
But when she had gone and the life that went on between the three men was resumed the fish merchant courted his neighbors. “Don’t blame me. It’s got to be done,” he seemed to be saying. He came out of his little booth and walked up and down arranging and re-arranging his stock and when he glanced at the others there was a pleading look in his eyes. “Well, you don’t understand. You haven’t been in America long enough to understand. You see, it’s like this—” his eyes seemed to say, “—we Americans can’t live for ourselves. We must live and work for our wives, our sons and our daughters. We can’t all of us get up in the world so we must give them their chance.” It was something of the sort he always seemed to be wanting to say.
But when she left and life resumed between the three men, the fish merchant began to socialize with his neighbors. “Don’t blame me. I have to do this,” he seemed to communicate. He stepped out of his little booth and walked back and forth, arranging and rearranging his items, and when he glanced at the others, there was a look of desperation in his eyes. “Well, you don’t understand. You haven’t been in America long enough to get it. You see, it’s like this—” his eyes seemed to convey, “—we Americans can’t just live for ourselves. We have to live and work for our wives, our sons, and our daughters. Not all of us can rise up in the world, so we need to give them their chance.” This was the kind of thing he always seemed to want to express.
[Pg 437]
[Pg 437]
It was a story. When one wrote football stories one thought out a plot, as a football coach thought out a new formation that would advance the ball.
It was a story. When you wrote football stories, you came up with a plot, just like a football coach devised a new play to move the ball forward.
But life in the streets of the New England village wasn’t like that. No short stories with clever endings—as in the magazines—happened in the streets of the town at all. Life went on and on and little illuminating human things happened. There was drama in the street and in the lives of the people in the street but it sprang directly out of the stuff of life itself. Could one understand that?
But life in the streets of the New England village wasn’t like that. No short stories with clever endings—as seen in the magazines—happened in the town at all. Life just went on and on, with small, meaningful moments occurring. There was drama in the street and in the lives of the people there, but it came directly from the essence of life itself. Could one really get that?
The young Italian tried but something got in his way. The fact that he was a successful writer of magazine short stories got in his way. The large white house near the sea, the automobile and the daughter at Vassar—all these things had got in his way.
The young Italian tried, but something stood in his way. The fact that he was a successful writer of magazine short stories held him back. The big white house by the sea, the car, and the daughter at Vassar—all of these things had gotten in his way.
One had to keep to the point and after a time it had happened that the man could not write his stories in the town. In the Fall he went to many football games, took notes, thought out plots, and then went off to the city, where he rented a room in a small hotel in a side street.
One had to stay focused, and eventually, the man found he couldn’t write his stories in town. In the fall, he attended many football games, took notes, brainstormed ideas, and then headed to the city, where he rented a room in a small hotel on a side street.
In the room he sat all day writing football stories. He wrote furiously hour after hour and then went to walk in the city streets. One had to keep giving things a new twist—to get new ideas constantly. The deuce, it was like having to write advertisements. One continually advertised a kind of life that did not exist.
In the room, he spent all day writing football stories. He wrote intensely, hour after hour, and then went for a walk in the city streets. You had to keep giving things a new twist to constantly generate new ideas. Honestly, it was like writing ads. You were always promoting a kind of life that didn’t really exist.
In the city streets, as one walked restlessly about, the actuality of life became as a ghost that haunted the house of one’s fancy. A child was crying in a stairway, a fat old woman with great breasts was leaning out at a window, a man came running along a street, dodged [Pg 438] into an alleyway, crawled over a high board fence, crept through a passageway between two apartment buildings and then continued running and running in another street.
In the city streets, as one walked around impatiently, the reality of life felt like a ghost haunting the house of one’s imagination. A child was crying in a stairway, a heavyset old woman with large breasts was leaning out of a window, and a man came rushing down the street, ducked into an alley, climbed over a tall fence, squeezed through a narrow gap between two apartment buildings, and then kept running and running down another street. [Pg 438]
Such things happened and the man walking and trying to think only of football games stood listening. In the distance he could hear the sounds of the running feet. They sounded quite sharply for a long moment and then were lost in the din of the street cars and motor trucks. Where was the running man going and what had he done? The old Harry! Now the sound of the running feet would go on and on forever in the imaginative life of the writer and at night in the room in the hotel in the city, the room to which he had come to write football stories, he would awaken out of sleep to hear the sound of running feet. There Was terror and drama in the sound. The running man had a white face. There was a look of terror on his face and for a moment a kind of terror would creep over the body of the writer lying in his bed.
Such things happened, and the man walking and trying to think only about football games stood there listening. In the distance, he could hear the sound of running feet. They were sharp for a brief moment before getting lost in the noise of streetcars and delivery trucks. Where was the running man heading, and what had he done? The old Harry! Now the sound of those running feet would echo on and on in the writer's imagination, and at night in his hotel room in the city, where he had come to write football stories, he would wake from sleep to hear the sound of running feet. There was terror and drama in that sound. The running man had a pale face. Fear was etched on his face, and for a moment, a sense of dread would wash over the writer lying in his bed.
That feeling would come and with it would come vague floating dreams, thoughts, impulses—that had nothing to do with the formation of plots for football stories. The fat Yankee fish-seller in the New England town had surrendered his manhood in the presence of other men for the sake of a daughter who wished to pass herself off as a lady and the New England town where he lived was full of people doing strange unaccountable things. The writer was himself always doing strange unaccountable things.
That feeling would arise, bringing along vague, drifting dreams, thoughts, and impulses that had nothing to do with creating plots for football stories. The overweight fish vendor in the New England town had given up his masculinity in front of other men for the sake of a daughter who wanted to present herself as a lady, and the New England town he lived in was filled with people doing odd, inexplicable things. The writer himself was always up to strange, unexplainable activities.
“What’s the matter with me?” he asked sharply, walking up and down before me in the room in the New York hotel and tearing the pages of [Pg 439] my book. “Well, you see,” he explained, “when I wrote my first football story it was fun. I was a boy wanting to be a football hero and as I could not become one in fact I became one in fancy. It was a boy’s fancy but now I’m a man and want to grow up. Something inside me wants to grow up.”
“What’s wrong with me?” he asked sharply, pacing back and forth in the hotel room in New York and ripping pages from my book. “Well, you see,” he continued, “when I wrote my first football story, it was fun. I was a kid dreaming of being a football hero and since I couldn’t become one in real life, I became one in my imagination. It was a child’s dream, but now I’m an adult and I want to mature. There’s something inside me that wants to grow up.”
“They won’t let me,” he cried, holding his hands out before him. He had dropped my book on the floor. “Look,” he said earnestly, “my hands are the hands of a middle-aged man and the skin on the back of my neck is wrinkled like an old man’s. Must my hands go on forever, painting the fancies of children?”
“They won’t let me,” he cried, holding his hands out in front of him. He had dropped my book on the floor. “Look,” he said seriously, “my hands are those of a middle-aged man and the skin on the back of my neck is wrinkled like an old man’s. Do my hands have to keep painting the whims of children forever?”
VIII
VIII
The writer of football stories had gone out of my room. He is an American artist. No doubt he is at this moment sitting somewhere in a hotel room, writing football stories. As I now sit writing of him my own mind is filled with fragmentary glimpses of life caught and held from our talk. The little fragments caught in the field of my fancy are like flies caught in molasses—they cannot escape. They will not go out of the house of my fancy and I am wondering, as no doubt you, the reader, will be wondering, what became of the daughter of the seller of fish who wanted to be a lady. Did she become a famous pianist or did she in the end run away with a man from New York City who was spending his vacation in the New England town only to find, after she got to the city with him, that he already had a wife? I am wondering about her—about the man whose wife ran away with his friend and about the running man in the city streets. He stays in my fancy the most sharply [Pg 440] of all. What happened to him? He had evidently committed a crime. Did he escape or did he, after he had got out into the adjoining street, run into the arms of a waiting policeman?
The writer of football stories had left my room. He's an American artist. Right now, he's probably in a hotel room somewhere, writing football stories. As I sit here writing about him, my mind is filled with bits and pieces of life captured from our conversation. The little snippets caught in my imagination are like flies stuck in molasses—they can't escape. They won't leave my mind, and I’m curious, as you, the reader, might be, about what happened to the daughter of the fish seller who wanted to be a lady. Did she become a famous pianist, or did she end up running away with a guy from New York City who was on vacation in a New England town, only to discover that he already had a wife once they got to the city? I'm wondering about her—about the man whose wife left him for his friend, and about the man running through the city streets. He lingers in my thoughts the most vividly. What happened to him? He clearly committed a crime. Did he get away, or after escaping onto the adjoining street, did he run right into the arms of a waiting policeman? [Pg 440]
Like the writer of football stories, my own fancy is haunted. To-day is just such a day as the one on which he came to see me. It is evening now and he came in the evening. In fancy again I see him, going about on Spring, Summer and early Fall days, on the streets of his New England town. Being an author he is somewhat timid and hesitates about speaking with people he meets. Well, he is lonely. By this time his daughter has no doubt graduated from Vassar. Perhaps she is married to a writer of stories. It may be that she has married a writer of cowboy stories who lives in the New England town and works in a garden.
Like the writer of football stories, my imagination is consumed. Today is just like the day he came to visit me. It’s evening now, and he came in the evening. Again, I picture him wandering through the streets of his New England town during Spring, Summer, and early Fall. Being an author, he’s a bit shy and hesitates to talk to the people he encounters. Well, he’s lonely. By now, his daughter has probably graduated from Vassar. Maybe she is married to a writer. Perhaps she married a writer of cowboy stories who lives in the New England town and works in a garden.
Perhaps at this very moment the man who has written so many stories of football games is writing another. In fancy I can hear the click of his typewriting machine. He is fighting, it seems, to maintain a certain position in life, a house by the sea, an automobile and he blames that fact on his wife, and on his daughter who wanted to go to Vassar.
Perhaps right now, the man who has written so many stories about football games is working on another one. I can almost hear the sound of his typewriter. It seems like he’s struggling to hold onto a certain lifestyle—a house by the beach, a car—and he blames his wife and his daughter, who wanted to attend Vassar, for that.
He is fighting to maintain his position in life and at the same time there is another fight going on. On that day in the hotel in the city of New York he told me, with tears in his eyes, that he wanted to grow up, to let his fanciful life keep pace with his physical life but that the magazine editors would not let him. He blamed the editors of magazines—he blamed his wife and daughter—as I remember our [Pg 441] conversation, he did not blame himself.
He is struggling to hold onto his place in life, and at the same time, there’s another battle happening. That day in the hotel in New York City, he told me, with tears in his eyes, that he wanted to grow up, to let his imaginative life match his actual life, but the magazine editors wouldn’t allow it. He blamed the magazine editors—he blamed his wife and daughter—as I remember our [Pg 441] conversation; he didn’t blame himself.
Perhaps he did not dare let his fanciful life mature to keep pace with his physical life. He lives in America, where as yet to mature in one’s fanciful life is thought of as something like a crime.
Perhaps he didn’t dare let his imaginative life grow up to match his physical life. He lives in America, where maturing in one’s imagination is still seen as somewhat of a crime.
In any event there he is, haunting my fancy. As the man running in the streets will always stay in his fancy, disturbing him when he wants to be thinking out new plots for football stories, so he will always stay in my fancy—unless, well unless I can unload him into the fanciful lives of you readers.
In any case, there he is, lingering in my thoughts. Just like the man running in the streets will always occupy his mind, distracting him when he wants to come up with new football story ideas, he will always stay in my thoughts—unless, well unless I can transfer him into the imaginative lives of you readers.
As the matter stands I see him now as I saw him on that Winter evening long ago. He is standing at the door of my room with the strained look in his eyes and is bewailing the fact that after our talk he will have to go back to his own room and begin writing another football story.
As it is, I can picture him now just like I did on that winter evening long ago. He's standing at my room door with a tense expression in his eyes, lamenting that after our conversation, he'll have to return to his own room and start writing another football story.
He speaks of that as one might speak of going to prison and then the door of my room closes and he is gone. I hear his footsteps in the hallway.
He talks about that like someone might talk about going to prison, and then the door to my room closes and he’s gone. I can hear his footsteps in the hallway.
My own hands are trembling a little. “Perhaps his fate is also my own,” I am telling myself. I hear his human footsteps in the hallway of the hotel and then through my mind go the words of the poet Sandburg he has quoted to me:
My hands are shaking a bit. “Maybe his fate is mine too,” I tell myself. I can hear his footsteps in the hotel hallway, and then the words of the poet Sandburg that he quoted to me run through my mind:
“Such a beautiful pail of fish, such a beautiful peck of apples, I cannot bring you now. It is too early and I am not footloose yet.”
Such a beautiful bucket of fish, such a beautiful handful of apples, I can't bring you now. It's too early and I'm not free yet.
The words of the American poet rattle in my head and then I turn my eyes to the floor where my destroyed Balzac is lying. The soft brown [Pg 442] leather back is uninjured and now again, in fancy, the name of the author is staring at me. The name is stamped on the back of the book in letters of gold.
The words of the American poet echo in my mind, and I look down at the floor where my ruined Balzac lies. The soft brown leather cover is undamaged, and once again, in my imagination, the author's name is looking back at me. The name is embossed on the back of the book in gold letters. [Pg 442]
From the floor of my room the name Balzac is grinning ironically up into my own American face.
From the floor of my room, the name Balzac is grinning ironically up at my American face.
TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES
Notes from the Transcriber
Obvious typographical errors have been silently corrected.
Obvious typos have been quietly fixed.
Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling were made consistent when a predominant preference was found in the original book; otherwise they were not changed.
Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling were made consistent when a main preference was found in the original book; otherwise, they were left unchanged.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!